summaryrefslogtreecommitdiff
diff options
context:
space:
mode:
-rw-r--r--.gitattributes4
-rw-r--r--LICENSE.txt11
-rw-r--r--README.md2
-rw-r--r--old/62346-0.txt9791
-rw-r--r--old/62346-0.zipbin210551 -> 0 bytes
-rw-r--r--old/62346-h.zipbin1081126 -> 0 bytes
-rw-r--r--old/62346-h/62346-h.htm13571
-rw-r--r--old/62346-h/images/cover.jpgbin442196 -> 0 bytes
-rw-r--r--old/62346-h/images/decoration.jpgbin9976 -> 0 bytes
-rw-r--r--old/62346-h/images/decoration3.jpgbin6809 -> 0 bytes
-rw-r--r--old/62346-h/images/i_052f.jpgbin102027 -> 0 bytes
-rw-r--r--old/62346-h/images/i_158f.jpgbin123265 -> 0 bytes
-rw-r--r--old/62346-h/images/i_frontis.jpgbin141975 -> 0 bytes
-rw-r--r--old/62346-h/images/title_medallion.jpgbin35811 -> 0 bytes
14 files changed, 17 insertions, 23362 deletions
diff --git a/.gitattributes b/.gitattributes
new file mode 100644
index 0000000..d7b82bc
--- /dev/null
+++ b/.gitattributes
@@ -0,0 +1,4 @@
+*.txt text eol=lf
+*.htm text eol=lf
+*.html text eol=lf
+*.md text eol=lf
diff --git a/LICENSE.txt b/LICENSE.txt
new file mode 100644
index 0000000..6312041
--- /dev/null
+++ b/LICENSE.txt
@@ -0,0 +1,11 @@
+This eBook, including all associated images, markup, improvements,
+metadata, and any other content or labor, has been confirmed to be
+in the PUBLIC DOMAIN IN THE UNITED STATES.
+
+Procedures for determining public domain status are described in
+the "Copyright How-To" at https://www.gutenberg.org.
+
+No investigation has been made concerning possible copyrights in
+jurisdictions other than the United States. Anyone seeking to utilize
+this eBook outside of the United States should confirm copyright
+status under the laws that apply to them.
diff --git a/README.md b/README.md
new file mode 100644
index 0000000..dd6e646
--- /dev/null
+++ b/README.md
@@ -0,0 +1,2 @@
+Project Gutenberg (https://www.gutenberg.org) public repository for
+eBook #62346 (https://www.gutenberg.org/ebooks/62346)
diff --git a/old/62346-0.txt b/old/62346-0.txt
deleted file mode 100644
index 1129b4a..0000000
--- a/old/62346-0.txt
+++ /dev/null
@@ -1,9791 +0,0 @@
-The Project Gutenberg EBook of In Black and White, by Rudyard Kipling
-
-This eBook is for the use of anyone anywhere in the United States and most
-other parts of the world at no cost and with almost no restrictions
-whatsoever. You may copy it, give it away or re-use it under the terms of
-the Project Gutenberg License included with this eBook or online at
-www.gutenberg.org. If you are not located in the United States, you'll have
-to check the laws of the country where you are located before using this ebook.
-
-Title: In Black and White
- The writings in prose and verse of Rudyard Kipling
-
-Author: Rudyard Kipling
-
-Release Date: June 8, 2020 [EBook #62346]
-
-Language: English
-
-Character set encoding: UTF-8
-
-*** START OF THIS PROJECT GUTENBERG EBOOK IN BLACK AND WHITE ***
-
-
-
-
-Produced by KD Weeks, MFR and the Online Distributed
-Proofreading Team at https://www.pgdp.net (This file was
-produced from images generously made available by The
-Internet Archive)
-
-
-
-
-
-
-------------------------------------------------------------------------
-
- Transcriber’s Note:
-
-This version of the text cannot represent certain typographical effects.
-Italics are delimited with the ‘_’ character as _italic_.
-
-Footnotes have been moved to follow the paragraphs in which they are
-referenced.
-
-Minor errors, attributable to the printer, have been corrected. Please
-see the transcriber’s note at the end of this text for details regarding
-the handling of any textual issues encountered during its preparation.
-
- RUDYARD KIPLING
-
-
- VOLUME IV
-
- IN BLACK AND WHITE
-
-[Illustration: ON THE CITY WALL]
-
- THE WRITINGS IN PROSE AND VERSE OF
-
- RUDYARD KIPLING
-
- IN BLACK AND
- WHITE
-
-[Illustration]
-
- NEW YORK
- CHARLES SCRIBNER’S SONS
- 1909
-
- _Copyright, 1895_,
- By MACMILLAN AND CO.
-
- _Copyright, 1897_,
- By RUDYARD KIPLING
-
-
-
-
- PREFACE
-
-
-In Northern India stood a monastery called The Chubára of Dhunni Bhagat.
-No one remembered who or what Dhunni Bhagat had been. He had lived his
-life, made a little money and spent it all, as every good Hindu should
-do, on a work of piety—the Chubára. That was full of brick cells, gaily
-painted with the figures of Gods and kings and elephants, where worn-out
-priests could sit and meditate on the latter end of things: the paths
-were brick-paved, and the naked feet of thousands had worn them into
-gutters. Clumps of mangoes sprouted from between the bricks; great pipal
-trees overhung the well-windlass that whined all day; and hosts of
-parrots tore through the trees. Crows and squirrels were tame in that
-place, for they knew that never a priest would touch them.
-
-The wandering mendicants, charm-sellers, and holy vagabonds for a
-hundred miles round used to make the Chubára their place of call and
-rest. Mahommedan, Sikh, and Hindu mixed equally under the trees. They
-were old men, and when man has come to the turnstiles of Night all the
-creeds in the world seem to him wonderfully alike and colourless.
-
-Gobind the one-eyed told me this. He was a holy man who lived on an
-island in the middle of a river, and fed the fishes with little bread
-pellets twice a day. In flood-time, when swollen corpses stranded
-themselves at the foot of the island, Gobind would cause them to be
-piously burned, for the sake of the honour of mankind, and having regard
-to his own account with God hereafter. But when two-thirds of the island
-was torn away in a spate, Gobind came across the river to Dhunni
-Bhagat’s Chubára, he and his brass drinking-vessel with the well-cord
-round the neck, his short arm-rest crutch studded with brass nails, his
-roll of bedding, his big pipe, his umbrella, and his tall sugar-loaf hat
-with the nodding peacock feathers in it. He wrapped himself up in his
-patched quilt made of every colour and material in the world, sat down
-in a sunny corner of the very quiet Chubára, and, resting his arm on his
-short-handled crutch, waited for death. The people brought him food and
-little clumps of marigold flowers, and he gave his blessing in return.
-He was nearly blind, and his face was seamed and lined and wrinkled
-beyond belief, for he had lived in his time, which was before the
-English came within five hundred miles of Dhunni Bhagat’s Chubára.
-
-When we grew to know each other well, Gobind would tell me tales in a
-voice most like the rumbling of heavy guns over a wooden bridge. His
-tales were true, but not one in twenty could be printed in an English
-book, because the English do not think as natives do. They brood over
-matters that a native would dismiss till a fitting occasion; and what
-they would not think twice about a native will brood over till a fitting
-occasion: then native and English stare at each other hopelessly across
-great gulfs of miscomprehension.
-
-“And what,” said Gobind one Sunday evening, “is your honoured craft, and
-by what manner of means earn you your daily bread?”
-
-“I am,” said I, “a _kerani_—one who writes with a pen upon paper, not
-being in the service of the Government.”
-
-“Then what do you write?” said Gobind. “Come nearer, for I cannot see
-your countenance, and the light fails.”
-
-“I write of all matters that lie within my understanding, and of many
-that do not. But chiefly I write of Life and Death, and men and women,
-and Love and Fate, according to the measure of my ability, telling the
-tale through the mouths of one, two, or more people. Then by the favour
-of God the tales are sold and money accrues to me that I may keep
-alive.”
-
-“Even so,” said Gobind. “That is the work of the bazar story-teller; but
-he speaks straight to men and women and does not write anything at all.
-Only when the tale has aroused expectation and calamities are about to
-befall the virtuous, he stops suddenly and demands payment ere he
-continues the narration. Is it so in your craft, my son?”
-
-“I have heard of such things when a tale is of great length, and is sold
-as a cucumber, in small pieces.”
-
-“Ay, I was once a famed teller of stories when I was begging on the road
-between Koshin and Etra, before the last pilgrimage that ever I took to
-Orissa. I told many tales and heard many more at the rest-houses in the
-evening when we were merry at the end of the march. It is in my heart
-that grown men are but as little children in the matter of tales, and
-the oldest tale is the most beloved.”
-
-“With your people that is truth,” said I. “But in regard to our people
-they desire new tales, and when all is written they rise up and declare
-that the tale were better told in such and such a manner, and doubt
-either the truth or the invention thereof.”
-
-“But what folly is theirs!” said Gobind, throwing out his knotted hand.
-“A tale that is told is a true tale as long as the telling lasts. And of
-their talk upon it—you know how Bilas Khan, that was the prince of
-tale-tellers, said to one who mocked him in the great rest-house on the
-Jhelum road: ‘Go on, my brother, and finish that I have begun,’ and he
-who mocked took up the tale, but having neither voice nor manner for the
-task, came to a standstill, and the pilgrims at supper made him eat
-abuse and stick half that night.”
-
-“Nay, but with our people, money having passed, it is their right; as we
-should turn against a shoeseller in regard to shoes if those wore out.
-If ever I make a book you shall see and judge.”
-
-“And the parrot said to the falling tree, Wait, brother, till I fetch a
-prop!” said Gobind with a grim chuckle. “God has given me eighty years,
-and it may be some over. I cannot look for more than day granted by day
-and as a favour at this tide. Be swift.”
-
-“In what manner is it best to set about the task,” said I, “O chiefest
-of those who string pearls with their tongue?”
-
-“How do I know? Yet”—he thought for a little—“how should I not know? God
-has made very many heads, but there is only one heart in all the world
-among your people or my people. They are children in the matter of
-tales.”
-
-“But none are so terrible as the little ones, if a man misplace a word,
-or in a second telling vary events by so much as one small devil.”
-
-“Ay, I also have told tales to the little ones, but do thou this—” His
-old eyes fell on the gaudy paintings of the wall, the blue and red dome,
-and the flames of the poinsettias beyond. “Tell them first of those
-things that thou hast seen and they have seen together. Thus their
-knowledge will piece out thy imperfections. Tell them of what thou alone
-hast seen, then what thou hast heard, and since they be children tell
-them of battles and kings, horses, devils, elephants, and angels, but
-omit not to tell them of love and such like. All the earth is full of
-tales to him who listens and does not drive away the poor from his door.
-The poor are the best of tale-tellers; for they must lay their ear to
-the ground every night.”
-
-After this conversation the idea grew in my head, and Gobind was
-pressing in his inquiries as to the health of the book.
-
-Later, when we had been parted for months, it happened that I was to go
-away and far off, and I came to bid Gobind good-bye.
-
-“It is farewell between us now, for I go a very long journey,” I said.
-
-“And I also. A longer one than thou. But what of the book?” said he.
-
-“It will be born in due season if it is so ordained.”
-
-“I would I could see it,” said the old man, huddling beneath his quilt.
-“But that will not be. I die three days hence, in the night, a little
-before the dawn. The term of my years is accomplished.”
-
-In nine cases out of ten a native makes no miscalculation as to the day
-of his death. He has the foreknowledge of the beasts in this respect.
-
-“Then thou wilt depart in peace, and it is good talk, for thou hast said
-that life is no delight to thee.”
-
-“But it is a pity that our book is not born. How shall I know that there
-is any record of my name?”
-
-“Because I promise, in the forepart of the book, preceding everything
-else, that it shall be written, Gobind, sadhu, of the island in the
-river and awaiting God in Dhunni Bhagat’s Chubára, first spoke of the
-book,” said I.
-
-“And gave counsel—an old man’s counsel. Gobind, son of Gobind of the
-Chumi village in the Karaon tehsil, in the district of Mooltan. Will
-that be written also?”
-
-“That will be written also.”
-
-“And the book will go across the Black Water to the houses of your
-people, and all the Sahibs will know of me who am eighty years old?”
-
-“All who read the book shall know. I cannot promise for the rest.”
-
-“That is good talk. Call aloud to all who are in the monastery, and I
-will tell them this thing.”
-
-They trooped up, _faquirs_, _sadhus_, _sunnyasis_, _byragis_, _nihangs_,
-and _mullahs_, priests of all faiths and every degree of raggedness, and
-Gobind, leaning upon his crutch, spoke so that they were visibly filled
-with envy, and a white-haired senior bade Gobind think of his latter end
-instead of transitory repute in the mouths of strangers. Then Gobind
-gave me his blessing, and I came away.
-
-These tales have been collected from all places, and all sorts of
-people, from priests in the Chubára, from Ala Yar the carver, Jiwun
-Singh the carpenter, nameless men on steamers and trains round the
-world, women spinning outside their cottages in the twilight, officers
-and gentlemen now dead and buried, and a few, but these are the very
-best, my father gave me. The greater part of them have been published in
-magazines and newspapers, to whose editors I am indebted; but some are
-new on this side of the water, and some have not seen the light before.
-
-The most remarkable stories are, of course, those which do not
-appear—for obvious reasons.
-
-
-
-
- CONTENTS
-
-
- PAGE
- DRAY WARA YOW DEE 1
- NAMGAY DOOLA 17
- “THE CITY OF DREADFUL NIGHT” 35
- THE JUDGMENT OF DUNGARA 46
- THE FINANCES OF THE GODS 60
- AT HOWLI THANA 67
- IN FLOOD TIME 75
- MOTI GUJ—MUTINEER 90
- WITHOUT BENEFIT OF CLERGY 101
- NABOTH 139
- THE SENDING OF DANA DA 145
- THROUGH THE FIRE 161
- THE HEAD OF THE DISTRICT 168
- THE AMIR’S HOMILY 204
- AT TWENTY-TWO 210
- JEWS IN SHUSHAN 227
- GEORGIE PORGIE 233
- LITTLE TOBRAH 247
- GEMINI 252
- THE LIMITATIONS OF PAMBÉ SERANG 266
- ONE VIEW OF THE QUESTION 274
- FROM “MANY INVENTIONS.”
- ON THE CITY WALL 302
- THE ENLIGHTENMENTS OF PAGETT, M. P. 340
-
-
-
-
-
-
-
-
-[Illustration]
-
-
-
-
- ILLUSTRATIONS
-
- ON THE CITY WALL FRONTISPIECE
- THE JUDGMENT OF DUNGARA PAGE 52
- THE SENDING OF DANA DA 158
-
-
-
-
- IN BLACK AND WHITE
-
- DRAY WARA YOW DEE
-
-For jealousy is the rage of a man: therefore he will not spare in the
- day of vengeance.—_Prov._ vi. 34.
-
-
-Almonds and raisins, Sahib? Grapes from Kabul? Or a pony of the rarest
-if the Sahib will only come with me. He is thirteen three, Sahib, plays
-polo, goes in a cart, carries a lady and—Holy Kurshed and the Blessed
-Imams, it is the Sahib himself! My heart is made fat and my eye glad.
-May you never be tired! As is cold water in the Tirah, so is the sight
-of a friend in a far place. And what do _you_ in this accursed land?
-South of Delhi, Sahib, you know the saying—“Rats are the men and trulls
-the women.” It was an order? Ahoo! An order is an order till one is
-strong enough to disobey. O my brother, O my friend, we have met in an
-auspicious hour! Is all well in the heart and the body and the house? In
-a lucky day have we two come together again.
-
-I am to go with you? Your favour is great. Will there be picket-room in
-the compound? I have three horses and the bundles and the horse-boy.
-Moreover, remember that the police here hold me a horse-thief. What do
-these Lowland bastards know of horse-thieves? Do you remember that time
-in Peshawur when Kamal hammered on the gates of Jumrud—mountebank that
-he was—and lifted the Colonel’s horses all in one night? Kamal is dead
-now, but his nephew has taken up the matter, and there will be more
-horses amissing if the Khaiber Levies do not look to it.
-
-The Peace of God and the favour of His Prophet be upon this house and
-all that is in it! Shafizullah, rope the mottled mare under the tree and
-draw water. The horses can stand in the sun, but double the felts over
-the loins. Nay, my friend, do not trouble to look them over. They are to
-sell to the Officer fools who know so many things of the horse. The mare
-is heavy in foal; the gray is a devil unlicked; and the dun—but you know
-the trick of the peg. When they are sold I go back to Pubbi, or, it may
-be, the Valley of Peshawur.
-
-O friend of my heart, it is good to see you again. I have been bowing
-and lying all day to the Officer Sahibs in respect to those horses; and
-my mouth is dry for straight talk. _Auggrh!_ Before a meal tobacco is
-good. Do not join me, for we are not in our own country. Sit in the
-verandah and I will spread my cloth here. But first I will drink. _In
-the name of God returning thanks, thrice!_ This is sweet water,
-indeed—sweet as the water of Sheoran when it comes from the snows.
-
-They are all well and pleased in the North—Khoda Baksh and the others.
-Yar Khan has come down with the horses from Kurdistan—six and thirty
-head only, and a full half pack-ponies—and has said openly in the
-Kashmir Serai that you English should send guns and blow the Amir into
-Hell. There are _fifteen_ tolls now on the Kabul road; and at Dakka,
-when he thought he was clear, Yar Khan was stripped of all his Balkh
-stallions by the Governor! This is a great injustice, and Yar Khan is
-hot with rage. And of the others: Mahbub Ali is still at Pubbi, writing
-God knows what. Tugluq Khan is in jail for the business of the Kohat
-Police Post. Faiz Beg came down from Ismail-ki-Dhera with a Bokhariot
-belt for thee, my brother, at the closing of the year, but none knew
-whither thou hadst gone: there was no news left behind. The Cousins have
-taken a new run near Pakpattan to breed mules for the Government carts,
-and there is a story in Bazar of a priest. Oho! Such a salt tale!
-Listen——
-
-Sahib, why do you ask that? My clothes are fouled because of the dust on
-the road. My eyes are sad because of the glare of the sun. My feet are
-swollen because I have washed them in bitter water, and my cheeks are
-hollow because the food here is bad. Fire burn your money! What do I
-want with it? I am rich and I thought you were my friend; but you are
-like the others—a Sahib. Is a man sad? Give him money, say the Sahibs.
-Is he dishonoured? Give him money, say the Sahibs. Hath he a wrong upon
-his head? Give him money, say the Sahibs. Such are the Sahibs, and such
-art thou—even thou.
-
-Nay, do not look at the feet of the dun. Pity it is that I ever taught
-you to know the legs of a horse. Footsore? Be it so. What of that? The
-roads are hard. And the mare footsore? She bears a double burden, Sahib.
-
-And now I pray you, give me permission to depart. Great favour and
-honour has the Sahib done me, and graciously has he shown his belief
-that the horses are stolen. Will it please him to send me to the Thana?
-To call a sweeper and have me led away by one of these lizard-men? I am
-the Sahib’s friend. I have drunk water in the shadow of his house, and
-he has blackened my face. Remains there anything more to do? Will the
-Sahib give me eight annas to make smooth the injury and—complete the
-insult——?
-
-Forgive me, my brother. I knew not—I know not now—what I say. Yes, I
-lied to you! I will put dust on my head—and I am an Afridi! The horses
-have been marched footsore from the Valley to this place, and my eyes
-are dim, and my body aches for the want of sleep, and my heart is dried
-up with sorrow and shame. But as it was my shame, so by God the
-Dispenser of Justice—by Allah-al-Mumit—it shall be my own revenge!
-
-We have spoken together with naked hearts before this, and our hands
-have dipped into the same dish and thou hast been to me as a brother.
-Therefore I pay thee back with lies and ingratitude—as a Pathan. Listen
-now! When the grief of the soul is too heavy for endurance it may be a
-little eased by speech, and, moreover, the mind of a true man is as a
-well, and the pebble of confession dropped therein sinks and is no more
-seen. From the Valley have I come on foot, league by league, with a fire
-in my chest like the fire of the Pit. And why? Hast thou, then, so
-quickly forgotten our customs, among this folk who sell their wives and
-their daughters for silver? Come back with me to the North and be among
-men once more. Come back, when this matter is accomplished and I call
-for thee! The bloom of the peach-orchards is upon all the Valley, and
-_here_ is only dust and a great stink. There is a pleasant wind among
-the mulberry trees, and the streams are bright with snow-water, and the
-caravans go up and the caravans go down, and a hundred fires sparkle in
-the gut of the Pass, and tent-peg answers hammer-nose, and pack-horse
-squeals to pack-horse across the drift smoke of the evening. It is good
-in the North now. Come back with me. Let us return to our own people!
-Come!
-
- * * * * *
-
-Whence is my sorrow? Does a man tear out his heart and make fritters
-thereof over a slow fire for aught other than a woman? Do not laugh,
-friend of mine, for your time will also be. A woman of the Abazai was
-she, and I took her to wife to staunch the feud between our village and
-the men of Ghor. I am no longer young? The lime has touched my beard?
-True. I had no need of the wedding? Nay, but I loved her. What saith
-Rahman: “Into whose heart Love enters, there is Folly _and naught else_.
-By a glance of the eye she hath blinded thee; and by the eyelids and the
-fringe of the eyelids taken thee into the captivity without ransom, _and
-naught else_.” Dost thou remember that song at the sheep-roasting in the
-Pindi camp among the Uzbegs of the Amir?
-
-The Abazai are dogs and their women the servants of sin. There was a
-lover of her own people, but of that her father told me naught. My
-friend, curse for me in your prayers, as I curse at each praying from
-the Fakr to the Isha, the name of Daoud Shah, Abazai, whose head is
-still upon his neck, whose hands are still upon his wrists, who has done
-me dishonour, who has made my name a laughing-stock among the women of
-Little Malikand.
-
-I went into Hindustan at the end of two months—to Cherat. I was gone
-twelve days only; but I had said that I would be fifteen days absent.
-This I did to try her, for it is written: “Trust not the incapable.”
-Coming up the gorge alone in the falling of the light, I heard the voice
-of a man singing at the door of my house; and it was the voice of Daoud
-Shah, and the song that he sang was “_Dray wara yow dee_”—“All three are
-one.” It was as though a heel-rope had been slipped round my heart and
-all the Devils were drawing it tight past endurance. I crept silently up
-the hill-road, but the fuse of my matchlock was wetted with the rain,
-and I could not slay Daoud Shah from afar. Moreover, it was in my mind
-to kill the woman also. Thus he sang, sitting outside my house, and,
-anon, the woman opened the door, and I came nearer, crawling on my belly
-among the rocks. I had only my knife to my hand. But a stone slipped
-under my foot, and the two looked down the hillside, and he, leaving his
-matchlock, fled from my anger, because he was afraid for the life that
-was in him. But the woman moved not till I stood in front of her,
-crying: “O woman, what is this that thou hast done?” And she, void of
-fear, though she knew my thought, laughed, saying: “It is a little
-thing. I loved him, and _thou_ art a dog and cattle-thief coming by
-night. Strike!” And I, being still blinded by her beauty, for, O my
-friend, the women of the Abazai are very fair, said: “Hast thou no
-fear?” And she answered: “None—but only the fear that I do not die.”
-Then said I: “Have no fear.” And she bowed her head, and I smote it off
-at the neck-bone so that it leaped between my feet. Thereafter the rage
-of our people came upon me, and I hacked off the breasts, that the men
-of Little Malikand might know the crime, and cast the body into the
-water-course that flows to the Kabul river. _Dray wara yow dee! Dray
-wara yow dee!_ The body without the head, the soul without light, and my
-own darkling heart—all three are one—all three are one!
-
-That night, making no halt, I went to Ghor and demanded news of Daoud
-Shah. Men said: “He is gone to Pubbi for horses. What wouldst thou of
-him? There is peace between the villages.” I made answer: “Aye! The
-peace of treachery and the love that the Devil Atala bore to Gurel.” So
-I fired thrice into the gate and laughed and went my way.
-
-In those hours, brother and friend of my heart’s heart, the moon and the
-stars were as blood above me, and in my mouth was the taste of dry
-earth. Also, I broke no bread, and my drink was the rain of the Valley
-of Ghor upon my face.
-
-At Pubbi I found Mahbub Ali, the writer, sitting upon his charpoy, and
-gave up my arms according to your Law. But I was not grieved, for it was
-in my heart that I should kill Daoud Shah with my bare hands thus—as a
-man strips a bunch of raisins. Mahbub Ali said: “Daoud Shah has even now
-gone hot-foot to Peshawur, and he will pick up his horses upon the road
-to Delhi, for it is said that the Bombay Tramway Company are buying
-horses there by the truck-load; eight horses to the truck.” And that was
-a true saying.
-
-Then I saw that the hunting would be no little thing, for the man was
-gone into your borders to save himself against my wrath. And shall he
-save himself so? Am I not alive? Though he run northward to the Dora and
-the snow, or southerly to the Black Water, I will follow him, as a lover
-follows the footsteps of his mistress, and coming upon him I will take
-him tenderly—Aho! so tenderly!—in my arms, saying: “Well hast thou done
-and well shalt thou be repaid.” And out of that embrace Daoud Shah shall
-not go forth with the breath in his nostrils. _Auggrh!_ Where is the
-pitcher? I am as thirsty as a mother-mare in the first month.
-
-Your Law! What is your Law to me? When the horses fight on the runs do
-they regard the boundary pillars; or do the kites of Ali Musjid forbear
-because the carrion lies under the shadow of the Ghor Kuttri? The matter
-began across the Border. It shall finish where God pleases. Here, in my
-own country, or in Hell. All three are one.
-
-Listen now, sharer of the sorrow of my heart, and I will tell of the
-hunting. I followed to Peshawur from Pubbi, and I went to and fro about
-the streets of Peshawur like a houseless dog, seeking for my enemy. Once
-I thought that I saw him washing his mouth in the conduit in the big
-square, but when I came up he was gone. It may be that it was he, and,
-seeing my face, he had fled.
-
-A girl of the bazar said that he would go to Nowshera. I said: “O
-heart’s heart, does Daoud Shah visit thee?” And she said: “Even so.” I
-said: “I would fain see him, for we be friends parted for two years.
-Hide me, I pray, here in the shadow of the window shutter, and I will
-wait for his coming.” And the girl said: “O Pathan, look into my eyes!”
-And I turned, leaning upon her breast, and looked into her eyes,
-swearing that I spoke the very Truth of God. But she answered: “Never
-friend waited friend with such eyes. Lie to God and the Prophet, but to
-a woman ye cannot lie. Get hence! There shall no harm befall Daoud Shah
-by cause of me.”
-
-I would have strangled that girl but for the fear of your Police; and
-thus the hunting would have come to naught. Therefore I only laughed and
-departed, and she leaned over the window-bar in the night and mocked me
-down the street. Her name is Jamun. When I have made my account with the
-man I will return to Peshawur and—her lovers shall desire her no more
-for her beauty’s sake. She shall not be _Jamun_, but _Ak_, the cripple
-among trees. Ho! Ho! _Ak_ shall she be!
-
-At Peshawur I bought the horses and grapes, and the almonds and dried
-fruits, that the reason of my wanderings might be open to the
-Government, and that there might be no hindrance upon the road. But when
-I came to Nowshera he was gone, and I knew not where to go. I stayed one
-day at Nowshera, and in the night a Voice spoke in my ears as I slept
-among the horses. All night it flew round my head and would not cease
-from whispering. I was upon my belly, sleeping as the Devils sleep, and
-it may have been that the Voice was the voice of a Devil. It said: “Go
-south, and thou shalt come upon Daoud Shah.” Listen, my brother and
-chiefest among friends—listen! Is the tale a long one? Think how it was
-long to me. I have trodden every league of the road from Pubbi to this
-place; and from Nowshera my guide was only the Voice and the lust of
-vengeance.
-
-To the Uttock I went, but that was no hindrance to me. Ho! Ho! A man may
-turn the word twice, even in his trouble. The Uttock was no _uttock_
-[obstacle] to me; and I heard the Voice above the noise of the waters
-beating on the big rock, saying: “Go to the right.” So I went to
-Pindigheb, and in those days my sleep was taken from me utterly, and the
-head of the woman of the Abazai was before me night and day, even as it
-had fallen between my feet. _Dray wara yow dee! Dray wara yow dee!_
-Fire, ashes, and my couch, all three are one—all three are one!
-
-Now I was far from the winter path of the dealers who had gone to
-Sialkot and so south by the rail and the Big Road to the line of
-cantonments; but there was a Sahib in camp at Pindigheb who bought from
-me a white mare at a good price, and told me that one Daoud Shah had
-passed to Shahpur with horses. Then I saw that the warning of the Voice
-was true, and made swift to come to the Salt Hills. The Jhelum was in
-flood, but I could not wait, and, in the crossing, a bay stallion was
-washed down and drowned. Herein was God hard to me—not in respect of the
-beast, of that I had no care—but in this snatching. While I was upon the
-right bank urging the horses into the water, Daoud Shah was upon the
-left; for—_Alghias! Alghias!_—the hoofs of my mare scattered the hot
-ashes of his fires when we came up the hither bank in the light of
-morning. But he had fled. His feet were made swift by the terror of
-Death. And I went south from Shahpur as the kite flies. I dared not turn
-aside, lest I should miss my vengeance—which is my right. From Shahpur I
-skirted by the Jhelum, for I thought that he would avoid the Desert of
-the Rechna. But, presently, at Sahiwal, I turned away upon the road to
-Jhang, Samundri, and Gugera, till, upon a night, the mottled mare
-breasted the fence of the rail that runs to Montgomery. And that place
-was Okara, and the head of the woman of the Abazai lay upon the sand
-between my feet.
-
-Thence I went to Fazilka, and they said that I was mad to bring starved
-horses there. The Voice was with me, and I was _not_ mad, but only
-wearied, because I could not find Daoud Shah. It was written that I
-should not find him at Rania nor Bahadurgarh, and I came into Delhi from
-the west, and there also I found him not. My friend, I have seen many
-strange things in my wanderings. I have seen Devils rioting across the
-Rechna as the stallions riot in spring. I have heard the _Djinns_
-calling to each other from holes in the sand, and I have seen them pass
-before my face. There are no Devils, say the Sahibs? They are very wise,
-but they do not know all things about devils or—horses. Ho! Ho! I say to
-you who are laughing at my misery, that I have seen the Devils at high
-noon whooping and leaping on the shoals of the Chenab. And was I afraid?
-My brother, when the desire of a man is set upon one thing alone, he
-fears neither God nor Man nor Devil. If my vengeance failed, I would
-splinter the Gates of Paradise with the butt of my gun, or I would cut
-my way into Hell with my knife, and I would call upon Those who Govern
-there for the body of Daoud Shah. What love so deep as hate?
-
-Do not speak. I know the thought in your heart. Is the white of this eye
-clouded? How does the blood beat at the wrist? There is no madness in my
-flesh, but only the vehemence of the desire that has eaten me up.
-Listen!
-
-South of Delhi I knew not the country at all. Therefore I cannot say
-where I went, but I passed through many cities. I knew only that it was
-laid upon me to go south. When the horses could march no more, I threw
-myself upon the earth, and waited till the day. There was no sleep with
-me in that journeying; and that was a heavy burden. Dost thou know,
-brother of mine, the evil of wakefulness that cannot break—when the
-bones are sore for lack of sleep, and the skin of the temples twitches
-with weariness, and yet—there is no sleep—there is no sleep? _Dray wara
-yow dee! Dray wara yow dee!_ The eye of the Sun, the eye of the Moon,
-and my own unrestful eyes—all three are one—all three are one!
-
-There was a city the name whereof I have forgotten, and there the Voice
-called all night. That was ten days ago. It has cheated me afresh.
-
-I have come hither from a place called Hamirpur, and, behold, it is my
-Fate that I should meet with thee to my comfort and the increase of
-friendship. This is a good omen. By the joy of looking upon thy face the
-weariness has gone from my feet, and the sorrow of my so long travel is
-forgotten. Also my heart is peaceful; for I know that the end is near.
-
-It may be that I shall find Daoud Shah in this city going northward,
-since a Hillman will ever head back to his Hills when the spring warns.
-And shall he see those hills of our country? Surely I shall overtake
-him! Surely my vengeance is safe! Surely God hath him in the hollow of
-His hand against my claiming. There shall no harm befall Daoud Shah till
-I come; for I would fain kill him quick and whole with the life sticking
-firm in his body. A pomegranate is sweetest when the cloves break away
-unwilling from the rind. Let it be in the daytime, that I may see his
-face, and my delight may be crowned.
-
-And when I have accomplished the matter and my Honour is made clean, I
-shall return thanks unto God, the Holder of the Scale of the Law, and I
-shall sleep. From the night, through the day, and into the night again I
-shall sleep; and no dream shall trouble me.
-
-And now, O my brother, the tale is all told. _Ahi! Ahi! Alghias! Ahi!_
-
-
-
-
- NAMGAY DOOLA
-
- There came to the beach a poor exile of Erin,
- The dew on his wet robe hung heavy and chill;
- Ere the steamer that brought him had passed out of hearin’,
- He was Alderman Mike inthrojuicin’ a bill!
- _American Song._
-
-
-Once upon a time there was a King who lived on the road to Thibet, very
-many miles in the Himalayas. His Kingdom was eleven thousand feet above
-the sea and exactly four miles square; but most of the miles stood on
-end owing to the nature of the country. His revenues were rather less
-than four hundred pounds yearly, and they were expended in the
-maintenance of one elephant and a standing army of five men. He was
-tributary to the Indian Government, who allowed him certain sums for
-keeping a section of the Himalaya-Thibet road in repair. He further
-increased his revenues by selling timber to the railway-companies; for
-he would cut the great deodar trees in his one forest, and they fell
-thundering into the Sutlej river and were swept down to the plains three
-hundred miles away and became railway-ties. Now and again this King,
-whose name does not matter, would mount a ringstraked horse and ride
-scores of miles to Simla-town to confer with the Lieutenant-Governor on
-matters of state, or to assure the Viceroy that his sword was at the
-service of the Queen-Empress. Then the Viceroy would cause a ruffle of
-drums to be sounded, and the ringstraked horse and the cavalry of the
-State—two men in tatters—and the herald who bore the silver stick before
-the King would trot back to their own place, which lay between the tail
-of a heaven-climbing glacier and a dark birch-forest.
-
-Now, from such a King, always remembering that he possessed one
-veritable elephant, and could count his descent for twelve hundred
-years, I expected, when it was my fate to wander through his dominions,
-no more than mere license to live.
-
-The night had closed in rain, and rolling clouds blotted out the lights
-of the villages in the valley. Forty miles away, untouched by cloud or
-storm, the white shoulder of Donga Pa—the Mountain of the Council of the
-Gods—upheld the Evening Star. The monkeys sang sorrowfully to each other
-as they hunted for dry roosts in the fern-wreathed trees, and the last
-puff of the day-wind brought from the unseen villages the scent of damp
-wood-smoke, hot cakes, dripping undergrowth, and rotting pine-cones.
-That is the true smell of the Himalayas, and if once it creeps into the
-blood of a man, that man will at the last, forgetting all else, return
-to the hills to die. The clouds closed and the smell went away, and
-there remained nothing in all the world except chilling white mist and
-the boom of the Sutlej river racing through the valley below. A
-fat-tailed sheep, who did not want to die, bleated piteously at my tent
-door. He was scuffling with the Prime Minister and the Director-General
-of Public Education, and he was a royal gift to me and my camp servants.
-I expressed my thanks suitably, and asked if I might have audience of
-the King. The Prime Minister readjusted his turban, which had fallen off
-in the struggle, and assured me that the King would be very pleased to
-see me. Therefore I despatched two bottles as a foretaste, and when the
-sheep had entered upon another incarnation went to the King’s Palace
-through the wet. He had sent his army to escort me, but the army stayed
-to talk with my cook. Soldiers are very much alike all the world over.
-
-The Palace was a four-roomed and whitewashed mud and timber house, the
-finest in all the hills for a day’s journey. The King was dressed in a
-purple velvet jacket, white muslin trousers, and a saffron-yellow turban
-of price. He gave me audience in a little carpeted room opening off the
-palace courtyard which was occupied by the Elephant of State. The great
-beast was sheeted and anchored from trunk to tail, and the curve of his
-back stood out grandly against the mist.
-
-The Prime Minister and the Director-General of Public Education were
-present to introduce me, but all the court had been dismissed, lest the
-two bottles aforesaid should corrupt their morals. The King cast a
-wreath of heavy-scented flowers round my neck as I bowed, and inquired
-how my honoured presence had the felicity to be. I said that through
-seeing his auspicious countenance the mists of the night had turned into
-sunshine, and that by reason of his beneficent sheep his good deeds
-would be remembered by the Gods. He said that since I had set my
-magnificent foot in his Kingdom the crops would probably yield seventy
-per cent. more than the average. I said that the fame of the King had
-reached to the four corners of the earth, and that the nations gnashed
-their teeth when they heard daily of the glories of his realm and the
-wisdom of his moon-like Prime Minister and lotus-like Director-General
-of Public Education.
-
-Then we sat down on clean white cushions, and I was at the King’s right
-hand. Three minutes later he was telling me that the state of the maize
-crop was something disgraceful, and that the railway-companies would not
-pay him enough for his timber. The talk shifted to and fro with the
-bottles, and we discussed very many stately things, and the King became
-confidential on the subject of Government generally. Most of all he
-dwelt on the shortcomings of one of his subjects, who, from all I could
-gather, had been paralyzing the executive.
-
-“In the old days,” said the King, “I could have ordered the Elephant
-yonder to trample him to death. Now I must e’en send him seventy miles
-across the hills to be tried, and his keep would be upon the State. The
-Elephant eats everything.”
-
-“What be the man’s crimes, Rajah Sahib?” said I.
-
-“Firstly, he is an outlander and no man of mine own people. Secondly,
-since of my favour I gave him land upon his first coming, he refuses to
-pay revenue. Am I not the lord of the earth, above and below, entitled
-by right and custom to one-eighth of the crop? Yet this devil,
-establishing himself, refuses to pay a single tax; and he brings a
-poisonous spawn of babes.”
-
-“Cast him into jail,” I said.
-
-“Sahib,” the King answered, shifting a little on the cushions, “once and
-only once in these forty years sickness came upon me so that I was not
-able to go abroad. In that hour I made a vow to my God that I would
-never again cut man or woman from the light of the sun and the air of
-God; for I perceived the nature of the punishment. How can I break my
-vow? Were it only the lopping of a hand or a foot I should not delay.
-But even that is impossible now that the English have rule. One or
-another of my people”—he looked obliquely at the Director-General of
-Public Education—“would at once write a letter to the Viceroy, and
-perhaps I should be deprived of my ruffle of drums.”
-
-He unscrewed the mouthpiece of his silver water-pipe, fitted a plain
-amber mouthpiece, and passed his pipe to me. “Not content with refusing
-revenue,” he continued, “this outlander refuses also the _begar_” (this
-was the corvée or forced labour on the roads), “and stirs my people up
-to the like treason. Yet he is, when he wills, an expert log-snatcher.
-There is none better or bolder among my people to clear a block of the
-river when the logs stick fast.”
-
-“But he worships strange Gods,” said the Prime Minister deferentially.
-
-“For that I have no concern,” said the King, who was as tolerant as
-Akbar in matters of belief. “To each man his own God and the fire or
-Mother Earth for us all at last. It is the rebellion that offends me.”
-
-“The King has an army,” I suggested. “Has not the King burned the man’s
-house and left him naked to the night dews?”
-
-“Nay, a hut is a hut, and it holds the life of a man. But once I sent my
-army against him when his excuses became wearisome: of their heads he
-brake three across the top with a stick. The other two men ran away.
-Also the guns would not shoot.”
-
-I had seen the equipment of the infantry. One-third of it was an old
-muzzle-loading fowling-piece, with a ragged rust-hole where the nipples
-should have been, one-third a wire-bound matchlock with a worm-eaten
-stock, and one-third a four-bore flint duck-gun without a flint.
-
-“But it is to be remembered,” said the King, reaching out for the
-bottle, “that he is a very expert log-snatcher and a man of a merry
-face. What shall I do to him, Sahib?”
-
-This was interesting. The timid hill-folk would as soon have refused
-taxes to their King as revenues to their Gods.
-
-“If it be the King’s permission,” I said, “I will not strike my tents
-till the third day, and I will see this man. The mercy of the King is
-God-like, and rebellion is like unto the sin of witchcraft. Moreover,
-both the bottles and another be empty.”
-
-“You have my leave to go,” said the King.
-
-Next morning a crier went through the State proclaiming that there was a
-log-jam on the river, and that it behoved all loyal subjects to remove
-it. The people poured down from their villages to the moist warm valley
-of poppy-fields; and the King and I went with them. Hundreds of dressed
-deodar-logs had caught on a snag of rock, and the river was bringing
-down more logs every minute to complete the blockade. The water snarled
-and wrenched and worried at the timber, and the population of the State
-began prodding the nearest logs with a pole in the hope of starting a
-general movement. Then there went up a shout of “Namgay Doola! Namgay
-Doola!” and a large red-haired villager hurried up, stripping off his
-clothes as he ran.
-
-“That is he. That is the rebel,” said the King. “Now will the dam be
-cleared.”
-
-“But why has he red hair?” I asked, since red hair among hill-folks is
-as common as blue or green.
-
-“He is an outlander,” said the King. “Well done! Oh, well done!”
-
-Namgay Doola had scrambled out on the jam and was clawing out the butt
-of a log with a rude sort of boat-hook. It slid forward slowly as an
-alligator moves, three or four others followed it, and the green water
-spouted through the gaps they had made. Then the villagers howled and
-shouted and scrambled across the logs, pulling and pushing the obstinate
-timber, and the red head of Namgay Doola was chief among them all. The
-logs swayed and chafed and groaned as fresh consignments from up-stream
-battered the new weakening dam. All gave way at last in a smother of
-foam, racing logs, bobbing black heads and confusion indescribable. The
-river tossed everything before it. I saw the red head go down with the
-last remnants of the jam and disappear between the great grinding
-tree-trunks. It rose close to the bank and blowing like a grampus.
-Namgay Doola wrung the water out of his eyes and made obeisance to the
-King. I had time to observe him closely. The virulent redness of his
-shock head and beard was most startling; and in the thicket of hair
-wrinkled above high cheek-bones shone two very merry blue eyes. He was
-indeed an outlander, but yet a Thibetan in language, habit, and attire.
-He spoke the Lepcha dialect with an indescribable softening of the
-gutturals. It was not so much a lisp as an accent.
-
-“Whence comest thou?” I asked.
-
-“From Thibet.” He pointed across the hills and grinned. That grin went
-straight to my heart. Mechanically I held out my hand and Namgay Doola
-shook it. No pure Thibetan would have understood the meaning of the
-gesture. He went away to look for his clothes, and as he climbed back to
-his village I heard a joyous yell that seemed unaccountably familiar. It
-was the whooping of Namgay Doola.
-
-“You see now,” said the King, “why I would not kill him. He is a bold
-man among my logs, but,” and he shook his head like a schoolmaster, “I
-know that before long there will be complaints of him in the court. Let
-us return to the Palace and do justice.” It was that King’s custom to
-judge his subjects every day between eleven and three o’clock. I saw him
-decide equitably in weighty matters of trespass, slander, and a little
-wife-stealing. Then his brow clouded and he summoned me.
-
-“Again it is Namgay Doola,” he said despairingly. “Not content with
-refusing revenue on his own part, he has bound half his village by an
-oath to the like treason. Never before has such a thing befallen me! Nor
-are my taxes heavy.”
-
-A rabbit-faced villager, with a blush-rose stuck behind his ear,
-advanced trembling. He had been in the conspiracy, but had told
-everything and hoped for the King’s favour.
-
-“O King,” said I. “If it be the King’s will let this matter stand over
-till the morning. Only the Gods can do right swiftly, and it may be that
-yonder villager has lied.”
-
-“Nay, for I know the nature of Namgay Doola; but since a guest asks let
-the matter remain. Wilt thou speak harshly to this red-headed outlander?
-He may listen to thee.”
-
-I made an attempt that very evening, but for the life of me I could not
-keep my countenance. Namgay Doola grinned persuasively, and began to
-tell me about a big brown bear in a poppy-field by the river. Would I
-care to shoot it? I spoke austerely on the sin of conspiracy, and the
-certainty of punishment. Namgay Doola’s face clouded for a moment.
-Shortly afterwards he withdrew from my tent, and I heard him singing to
-himself softly among the pines. The words were unintelligible to me, but
-the tune, like his liquid insinuating speech, seemed the ghost of
-something strangely familiar.
-
- “Dir hané mard-i-yemen dir
- To weeree ala gee,”
-
-sang Namgay Doola again and again, and I racked my brain for that lost
-tune. It was not till after dinner that I discovered some one had cut a
-square foot of velvet from the centre of my best camera-cloth. This made
-me so angry that I wandered down the valley in the hope of meeting the
-big brown bear. I could hear him grunting like a discontented pig in the
-poppy-field, and I waited shoulder deep in the dew-dripping Indian corn
-to catch him after his meal. The moon was at full and drew out the rich
-scent of the tasselled crop. Then I heard the anguished bellow of a
-Himalayan cow, one of the little black crummies no bigger than
-Newfoundland dogs. Two shadows that looked like a bear and her cub
-hurried past me. I was in act to fire when I saw that they had each a
-brilliant red head. The lesser animal was trailing some rope behind it
-that left a dark track on the path. They passed within six feet of me,
-and the shadow of the moonlight lay velvet-black on their faces.
-Velvet-black was exactly the word, for by all the powers of moonlight
-they were masked in the velvet of my camera-cloth! I marvelled and went
-to bed.
-
-Next morning the Kingdom was in uproar. Namgay Doola, men said, had gone
-forth in the night and with a sharp knife had cut off the tail of a cow
-belonging to the rabbit-faced villager who had betrayed him. It was
-sacrilege unspeakable against the Holy Cow. The State desired his blood,
-but he had retreated into his hut, barricaded the doors and windows with
-big stones, and defied the world.
-
-The King and I and the populace approached the hut cautiously. There was
-no hope of capturing the man without loss of life, for from a hole in
-the wall projected the muzzle of an extremely well-cared-for gun—the
-only gun in the State that could shoot. Namgay Doola had narrowly missed
-a villager just before we came up. The Standing Army stood. It could do
-no more, for when it advanced pieces of sharp shale flew from the
-windows. To these were added from time to time showers of scalding
-water. We saw red heads bobbing up and down in the hut. The family of
-Namgay Doola were aiding their sire, and blood-curdling yells of
-defiance were the only answers to our prayers.
-
-“Never,” said the King, puffing, “has such a thing befallen my State.
-Next year I will certainly buy a little cannon.” He looked at me
-imploringly.
-
-“Is there any priest in the Kingdom to whom he will listen?” said I, for
-a light was beginning to break upon me.
-
-“He worships his own God,” said the Prime Minister. “We can starve him
-out.”
-
-“Let the white man approach,” said Namgay Doola from within. “All others
-I will kill. Send me the white man.”
-
-The door was thrown open and I entered the smoky interior of a Thibetan
-hut crammed with children. And every child had flaming red hair. A raw
-cow’s tail lay on the floor, and by its side two pieces of black
-velvet—my black velvet—rudely hacked into the semblance of masks.
-
-“And what is this shame, Namgay Doola?” said I.
-
-He grinned more winningly than ever. “There is no shame,” said he. “I
-did but cut off the tail of that man’s cow. He betrayed me. I was minded
-to shoot him, Sahib. But not to death. Indeed not to death. Only in the
-legs.”
-
-“And why at all, since it is the custom to pay revenue to the King? Why
-at all?”
-
-“By the God of my father I cannot tell,” said Namgay Doola.
-
-“And who was thy father?”
-
-“The same that had this gun.” He showed me his weapon—a Tower musket
-bearing date 1832 and the stamp of the Honourable East India Company.
-
-“And thy father’s name?” said I.
-
-“Timlay Doola,” said he. “At the first, I being then a little child, it
-is in my mind that he wore a red coat.”
-
-“Of that I have no doubt. But repeat the name of thy father thrice or
-four times.”
-
-He obeyed, and I understood whence the puzzling accent in his speech
-came. “Thimla Dhula,” said he excitedly. “To this hour I worship his
-God.”
-
-“May I see that God?”
-
-“In a little while—at twilight time.”
-
-“Rememberest thou aught of thy father’s speech?”
-
-“It is long ago. But there is one word which he said often. Thus,
-‘_Shun_.’ Then I and my brethren stood upon our feet, our hands to our
-sides. Thus.”
-
-“Even so. And what was thy mother?”
-
-“A woman of the hills. We be Lepchas of Darjeeling, but me they call an
-outlander because my hair is as thou seest.”
-
-The Thibetan woman, his wife, touched him on the arm gently. The long
-parley outside the fort had lasted far into the day. It was now close
-upon twilight—the hour of the Angelus. Very solemnly, the red-headed
-brats rose from the floor and formed a semicircle. Namgay Doola laid his
-gun against the wall, lighted a little oil lamp, and set it before a
-recess in the wall. Pulling aside a curtain of dirty cloth, he revealed
-a worn brass crucifix leaning against the helmet-badge of a
-long-forgotten East India regiment. “Thus did my father,” he said,
-crossing himself clumsily. The wife and children followed suit. Then all
-together they struck up the wailing chant that I heard on the hillside—
-
- Dir hané mard-i-yemen dir
- To weeree ala gee.
-
-I was puzzled no longer. Again and again they crooned, as if their
-hearts would break, their version of the chorus of the “Wearing of the
-Green”—
-
- They’re hanging men and women too,
- For the wearing of the green.
-
-A diabolical inspiration came to me. One of the brats, a boy about eight
-years old, was watching me as he sang. I pulled out a rupee, held the
-coin between finger and thumb, and looked—only looked—at the gun against
-the wall. A grin of brilliant and perfect comprehension overspread the
-face of the child. Never for an instant stopping the song, he held out
-his hand for the money, and then slid the gun to my hand. I might have
-shot Namgay Doola as he chanted. But I was satisfied. The blood-instinct
-of the race held true. Namgay Doola drew the curtain across the recess.
-Angelus was over.
-
-“Thus my father sang. There is much more, but I have forgotten, and I do
-not know the purport of these words, but it may be that the God will
-understand. I am not of this people, and I will not pay revenue.”
-
-“And why?”
-
-Again that soul-compelling grin. “What occupation would be to me between
-crop and crop? It is better than scaring bears. But these people do not
-understand.” He picked the masks from the floor, and looked in my face
-as simply as a child.
-
-“By what road didst thou attain knowledge to make these devilries?” I
-said, pointing.
-
-“I cannot tell. I am but a Lepcha of Darjeeling, and yet the stuff——”
-
-“Which thou hast stolen.”
-
-“Nay, surely. Did I steal? I desired it so. The stuff—the stuff—what
-else should I have done with the stuff?” He twisted the velvet between
-his fingers.
-
-“But the sin of maiming the cow—consider that.”
-
-“That is true; but oh, Sahib, that man betrayed me, and I had no
-thought—but the heifer’s tail waved in the moonlight and I had my knife.
-What else should I have done? The tail came off ere I was aware. Sahib,
-thou knowest more than I.”
-
-“That is true,” said I. “Stay within the door. I go to speak to the
-King.”
-
-The population of the State were ranged on the hillsides. I went forth
-and spoke to the King.
-
-“O King,” said I. “Touching this man there be two courses open to thy
-wisdom. Thou canst either hang him from a tree, he and his brood, till
-there remains no hair that is red within the land.”
-
-“Nay,” said the King. “Why should I hurt the little children?”
-
-They had poured out of the hut door and were making plump obeisance to
-everybody. Namgay Doola waited with his gun across his arm.
-
-“Or thou canst, discarding the impiety of the cow-maiming, raise him to
-honour in thy Army. He comes of a race that will not pay revenue. A red
-flame is in his blood which comes out at the top of his head in that
-glowing hair. Make him chief of the Army. Give him honour as may befall,
-and full allowance of work, but look to it, O King, that neither he nor
-his hold a foot of earth from thee henceforward. Feed him with words and
-favour, and also liquor from certain bottles that thou knowest of, and
-he will be a bulwark of defence. But deny him even a tuft of grass for
-his own. This is the nature that God has given him. Moreover, he has
-brethren——”
-
-The State groaned unanimously.
-
-“But if his brethren come, they will surely fight with each other till
-they die; or else the one will always give information concerning the
-other. Shall he be of thy Army, O King? Choose.”
-
-The King bowed his head, and I said, “Come forth, Namgay Doola, and
-command the King’s Army. Thy name shall no more be Namgay in the mouths
-of men, but Patsay Doola, for as thou hast said, I know.”
-
-Then Namgay. Doola, new christened Patsay Doola, son of Timlay Doola,
-which is Tim Doolan gone very wrong indeed, clasped the King’s feet,
-cuffed the Standing Army, and hurried in an agony of contrition from
-temple to temple, making offerings for the sin of cattle-maiming.
-
-And the King was so pleased with my perspicacity that he offered to sell
-me a village for twenty pounds sterling. But I buy no villages in the
-Himalayas so long as one red head flares between the tail of the
-heaven-climbing glacier and the dark birch-forest.
-
-I know that breed.
-
-
-
-
- “THE CITY OF DREADFUL NIGHT”
-
- Copyright, 1891, by Macmillan & Co.
-
-
-The dense wet heat that hung over the face of land, like a blanket,
-prevented all hope of sleep in the first instance. The cicalas helped
-the heat; and the yelling jackals the cicalas. It was impossible to sit
-still in the dark, empty, echoing house and watch the punkah beat the
-dead air. So, at ten o’clock of the night, I set my walking-stick on end
-in the middle of the garden, and waited to see how it would fall. It
-pointed directly down the moonlit road that leads to the City of
-Dreadful Night. The sound of its fall disturbed a hare. She limped from
-her form and ran across to a disused Mahomedan burial-ground, where the
-jawless skulls and rough-butted shank-bones, heartlessly exposed by the
-July rains, glimmered like mother o’ pearl on the rain-channelled soil.
-The heated air and the heavy earth had driven the very dead upward for
-coolness’ sake. The hare limped on; snuffed curiously at a fragment of a
-smoke-stained lamp-shard, and died out in the shadow of a clump of
-tamarisk trees.
-
-The mat-weaver’s hut under the lee of the Hindu temple was full of
-sleeping men who lay like sheeted corpses. Overhead blazed the unwinking
-eye of the Moon. Darkness gives at least a false impression of coolness.
-It was hard not to believe that the flood of light from above was warm.
-Not so hot as the Sun, but still sickly warm, and heating the heavy air
-beyond what was our due. Straight as a bar of polished steel ran the
-road to the City of Dreadful Night; and on either side of the road lay
-corpses disposed on beds in fantastic attitudes—one hundred and seventy
-bodies of men. Some shrouded all in white with bound-up mouths; some
-naked and black as ebony in the strong light; and one—that lay face
-upwards with dropped jaw, far away from the others—silvery white and
-ashen gray.
-
-“A leper asleep; and the remainder wearied coolies, servants, small
-shopkeepers, and drivers from the hack-stand hard by. The scene—a main
-approach to Lahore city, and the night a warm one in August.” This was
-all that there was to be seen; but by no means all that one could see.
-The witchery of the moonlight was everywhere; and the world was horribly
-changed. The long line of the naked dead, flanked by the rigid silver
-statue, was not pleasant to look upon. It was made up of men alone. Were
-the womenkind, then, forced to sleep in the shelter of the stifling
-mud-huts as best they might? The fretful wail of a child from a low
-mud-roof answered the question. Where the children are the mothers must
-be also to look after them. They need care on these sweltering nights. A
-black little bullet-head peeped over the coping, and a thin—a painfully
-thin—brown leg was slid over on to the gutter pipe. There was a sharp
-clink of glass bracelets; a woman’s arm showed for an instant above the
-parapet, twined itself round the lean little neck, and the child was
-dragged back, protesting, to the shelter of the bedstead. His thin,
-high-pitched shriek died out in the thick air almost as soon as it was
-raised; for even the children of the soil found it too hot to weep.
-
-More corpses; more stretches of moonlit, white road; a string of
-sleeping camels at rest by the wayside; a vision of scudding jackals;
-_ekka_-ponies asleep—the harness still on their backs, and the
-brass-studded country carts, winking in the moonlight—and again more
-corpses. wherever a grain cart atilt, a tree trunk, a sawn log, a couple
-of bamboos and a few handfuls of thatch cast a shadow, the ground is
-covered with them. They lie—some face downwards, arms folded, in the
-dust; some with clasped hands flung up above their heads; some curled up
-dog-wise; some thrown like limp gunny-bags over the side of the
-grain-carts; and some bowed with their brows on their knees in the full
-glare of the Moon. It would be a comfort if they were only given to
-snoring; but they are not, and the likeness to corpses is unbroken in
-all respects save one. The lean dogs snuff at them and turn away. Here
-and there a tiny child lies on his father’s bedstead, and a protecting
-arm is thrown round it in every instance. But, for the most part, the
-children sleep with their mothers on the housetops. Yellow-skinned,
-white-toothed pariahs are not to be trusted within reach of brown
-bodies.
-
-A stifling hot blast from the mouth of the Delhi Gate nearly ends my
-resolution of entering the City of Dreadful Night at this hour. It is a
-compound of all evil savours, animal and vegetable, that a walled city
-can brew in a day and a night. The temperature within the motionless
-groves of plantain and orange-trees outside the city walls seems chilly
-by comparison. Heaven help all sick persons and young children within
-the city to-night! The high house-walls are still radiating heat
-savagely, and from obscure side gullies fetid breezes eddy that ought to
-poison a buffalo. But the buffaloes do not heed. A drove of them are
-parading the vacant main street; stopping now and then to lay their
-ponderous muzzles against the closed shutters of a grain-dealer’s shop,
-and to blow thereon like grampuses.
-
-Then silence follows—the silence that is full of the night noises of a
-great city. A stringed instrument of some kind is just, and only just,
-audible. High overhead some one throws open a window, and the rattle of
-the wood-work echoes down the empty street. On one of the roofs a hookah
-is in full blast; and the men are talking softly as the pipe gutters. A
-little farther on, the noise of conversation is more distinct. A slit of
-light shows itself between the sliding shutters of a shop. Inside, a
-stubble-bearded, weary-eyed trader is balancing his account-books among
-the bales of cotton prints that surround him. Three sheeted figures bear
-him company, and throw in a remark from time to time. First he makes an
-entry, then a remark; then passes the back of his hand across his
-streaming forehead. The heat in the built-in street is fearful. Inside
-the shops it must be almost unendurable. But the work goes on steadily;
-entry, guttural growl, and uplifted hand-stroke succeeding each other
-with the precision of clockwork.
-
-A policeman—turbanless and fast asleep—lies across the road on the way
-to the Mosque of Wazir Khan. A bar of moonlight falls across the
-forehead and eyes of the sleeper, but he never stirs. It is close upon
-midnight, and the heat seems to be increasing. The open square in front
-of the Mosque is crowded with corpses; and a man must pick his way
-carefully for fear of treading on them. The moonlight stripes the
-Mosque’s high front of coloured enamel work in broad diagonal bands; and
-each separate dreaming pigeon in the niches and corners of the masonry
-throws a squab little shadow. Sheeted ghosts rise up wearily from their
-pallets, and flit into the dark depths of the building. Is it possible
-to climb to the top of the great Minars, and thence to look down on the
-city? At all events, the attempt is worth making, and the chances are
-that the door of the staircase will be unlocked. Unlocked it is; but a
-deeply-sleeping janitor lies across the threshold, face turned to the
-Moon. A rat dashes out of his turban at the sound of approaching
-footsteps. The man grunts, opens his eyes for a minute, turns round and
-goes to sleep again. All the heat of a decade of fierce Indian summers
-is stored in the pitch-black, polished walls of the corkscrew staircase.
-Half-way up, there is something alive, warm, and feathery; and it
-snores. Driven from step to step as it catches the sound of my advance,
-it flutters to the top and reveals itself as a yellow-eyed, angry kite.
-Dozens of kites are asleep on this and the other Minars, and on the
-domes below. There is the shadow of a cool, or at least a less sultry
-breeze at this height; and, refreshed thereby, turn to look on the City
-of Dreadful Night.
-
-Doré might have drawn it! Zola could describe it—this spectacle of
-sleeping thousands in the moonlight and in the shadow of the Moon. The
-roof-tops are crammed with men, women, and children; and the air is full
-of undistinguishable noises. They are restless in the City of Dreadful
-Night; and small wonder. The marvel is that they can even breathe. If
-you gaze intently at the multitude, you can see that they are almost as
-uneasy as a daylight crowd; but the tumult is subdued. Everywhere, in
-the strong light, you can watch the sleepers turning to and fro;
-shifting their beds and again resettling them. In the pit-like
-courtyards of the houses there is the same movement.
-
-The pitiless Moon shows it all. Shows, too, the plains outside the city,
-and here and there a hand’s-breadth of the Ravee without the walls.
-Shows lastly a splash of glittering silver on a house-top almost
-directly below the mosque Minar. Some poor soul has risen to throw a jar
-of water over his fevered body; the tinkle of the falling water strikes
-faintly on the ear. Two or three other men, in far-off corners of the
-City of Dreadful Night, follow his example, and the water flashes like
-heliographic signals. A small cloud passes over the face of the Moon,
-and the city and its inhabitants—clear drawn in black and white
-before—fade into masses of black and deeper black. Still the unrestful
-noise continues, the sigh of a great city overwhelmed with the heat, and
-of a people seeking in vain for rest. It is only the lower-class women
-who sleep on the housetops. What must the torment be in the latticed
-zenanas, where a few lamps are still twinkling? There are footfalls in
-the court below. It is the _Muezzin_—faithful minister; but he ought to
-have been here an hour ago to tell the Faithful that prayer is better
-than sleep—the sleep that will not come to the city.
-
-The _Muezzin_ fumbles for a moment with the door of one of the Minars,
-disappears awhile, and a bull-like roar—a magnificent bass thunder—tells
-that he has reached the top of the Minar. They must hear the cry to the
-banks of the shrunken Ravee itself! Even across the courtyard it is
-almost overpowering. The cloud drifts by and shows him outlined in black
-against the sky, hands laid upon his ears, and broad chest heaving with
-the play of his lungs—“Allah ho Akbar”; then a pause while another
-_Muezzin_ somewhere in the direction of the Golden Temple takes up the
-call—“Allah ho Akbar.” Again and again; four times in all; and from the
-bedsteads a dozen men have risen up already.—“I bear witness that there
-is no God but God.” What a splendid cry it is, the proclamation of the
-creed that brings men out of their beds by scores at midnight! Once
-again he thunders through the same phrase, shaking with the vehemence of
-his own voice; and then, far and near, the night air rings with “Mahomed
-is the Prophet of God.” It is as though he were flinging his defiance to
-the far-off horizon, where the summer lightning plays and leaps like a
-bared sword. Every _Muezzin_ in the city is in full cry, and some men on
-the roof-tops are beginning to kneel. A long pause precedes the last
-cry, “La ilaha Illallah,” and the silence closes up on it, as the ram on
-the head of a cotton-bale.
-
-The _Muezzin_ stumbles down the dark stairway grumbling in his beard. He
-passes the arch of the entrance and disappears. Then the stifling
-silence settles down over the City of Dreadful Night. The kites on the
-Minar sleep again, snoring more loudly, the hot breeze comes up in puffs
-and lazy eddies, and the Moon slides down towards the horizon. Seated
-with both elbows on the parapet of the tower, one can watch and wonder
-over that heat-tortured hive till the dawn. “How do they live down
-there? What do they think of? When will they awake?” More tinkling of
-sluiced water-pots; faint jarring of wooden bedsteads moved into or out
-of the shadows; uncouth music of stringed instruments softened by
-distance into a plaintive wail, and one low grumble of far-off thunder.
-In the courtyard of the mosque the janitor, who lay across the threshold
-of the Minar when I came up, starts wildly in his sleep, throws his
-hands above his head, mutters something, and falls back again. Lulled by
-the snoring of the kites—they snore like over-gorged humans—I drop off
-into an uneasy doze, conscious that three o’clock has struck, and that
-there is a slight—a very slight—coolness in the atmosphere. The city is
-absolutely quiet now, but for some vagrant dog’s love-song. Nothing save
-dead heavy sleep.
-
-Several weeks of darkness pass after this. For the Moon has gone out.
-The very dogs are still, and I watch for the first light of the dawn
-before making my way homeward. Again the noise of shuffling feet. The
-morning call is about to begin, and my night watch is over. “Allah ho
-Akbar! Allah ho Akbar!” The east grows gray, and presently saffron; the
-dawn wind comes up as though the _Muezzin_ had summoned it; and, as one
-man, the City of Dreadful Night rises from its bed and turns its face
-towards the dawning day. With return of life comes return of sound.
-First a low whisper, then a deep bass hum; for it must be remembered
-that the entire city is on the housetops. My eyelids weighed down with
-the arrears of long deferred sleep, I escape from the Minar through the
-courtyard and out into the square beyond, where the sleepers have risen,
-stowed away the bedsteads, and are discussing the morning hookah. The
-minute’s freshness of the air has gone, and it is as hot as at first.
-
-“Will the Sahib, out of his kindness, make room?” What is it? Something
-borne on men’s shoulders comes by in the half-light, and I stand back. A
-woman’s corpse going down to the burning-ghat, and a bystander says,
-“She died at midnight from the heat.” So the city was of Death as well
-as Night, after all.
-
-
-
-
- THE JUDGMENT OF DUNGARA
-
-See the pale martyr with his shirt on fire.—_Printer’s Error._
-
-
-They tell the tale even now among the groves of the Berbulda Hill, and
-for corroboration point to the roofless and windowless Mission-house.
-The great God Dungara, the God of Things as They Are, Most Terrible,
-One-eyed, Bearing the Red Elephant Tusk, did it all; and he who refuses
-to believe in Dungara will assuredly be smitten by the Madness of
-Yat—the madness that fell upon the sons and the daughters of the Buria
-Kol when they turned aside from Dungara and put on clothes. So says
-Athon Dazé, who is High Priest of the shrine and Warden of the Red
-Elephant Tusk. But if you ask the Assistant Collector and Agent in
-Charge of the Buria Kol, he will laugh—not because he bears any malice
-against missions, but because he himself saw the vengeance of Dungara
-executed upon the spiritual children of the Reverend Justus Krenk,
-Pastor of the Tubingen Mission, and upon Lotta, his virtuous wife.
-
-Yet if ever a man merited good treatment of the Gods it was the Reverend
-Justus, one time of Heidelberg, who, on the faith of a call, went into
-the wilderness and took the blonde, blue-eyed Lotta with him. “We will
-these Heathen now by idolatrous practices so darkened better make,” said
-Justus in the early days of his career. “Yes,” he added with conviction,
-“they shall be good and shall with their hands to work learn. For all
-good Christians must work.” And upon a stipend more modest even than
-that of an English lay-reader, Justus Krenk kept house beyond Kamala and
-the gorge of Malair, beyond the Berbulda River close to the foot of the
-blue hill of Panth on whose summit stands the Temple of Dungara—in the
-heart of the country of the Buria Kol—the naked, good-tempered, timid,
-shameless, lazy Buria Kol.
-
-Do you know what life at a Mission outpost means? Try to imagine a
-loneliness exceeding that of the smallest station to which Government
-has ever sent you—isolation that weighs upon the waking eyelids and
-drives you by force headlong into the labours of the day. There is no
-post, there is no one of your own colour to speak to, there are no
-roads: there is, indeed, food to keep you alive, but it is not pleasant
-to eat; and whatever of good or beauty or interest there is in your
-life, must come from yourself and the grace that may be planted in you.
-
-In the morning, with a patter of soft feet, the converts, the doubtful,
-and the open scoffers, troop up to the verandah. You must be infinitely
-kind and patient, and, above all, clear-sighted, for you deal with the
-simplicity of childhood, the experience of man, and the subtlety of the
-savage. Your congregation have a hundred material wants to be
-considered; and it is for you, as you believe in your personal
-responsibility to your Maker, to pick out of the clamouring crowd any
-grain of spirituality that may lie therein. If to the cure of souls you
-add that of bodies, your task will be all the more difficult, for the
-sick and the maimed will profess any and every creed for the sake of
-healing, and will laugh at you because you are simple enough to believe
-them.
-
-As the day wears and the impetus of the morning dies away, there will
-come upon you an overwhelming sense of the uselessness of your toil.
-This must be striven against, and the only spur in your side will be the
-belief that you are playing against the Devil for the living soul. It is
-a great, a joyous belief; but he who can hold it unwavering for four and
-twenty consecutive hours, must be blessed with an abundantly strong
-physique and equable nerve.
-
-Ask the gray heads of the Bannockburn Medical Crusade what manner of
-life their preachers lead; speak to the Racine Gospel Agency, those lean
-Americans whose boast is that they go where no Englishman dare follow;
-get a Pastor of the Tubingen Mission to talk of his experiences—if you
-can. You will be referred to the printed reports, but these contain no
-mention of the men who have lost youth and health, all that a man may
-lose except faith, in the wilds; of English maidens who have gone forth
-and died in the fever-stricken jungle of the Panth Hills, knowing from
-the first that death was almost a certainty. Few Pastors will tell you
-of these things any more than they will speak of that young David of St.
-Bees, who, set apart for the Lord’s work, broke down in the utter
-desolation, and returned half distraught to the Head Mission, crying:
-“There is no God, but I have walked with the Devil!”
-
-The reports are silent here, because heroism, failure, doubt, despair,
-and self-abnegation on the part of a mere cultured white man are things
-of no weight as compared to the saving of one half-human soul from a
-fantastic faith in wood-spirits, goblins of the rock, and river-fiends.
-
-And Gallio, the Assistant Collector of the country-side “cared for none
-of these things.” He had been long in the district, and the Buria Kol
-loved him and brought him offerings of speared fish, orchids from the
-dim moist heart of the forests, and as much game as he could eat. In
-return, he gave them quinine, and with Athon Dazé, the High Priest,
-controlled their simple policies.
-
-“When you have been some years in the country,” said Gallio at the
-Krenks’ table, “you grow to find one creed as good as another. I’ll give
-you all the assistance in my power, of course, but don’t hurt my Buria
-Kol. They are a good people and they trust me.”
-
-“I will them the Word of the Lord teach,” said Justus, his round face
-beaming with enthusiasm, “and I will assuredly to their prejudices no
-wrong hastily without thinking make. But, O my friend, this in the mind
-impartiality-of-creed-judgment-be-looking is very bad.”
-
-“Heigh-ho!” said Gallio, “I have their bodies and the district to see
-to, but you can try what you can do for their souls. Only don’t behave
-as your predecessor did, or I’m afraid that I can’t guarantee your
-life.”
-
-“And that?” said Lotta sturdily, handing him a cup of tea.
-
-“He went up to the Temple of Dungara—to be sure, he was new to the
-country—and began hammering old Dungara over the head with an umbrella;
-so the Buria Kol turned out and hammered _him_ rather savagely. I was in
-the district, and he sent a runner to me with a note saying: ‘Persecuted
-for the Lord’s sake. Send wing of regiment.’ The nearest troops were
-about two hundred miles off, but I guessed what he had been doing. I
-rode to Panth and talked to old Athon Dazé like a father, telling him
-that a man of his wisdom ought to have known that the Sahib had
-sunstroke and was mad. You never saw a people more sorry in your life.
-Athon Dazé apologised, sent wood and milk and fowls and all sorts of
-things; and I gave five rupees to the shrine, and told Macnamara that he
-had been injudicious. He said that I had bowed down in the House of
-Rimmon; but if he had only just gone over the brow of the hill and
-insulted Palin Deo, the idol of the Suria Kol, he would have been
-impaled on a charred bamboo long before I could have done anything, and
-then I should have had to have hanged some of the poor brutes. Be gentle
-with them, Padri—but I don’t think you’ll do much.”
-
-“Not I,” said Justus, “but my Master. We will with the little children
-begin. Many of them will be sick—that is so. After the children the
-mothers; and then the men. But I would greatly that you were in internal
-sympathies with us prefer.”
-
-Gallio departed to risk his life in mending the rotten bamboo bridges of
-his people, in killing a too persistent tiger here or there, in sleeping
-out in the reeking jungle, or in tracking the Suria Kol raiders who had
-taken a few heads from their brethren of the Buria clan. He was a
-knock-kneed, shambling young man, naturally devoid of creed or
-reverence, with a longing for absolute power which his undesirable
-district gratified.
-
-“No one wants my post,” he used to say grimly, “and my Collector only
-pokes his nose in when he’s quite certain that there is no fever. I’m
-monarch of all I survey, and Athon Dazé is my viceroy.”
-
-Because Gallio prided himself on his supreme disregard of human
-life—though he never extended the theory beyond his own—he naturally
-rode forty miles to the Mission with a tiny brown girl-baby on his
-saddle-bow.
-
-“Here is something for you, Padri,” said he. “The Kols leave their
-surplus children to die. ’Don’t see why they shouldn’t, but you may rear
-this one. I picked it up beyond the Berbulda fork. I’ve a notion that
-the mother has been following me through the woods ever since.”
-
-“It is the first of the fold,” said Justus, and Lotta caught up the
-screaming morsel to her bosom and hushed it craftily; while, as a wolf
-hangs in the field, Matui, who had borne it and in accordance with the
-law of her tribe had exposed it to die, panted weary and footsore in the
-bamboo-brake, watching the house with hungry mother-eyes. What would the
-omnipotent Assistant Collector do? Would the little man in the black
-coat eat her daughter alive, as Athon Dazé said was the custom of all
-men in black coats?
-
-[Illustration: THE JUDGMENT OF DUNGARA]
-
-Matui waited among the bamboos through the long night; and, in the
-morning, there came forth a fair white woman, the like of whom Matui had
-never seen, and in her arms was Matui’s daughter clad in spotless
-raiment. Lotta knew little of the tongue of the Buria Kol, but when
-mother calls to mother, speech is easy to follow. By the hands stretched
-timidly to the hem of her gown, by the passionate gutturals and the
-longing eyes, Lotta understood with whom she had to deal. So Matui took
-her child again—would be a servant, even a slave, to this wonderful
-white woman, for her own tribe would recognise her no more. And Lotta
-wept with her exhaustively, after the German fashion, which includes
-much blowing of the nose.
-
-“First the child, then the mother, and last the man, and to the Glory of
-God all,” said Justus the Hopeful. And the man came, with a bow and
-arrows, very angry indeed, for there was no one to cook for him.
-
-But the tale of the Mission is a long one, and I have no space to show
-how Justus, forgetful of his injudicious predecessor, grievously smote
-Moto, the husband of Matui, for his brutality; how Moto was startled,
-but being released from the fear of instant death, took heart and became
-the faithful ally and first convert of Justus; how the little gathering
-grew, to the huge disgust of Athon Dazé; how the Priest of the God of
-Things as They Are argued subtilely with the Priest of the God of Things
-as They Should Be, and was worsted; how the dues of the Temple of
-Dungara fell away in fowls and fish and honeycomb, how Lotta lightened
-the Curse of Eve among the women, and how Justus did his best to
-introduce the Curse of Adam; how the Buria Kol rebelled at this, saying
-that their God was an idle God, and how Justus partially overcame their
-scruples against work, and taught them that the black earth was rich in
-other produce than pig-nuts only.
-
-All these things belong to the history of many months, and throughout
-those months the white-haired Athon Dazé meditated revenge for the
-tribal neglect of Dungara. With savage cunning he feigned friendship
-towards Justus, even hinting at his own conversion; but to the
-congregation of Dungara he said darkly: “They of the Padri’s flock have
-put on clothes and worship a busy God. Therefore Dungara will afflict
-them grievously till they throw themselves, howling, into the waters of
-the Berbulda.” At night the Red Elephant Tusk boomed and groaned among
-the hills, and the faithful waked and said: “The God of Things as They
-Are matures revenge against the back-sliders. Be merciful, Dungara, to
-us Thy children, and give us all their crops!”
-
-Late in the cold weather, the Collector and his wife came into the Buria
-Kol country. “Go and look at Krenk’s Mission,” said Gallio. “He is doing
-good work in his own way, and I think he’d be pleased if you opened the
-bamboo chapel that he has managed to run up. At any rate, you’ll see a
-civilised Buria Kol.”
-
-Great was the stir in the Mission. “Now he and the gracious lady will
-that we have done good work with their own eyes see, and—yes—we will him
-our converts in all their new clothes by their own hands constructed
-exhibit. It will a great day be—for the Lord always,” said Justus; and
-Lotta said, “Amen.” Justus had, in his quiet way, felt jealous of the
-Basel Weaving Mission, his own converts being unhandy; but Athon Dazé
-had latterly induced some of them to hackle the glossy silky fibres of a
-plant that grew plenteously on the Panth Hills. It yielded a cloth white
-and smooth almost as the _tappa_ of the South Seas, and that day the
-converts were to wear for the first time clothes made therefrom. Justus
-was proud of his work. “They shall in white clothes clothed to meet the
-Collector and his well-born lady come down, singing ‘Now thank we all
-our God.’ Then he will the Chapel open, and—yes—even Gallio to believe
-will begin. Stand so, my children, two by two, and—Lotta, why do they
-thus themselves bescratch? It is not seemly to wriggle, Nala, my child.
-The Collector will be here and be pained.”
-
-The Collector, his wife, and Gallio climbed the hill to the
-Mission-station. The converts were drawn up in two lines, a shining band
-nearly forty strong. “Hah!” said the Collector, whose acquisitive bent
-of mind led him to believe that he had fostered the institution from the
-first. “Advancing, I see, by leaps and bounds.”
-
-Never was truer word spoken! The Mission _was_ advancing exactly as he
-had said—at first by little hops and shuffles of shamefaced uneasiness,
-but soon by the leaps of fly-stung horses and the bounds of maddened
-kangaroos. From the hill of Panth the Red Elephant Tusk delivered a dry
-and anguished blare. The ranks of the converts wavered, broke and
-scattered with yells and shrieks of pain, while Justus and Lotta stood
-horror-stricken.
-
-“It is the Judgment of Dungara!” shouted a voice. “I burn! I burn! To
-the river or we die!”
-
-The mob wheeled and headed for the rocks that overhung the Berbulda,
-writhing, stamping, twisting, and shedding its garments as it ran,
-pursued by the thunder of the trumpet of Dungara. Justus and Lotta fled
-to the Collector almost in tears.
-
-“I cannot understand! Yesterday,” panted Justus, “they had the Ten
-Commandments. What is this? Praise the Lord all good spirits by land and
-by sea. Nala! Oh, shame!”
-
-With a bound and a scream there alighted on the rocks above their heads,
-Nala, once the pride of the Mission, a maiden of fourteen summers, good,
-docile, and virtuous—now naked as the dawn and spitting like a wild-cat.
-
-“Was it for this!” she raved, hurling her petticoat at Justus, “was it
-for this I left my people and Dungara—for the fires of your Bad Place?
-Blind ape, little earthworm, dried fish that you are, you said that I
-should never burn! O Dungara, I burn now! I burn now! Have mercy, God of
-Things as They Are!”
-
-She turned and flung herself into the Berbulda, and the trumpet of
-Dungara bellowed jubilantly. The last of the converts of the Tubingen
-Mission had put a quarter of a mile of rapid river between herself and
-her teachers.
-
-“Yesterday,” gulped Justus, “she taught in the school A, B, C, D.—Oh! It
-is the work of Satan!”
-
-But Gallio was curiously regarding the maiden’s petticoat where it had
-fallen at his feet. He felt its texture, drew back his shirt-sleeve
-beyond the deep tan of his wrist and pressed a fold of the cloth against
-the flesh. A blotch of angry red rose on the white skin.
-
-“Ah!” said Gallio calmly, “I thought so.”
-
-“What is it?” said Justus.
-
-“I should call it the Shirt of Nessus, but—Where did you get the fibre
-of this cloth from?”
-
-“Athon Dazé,” said Justus. “He showed the boys how it should
-manufactured be.”
-
-“The old fox! Do you know that he has given you the Nilgiri
-Nettle—scorpion—_Girardenia heterophylla_—to work up? No wonder they
-squirmed! Why, it stings even when they make bridge-ropes of it, unless
-it’s soaked for six weeks. The cunning brute! It would take about half
-an hour to burn through their thick hides, and then——!”
-
-Gallio burst into laughter, but Lotta was weeping in the arms of the
-Collector’s wife, and Justus had covered his face with his hands.
-
-“_Girardenia heterophylla!_” repeated Gallio. “Krenk, why _didn’t_ you
-tell me? I could have saved you this. Woven fire! Anybody but a naked
-Kol would have known it, and, if I’m a judge of their ways, you’ll never
-get them back.”
-
-He looked across the river to where the converts were still wallowing
-and wailing in the shallows, and the laughter died out of his eyes, for
-he saw that the Tubingen Mission to the Buria Kol was dead.
-
-Never again, though they hung mournfully round the deserted school for
-three months, could Lotta or Justus coax back even the most promising of
-their flock. No! The end of conversion was the fire of the Bad
-Place—fire that ran through the limbs and gnawed into the bones. Who
-dare a second time tempt the anger of Dungara? Let the little man and
-his wife go elsewhere. The Buria Kol would have none of them. An
-unofficial message to Athon Dazé that if a hair of their heads were
-touched, Athon Dazé and the priests of Dungara would be hanged by Gallio
-at the temple shrine, protected Justus and Lotta from the stumpy
-poisoned arrows of the Buria Kol, but neither fish nor fowl, honeycomb,
-salt nor young pig were brought to their doors any more. And, alas! man
-cannot live by grace alone if meat be wanting.
-
-“Let us go, mine wife,” said Justus; “there is no good here, and the
-Lord has willed that some other man shall the work take—in good time—in
-His own good time. We will go away, and I will—yes—some botany bestudy.”
-
-If any one is anxious to convert the Buria Kol afresh, there lies at
-least the core of a mission-house under the hill of Panth. But the
-chapel and school have long since fallen back into jungle.
-
-
-
-
- THE FINANCES OF THE GODS
-
- Copyright, 1891, by Macmillan & Co.
-
-
-The evening meal was ended in Dhunni Bhagat’s Chubara, and the old
-priests were smoking or counting their beads. A little naked child
-pattered in, with its mouth wide open, a handful of marigold flowers in
-one hand, and a lump of conserved tobacco in the other. It tried to
-kneel and make obeisance to Gobind, but it was so fat that it fell
-forward on its shaven head, and rolled on its side, kicking and gasping,
-while the marigolds tumbled one way and the tobacco the other. Gobind
-laughed, set it up again, and blessed the marigold flowers as he
-received the tobacco.
-
-“From my father,” said the child. “He has the fever, and cannot come.
-Wilt thou pray for him, father?”
-
-“Surely, littlest; but the smoke is on the ground, and the night-chill
-is in the air, and it is not good to go abroad naked in the autumn.”
-
-“I have no clothes,” said the child, “and all to-day I have been
-carrying cow-dung cakes to the bazar. It was very hot, and I am very
-tired.” It shivered a little, for the twilight was cool.
-
-Gobind lifted an arm under his vast tattered quilt of many colours, and
-made an inviting little nest by his side. The child crept in, and Gobind
-filled his brass-studded leather water-pipe with the new tobacco. When I
-came to the Chubara the shaven head with the tuft atop and the beady
-black eyes looked out of the folds of the quilt as a squirrel looks out
-from his nest, and Gobind was smiling while the child played with his
-beard.
-
-I would have said something friendly, but remembered in time that if the
-child fell ill afterwards I should be credited with the Evil Eye, and
-that is a horrible possession.
-
-“Sit thou still, Thumbling,” I said as it made to get up and run away.
-“Where is thy slate, and why has the teacher let such an evil character
-loose on the streets when there are no police to protect us weaklings?
-In which ward dost thou try to break thy neck with flying kites from the
-house-tops?”
-
-“Nay, Sahib, nay,” said the child, burrowing its face into Gobind’s
-beard, and twisting uneasily. “There was a holiday to-day among the
-schools, and I do not always fly kites. I play ker-li-kit like the
-rest.”
-
-Cricket is the national game among the school-boys of the Punjab, from
-the naked hedge-school children, who use an old kerosene-tin for wicket,
-to the B. A.’s of the University, who compete for the Championship belt.
-
-“Thou play kerlikit! Thou art half the height of the bat!” I said.
-
-The child nodded resolutely. “Yea, I _do_ play. _Perlay-ball._ _Ow-at!_
-_Ran, ran, ran!_ I know it all.”
-
-“But thou must not forget with all this to pray to the Gods according to
-custom,” said Gobind, who did not altogether approve of cricket and
-western innovations.
-
-“I do not forget,” said the child in a hushed voice.
-
-“Also to give reverence to thy teacher, and”—Gobind’s voice softened—“to
-abstain from pulling holy men by the beard, little badling. Eh, eh, eh?”
-
-The child’s face was altogether hidden in the great white beard, and it
-began to whimper till Gobind soothed it as children are soothed all the
-world over, with the promise of a story.
-
-“I did not think to frighten thee, senseless little one. Look up! Am I
-angry? Aré, aré, aré! Shall I weep too, and of our tears make a great
-pond and drown us both, and then thy father will never get well, lacking
-thee to pull his beard? Peace, peace, and I will tell thee of the Gods.
-Thou hast heard many tales?”
-
-“Very many, father.”
-
-“Now, this is a new one which thou hast not heard. Long and long ago
-when the Gods walked with men as they do to-day, but that we have not
-faith to see, Shiv, the greatest of Gods, and Parbati, his wife, were
-walking in the garden of a temple.”
-
-“Which temple? That in the Nandgaon ward?” said the child.
-
-“Nay, very far away. Maybe at Trimbak or Hurdwar, whither thou must make
-pilgrimage when thou art a man. Now, there was sitting in the garden
-under the jujube trees a mendicant that had worshipped Shiv for forty
-years, and he lived on the offerings of the pious, and meditated
-holiness night and day.”
-
-“Oh, father, was it thou?” said the child, looking up with large eyes.
-
-“Nay, I have said it was long ago, and, moreover, this mendicant was
-married.”
-
-“Did they put him on a horse with flowers on his head, and forbid him to
-go to sleep all night long? Thus they did to me when they made my
-wedding,” said the child, who had been married a few months before.
-
-“And what didst thou do?” said I.
-
-“I wept, and they called me evil names, and then I smote _her_, and we
-wept together.”
-
-“Thus did not the mendicant,” said Gobind; “for he was a holy man, and
-very poor. Parbati perceived him sitting naked by the temple steps where
-all went up and down, and she said to Shiv, ‘What shall men think of the
-Gods when the Gods thus scorn their worshippers? For forty years yonder
-man has prayed to us, and yet there be only a few grains of rice and
-some broken cowries before him, after all. Men’s hearts will be hardened
-by this thing.’ And Shiv said, ‘It shall be looked to,’ and so he called
-to the temple which was the temple of his son, Ganesh of the elephant
-head, saying, ‘Son, there is a mendicant without who is very poor. What
-wilt thou do for him?’ Then that great elephant-headed One awoke in the
-dark and answered, ‘In three days, if it be thy will, he shall have one
-lakh of rupees.’ Then Shiv and Parbati went away.
-
-“But there was a money-lender in the garden hidden among the
-marigolds”—the child looked at the ball of crumpled blossoms in its
-hands—“ay, among the yellow marigolds, and he heard the Gods talking. He
-was a covetous man, and of a black heart, and he desired that lakh of
-rupees for himself. So he went to the mendicant and said, ‘O brother,
-how much do the pious give thee daily?’ The mendicant said, ‘I cannot
-tell. Sometimes a little rice, sometimes a little pulse, and a few
-cowries, and, it has been, pickled mangoes and dried fish.’”
-
-“That is good,” said the child, smacking its lips.
-
-“Then said the money-lender, ‘Because I have long watched thee, and
-learned to love thee and thy patience, I will give thee now five rupees
-for all thy earnings of the three days to come. There is only a bond to
-sign on the matter.’ But the mendicant said, ‘Thou art mad. In two
-months I do not receive the worth of five rupees,’ and he told the thing
-to his wife that evening. She, being a woman, said, ‘When did
-money-lender ever make a bad bargain? The wolf runs through the corn for
-the sake of the fat deer. Our fate is in the hands of the Gods. Pledge
-it not even for three days.’
-
-“So the mendicant returned to the money-lender, and would not sell. Then
-that wicked man sat all day before him, offering more and more for those
-three days’ earnings. First, ten, fifty, and a hundred rupees; and then,
-for he did not know when the Gods would pour down their gifts, rupees by
-the thousand, till he had offered half a lakh of rupees. Upon this sum
-the mendicant’s wife shifted her counsel, and the mendicant signed the
-bond, and the money was paid in silver; great white bullocks bringing it
-by the cart-load. But saving only all that money, the mendicant received
-nothing from the Gods at all, and the heart of the money-lender was
-uneasy on account of expectation. Therefore at noon of the third day the
-money-lender went into the temple to spy upon the councils of the Gods,
-and to learn in what manner that gift might arrive. Even as he was
-making his prayers, a crack between the stones of the floor gaped, and,
-closing, caught him by the heel. Then he heard the Gods walking in the
-temple in the darkness of the columns, and Shiv called to his son
-Ganesh, saying, ‘Son, what hast thou done in regard to the lakh of
-rupees for the mendicant?’ And Ganesh woke, for the money-lender heard
-the dry rustle of his trunk uncoiling, and he answered, ‘Father, one
-half of the money has been paid, and the debtor for the other half I
-hold here fast by the heel.’”
-
-The child bubbled with laughter. “And the money-lender paid the
-mendicant?” it said.
-
-“Surely, for he whom the Gods hold by the heel must pay to the
-uttermost. The money was paid at evening, all silver, in great carts,
-and thus Ganesh did his work.”
-
-“Nathu! Oh[=e], Nathu!”
-
-A woman was calling in the dusk by the door of the courtyard.
-
-The child began to wriggle. “That is my mother,” it said.
-
-“Go then, littlest,” answered Gobind; “but stay a moment.”
-
-He ripped a generous yard from his patchwork-quilt, put it over the
-child’s shoulders, and the child ran away.
-
-
-
-
- AT HOWLI THANA
-
-His own shoe, his own head.—_Native Proverb._
-
-
-As a messenger, if the heart of the Presence be moved to so great
-favour. And on six rupees. Yes, Sahib, for I have three little little
-children whose stomachs are always empty, and corn is now but forty
-pounds to the rupee. I will make so clever a messenger that you shall
-all day long be pleased with me, and, at the end of the year, bestow a
-turban. I know all the roads of the Station and many other things. Aha,
-Sahib! I am clever. Give me service. I was aforetime in the Police. A
-bad character? Now without doubt an enemy has told this tale. Never was
-I a scamp. I am a man of clean heart, and all my words are true. They
-knew this when I was in the Police. They said: “Afzal Khan is a true
-speaker in whose words men may trust.” I am a Delhi Pathan, Sahib—all
-Delhi Pathans are good men. You have seen Delhi? Yes, it is true that
-there be many scamps among the Delhi Pathans. How wise is the Sahib!
-Nothing is hid from his eyes, and he will make me his messenger, and I
-will take all his notes secretly and without ostentation. Nay, Sahib,
-God is my witness that I meant no evil. I have long desired to serve
-under a true Sahib—a virtuous Sahib. Many young Sahibs are as devils
-unchained. With these Sahibs I would take no service—not though all the
-stomachs of my little children were crying for bread.
-
-Why am I not still in the Police? I will speak true talk. An evil came
-to the Thana—to Ram Baksh, the Havildar, and Maula Baksh, and Juggut Ram
-and Bhim Singh and Suruj Bul. Ram Baksh is in the jail for a space, and
-so also is Maula Baksh.
-
-It was at the Thana of Howli, on the road that leads to Gokral-Seetarun,
-wherein are many dacoits. We were all brave men—Rustums. Wherefore we
-were sent to that Thana, which was eight miles from the next Thana. All
-day and all night we watched for dacoits. Why does the Sahib laugh? Nay,
-I will make a confession. The dacoits were too clever, and, seeing this,
-we made no further trouble. It was in the hot weather. What can a man do
-in the hot days? Is the Sahib who is so strong—is he, even, vigorous in
-that hour? We made an arrangement with the dacoits for the sake of
-peace. That was the work of the Havildar, who was fat. Ho! Ho! Sahib, he
-is now getting thin in the jail among the carpets. The Havildar said:
-“Give us no trouble, and we will give you no trouble. At the end of the
-reaping send us a man to lead before the judge, a man of infirm mind
-against whom the trumped-up case will break down. Thus we shall save our
-honour.” To this talk the dacoits agreed, and we had no trouble at the
-Thana, and could eat melons in peace, sitting upon our charpoys all day
-long. Sweet as sugar-cane are the melons of Howli.
-
-Now there was an assistant commissioner—a Stunt Sahib, in that district,
-called Yunkum Sahib. Aha! He was hard—hard even as is the Sahib who,
-without doubt, will give me the shadow of his protection. Many eyes had
-Yunkum Sahib, and moved quickly through his district. Men called him The
-Tiger of Gokral-Seetarun, because he would arrive unannounced and make
-his kill, and, before sunset, would be giving trouble to the Tehsildars
-thirty miles away. No one knew the comings or the goings of Yunkum
-Sahib. He had no camp, and when his horse was weary he rode upon a
-devil-carriage. I do not know its name, but the Sahib sat in the midst
-of three silver wheels that made no creaking, and drave them with his
-legs, prancing like a bean-fed horse—thus. A shadow of a hawk upon the
-fields was not more without noise than the devil-carriage of Yunkum
-Sahib. It was here: it was there: it was gone: and the rapport was made,
-and there was trouble. Ask the Tehsildar of Rohestri how the
-hen-stealing came to be known, Sahib.
-
-It fell upon a night that we of the Thana slept according to custom upon
-our charpoys, having eaten the evening meal and drunk tobacco. When we
-awoke in the morning, behold, of our six rifles not one remained! Also,
-the big Police-book that was in the Havildar’s charge was gone. Seeing
-these things, we were very much afraid, thinking on our parts that the
-dacoits, regardless of honour, had come by night and put us to shame.
-Then said Ram Baksh, the Havildar: “Be silent! The business is an evil
-business, but it may yet go well. Let us make the case complete. Bring a
-kid and my tulwar. See you not _now_, O fools? A kick for a horse, but a
-word is enough for a man.”
-
-We of the Thana, perceiving quickly what was in the mind of the
-Havildar, and greatly fearing that the service would be lost, made haste
-to take the kid into the inner room, and attended to the words of the
-Havildar. “Twenty dacoits came,” said the Havildar, and we, taking his
-words, repeated after him according to custom. “There was a great
-fight,” said the Havildar, “and of us no man escaped unhurt. The bars of
-the window were broken. Suruj Bul, see thou to that; and, O men, put
-speed into your work, for a runner must go with the news to The Tiger of
-Gokral-Seetarun.” Thereon, Suruj Bul, leaning with his shoulder, brake
-in the bars of the window, and I, beating her with a whip, made the
-Havildar’s mare skip among the melon-beds till they were much trodden
-with hoof-prints.
-
-These things being made, I returned to the Thana, and the goat was
-slain, and certain portions of the walls were blackened with fire, and
-each man dipped his clothes a little into the blood of the goat. Know, O
-Sahib, that a wound made by man upon his own body can, by those skilled,
-be easily discerned from a wound wrought by another man. Therefore, the
-Havildar, taking his tulwar, smote one of us lightly on the forearm in
-the fat, and another on the leg, and a third on the back of the hand.
-Thus dealt he with all of us till the blood came; and Suruj Bul, more
-eager than the others, took out much hair. O Sahib, never was so perfect
-an arrangement. Yea, even I would have sworn that the Thana had been
-treated as we said. There was smoke and breaking and blood and trampled
-earth.
-
-“Ride now, Maula Baksh,” said the Havildar, “to the house of the Stunt
-Sahib, and carry the news of the dacoity. Do you also, O Afzal Khan, run
-there, and take heed that you are mired with sweat and dust on your
-in-coming. The blood will be dry on the clothes. I will stay and send a
-straight report to the Dipty Sahib, and we will catch certain that ye
-know of, villagers, so that all may be ready against the Dipty Sahib’s
-arrival.”
-
-Thus Maula Baksh rode and I ran hanging on the stirrup, and together we
-came in an evil plight before The Tiger of Gokral-Seetarun in the
-Rohestri tehsil. Our tale was long and correct, Sahib, for we gave even
-the names of the dacoits and the issue of the fight, and besought him to
-come. But The Tiger made no sign, and only smiled after the manner of
-Sahibs when they have a wickedness in their hearts. “Swear ye to the
-rapport?” said he, and we said: “Thy servants swear. The blood of the
-fight is but newly dry upon us. Judge thou if it be the blood of the
-servants of the Presence, or not.” And he said: “I see. Ye have done
-well.” But he did not call for his horse or his devil-carriage, and
-scour the land as was his custom. He said: “Rest now and eat bread, for
-ye be wearied men. I will wait the coming of the Dipty Sahib.”
-
-Now it is the order that the Havildar of the Thana should send a
-straight report of all dacoities to the Dipty Sahib. At noon came he, a
-fat man and an old, and overbearing withal, but we of the Thana had no
-fear of his anger; dreading more the silences of The Tiger of
-Gokral-Seetarun. With him came Ram Baksh, the Havildar, and the others,
-guarding ten men of the village of Howli—all men evil affected towards
-the Police of the Sirkar. As prisoners they came, the irons upon their
-hands, crying for mercy—Imam Baksh, the farmer, who had denied his wife
-to the Havildar, and others, ill-conditioned rascals against whom we of
-the Thana bore spite. It was well done, and the Havildar was proud. But
-the Dipty Sahib was angry with the Stunt for lack of zeal, and said
-“Dam-Dam” after the custom of the English people, and extolled the
-Havildar. Yunkum Sahib lay still in his long chair. “Have the men
-sworn?” said Yunkum Sahib. “Aye, and captured ten evildoers,” said the
-Dipty Sahib. “There be more abroad in _your_ charge. Take horse—ride,
-and go in the name of the Sirkar!” “Truly there be more evildoers
-abroad,” said Yunkum Sahib, “but there is no need of a horse. Come all
-men with me.”
-
-I saw the mark of a string on the temples of Imam Baksh. Does the
-Presence know the torture of the Cold Draw? I saw also the face of The
-Tiger of Gokral-Seetarun, the evil smile was upon it, and I stood back
-ready for what might befall. Well it was, Sahib, that I did this thing.
-Yunkum Sahib unlocked the door of his bathroom, and smiled anew. Within
-lay the six rifles and the big Police-book of the Thana of Howli! He had
-come by night in the devil-carriage that is noiseless as a ghoul, and
-moving among us asleep, had taken away both the guns and the book! Twice
-had he come to the Thana, taking each time three rifles. The liver of
-the Havildar was turned to water, and he fell scrabbling in the dirt
-about the boots of Yunkum Sahib, crying—“Have mercy!”
-
-And I? Sahib, I am a Delhi Pathan, and a young man with little children.
-The Havildar’s mare was in the compound. I ran to her and rode: the
-black wrath of the Sirkar was behind me, and I knew not whither to go.
-Till she dropped and died I rode the red mare; and by the blessing of
-God, who is without doubt on the side of all just men, I escaped. But
-the Havildar and the rest are now in jail.
-
-I am a scamp? It is as the Presence pleases. God will make the Presence
-a Lord, and give him a rich _Memsahib_ as fair as a Peri to wife, and
-many strong sons, if he makes me his orderly. The Mercy of Heaven be
-upon the Sahib! Yes, I will only go to the bazar and bring my children
-to these so-palace-like quarters, and then—the Presence is my Father and
-my Mother, and I, Afzal Khan, am his slave.
-
-Ohe, _Sirdar-ji_! I also am of the household of the Sahib.
-
-
-
-
- IN FLOOD TIME
-
- Tweed said tae Till:
- “What gars ye rin sae still?”
- Till said tae Tweed:
- “Though ye rin wi’ speed
- An’ I rin slaw—
- Yet where ye droon ae man
- I droon twa.”
-
-
-There is no getting over the river to-night, Sahib. They say that a
-bullock-cart has been washed down already, and the _ekka_ that went over
-a half hour before you came has not yet reached the far side. Is the
-Sahib in haste? I will drive the ford-elephant in to show him. Ohe,
-mahout there in the shed! Bring out Ram Pershad, and if he will face the
-current, good. An elephant never lies, Sahib, and Ram Pershad is
-separated from his friend Kala Nag. He, too, wishes to cross to the far
-side. Well done! Well done! my King! Go half way across, _mahoutji_, and
-see what the river says. Well done, Ram Pershad! Pearl among elephants,
-go into the river! Hit him on the head, fool! Was the goad made only to
-scratch thy own fat back with, bastard? Strike! Strike! What are the
-boulders to thee, Ram Pershad, my Rustum, my mountain of strength? Go
-in! Go in!
-
-No, Sahib! It is useless. You can hear him trumpet. He is telling Kala
-Nag that he cannot come over. See! He has swung round and is shaking his
-head. He is no fool. He knows what the Barhwi means when it is angry.
-Aha! Indeed, thou art no fool, my child! _Salaam_, Ram Pershad, Bahadur!
-Take him under the trees, mahout, and see that he gets his spices. Well
-done, thou chiefest among tuskers! _Salaam_ to the Sirkar and go to
-sleep.
-
-What is to be done? The Sahib must wait till the river goes down. It
-will shrink to-morrow morning, if God pleases, or the day after at the
-latest. Now why does the Sahib get so angry? I am his servant. Before
-God, _I_ did not create this stream! What can I do! My hut and all that
-is therein is at the service of the Sahib, and it is beginning to rain.
-Come away, my Lord. How will the river go down for your throwing abuse
-at it? In the old days the English people were not thus. The
-fire-carriage has made them soft. In the old days, when they drave
-behind horses by day or by night, they said naught if a river barred the
-way, or a carriage sat down in the mud. It was the will of God—not like
-a fire-carriage which goes and goes and goes, and would go though all
-the devils in the land hung on to its tail. The fire-carriage hath
-spoiled the English people. After all, what is a day lost, or, for that
-matter, what are two days? Is the Sahib going to his own wedding, that
-he is so mad with haste? Ho! Ho! Ho! I am an old man and see few Sahibs.
-Forgive me if I have forgotten the respect that is due to them. The
-Sahib is not angry?
-
-His own wedding! Ho! Ho! Ho! The mind of an old man is like the
-_numah_-tree. Fruit, bud, blossom, and the dead leaves of all the years
-of the past flourish together. Old and new and that which is gone out of
-remembrance, all three are there! Sit on the bedstead, Sahib, and drink
-milk. Or—would the Sahib in truth care to drink my tobacco? It is good.
-It is the tobacco of Nuklao. My son, who is in service there, sent it to
-me. Drink, then, Sahib, if you know how to handle the tube. The Sahib
-takes it like a Musalman. Wah! Wah! Where did he learn that? His own
-wedding! Ho! Ho! Ho! The Sahib says that there is no wedding in the
-matter at all? Now _is_ it likely that the Sahib would speak true talk
-to me who am only a black man? Small wonder, then, that he is in haste.
-Thirty years have I beaten the gong at this ford, but never have I seen
-a Sahib in such haste. Thirty years, Sahib! That is a very long time.
-Thirty years ago this ford was on the track of the _bunjaras_, and I
-have seen two thousand pack-bullocks cross in one night. Now the rail
-has come, and the fire-carriage says _buz-buz-buz_, and a hundred lakhs
-of maunds slide across that big bridge. It is very wonderful; but the
-ford is lonely now that there are no _bunjaras_ to camp under the trees.
-
-Nay, do not trouble to look at the sky without. It will rain till the
-dawn. Listen! The boulders are talking to-night in the bed of the river.
-Hear them! They would be husking your bones, Sahib, had you tried to
-cross. See, I will shut the door and no rain can enter. _Wahi!_ _Ahi!_
-_Ugh!_ Thirty years on the banks of the ford! An old man am I, and—where
-is the oil for the lamp?
-
- * * * * *
-
-Your pardon, but, because of my years, I sleep no sounder than a dog;
-and you moved to the door. Look then, Sahib. Look and listen. A full
-half _kos_ from bank to bank is the stream now—you can see it under the
-stars—and there are ten feet of water therein. It will not shrink
-because of the anger in your eyes, and it will not be quiet on account
-of your curses. Which is louder, Sahib—your voice or the voice of the
-river? Call to it—perhaps it will be ashamed. Lie down and sleep afresh,
-Sahib. I know the anger of the Barhwi when there has fallen rain in the
-foot-hills. I swam the flood, once, on a night ten-fold worse than this,
-and by the Favour of God I was released from death when I had come to
-the very gates thereof.
-
-May I tell the tale? Very good talk. I will fill the pipe anew.
-
-Thirty years ago it was, when I was a young man and had but newly come
-to the ford. I was strong then, and the _bunjaras_ had no doubt when I
-said, “This ford is clear.” I have toiled all night up to my
-shoulder-blades in running water amid a hundred bullocks mad with fear,
-and have brought them across, losing not a hoof. When all was done I
-fetched the shivering men, and they gave me for reward the pick of their
-cattle—the bell-bullock of the drove. So great was the honour in which I
-was held! But to-day, when the rain falls and the river rises, I creep
-into my hut and whimper like a dog. My strength is gone from me. I am an
-old man, and the fire-carriage has made the ford desolate. They were
-wont to call me the Strong One of the Barhwi.
-
-Behold my face, Sahib—it is the face of a monkey. And my arm—it is the
-arm of an old woman. I swear to you, Sahib, that a woman has loved this
-face and has rested in the hollow of this arm. Twenty years ago, Sahib.
-Believe me, this was true talk—twenty years ago.
-
-Come to the door and look across. Can you see a thin fire very far away
-down the stream? That is the temple-fire in the shrine of Hanuman, of
-the village of Pateera. North, under the big star, is the village
-itself, but it is hidden by a bend of the river. Is that far to swim,
-Sahib? Would you take off your clothes and adventure? Yet I swam to
-Pateera—not once, but many times; and there are _muggers_ in the river
-too.
-
-Love knows no caste; else why should I, a Musalman and the son of a
-Musalman, have sought a Hindu woman—a widow of the Hindus—the sister of
-the headman of Pateera? But it was even so. They of the headman’s
-household came on a pilgrimage to Muttra when She was but newly a bride.
-Silver tires were upon the wheels of the bullock-cart, and silken
-curtains hid the woman. Sahib, I made no haste in their conveyance, for
-the wind parted the curtains and I saw Her. When they returned from
-pilgrimage the boy that was Her husband had died, and I saw Her again in
-the bullock-cart. By God, these Hindus are fools! What was it to me
-whether She was Hindu or Jain—scavenger, leper, or whole? I would have
-married Her and made Her a home by the ford. The Seventh of the Nine
-Bars says that a man may not marry one of the idolaters? Is that truth?
-Both Shiahs and Sunnis say that a Musalman may not marry one of the
-idolaters? Is the Sahib a priest, then, that he knows so much? I will
-tell him something that he does not know. There is neither Shiah nor
-Sunni, forbidden nor idolater, in Love; and the Nine Bars are but nine
-little fagots that the flame of Love utterly burns away. In truth, I
-would have taken Her; but what could I do? The headman would have sent
-his men to break my head with staves. I am not—I was not—afraid of any
-five men; but against half a village who can prevail?
-
-Therefore it was my custom, these things having been arranged between us
-twain, to go by night to the village of Pateera, and there we met among
-the crops; no man knowing aught of the matter. Behold, now! I was wont
-to cross here, skirting the jungle to the river bend where the railway
-bridge is, and thence across the elbow of land to Pateera. The light of
-the shrine was my guide when the nights were dark. That jungle near the
-river is very full of snakes—little _karaits_ that sleep on the sand—and
-moreover, Her brothers would have slain me had they found me in the
-crops. But none knew—none knew save She and I; and the blown sand of the
-river-bed covered the track of my feet. In the hot months it was an easy
-thing to pass from the ford to Pateera, and in the first Rains, when the
-river rose slowly, it was an easy thing also. I set the strength of my
-body against the strength of the stream, and nightly I ate in my hut
-here and drank at Pateera yonder. She had said that one Hirnam Singh, a
-thief, had sought Her, and he was of a village up the river but on the
-same bank. All Sikhs are dogs, and they have refused in their folly that
-good gift of God—tobacco. I was ready to destroy Hirnam Singh that ever
-he had come nigh Her; and the more because he had sworn to Her that She
-had a lover, and that he would lie in wait and give the name to the
-headman unless She went away with him. What curs are these Sikhs!
-
-After that news, I swam always with a little sharp knife in my belt, and
-evil would it have been for a man had he stayed me. I knew not the face
-of Hirnam Singh, but I would have killed any who came between me and
-Her.
-
-Upon a night in the beginning of the Rains, I was minded to go across to
-Pateera, albeit the river was angry. Now the nature of the Barhwi is
-this, Sahib. In twenty breaths it comes down from the Hills, a wall
-three feet high, and I have seen it, between the lighting of a fire and
-the cooking of a _chupatty_, grow from a runnel to a sister of the
-Jumna.
-
-When I left this bank there was a shoal a half mile down, and I made
-shift to fetch it and draw breath there ere going forward; for I felt
-the hands of the river heavy upon my heels. Yet what will a young man
-not do for Love’s sake? There was but little light from the stars, and
-midway to the shoal a branch of the stinking deodar tree brushed my
-mouth as I swam. That was a sign of heavy rain in the foot-hills and
-beyond, for the deodar is a strong tree, not easily shaken from the
-hillsides. I made haste, the river aiding me, but ere I had touched the
-shoal, the pulse of the stream beat, as it were, within me and around,
-and, behold, the shoal was gone and I rode high on the crest of a wave
-that ran from bank to bank. Has the Sahib ever been cast into much water
-that fights and will not let a man use his limbs? To me, my head upon
-the water, it seemed as though there were naught but water to the
-world’s end, and the river drave me with its driftwood. A man is a very
-little thing in the belly of a flood. And _this_ flood, though I knew it
-not, was the Great Flood about which men talk still. My liver was
-dissolved and I lay like a log upon my back in the fear of Death. There
-were living things in the water, crying and howling grievously—beasts of
-the forest and cattle, and once the voice of a man asking for help. But
-the rain came and lashed the water white, and I heard no more save the
-roar of the boulders below and the roar of the rain above. Thus I was
-whirled downstream, wrestling for the breath in me. It is very hard to
-die when one is young. Can the Sahib, standing here, see the railway
-bridge? Look, there are the lights of the mail-train going to Peshawur!
-The bridge is now twenty feet above the river, but upon that night the
-water was roaring against the lattice-work and against the lattice came
-I feet first. But much driftwood was piled there and upon the piers, and
-I took no great hurt. Only the river pressed me as a strong man presses
-a weaker. Scarcely could I take hold of the lattice-work and crawl to
-the upper boom. Sahib, the water was foaming across the rails a foot
-deep! Judge therefore what manner of flood it must have been. I could
-not hear. I could not see. I could but lie on the boom and pant for
-breath.
-
-After a while the rain ceased and there came out in the sky certain new
-washed stars, and by their light I saw that there was no end to the
-black water as far as the eye could travel, and the water had risen upon
-the rails. There were dead beasts in the driftwood on the piers, and
-others caught by the neck in the lattice-work, and others not yet
-drowned who strove to find a foothold on the lattice-work—buffaloes and
-kine, and wild pig, and deer one or two, and snakes and jackals past all
-counting. Their bodies were black upon the left side of the bridge, but
-the smaller of them were forced through the lattice-work and whirled
-down-stream.
-
-Thereafter the stars died and the rain came down afresh and the river
-rose yet more, and I felt the bridge begin to stir under me as a man
-stirs in his sleep ere he wakes. But I was not afraid, Sahib. I swear to
-you that I was not afraid, though I had no power in my limbs. I knew
-that I should not die till I had seen Her once more. But I was very
-cold, and I felt that the bridge must go.
-
-There was a trembling in the water, such a trembling as goes before the
-coming of a great wave, and the bridge lifted its flank to the rush of
-that coming so that the right lattice dipped under water and the left
-rose clear. On my beard, Sahib, I am speaking God’s truth! As a
-Mirzapore stone-boat careens to the wind, so the Barhwi Bridge turned.
-Thus and in no other manner.
-
-I slid from the boom into deep water, and behind me came the wave of the
-wrath of the river. I heard its voice and the scream of the middle part
-of the bridge as it moved from the piers and sank, and I knew no more
-till I rose in the middle of the great flood. I put forth my hand to
-swim, and lo! it fell upon the knotted hair of the head of a man. He was
-dead, for no one but I, the Strong One of Barhwi, could have lived in
-that race. He had been dead full two days, for he rode high, wallowing,
-and was an aid to me. I laughed then, knowing for a surety that I should
-yet see Her and take no harm; and I twisted my fingers in the hair of
-the man, for I was far spent, and together we went down the stream—he
-the dead and I the living. Lacking that help I should have sunk: the
-cold was in my marrow, and my flesh was ribbed and sodden on my bones.
-But _he_ had no fear who had known the uttermost of the power of the
-river; and I let him go where he chose. At last we came into the power
-of a side-current that set to the right bank, and I strove with my feet
-to draw with it. But the dead man swung heavily in the whirl, and I
-feared that some branch had struck him and that he would sink. The tops
-of the tamarisk brushed my knees, so I knew we were come into
-flood-water above the crops, and, after, I let down my legs and felt
-bottom—the ridge of a field—and, after, the dead man stayed upon a knoll
-under a fig-tree, and I drew my body from the water rejoicing.
-
-Does the Sahib know whither the backwash of the flood had borne me? To
-the knoll which is the eastern boundary-mark of the village of Pateera!
-No other place. I drew the dead man up on the grass for the service that
-he had done me, and also because I knew not whether I should need him
-again. Then I went, crying thrice like a jackal, to the appointed place
-which was near the byre of the headman’s house. But my Love was already
-there, weeping. She feared that the flood had swept my hut at the Barhwi
-Ford. When I came softly through the ankle-deep water, She thought it
-was a ghost and would have fled, but I put my arms round Her, and—I was
-no ghost in those days, though I am an old man now. Ho! Ho! Dried corn,
-in truth. Maize without juice. Ho! Ho![1]
-
-Footnote 1:
-
- I grieve to say that the Warden of Barhwi Ford is responsible here for
- two very bad puns in the vernacular.—_R. K._
-
-I told Her the story of the breaking of the Barhwi Bridge, and She said
-that I was greater than mortal man, for none may cross the Barhwi in
-full flood, and I had seen what never man had seen before. Hand in hand
-we went to the knoll where the dead lay, and I showed Her by what help I
-had made the ford. She looked also upon the body under the stars, for
-the latter end of the night was clear, and hid Her face in Her hands,
-crying: “It is the body of Hirnam Singh!” I said: “The swine is of more
-use dead than living, my Beloved,” and She said: “Surely, for he has
-saved the dearest life in the world to my love. None the less, he cannot
-stay here, for that would bring shame upon me.” The body was not a
-gunshot from Her door.
-
-Then said I, rolling the body with my hands: “God hath judged between
-us, Hirnam Singh, that thy blood might not be upon my head. Now, whether
-I have done thee a wrong in keeping thee from the burning-ghat, do thou
-and the crows settle together.” So I cast him adrift into the
-flood-water, and he was drawn out to the open, ever wagging his thick
-black beard like a priest under the pulpit-board. And I saw no more of
-Hirnam Singh.
-
-Before the breaking of the day we two parted, and I moved towards such
-of the jungle as was not flooded. With the full light I saw what I had
-done in the darkness, and the bones of my body were loosened in my
-flesh, for there ran two _kos_ of raging water between the village of
-Pateera and the trees of the far bank, and, in the middle, the piers of
-the Barhwi Bridge showed like broken teeth in the jaw of an old man. Nor
-was there any life upon the waters—neither birds nor boats, but only an
-army of drowned things—bullocks and horses and men—and the river was
-redder than blood from the clay of the foot-hills. Never had I seen such
-a flood—never since that year have I seen the like—and, O Sahib, no man
-living had done what I had done. There was no return for me that day.
-Not for all the lands of the headman would I venture a second time
-without the shield of darkness that cloaks danger. I went a _kos_ up the
-river to the house of a blacksmith, saying that the flood had swept me
-from my hut, and they gave me food. Seven days I stayed with the
-blacksmith, till a boat came and I returned to my house. There was no
-trace of wall, or roof, or floor—naught but a patch of slimy mud. Judge,
-therefore, Sahib, how far the river must have risen.
-
-It was written that I should not die either in my house, or in the heart
-of the Barhwi, or under the wreck of the Barhwi Bridge, for God sent
-down Hirnam Singh two days dead, though I know not how the man died, to
-be my buoy and support. Hirnam Singh has been in Hell these twenty
-years, and the thought of that night must be the flower of his torment.
-
-Listen, Sahib! The river has changed its voice. It is going to sleep
-before the dawn, to which there is yet one hour. With the light it will
-come down afresh. How do I know? Have I been here thirty years without
-knowing the voice of the river as a father knows the voice of his son?
-Every moment it is talking less angrily. I swear that there will be no
-danger for one hour or, perhaps, two. I cannot answer for the morning.
-Be quick, Sahib! I will call Ram Pershad, and he will not turn back this
-time. Is the paulin tightly corded upon all the baggage? Ohe, mahout
-with a mud head, the elephant for the Sahib, and tell them on the far
-side that there will be no crossing after daylight.
-
-Money? Nay, Sahib. I am not of that kind. No, not even to give
-sweetmeats to the baby-folk. My house, look you, is empty, and I am an
-old man.
-
-_Dutt_, Ram Pershad! _Dutt! Dutt! Dutt!_ Good luck go with you, Sahib.
-
-
-
-
- MOTI GUJ—MUTINEER
-
-
-Once upon a time there was a coffee-planter in India who wished to clear
-some forest land for coffee-planting. When he had cut down all the trees
-and burned the under-wood the stumps still remained. Dynamite is
-expensive and slow-fire slow. The happy medium for stump-clearing is the
-lord of all beasts, who is the elephant. He will either push the stump
-out of the ground with his tusks, if he has any, or drag it out with
-ropes. The planter, therefore, hired elephants by ones and twos and
-threes, and fell to work. The very best of all the elephants belonged to
-the very worst of all the drivers or mahouts; and the superior beast’s
-name was Moti Guj. He was the absolute property of his mahout, which
-would never have been the case under native rule, for Moti Guj was a
-creature to be desired by kings; and his name, being translated, meant
-the Pearl Elephant. Because the British Government was in the land,
-Deesa, the mahout, enjoyed his property undisturbed. He was dissipated.
-When he had made much money through the strength of his elephant, he
-would get extremely drunk and give Moti Guj a beating with a tent-peg
-over the tender nails of the forefeet. Moti Guj never trampled the life
-out of Deesa on these occasions, for he knew that after the beating was
-over Deesa would embrace his trunk and weep and call him his love and
-his life and the liver of his soul, and give him some liquor. Moti Guj
-was very fond of liquor—arrack for choice, though he would drink
-palm-tree toddy if nothing better offered. Then Deesa would go to sleep
-between Moti Guj’s forefeet, and as Deesa generally chose the middle of
-the public road, and as Moti Guj mounted guard over him and would not
-permit horse, foot, or cart to pass by, traffic was congested till Deesa
-saw fit to wake up.
-
-There was no sleeping in the daytime on the planter’s clearing: the
-wages were too high to risk. Deesa sat on Moti Guj’s neck and gave him
-orders, while Moti Guj rooted up the stumps—for he owned a magnificent
-pair of tusks; or pulled at the end of a rope—for he had a magnificent
-pair of shoulders, while Deesa kicked him behind the ears and said he
-was the king of elephants. At evening time Moti Guj would wash down his
-three hundred pounds’ weight of green food with a quart of arrack, and
-Deesa would take a share and sing songs between Moti Guj’s legs till it
-was time to go to bed. Once a week Deesa led Moti Guj down to the river,
-and Moti Guj lay on his side luxuriously in the shallows, while Deesa
-went over him with a coir-swab and a brick. Moti Guj never mistook the
-pounding blow of the latter for the smack of the former that warned him
-to get up and turn over on the other side. Then Deesa would look at his
-feet, and examine his eyes, and turn up the fringes of his mighty ears
-in case of sores or budding ophthalmia. After inspection, the two would
-“come up with a song from the sea,” Moti Guj all black and shining,
-waving a torn tree branch twelve feet long in his trunk, and Deesa
-knotting up his own long wet hair.
-
-It was a peaceful, well-paid life till Deesa felt the return of the
-desire to drink deep. He wished for an orgie. The little draughts that
-led nowhere were taking the manhood out of him.
-
-He went to the planter, and “My mother’s dead,” said he, weeping.
-
-“She died on the last plantation two months ago; and she died once
-before that when you were working for me last year,” said the planter,
-who knew something of the ways of nativedom.
-
-“Then it’s my aunt, and she was just the same as a mother to me,” said
-Deesa, weeping more than ever. “She has left eighteen small children
-entirely without bread, and it is I who must fill their little
-stomachs,” said Deesa, beating his head on the floor.
-
-“Who brought you the news?” said the planter.
-
-“The post,” said Deesa.
-
-“There hasn’t been a post here for the past week. Get back to your
-lines!”
-
-“A devastating sickness has fallen on my village, and all my wives are
-dying,” yelled Deesa, really in tears this time.
-
-“Call Chihun, who comes from Deesa’s village,” said the planter.
-“Chihun, has this man a wife?”
-
-“He!” said Chihun. “No. Not a woman of our village would look at him.
-They’d sooner marry the elephant.” Chihun snorted. Deesa wept and
-bellowed.
-
-“You will get into a difficulty in a minute,” said the planter. “Go back
-to your work!”
-
-“Now I will speak Heaven’s truth,” gulped Deesa, with an inspiration. “I
-haven’t been drunk for two months. I desire to depart in order to get
-properly drunk afar off and distant from this heavenly plantation. Thus
-I shall cause no trouble.”
-
-A flickering smile crossed the planter’s face. “Deesa,” said he, “you’ve
-spoken the truth, and I’d give you leave on the spot if anything could
-be done with Moti Guj while you’re away. You know that he will only obey
-your orders.”
-
-“May the Light of the Heavens live forty thousand years. I shall be
-absent but ten little days. After that, upon my faith and honour and
-soul, I return. As to the inconsiderable interval, have I the gracious
-permission of the Heaven-born to call up Moti Guj?”
-
-Permission was granted, and, in answer to Deesa’s shrill yell, the
-lordly tusker swung out of the shade of a clump of trees where he had
-been squirting dust over himself till his master should return.
-
-“Light of my heart, Protector of the Drunken, Mountain of Might, give
-ear,” said Deesa, standing in front of him.
-
-Moti Guj gave ear, and saluted with his trunk. “I am going away,” said
-Deesa.
-
-Moti Guj’s eyes twinkled. He liked jaunts as well as his master. One
-could snatch all manner of nice things from the roadside then.
-
-“But you, you fubsy old pig, must stay behind and work.”
-
-The twinkle died out as Moti Guj tried to look delighted. He hated
-stump-hauling on the plantation. It hurt his teeth.
-
-“I shall be gone for ten days, O Delectable One. Hold up your near
-forefoot and I’ll impress the fact upon it, warty toad of a dried
-mud-puddle.” Deesa took a tent-peg and banged Moti Guj ten times on the
-nails. Moti Guj grunted and shuffled from foot to foot.
-
-“Ten days,” said Deesa, “you must work and haul and root trees as Chihun
-here shall order you. Take up Chihun and set him on your neck!” Moti Guj
-curled the tip of his trunk, Chihun put his foot there and was swung on
-to the neck. Deesa handed Chihun the heavy _ankus_, the iron
-elephant-goad.
-
-Chihun thumped Moti Guj’s bald head as a paviour thumps a kerbstone.
-
-Moti Guj trumpeted.
-
-“Be still, hog of the backwoods. Chihun’s your mahout for ten days. And
-now bid me good-bye, beast after mine own heart. Oh, my lord, my king!
-Jewel of all created elephants, lily of the herd, preserve your honoured
-health; be virtuous. Adieu!”
-
-Moti Guj lapped his trunk round Deesa and swung him into the air twice.
-That was his way of bidding the man good-bye.
-
-“He’ll work now,” said Deesa to the planter. “Have I leave to go?”
-
-The planter nodded, and Deesa dived into the woods. Moti Guj went back
-to haul stumps.
-
-Chihun was very kind to him, but he felt unhappy and forlorn
-notwithstanding. Chihun gave him balls of spices, and tickled him under
-the chin, and Chihun’s little baby cooed to him after work was over, and
-Chihun’s wife called him a darling; but Moti Guj was a bachelor by
-instinct, as Deesa was. He did not understand the domestic emotions. He
-wanted the light of his universe back again—the drink and the drunken
-slumber, the savage beatings and the savage caresses.
-
-None the less he worked well, and the planter wondered. Deesa had
-vagabonded along the roads till he met a marriage procession of his own
-caste and, drinking, dancing, and tippling, had drifted past all
-knowledge of the lapse of time.
-
-The morning of the eleventh day dawned, and there returned no Deesa.
-Moti Guj was loosed from his ropes for the daily stint. He swung clear,
-looked round, shrugged his shoulders, and began to walk away, as one
-having business elsewhere.
-
-“Hi! ho! Come back, you,” shouted Chihun. “Come back, and put me on your
-neck, Misborn Mountain. Return, Splendour of the Hillsides. Adornment of
-all India, heave to, or I’ll bang every toe off your fat forefoot!”
-
-Moti Guj gurgled gently, but did not obey. Chihun ran after him with a
-rope and caught him up. Moti Guj put his ears forward, and Chihun knew
-what that meant, though he tried to carry it off with high words.
-
-“None of your nonsense with me,” said he. “To your pickets, Devil-son.”
-
-“Hrrump!” said Moti Guj, and that was all—that and the forebent ears.
-
-Moti Guj put his hands in his pockets, chewed a branch for a toothpick,
-and strolled about the clearing, making jest of the other elephants, who
-had just set to work.
-
-Chihun reported the state of affairs to the planter, who came out with a
-dog-whip and cracked it furiously. Moti Guj paid the white man the
-compliment of charging him nearly a quarter of a mile across the
-clearing and “Hrrumping” him into the verandah. Then he stood outside
-the house chuckling to himself, and shaking all over with the fun of it,
-as an elephant will.
-
-“We’ll thrash him,” said the planter. “He shall have the finest
-thrashing that ever elephant received. Give Kala Nag and Nazim twelve
-foot of chain apiece, and tell them to lay on twenty blows.”
-
-Kala Nag—which means Black Snake—and Nazim were two of the biggest
-elephants in the lines, and one of their duties was to administer the
-graver punishments, since no man can beat an elephant properly.
-
-They took the whipping-chains and rattled them in their trunks as they
-sidled up to Moti Guj, meaning to hustle him between them. Moti Guj had
-never, in all his life of thirty-nine years, been whipped, and he did
-not intend to open new experiences. So he waited, weaving his head from
-right to left, and measuring the precise spot in Kala Nag’s fat side
-where a blunt tusk would sink deepest. Kala Nag had no tusks; the chain
-was his badge of authority; but he judged it good to swing wide of Moti
-Guj at the last minute, and seem to appear as if he had brought out the
-chain for amusement. Nazim turned round and went home early. He did not
-feel fighting-fit that morning, and so Moti Guj was left standing alone
-with his ears cocked.
-
-That decided the planter to argue no more, and Moti Guj rolled back to
-his inspection of the clearing. An elephant who will not work, and is
-not tied up, is not quite so manageable as an eighty-one ton gun loose
-in a heavy sea-way. He slapped old friends on the back and asked them if
-the stumps were coming away easily; he talked nonsense concerning labour
-and the inalienable rights of elephants to a long “nooning”; and,
-wandering to and fro, thoroughly demoralized the garden till sundown,
-when he returned to his pickets for food.
-
-“If you won’t work you sha’n’t eat,” said Chihun angrily. “You’re a wild
-elephant, and no educated animal at all. Go back to your jungle.”
-
-Chihun’s little brown baby, rolling on the floor of the hut, stretched
-its fat arms to the huge shadow in the doorway. Moti Guj knew well that
-it was the dearest thing on earth to Chihun. He swung out his trunk with
-a fascinating crook at the end, and the brown baby threw itself shouting
-upon it. Moti Guj made fast and pulled up till the brown baby was
-crowing in the air twelve feet above his father’s head.
-
-“Great Chief!” said Chihun. “Flour cakes of the best, twelve in number,
-two feet across, and soaked in rum shall be yours on the instant, and
-two hundred pounds’ weight of fresh-cut young sugar-cane therewith.
-Deign only to put down safely that insignificant brat who is my heart
-and my life to me.”
-
-Moti Guj tucked the brown baby comfortably between his forefeet, that
-could have knocked into toothpicks all Chihun’s hut, and waited for his
-food. He ate it, and the brown baby crawled away. Moti Guj dozed, and
-thought of Deesa. One of many mysteries connected with the elephant is
-that his huge body needs less sleep than anything else that lives. Four
-or five hours in the night suffice—two just before midnight, lying down
-on one side; two just after one o’clock, lying down on the other. The
-rest of the silent hours are filled with eating and fidgeting and long
-grumbling soliloquies.
-
-At midnight, therefore, Moti Guj strode out of his pickets, for a
-thought had come to him that Deesa might be lying drunk somewhere in the
-dark forest with none to look after him. So all that night he chased
-through the undergrowth, blowing and trumpeting and shaking his ears. He
-went down to the river and blared across the shallows where Deesa used
-to wash him, but there was no answer. He could not find Deesa, but he
-disturbed all the elephants in the lines, and nearly frightened to death
-some gypsies in the woods.
-
-At dawn Deesa returned to the plantation. He had been very drunk indeed,
-and he expected to fall into trouble for outstaying his leave. He drew a
-long breath when he saw that the bungalow and the plantation were still
-uninjured; for he knew something of Moti Guj’s temper; and reported
-himself with many lies and salaams. Moti Guj had gone to his pickets for
-breakfast. His night exercise had made him hungry.
-
-“Call up your beast,” said the planter, and Deesa shouted in the
-mysterious elephant-language, that some mahouts believe came from China
-at the birth of the world, when elephants and not men were masters. Moti
-Guj heard and came. Elephants do not gallop. They move from spots at
-varying rates of speed. If an elephant wished to catch an express train
-he could not gallop, but he could catch the train. Thus Moti Guj was at
-the planter’s door almost before Chihun noticed that he had left his
-pickets. He fell into Deesa’s arms trumpeting with joy, and the man and
-beast wept and slobbered over each other, and handled each other from
-head to heel to see that no harm had befallen.
-
-“Now we will get to work,” said Deesa. “Lift me up, my son and my joy.”
-
-Moti Guj swung him up, and the two went to the coffee-clearing to look
-for irksome stumps.
-
-The planter was too astonished to be very angry.
-
-
-
-
- WITHOUT BENEFIT OF CLERGY
-
- Before my Spring I garnered Autumn’s gain,
- Out of her time my field was white with grain,
- The year gave up her secrets to my woe.
- Forced and deflowered each sick season lay,
- In mystery of increase and decay;
- I saw the sunset ere men saw the day,
- Who am too wise in that I should not know.
- _Bitter Waters._
-
-
- I
-
-“But if it be a girl?”
-
-“Lord of my life, it cannot be. I have prayed for so many nights, and
-sent gifts to Sheikh Badl’s shrine so often, that I know God will give
-us a son—a man-child that shall grow into a man. Think of this and be
-glad. My mother shall be his mother till I can take him again, and the
-mullah of the Pattan mosque shall cast his nativity—God send he be born
-in an auspicious hour!—and then, and then thou wilt never weary of me,
-thy slave.”
-
-“Since when hast thou been a slave, my queen?”
-
-“Since the beginning—till this mercy came to me. How could I be sure of
-thy love when I knew that I had been bought with silver?”
-
-“Nay, that was the dowry. I paid it to thy mother.”
-
-“And she has buried it, and sits upon it all day long like a hen. What
-talk is yours of dower! I was bought as though I had been a Lucknow
-dancing-girl instead of a child.”
-
-“Art thou sorry for the sale?”
-
-“I have sorrowed; but to-day I am glad. Thou wilt never cease to love me
-now?—answer, my king.”
-
-“Never—never. No.”
-
-“Not even though the _mem-log_—the white women of thy own blood—love
-thee? And remember, I have watched them driving in the evening; they are
-very fair.”
-
-“I have seen fire-balloons by the hundred. I have seen the moon,
-and—then I saw no more fire-balloons.”
-
-Ameera clapped her hands and laughed. “Very good talk,” she said. Then
-with an assumption of great stateliness, “It is enough. Thou hast my
-permission to depart,—if thou wilt.”
-
-The man did not move. He was sitting on a low red-lacquered couch in a
-room furnished only with a blue and white floor-cloth, some rugs, and a
-very complete collection of native cushions. At his feet sat a woman of
-sixteen, and she was all but all the world in his eyes. By every rule
-and law she should have been otherwise, for he was an Englishman, and
-she a Mussulman’s daughter bought two years before from her mother, who,
-being left without money, would have sold Ameera shrieking to the Prince
-of Darkness if the price had been sufficient.
-
-It was a contract entered into with a light heart; but even before the
-girl had reached her bloom she came to fill the greater portion of John
-Holden’s life. For her, and the withered hag her mother, he had taken a
-little house overlooking the great red-walled city, and found,—when the
-marigolds had sprung up by the well in the courtyard and Ameera had
-established herself according to her own ideas of comfort, and her
-mother had ceased grumbling at the inadequacy of the cooking-places, the
-distance from the daily market, and at matters of housekeeping in
-general,—that the house was to him his home. Any one could enter his
-bachelor’s bungalow by day or night, and the life that he led there was
-an unlovely one. In the house in the city his feet only could pass
-beyond the outer courtyard to the women’s rooms; and when the big wooden
-gate was bolted behind him he was king in his own territory, with Ameera
-for queen. And there was going to be added to this kingdom a third
-person whose arrival Holden felt inclined to resent. It interfered with
-his perfect happiness. It disarranged the orderly peace of the house
-that was his own. But Ameera was wild with delight at the thought of it,
-and her mother not less so. The love of a man, and particularly a white
-man, was at the best an inconstant affair, but it might, both women
-argued, be held fast by a baby’s hands. “And then,” Ameera would always
-say, “then he will never care for the white _mem-log_. I hate them all—I
-hate them all.”
-
-“He will go back to his own people in time,” said the mother; “but by
-the blessing of God that time is yet afar off.”
-
-Holden sat silent on the couch thinking of the future, and his thoughts
-were not pleasant. The drawbacks of a double life are manifold. The
-Government, with singular care, had ordered him out of the station for a
-fortnight on special duty in the place of a man who was watching by the
-bedside of a sick wife. The verbal notification of the transfer had been
-edged by a cheerful remark that Holden ought to think himself lucky in
-being a bachelor and a free man. He came to break the news to Ameera.
-
-“It is not good,” she said slowly, “but it is not all bad. There is my
-mother here, and no harm will come to me—unless indeed I die of pure
-joy. Go thou to thy work and think no troublesome thoughts. When the
-days are done I believe ... nay, I am sure. And—and then I shall lay
-_him_ in thy arms, and thou wilt love me for ever. The train goes
-to-night, at midnight is it not? Go now, and do not let thy heart be
-heavy by cause of me. But thou wilt not delay in returning? Thou wilt
-not stay on the road to talk to the bold white _mem-log_. Come back to
-me swiftly, my life.”
-
-As he left the courtyard to reach his horse that was tethered to the
-gate-post, Holden spoke to the white-haired old watchman who guarded the
-house, and bade him under certain contingencies despatch the filled-up
-telegraph-form that Holden gave him. It was all that could be done, and
-with the sensations of a man who has attended his own funeral Holden
-went away by the night mail to his exile. Every hour of the day he
-dreaded the arrival of the telegram, and every hour of the night he
-pictured to himself the death of Ameera. In consequence his work for the
-State was not of first-rate quality, nor was his temper towards his
-colleagues of the most amiable. The fortnight ended without a sign from
-his home, and, torn to pieces by his anxieties, Holden returned to be
-swallowed up for two precious hours by a dinner at the club, wherein he
-heard, as a man hears in a swoon, voices telling him how execrably he
-had performed the other man’s duties, and how he had endeared himself to
-all his associates. Then he fled on horseback through the night with his
-heart in his mouth. There was no answer at first to his blows on the
-gate, and he had just wheeled his horse round to kick it in when Pir
-Khan appeared with a lantern and held his stirrup.
-
-“Has aught occurred?” said Holden.
-
-“The news does not come from my mouth, Protector of the Poor, but——” He
-held out his shaking hand as befitted the bearer of good news who is
-entitled to a reward.
-
-Holden hurried through the courtyard. A light burned in the upper room.
-His horse neighed in the gateway, and he heard a shrill little wail that
-sent all the blood into the apple of his throat. It was a new voice, but
-it did not prove that Ameera was alive.
-
-“Who is there?” he called up the narrow brick staircase.
-
-There was a cry of delight from Ameera, and then the voice of the
-mother, tremulous with old age and pride—“We be two women
-and—the—man—thy—son.”
-
-On the threshold of the room Holden stepped on a naked dagger, that was
-laid there to avert ill-luck, and it broke at the hilt under his
-impatient heel.
-
-“God is great!” cooed Ameera in the half-light. “Thou hast taken his
-misfortunes on thy head.”
-
-“Ay, but how is it with thee, life of my life? Old woman, how is it with
-her?”
-
-“She has forgotten her sufferings for joy that the child is born. There
-is no harm; but speak softly,” said the mother.
-
-“It only needed thy presence to make me all well,” said Ameera. “My
-king, thou hast been very long away. What gifts hast thou for me? Ah,
-ah! It is I that bring gifts this time. Look, my life, look. Was there
-ever such a babe? Nay, I am too weak even to clear my arm from him.”
-
-“Rest then, and do not talk. I am here, _bachari_ [little woman].”
-
-“Well said, for there is a bond and a heel-rope [_peecharee_] between us
-now that nothing can break. Look—canst thou see in this light? He is
-without spot or blemish. Never was such a man-child. _Ya illah!_ he
-shall be a pundit—no, a trooper of the Queen. And, my life, dost thou
-love me as well as ever, though I am faint and sick and worn? Answer
-truly.”
-
-“Yea. I love as I have loved, with all my soul. Lie still, pearl, and
-rest.”
-
-“Then do not go. Sit by my side here—so. Mother, the lord of this house
-needs a cushion. Bring it.” There was an almost imperceptible movement
-on the part of the new life that lay in the hollow of Ameera’s arm.
-“Aho!” she said, her voice breaking with love. “The babe is a champion
-from his birth. He is kicking me in the side with mighty kicks. Was
-there ever such a babe? And he is ours to us—thine and mine. Put thy
-hand on his head, but carefully, for he is very young, and men are
-unskilled in such matters.”
-
-Very cautiously Holden touched with the tips of his fingers the downy
-head.
-
-“He is of the faith,” said Ameera; “for lying here in the night-watches
-I whispered the call to prayer and the profession of faith into his
-ears. And it is most marvellous that he was born upon a Friday, as I was
-born. Be careful of him, my life; but he can almost grip with his
-hands.”
-
-Holden found one helpless little hand that closed feebly on his finger.
-And the clutch ran through his body till it settled about his heart.
-Till then his sole thought had been for Ameera. He began to realise that
-there was some one else in the world, but he could not feel that it was
-a veritable son with a soul. He sat down to think, and Ameera dozed
-lightly.
-
-“Get hence, Sahib,” said her mother under her breath. “It is not good
-that she should find you here on waking. She must be still.”
-
-“I go,” said Holden submissively. “Here be rupees. See that my _baba_
-gets fat and finds all that he needs.”
-
-The chink of the silver roused Ameera. “I am his mother, and no
-hireling,” she said weakly. “Shall I look to him more or less for the
-sake of money? Mother, give it back. I have born my lord a son.”
-
-The deep sleep of weakness came upon her almost before the sentence was
-completed. Holden went down to the courtyard very softly with his heart
-at ease. Pir Khan, the old watchman, was chuckling with delight. “This
-house is now complete,” he said, and without further comment thrust into
-Holden’s hands the hilt of a sabre worn many years ago when he, Pir
-Khan, served the Queen in the police. The bleat of a tethered goat came
-from the well-kerb.
-
-“There be two,” said Pir Khan, “two goats of the best. I bought them,
-and they cost much money; and since there is no birth-party assembled
-their flesh will be all mine. Strike craftily, Sahib! ’Tis an
-ill-balanced sabre at the best. Wait till they raise their heads from
-cropping the marigolds.”
-
-“And why?” said Holden, bewildered.
-
-“For the birth-sacrifice. What else? Otherwise the child being unguarded
-from fate may die. The Protector of the Poor knows the fitting words to
-be said.”
-
-Holden had learned them once with little thought that he would ever
-speak them in earnest. The touch of the cold sabre-hilt in his palm
-turned suddenly to the clinging grip of the child up-stairs—the child
-that was his own son—and a dread of loss filled him.
-
-“Strike!” said Pir Khan. “Never life came into the world but life was
-paid for it. See, the goats have raised their heads. Now! With a drawing
-cut!”
-
-Hardly knowing what he did Holden cut twice as he muttered the Mahomedan
-prayer that runs: “Almighty! In place of this my son I offer life for
-life, blood for blood, head for head, bone for bone, hair for hair, skin
-for skin.” The waiting horse snorted and bounded in his pickets at the
-smell of the raw blood that spurted over Holden’s riding-boots.
-
-“Well smitten!” said Pir Khan, wiping the sabre. “A swordsman was lost
-in thee. Go with a light heart, Heaven-born. I am thy servant, and the
-servant of thy son. May the Presence live a thousand years and ... the
-flesh of the goats is all mine?” Pir Khan drew back richer by a month’s
-pay. Holden swung himself into the saddle and rode off through the
-low-hanging wood-smoke of the evening. He was full of riotous
-exultation, alternating with a vast vague tenderness directed towards no
-particular object, that made him choke as he bent over the neck of his
-uneasy horse. “I never felt like this in my life,” he thought. “I’ll go
-to the club and pull myself together.”
-
-A game of pool was beginning, and the room was full of men. Holden
-entered, eager to get to the light and the company of his fellows,
-singing at the top of his voice—
-
- In Baltimore a-walking, a lady I did meet!
-
-“Did you?” said the club-secretary from his corner. “Did she happen to
-tell you that your boots were wringing wet? Great goodness, man, it’s
-blood!”
-
-“Bosh!” said Holden, picking his cue from the rack. “May I cut in? It’s
-dew. I’ve been riding through high crops. My faith! my boots are in a
-mess though!
-
- “And if it be a girl she shall wear a wedding-ring,
- And if it be a boy he shall fight for his king,
- With his dirk, and his cap, and his little jacket blue,
- He shall walk the quarter-deck—”
-
-“Yellow on blue—green next player,” said the marker monotonously.
-
-“‘He shall walk the quarter-deck,’—Am I green, marker? ‘He shall walk
-the quarter-deck,’—eh! that’s a bad shot,—‘As his daddy used to do!’”
-
-“I don’t see that you have anything to crow about,” said a zealous
-junior civilian acidly. “The Government is not exactly pleased with your
-work when you relieved Sanders.”
-
-“Does that mean a wigging from headquarters?” said Holden with an
-abstracted smile. “I think I can stand it.”
-
-The talk beat up round the ever-fresh subject of each man’s work, and
-steadied Holden till it was time to go to his dark empty bungalow, where
-his butler received him as one who knew all his affairs. Holden remained
-awake for the greater part of the night, and his dreams were pleasant
-ones.
-
-
- II
-
-“How old is he now?”
-
-“_Ya illah!_ What a man’s question! He is all but six weeks old; and on
-this night I go up to the housetop with thee, my life, to count the
-stars. For that is auspicious. And he was born on a Friday under the
-sign of the Sun, and it has been told to me that he will outlive us both
-and get wealth. Can we wish for aught better, beloved?”
-
-“There is nothing better. Let us go up to the roof, and thou shalt count
-the stars—but a few only, for the sky is heavy with cloud.”
-
-“The winter rains are late, and maybe they come out of season. Come,
-before all the stars are hid. I have put on my richest jewels.”
-
-“Thou hast forgotten the best of all.”
-
-“_Ai!_ Ours. He comes also. He has never yet seen the skies.”
-
-Ameera climbed the narrow staircase that led to the flat roof. The
-child, placid and unwinking, lay in the hollow of her right arm,
-gorgeous in silver-fringed muslin with a small skull-cap on his head.
-Ameera wore all that she valued most. The diamond nose-stud that takes
-the place of the Western patch in drawing attention to the curve of the
-nostril, the gold ornament in the centre of the forehead studded with
-tallow-drop emeralds and flawed rubies, the heavy circlet of beaten gold
-that was fastened round her neck by the softness of the pure metal, and
-the chinking curb-patterned silver anklets hanging low over the rosy
-ankle-bone. She was dressed in jade-green muslin as befitted a daughter
-of the Faith, and from shoulder to elbow and elbow to wrist ran
-bracelets of silver tied with floss silk, frail glass bangles slipped
-over the wrist in proof of the slenderness of the hand, and certain
-heavy gold bracelets that had no part in her country’s ornaments but,
-since they were Holden’s gift and fastened with a cunning European snap,
-delighted her immensely.
-
-They sat down by the low white parapet of the roof, overlooking the city
-and its lights.
-
-“They are happy down there,” said Ameera. “But I do not think that they
-are as happy as we. Nor do I think the white _mem-log_ are as happy. And
-thou?”
-
-“I know they are not.”
-
-“How dost thou know?”
-
-“They give their children over to the nurses.”
-
-“I have never seen that,” said Ameera with a sigh, “nor do I wish to
-see. _Ahi!_”—she dropped her head on Holden’s shoulder—“I have counted
-forty stars, and I am tired. Look at the child, love of my life, he is
-counting too.”
-
-The baby was staring with round eyes at the dark of the heavens. Ameera
-placed him in Holden’s arms, and he lay there without a cry.
-
-“What shall we call him among ourselves?” she said. “Look! Art thou ever
-tired of looking? He carries thy very eyes. But the mouth——”
-
-“Is thine, most dear. Who should know better than I?”
-
-“’Tis such a feeble mouth. Oh, so small! And yet it holds my heart
-between its lips. Give him to me now. He has been too long away.”
-
-“Nay, let him lie; he has not yet begun to cry.”
-
-“When he cries thou wilt give him back—eh? What a man of mankind thou
-art! If he cried he were only the dearer to me. But, my life, what
-little name shall we give him?”
-
-The small body lay close to Holden’s heart. It was utterly helpless and
-very soft. He scarcely dared to breathe for fear of crushing it. The
-caged green parrot that is regarded as a sort of guardian-spirit in most
-native households moved on its perch and fluttered a drowsy wing.
-
-“There is the answer,” said Holden. “Mian Mittu has spoken. He shall be
-the parrot. When he is ready he will talk mightily and run about. Mian
-Mittu is the parrot in thy—in the Mussulman tongue, is it not?”
-
-“Why put me so far off?” said Ameera fretfully. “Let it be like unto
-some English name—but not wholly. For he is mine.”
-
-“Then call him Tota, for that is likest English.”
-
-“Ay, Tota, and that is still the parrot. Forgive me, my lord, for a
-minute ago, but in truth he is too little to wear all the weight of Mian
-Mittu for name. He shall be Tota—our Tota to us. Hearest thou, O small
-one? Littlest, thou art Tota.” She touched the child’s cheek, and he
-waking wailed, and it was necessary to return him to his mother, who
-soothed him with the wonderful rhyme of _Aré koko, Jaré koko!_ which
-says:
-
- Oh crow! Go crow! Baby’s sleeping sound,
- And the wild plums grow in the jungle, only a penny a pound.
- Only a penny a pound, _baba_, only a penny a pound.
-
-Reassured many times as to the price of those plums, Tota cuddled
-himself down to sleep. The two sleek, white well-bullocks in the
-courtyard were steadily chewing the cud of their evening meal; old Pir
-Khan squatted at the head of Holden’s horse, his police sabre across his
-knees, pulling drowsily at a big water-pipe that croaked like a
-bull-frog in a pond. Ameera’s mother sat spinning in the lower verandah,
-and the wooden gate was shut and barred. The music of a
-marriage-procession came to the roof above the gentle hum of the city,
-and a string of flying-foxes crossed the face of the low moon.
-
-“I have prayed,” said Ameera after a long pause, “I have prayed for two
-things. First, that I may die in thy stead if thy death is demanded, and
-in the second that I may die in the place of the child. I have prayed to
-the Prophet and to Beebee Miriam [the Virgin Mary]. Thinkest thou either
-will hear?”
-
-“From thy lips who would not hear the lightest word?”
-
-“I asked for straight talk, and thou hast given me sweet talk. Will my
-prayers be heard?”
-
-“How can I say? God is very good.”
-
-“Of that I am not sure. Listen now. When I die, or the child dies, what
-is thy fate? Living, thou wilt return to the bold white _mem-log_, for
-kind calls to kind.”
-
-“Not always.”
-
-“With a woman, no; with a man it is otherwise. Thou wilt in this life,
-later on, go back to thine own folk. That I could almost endure, for I
-should be dead. But in thy very death thou wilt be taken away to a
-strange place and a paradise that I do not know.”
-
-“Will it be paradise?”
-
-“Surely, for who would harm thee? But we two—I and the child—shall be
-elsewhere, and we cannot come to thee, nor canst thou come to us. In the
-old days, before the child was born, I did not think of these things;
-but now I think of them always. It is very hard talk.”
-
-“It will fall as it will fall. To-morrow we do not know, but to-day and
-love we know well. Surely we are happy now.”
-
-“So happy that it were well to make our happiness assured. And thy
-Beebee Miriam should listen to me; for she is also a woman. But then she
-would envy me! It is not seemly for men to worship a woman.”
-
-Holden laughed aloud at Ameera’s little spasm of jealousy.
-
-“Is it not seemly? Why didst thou not turn me from worship of thee,
-then?”
-
-“Thou a worshipper! And of me? My king, for all thy sweet words, well I
-know that I am thy servant and thy slave, and the dust under thy feet.
-And I would not have it otherwise. See!”
-
-Before Holden could prevent her she stooped forward and touched his
-feet; recovering herself with a little laugh she hugged Tota closer to
-her bosom. Then, almost savagely——
-
-“Is it true that the bold white _mem-log_ live for three times the
-length of my life? Is it true that they make their marriages not before
-they are old women?”
-
-“They marry as do others—when they are women.”
-
-“That I know, but they wed when they are twenty-five. Is that true?”
-
-“That is true.”
-
-“_Ya illah!_ At twenty-five! Who would of his own will take a wife even
-of eighteen? She is a woman—aging every hour. Twenty-five! I shall be an
-old woman at that age, and——Those _mem-log_ remain young for ever. How I
-hate them!”
-
-“What have they to do with us?”
-
-“I cannot tell. I know only that there may now be alive on this earth a
-woman ten years older than I who may come to thee and take thy love ten
-years after I am an old woman, gray-headed, and the nurse of Tota’s son.
-That is unjust and evil. They should die too.”
-
-“Now, for all thy years thou art a child, and shalt be picked up and
-carried down the staircase.”
-
-“Tota! Have a care for Tota, my lord! Thou at least art as foolish as
-any babe!” Ameera tucked Tota out of harm’s way in the hollow of her
-neck, and was carried downstairs laughing in Holden’s arms, while Tota
-opened his eyes and smiled after the manner of the lesser angels.
-
-He was a silent infant, and, almost before Holden could realise that he
-was in the world, developed into a small gold-coloured little god and
-unquestioned despot of the house overlooking the city. Those were months
-of absolute happiness to Holden and Ameera—happiness withdrawn from the
-world, shut in behind the wooden gate that Pir Khan guarded. By day
-Holden did his work with an immense pity for such as were not so
-fortunate as himself, and a sympathy for small children that amazed and
-amused many mothers at the little station-gatherings. At nightfall he
-returned to Ameera,—Ameera, full of the wondrous doings of Tota; how he
-had been seen to clap his hands together and move his fingers with
-intention and purpose—which was manifestly a miracle—how later, he had
-of his own initiative crawled out of his low bedstead on to the floor
-and swayed on both feet for the space of three breaths.
-
-“And they were long breaths, for my heart stood still with delight,”
-said Ameera.
-
-Then Tota took the beasts into his councils—the well-bullocks, the
-little gray squirrels, the mongoose that lived in a hole near the well,
-and especially Mian Mittu, the parrot, whose tail he grievously pulled,
-and Mian Mittu screamed till Ameera and Holden arrived.
-
-“O villain! Child of strength! This to thy brother on the house-top!
-_Tobah, tobah!_ Fie! Fie! But I know a charm to make him wise as
-Suleiman and Aflatoun [Solomon and Plato]. Now look,” said Ameera. She
-drew from an embroidered bag a handful of almonds. “See! we count seven.
-In the name of God!”
-
-She placed Mian Mittu, very angry and rumpled, on the top of his cage,
-and seating herself between the babe and the bird she cracked and peeled
-an almond less white than her teeth. “This is a true charm, my life, and
-do not laugh. See! I give the parrot one half and Tota the other.” Mian
-Mittu with careful beak took his share from between Ameera’s lips, and
-she kissed the other half into the mouth of the child, who ate it slowly
-with wondering eyes. “This I will do each day of seven, and without
-doubt he who is ours will be a bold speaker and wise. Eh, Tota, what
-wilt thou be when thou art a man and I am gray-headed?” Tota tucked his
-fat legs into adorable creases. He could crawl, but he was not going to
-waste the spring of his youth in idle speech. He wanted Mian Mittu’s
-tail to tweak.
-
-When he was advanced to the dignity of a silver belt—which, with a magic
-square engraved on silver and hung round his neck, made up the greater
-part of his clothing—he staggered on a perilous journey down the garden
-to Pir Khan and proffered him all his jewels in exchange for one little
-ride on Holden’s horse, having seen his mother’s mother chaffering with
-pedlars in the verandah. Pir Khan wept and set the untried feet on his
-own gray head in sign of fealty, and brought the bold adventurer to his
-mother’s arms, vowing that Tota would be a leader of men ere his beard
-was grown.
-
-One hot evening, while he sat on the roof between his father and mother
-watching the never-ending warfare of the kites that the city boys flew,
-he demanded a kite of his own with Pir Khan to fly it, because he had a
-fear of dealing with anything larger than himself and when Holden called
-him a “spark,” he rose to his feet and answered slowly in defence of his
-new-found individuality, “_Hum ’park nahin hai. Hum admi hai_ [I am no
-spark, but a man].”
-
-The protest made Holden choke and devote himself very seriously to a
-consideration of Tota’s future. He need hardly have taken the trouble.
-The delight of that life was too perfect to endure. Therefore it was
-taken away as many things are taken away in India—suddenly and without
-warning. The little lord of the house, as Pir Khan called him, grew
-sorrowful and complained of pains who had never known the meaning of
-pain. Ameera, wild with terror, watched him through the night, and in
-the dawning of the second day the life was shaken out of him by
-fever—the seasonal autumn fever. It seemed altogether impossible that he
-could die, and neither Ameera nor Holden at first believed the evidence
-of the little body on the bedstead. Then Ameera beat her head against
-the wall and would have flung herself down the well in the garden had
-Holden not restrained her by main force.
-
-One mercy only was granted to Holden. He rode to his office in broad
-daylight and found waiting him an unusually heavy mail that demanded
-concentrated attention and hard work. He was not, however, alive to this
-kindness of the gods.
-
-
- III
-
-The first shock of a bullet is no more than a brisk pinch. The wrecked
-body does not send in its protest to the soul till ten or fifteen
-seconds later. Holden realised his pain slowly, exactly as he had
-realised his happiness, and with the same imperious necessity for hiding
-all trace of it. In the beginning he only felt that there had been a
-loss, and that Ameera needed comforting, where she sat with her head on
-her knees shivering as Mian Mittu from the house-top called _Tota! Tota!
-Tota!_ Later all his world and the daily life of it rose up to hurt him.
-It was an outrage that any one of the children at the band-stand in the
-evening should be alive and clamorous, when his own child lay dead. It
-was more than mere pain when one of them touched him, and stories told
-by over-fond fathers of their children’s latest performances cut him to
-the quick. He could not declare his pain. He had neither help, comfort,
-nor sympathy; and Ameera at the end of each weary day would lead him
-through the hell of self-questioning reproach which is reserved for
-those who have lost a child, and believe that with a little—just a
-little—more care it might have been saved.
-
-“Perhaps,” Ameera would say, “I did not take sufficient heed. Did I, or
-did I not? The sun on the roof that day when he played so long alone and
-I was—_ahi!_ braiding my hair—it may be that the sun then bred the
-fever. If I had warned him from the sun he might have lived. But, oh my
-life, say that I am guiltless! Thou knowest that I loved him as I love
-thee. Say that there is no blame on me, or I shall die—I shall die!”
-
-“There is no blame,—before God, none. It was written and how could we do
-aught to save? What has been, has been. Let it go, beloved.”
-
-“He was all my heart to me. How can I let the thought go when my arm
-tells me every night that he is not here? _Ahi! Ahi!_ O Tota, come back
-to me—come back again, and let us be all together as it was before!”
-
-“Peace, peace! For thine own sake, and for mine also, if thou lovest
-me—rest.”
-
-“By this I know thou dost not care; and how shouldst thou? The white men
-have hearts of stone and souls of iron. Oh, that I had married a man of
-mine own people—though he beat me—and had never eaten the bread of an
-alien!”
-
-“Am I an alien—mother of my son?”
-
-“What else—Sahib?... Oh, forgive me—forgive! The death has driven me
-mad. Thou art the life of my heart, and the light of my eyes, and the
-breath of my life, and—and I have put thee from me, though it was but
-for a moment. If thou goest away to whom shall I look for help? Do not
-be angry. Indeed, it was the pain that spoke and not thy slave.”
-
-“I know, I know. We be two who were three. The greater need therefore
-that we should be one.”
-
-They were sitting on the roof as of custom. The night was a warm one in
-early spring, and sheet-lightning was dancing on the horizon to a broken
-tune played by far-off thunder. Ameera settled herself in Holden’s arms.
-
-“The dry earth is lowing like a cow for the rain, and I—I am afraid. It
-was not like this when we counted the stars. But thou lovest me as much
-as before, though a bond is taken away? Answer!”
-
-“I love more because a new bond has come out of the sorrow that we have
-eaten together, and that thou knowest.”
-
-“Yea, I knew,” said Ameera in a very small whisper. “But it is good to
-hear thee say so, my life, who art so strong to help. I will be a child
-no more, but a woman and an aid to thee. Listen! Give me my _sitar_ and
-I will sing bravely.”
-
-She took the light silver-studded _sitar_ and began a song of the great
-hero Rajah Rasalu. The hand failed on the strings, the tune halted,
-checked, and at a low note turned off to the poor little nursery-rhyme
-about the wicked crow—
-
- And the wild plums grow in the jungle, only a penny a pound.
- Only a penny a pound, _baba_—only....
-
-Then came the tears, and the piteous rebellion against fate till she
-slept, moaning a little in her sleep, with the right arm thrown clear of
-the body as though it protected something that was not there. It was
-after this night that life became a little easier for Holden. The
-ever-present pain of loss drove him into his work, and the work repaid
-him by filling up his mind for nine or ten hours a day. Ameera sat alone
-in the house and brooded, but grew happier when she understood that
-Holden was more at ease, according to the custom of women. They touched
-happiness again, but this time with caution.
-
-“It was because we loved Tota that he died. The jealousy of God was upon
-us,” said Ameera. “I have hung up a large black jar before our window to
-turn the evil eye from us, and we must make no protestations of delight,
-but go softly underneath the stars, lest God find us out. Is that not
-good talk, worthless one?”
-
-She had shifted the accent on the word that means “beloved,” in proof of
-the sincerity of her purpose. But the kiss that followed the new
-christening was a thing that any deity might have envied. They went
-about henceforward saying, “It is naught, it is naught;” and hoping that
-all the Powers heard.
-
-The Powers were busy on other things. They had allowed thirty million
-people four years of plenty wherein men fed well and the crops were
-certain, and the birth-rate rose year by year; the districts reported a
-purely agricultural population varying from nine hundred to two thousand
-to the square mile of the overburdened earth; and the Member for Lower
-Tooting, wandering about India in pot-hat and frock-coat, talked largely
-of the benefits of British rule and suggested as the one thing needful
-the establishment of a duly qualified electoral system and a general
-bestowal of the franchise. His long-suffering hosts smiled and made him
-welcome, and when he paused to admire, with pretty picked words, the
-blossom of the blood-red _dhak_-tree that had flowered untimely for a
-sign of what was coming, they smiled more than ever.
-
-It was the Deputy Commissioner of Kot-Kumharsen, staying at the club for
-a day, who lightly told a tale that made Holden’s blood run cold as he
-overheard the end.
-
-“He won’t bother any one any more. Never saw a man so astonished in my
-life. By Jove, I thought he meant to ask a question in the House about
-it. Fellow-passenger in his ship—dined next him—bowled over by cholera
-and died in eighteen hours. You needn’t laugh, you fellows. The Member
-for Lower Tooting is awfully angry about it; but he’s more scared. I
-think he’s going to take his enlightened self out of India.”
-
-“I’d give a good deal if he were knocked over. It might keep a few
-vestrymen of his kidney to their own parish. But what’s this about
-cholera? It’s full early for anything of that kind,” said the warden of
-an unprofitable salt-lick.
-
-“Don’t know,” said the Deputy Commissioner reflectively. “We’ve got
-locusts with us. There’s sporadic cholera all along the north—at least
-we’re calling it sporadic for decency’s sake. The spring crops are short
-in five districts, and nobody seems to know where the rains are. It’s
-nearly March now. I don’t want to scare anybody, but it seems to me that
-Nature’s going to audit her accounts with a big red pencil this summer.”
-
-“Just when I wanted to take leave, too!” said a voice across the room.
-
-“There won’t be much leave this year, but there ought to be a great deal
-of promotion. I’ve come in to persuade the Government to put my pet
-canal on the list of famine-relief works. It’s an ill wind that blows no
-good. I shall get that canal finished at last.”
-
-“Is it the old programme then,” said Holden; “famine, fever, and
-cholera?”
-
-“Oh, no. Only local scarcity and an unusual prevalence of seasonal
-sickness. You’ll find it all in the reports if you live till next year.
-You’re a lucky chap. _You_ haven’t got a wife to send out of harm’s way.
-The hill-stations ought to be full of women this year.”
-
-“I think you’re inclined to exaggerate the talk in the _bazars_,” said a
-young civilian in the Secretariat. “Now I have observed——”
-
-“I daresay you have,” said the Deputy Commissioner, “but you’ve a great
-deal more to observe, my son. In the meantime, I wish to observe to
-you——” and he drew him aside to discuss the construction of the canal
-that was so dear to his heart. Holden went to his bungalow and began to
-understand that he was not alone in the world, and also that he was
-afraid for the sake of another—which is the most soul-satisfying fear
-known to man.
-
-Two months later, as the Deputy had foretold, Nature began to audit her
-accounts with a red pencil. On the heels of the spring-reapings came a
-cry for bread, and the Government, which had decreed that no man should
-die of want, sent wheat. Then came the cholera from all four quarters of
-the compass. It struck a pilgrim-gathering of half a million at a sacred
-shrine. Many died at the feet of their god; the others broke and ran
-over the face of the land, carrying the pestilence with them. It smote a
-walled city and killed two hundred a day. The people crowded the trains,
-hanging on to the footboards and squatting on the roofs of the
-carriages, and the cholera followed them, for at each station they
-dragged out the dead and the dying. They died by the roadside, and the
-horses of the Englishmen shied at the corpses in the grass. The rains
-did not come, and the earth turned to iron lest man should escape death
-by hiding in her. The English sent their wives away to the hills and
-went about their work, coming forward as they were bidden to fill the
-gaps in the fighting-line. Holden, sick with fear of losing his chiefest
-treasure on earth, had done his best to persuade Ameera to go away with
-her mother to the Himalayas.
-
-“Why should I go?” said she one evening on the roof.
-
-“There is sickness, and people are dying, and all the white _mem-log_
-have gone.”
-
-“All of them?”
-
-“All—unless perhaps there remain some old scald-head who vexes her
-husband’s heart by running risk of death.”
-
-“Nay; who stays is my sister, and thou must not abuse her, for I will be
-a scald-head too. I am glad all the bold _mem-log_ are gone.”
-
-“Do I speak to a woman or a babe? Go to the hills and I will see to it
-that thou goest like a queen’s daughter. Think, child. In a
-red-lacquered bullock-cart, veiled and curtained, with brass peacocks
-upon the pole and red cloth hangings. I will send two orderlies for
-guard, and——”
-
-“Peace! Thou art the babe in speaking thus. What use are those toys to
-me? _He_ would have patted the bullocks and played with the housings.
-For his sake, perhaps,—thou hast made me very English—I might have gone.
-Now, I will not. Let the _mem-log_ run.”
-
-“Their husbands are sending them, beloved.”
-
-“Very good talk. Since when hast thou been my husband to tell me what to
-do? I have but borne thee a son. Thou art only all the desire of my soul
-to me. How shall I depart when I know that if evil befall thee by the
-breadth of so much as my littlest finger-nail—is that not small?—I
-should be aware of it though I were in paradise. And here, this summer
-thou mayest die—_ai, janee_, die!—and in dying they might call to tend
-thee a white woman, and she would rob me in the last of thy love!”
-
-“But love is not born in a moment or on a death-bed!”
-
-“What dost thou know of love, stoneheart? She would take thy thanks at
-least, and, by God and the Prophet and Beebee Miriam the mother of thy
-Prophet, that I will never endure. My lord and my love, let there be no
-more foolish talk of going away. Where thou art, I am. It is enough.”
-She put an arm round his neck and a hand on his mouth.
-
-There are not many happinesses so complete as those that are snatched
-under the shadow of the sword. They sat together and laughed, calling
-each other openly by every pet name that could move the wrath of the
-gods. The city below them was locked up in its own torments. Sulphur
-fires blazed in the streets; the conches in the Hindu temples screamed
-and bellowed, for the gods were inattentive in those days. There was a
-service in the great Mahomedan shrine, and the call to prayer from the
-minarets was almost unceasing. They heard the wailing in the houses of
-the dead, and once the shriek of a mother who had lost a child and was
-calling for its return. In the gray dawn they saw the dead borne out
-through the city gates, each litter with its own little knot of
-mourners. Wherefore they kissed each other and shivered.
-
-It was a red and heavy audit, for the land was very sick and needed a
-little breathing-space ere the torrent of cheap life should flood it
-anew. The children of immature fathers and undeveloped mothers made no
-resistance. They were cowed and sat still, waiting till the sword should
-be sheathed in November if it were so willed. There were gaps among the
-English, but the gaps were filled. The work of superintending
-famine-relief, cholera-sheds, medicine-distribution, and what little
-sanitation was possible, went forward because it was so ordered.
-
-Holden had been told to keep himself in readiness to move to replace the
-next man who should fall. There were twelve hours in each day when he
-could not see Ameera, and she might die in three. He was considering
-what his pain would be if he could not see her for three months, or if
-she died out of his sight. He was absolutely certain that her death
-would be demanded—so certain that when he looked up from the telegram
-and saw Pir Khan breathless in the doorway, he laughed aloud. “And?”
-said he,——
-
-“When there is a cry in the night and the spirit flutters into the
-throat, who has a charm that will restore? Come swiftly, Heaven-born! It
-is the black cholera.”
-
-Holden galloped to his home. The sky was heavy with clouds, for the
-long-deferred rains were near and the heat was stifling. Ameera’s mother
-met him in the courtyard, whimpering, “She is dying. She is nursing
-herself into death. She is all but dead. What shall I do, Sahib?”
-
-Ameera was lying in the room in which Tota had been born. She made no
-sign when Holden entered, because the human soul is a very lonely thing,
-and, when it is getting ready to go away, hides itself in a misty
-borderland where the living may not follow. The black cholera does its
-work quietly and without explanation. Ameera was being thrust out of
-life as though the Angel of Death had himself put his hand upon her. The
-quick breathing seemed to show that she was either afraid or in pain,
-but neither eyes nor mouth gave any answer to Holden’s kisses. There was
-nothing to be said or done. Holden could only wait and suffer. The first
-drops of the rain began to fall on the roof, and he could hear shouts of
-joy in the parched city.
-
-The soul came back a little and the lips moved. Holden bent down to
-listen. “Keep nothing of mine,” said Ameera. “Take no hair from my head.
-_She_ would make thee burn it later on. That flame I should feel. Lower!
-Stoop lower! Remember only that I was thine and bore thee a son. Though
-thou wed a white woman to-morrow, the pleasure of receiving in thy arms
-thy first son is taken from thee for ever. Remember me when thy son is
-born—the one that shall carry thy name before all men. His misfortunes
-be on my head. I bear witness—I bear witness”—the lips were forming the
-words on his ear—“that there is no God but—thee, beloved!”
-
-Then she died. Holden sat still, and all thought was taken from
-him,—till he heard Ameera’s mother lift the curtain.
-
-“Is she dead, Sahib?”
-
-“She is dead.”
-
-“Then I will mourn, and afterwards take an inventory of the furniture in
-this house. For that will be mine. The Sahib does not mean to resume it?
-It is so little, so very little, Sahib, and I am an old woman. I would
-like to lie softly.”
-
-“For the mercy of God be silent a while. Go out and mourn where I cannot
-hear.”
-
-“Sahib, she will be buried in four hours.”
-
-“I know the custom. I shall go ere she is taken away. That matter is in
-thy hands. Look to it, that the bed on which—on which she lies——”
-
-“Aha! That beautiful red-lacquered bed. I have long desired——”
-
-“That the bed is left here untouched for my disposal. All else in the
-house is thine. Hire a cart, take everything, go hence, and before
-sunrise let there be nothing in this house but that which I have ordered
-thee to respect.”
-
-“I am an old woman. I would stay at least for the days of mourning, and
-the rains have just broken. Whither shall I go?”
-
-“What is that to me? My order is that there is a going. The house gear
-is worth a thousand rupees, and my orderly shall bring thee a hundred
-rupees to-night.”
-
-“That is very little. Think of the cart-hire.”
-
-“It shall be nothing unless thou goest, and with speed. O woman, get
-hence and leave me with my dead!”
-
-The mother shuffled down the staircase, and in her anxiety to take stock
-of the house-fittings forgot to mourn. Holden stayed by Ameera’s side
-and the rain roared on the roof. He could not think connectedly by
-reason of the noise, though he made many attempts to do so. Then four
-sheeted ghosts glided dripping into the room and stared at him through
-their veils. They were the washers of the dead. Holden left the room and
-went out to his horse. He had come in a dead, stifling calm through
-ankle-deep dust. He found the courtyard a rain-lashed pond alive with
-frogs; a torrent of yellow water ran under the gate, and a roaring wind
-drove the bolts of the rain like buckshot against the mud walls. Pir
-Khan was shivering in his little hut by the gate, and the horse was
-stamping uneasily in the water.
-
-“I have been told the Sahib’s order,” said Pir Khan. “It is well. This
-house is now desolate. I go also, for my monkey-face would be a reminder
-of that which has been. Concerning the bed, I will bring that to thy
-house yonder in the morning; but remember, Sahib, it will be to thee a
-knife turning in a green wound. I go upon a pilgrimage, and I will take
-no money. I have grown fat in the protection of the Presence whose
-sorrow is my sorrow. For the last time I hold his stirrup.”
-
-He touched Holden’s foot with both hands and the horse sprang out into
-the road, where the creaking bamboos were whipping the sky, and all the
-frogs were chuckling. Holden could not see for the rain in his face. He
-put his hands before his eyes and muttered—
-
-“Oh, you brute! You utter brute!”
-
-The news of his trouble was already in his bungalow. He read the
-knowledge in his butler’s eyes when Ahmed Khan brought in food, and for
-the first and last time in his life laid a hand upon his master’s
-shoulder, saying, “Eat, Sahib, eat. Meat is good against sorrow. I also
-have known. Moreover, the shadows come and go, Sahib; the shadows come
-and go. These be curried eggs.”
-
-Holden could neither eat nor sleep. The heavens sent down eight inches
-of rain in that night and washed the earth clean. The waters tore down
-walls, broke roads, and scoured open the shallow graves on the Mahomedan
-burying-ground. All next day it rained, and Holden sat still in his
-house considering his sorrow. On the morning of the third day he
-received a telegram which said only, “Ricketts, Myndonie. Dying. Holden
-relieve. Immediate.” Then he thought that before he departed he would
-look at the house wherein he had been master and lord. There was a break
-in the weather, and the rank earth steamed with vapour.
-
-He found that the rains had torn down the mud pillars of the gateway,
-and the heavy wooden gate that had guarded his life hung lazily from one
-hinge. There was grass three inches high in the courtyard; Pir Khan’s
-lodge was empty, and the sodden thatch sagged between the beams. A gray
-squirrel was in possession of the verandah, as if the house had been
-untenanted for thirty years instead of three days. Ameera’s mother had
-removed everything except some mildewed matting. The _tick-tick_ of the
-little scorpions as they hurried across the floor was the only sound in
-the house. Ameera’s room and the other one where Tota had lived were
-heavy with mildew; and the narrow staircase leading to the roof was
-streaked and stained with rain-borne mud. Holden saw all these things,
-and came out again to meet in the road Durga Dass, his landlord,—portly,
-affable, clothed in white muslin, and driving a Cee-spring buggy. He was
-overlooking his property to see how the roofs stood the stress of the
-first rains.
-
-“I have heard,” said he, “you will not take this place any more, Sahib?”
-
-“What are you going to do with it?”
-
-“Perhaps I shall let it again.”
-
-“Then I will keep it on while I am away.”
-
-Durga Dass was silent for some time. “You shall not take it on, Sahib,”
-he said. “When I was a young man I also——, but to-day I am a member of
-the Municipality. Ho! Ho! No. When the birds have gone what need to keep
-the nest? I will have it pulled down—the timber will sell for something
-always. It shall be pulled down, and the Municipality shall make a road
-across, as they desire, from the burning-ghaut to the city wall, so that
-no man may say where this house stood.”
-
-
-
-
- NABOTH
-
- Copyright, 1891, by Macmillan & Co.
-
-
-This was how it happened; and the truth is also an allegory of Empire.
-
-I met him at the corner of my garden, an empty basket on his head, and
-an unclean cloth round his loins. That was all the property to which
-Naboth had the shadow of a claim when I first saw him. He opened our
-acquaintance by begging. He was very thin and showed nearly as many ribs
-as his basket; and he told me a long story about fever and a lawsuit,
-and an iron cauldron that had been seized by the court in execution of a
-decree. I put my hand into my pocket to help Naboth, as kings of the
-East have helped alien adventurers to the loss of their kingdoms. A
-rupee had hidden in my waistcoat lining. I never knew it was there, and
-gave the trove to Naboth as a direct gift from Heaven. He replied that I
-was the only legitimate Protector of the Poor he had ever known.
-
-Next morning he reappeared, a little fatter in the round, and curled
-himself into knots in the front verandah. He said I was his father and
-his mother, and the direct descendant of all the gods in his Pantheon,
-besides controlling the destinies of the universe. He himself was but a
-sweetmeat-seller, and much less important than the dirt under my feet. I
-had heard this sort of thing before, so I asked him what he wanted. My
-rupee, quoth Naboth, had raised him to the everlasting heavens, and he
-wished to prefer a request. He wished to establish a sweetmeat-pitch
-near the house of his benefactor, to gaze on my revered countenance as I
-went to and fro illumining the world. I was graciously pleased to give
-permission, and he went away with his head between his knees.
-
-Now at the far end of my garden the ground slopes toward the public
-road, and the slope is crowned with a thick shrubbery. There is a short
-carriage-road from the house to the Mall, which passes close to the
-shrubbery. Next afternoon I saw that Naboth had seated himself at the
-bottom of the slope, down in the dust of the public road, and in the
-full glare of the sun, with a starved basket of greasy sweets in front
-of him. He had gone into trade once more on the strength of my
-munificent donation, and the ground was as Paradise by my honoured
-favour. Remember, there was only Naboth, his basket, the sunshine, and
-the gray dust when the sap of my Empire first began.
-
-Next day he had moved himself up the slope nearer to my shrubbery, and
-waved a palm-leaf fan to keep the flies off the sweets. So I judged that
-he must have done a fair trade.
-
-Four days later I noticed that he had backed himself and his basket
-under the shadow of the shrubbery, and had tied an Isabella-coloured rag
-between two branches in order to make more shade. There were plenty of
-sweets in his basket. I thought that trade must certainly be looking up.
-
-Seven weeks later the Government took up a plot of ground for a Chief
-Court close to the end of my compound, and employed nearly four hundred
-coolies on the foundations. Naboth bought a blue and white striped
-blanket, a brass lamp-stand, and a small boy to cope with the rush of
-trade, which was tremendous.
-
-Five days later he bought a huge, fat, red-backed account-book and a
-glass inkstand. Thus I saw that the coolies had been getting into his
-debt, and that commerce was increasing on legitimate lines of credit.
-Also I saw that the one basket had grown into three, and that Naboth had
-backed and hacked into the shrubbery, and made himself a nice little
-clearing for the proper display of the basket, the blanket, the books,
-and the boy.
-
-One week and five days later he had built a mud fireplace in the
-clearing, and the fat account-book was overflowing. He said that God
-created few Englishmen of my kind, and that I was the incarnation of all
-human virtues. He offered me some of his sweets as tribute, and by
-accepting these I acknowledged him as my feudatory under the skirt of my
-protection.
-
-Three weeks later I noticed that the boy was in the habit of cooking
-Naboth’s mid-day meal for him, and Naboth was beginning to grow a
-stomach. He had hacked away more of my shrubbery, and owned another and
-a fatter account-book.
-
-Eleven weeks later Naboth had eaten his way nearly through that
-shrubbery, and there was a reed hut with a bedstead outside it, standing
-in the little glade that he had eroded. Two dogs and a baby slept on the
-bedstead. So I fancied Naboth had taken a wife. He said that he had, by
-my favour, done this thing, and that I was several times finer than
-Krishna.
-
-Six weeks and two days later a mud wall had grown up at the back of the
-hut. There were fowls in front and it smelt a little. The Municipal
-Secretary said that a cess-pool was forming in the public road from the
-drainage of my compound, and that I must take steps to clear it away. I
-spoke to Naboth. He said I was Lord Paramount of his earthly concerns,
-and the garden was all my own property, and sent me some more sweets in
-a second-hand duster.
-
-Two months later a coolie bricklayer was killed in a scuffle that took
-place opposite Naboth’s Vineyard. The Inspector of Police said it was a
-serious case; went into my servants’ quarters; insulted my butler’s
-wife, and wanted to arrest my butler. The curious thing about the murder
-was that most of the coolies were drunk at the time. Naboth pointed out
-that my name was a strong shield between him and his enemies, and he
-expected that another baby would be born to him shortly.
-
-Four months later the hut was _all_ mud walls, very solidly built, and
-Naboth had used most of my shrubbery for his five goats. A silver watch
-and an aluminium chain shone upon his very round stomach. My servants
-were alarmingly drunk several times, and used to waste the day with
-Naboth when they got the chance. I spoke to Naboth. He said, by my
-favour and the glory of my countenance, he would make all his women-folk
-ladies, and that if any one hinted that he was running an illicit still
-under the shadow of the tamarisks, why, I, his Suzerain, was to
-prosecute.
-
-A week later he hired a man to make several dozen square yards of
-trellis-work to put round the back of his hut, that his women-folk might
-be screened from the public gaze. The man went away in the evening, and
-left his day’s work to pave the short cut from the public road to my
-house. I was driving home in the dusk, and turned the corner by Naboth’s
-Vineyard quickly. The next thing I knew was that the horses of the
-phaeton were stamping and plunging in the strongest sort of bamboo
-net-work. Both beasts came down. One rose with nothing more than chipped
-knees. The other was so badly kicked that I was forced to shoot him.
-
-Naboth is gone now, and his hut is ploughed into its native mud with
-sweetmeats instead of salt for a sign that the place is accursed. I have
-built a summer-house to overlook the end of the garden, and it is as a
-fort on my frontier whence I guard my Empire.
-
-I know exactly how Ahab felt. He has been shamefully misrepresented in
-the Scriptures.
-
-
-
-
- THE SENDING OF DANA DA
-
- When the Devil rides on your chest remember the _chamar_.
- —_Native Proverb._
-
-
-Once upon a time, some people in India made a new Heaven and a new Earth
-out of broken tea-cups, a missing brooch or two, and a hair-brush. These
-were hidden under bushes, or stuffed into holes in the hillside, and an
-entire Civil Service of subordinate Gods used to find or mend them
-again; and every one said: “There are more things in Heaven and Earth
-than are dreamt of in our philosophy.” Several other things happened
-also, but the Religion never seemed to get much beyond its first
-manifestations; though it added an air-line postal service, and
-orchestral effects in order to keep abreast of the times and choke off
-competition.
-
-This Religion was too elastic for ordinary use. It stretched itself and
-embraced pieces of everything that the medicine-men of all ages have
-manufactured. It approved of and stole from Freemasonry; looted the
-Latter-day Rosicrucians of half their pet words; took any fragments of
-Egyptian philosophy that it found in the “Encyclopædia Britannica”;
-annexed as many of the Vedas as had been translated into French or
-English, and talked of all the rest; built in the German versions of
-what is left of the Zend Avesta; encouraged White, Gray and Black Magic,
-including spiritualism, palmistry, fortune-telling by cards, hot
-chestnuts, double-kernelled nuts and tallow-droppings; would have
-adopted Voodoo and Oboe had it known anything about them, and showed
-itself, in every way, one of the most accommodating arrangements that
-had ever been invented since the birth of the Sea.
-
-When it was in thorough working order, with all the machinery, down to
-the subscriptions, complete, Dana Da came from nowhere, with nothing in
-his hands, and wrote a chapter in its history which has hitherto been
-unpublished. He said that his first name was Dana, and his second was
-Da. Now, setting aside Dana of the New York “Sun,” Dana is a Bhil name,
-and Da fits no native of India unless you accept the Bengali Dé as the
-original spelling. Da is Lap or Finnish; and Dana Da was neither Finn,
-Chin, Bhil, Bengali, Lap, Nair, Gond, Romaney, Magh, Bokhariot, Kurd,
-Armenian, Levantine, Jew, Persian, Punjabi, Madrasi, Parsee, nor
-anything else known to ethnologists. He was simply Dana Da, and declined
-to give further information. For the sake of brevity and as roughly
-indicating his origin, he was called “The Native.” He might have been
-the original Old Man of the Mountains, who is said to be the only
-authorized head of the Tea-cup Creed. Some people said that he was; but
-Dana Da used to smile and deny any connection with the cult; explaining
-that he was an “Independent Experimenter.”
-
-As I have said, he came from nowhere, with his hands behind his back,
-and studied the Creed for three weeks; sitting at the feet of those best
-competent to explain its mysteries. Then he laughed aloud and went away,
-but the laugh might have been either of devotion or derision.
-
-When he returned he was without money, but his pride was unabated. He
-declared that he knew more about the Things in Heaven and Earth than
-those who taught him, and for this contumacy was abandoned altogether.
-
-His next appearance in public life was at a big cantonment in Upper
-India, and he was then telling fortunes with the help of three leaden
-dice, a very dirty old cloth, and a little tin box of opium pills. He
-told better fortunes when he was allowed half a bottle of whiskey; but
-the things which he invented on the opium were quite worth the money. He
-was in reduced circumstances. Among other people’s he told the fortune
-of an Englishman who had once been interested in the Simla Creed, but
-who, later on, had married and forgotten all his old knowledge in the
-study of babies and things. The Englishman allowed Dana Da to tell a
-fortune for charity’s sake, and gave him five rupees, a dinner, and some
-old clothes. When he had eaten, Dana Da professed gratitude, and asked
-if there were anything he could do for his host—in the esoteric line.
-
-“Is there any one that you love?” said Dana Da. The Englishman loved his
-wife, but had no desire to drag her name into the conversation. He
-therefore shook his head.
-
-“Is there any one that you hate?” said Dana Da. The Englishman said that
-there were several men whom he hated deeply.
-
-“Very good,” said Dana Da, upon whom the whiskey and the opium were
-beginning to tell. “Only give me their names, and I will despatch a
-Sending to them and kill them.”
-
-Now a Sending is a horrible arrangement, first invented, they say, in
-Iceland. It is a Thing sent by a wizard, and may take any form, but,
-most generally, wanders about the land in the shape of a little purple
-cloud till it finds the Sendee, and him it kills by changing into the
-form of a horse, or a cat, or a man without a face. It is not strictly a
-native patent, though _chamars_ of the skin and hide castes can, if
-irritated, despatch a Sending which sits on the breast of their enemy by
-night and nearly kills him. Very few natives care to irritate _chamars_
-for this reason.
-
-“Let me despatch a Sending,” said Dana Da; “I am nearly dead now with
-want, and drink, and opium; but I should like to kill a man before I
-die. I can send a Sending anywhere you choose, and in any form except in
-the shape of a man.”
-
-The Englishman had no friends that he wished to kill, but partly to
-soothe Dana Da, whose eyes were rolling, and partly to see what would be
-done, he asked whether a modified Sending could not be arranged for—such
-a Sending as should make a man’s life a burden to him, and yet do him no
-harm. If this were possible, he notified his willingness to give Dana Da
-ten rupees for the job.
-
-“I am not what I was once,” said Dana Da, “and I must take the money
-because I am poor. To what Englishman shall I send it?”
-
-“Send a Sending to Lone Sahib,” said the Englishman, naming a man who
-had been most bitter in rebuking him for his apostasy from the Tea-cup
-Creed. Dana Da laughed and nodded.
-
-“I could have chosen no better man myself,” said he. “I will see that he
-finds the Sending about his path and about his bed.”
-
-He lay down on the hearth-rug, turned up the whites of his eyes,
-shivered all over and began to snort. This was Magic, or Opium, or the
-Sending, or all three. When he opened his eyes he vowed that the Sending
-had started upon the war-path, and was at that moment flying up to the
-town where Lone Sahib lives.
-
-“Give me my ten rupees,” said Dana Da wearily, “and write a letter to
-Lone Sahib, telling him, and all who believe with him, that you and a
-friend are using a power greater than theirs. They will see that you are
-speaking the truth.”
-
-He departed unsteadily, with the promise of some more rupees if anything
-came of the Sending.
-
-The Englishman sent a letter to Lone Sahib, couched in what he
-remembered of the terminology of the Creed. He wrote: “I also, in the
-days of what you held to be my backsliding, have obtained Enlightenment,
-and with Enlightenment has come Power.” Then he grew so deeply
-mysterious that the recipient of the letter could make neither head nor
-tail of it, and was proportionately impressed; for he fancied that his
-friend had become a “fifth-rounder.” When a man is a “fifth-rounder” he
-can do more than Slade and Houdin combined.
-
-Lone Sahib read the letter in five different fashions, and was beginning
-a sixth interpretation when his bearer dashed in with the news that
-there was a cat on the bed. Now if there was one thing that Lone Sahib
-hated more than another, it was a cat. He scolded the bearer for not
-turning it out of the house. The bearer said that he was afraid. All the
-doors of the bedroom had been shut throughout the morning, and no _real_
-cat could possibly have entered the room. He would prefer not to meddle
-with the creature.
-
-Lone Sahib entered the room gingerly, and there, on the pillow of his
-bed, sprawled and whimpered a wee white kitten; not a jumpsome, frisky
-little beast, but a slug-like crawler with its eyes barely opened and
-its paws lacking strength or direction,—a kitten that ought to have been
-in a basket with its mamma. Lone Sahib caught it by the scruff of its
-neck, handed it over to the sweeper to be drowned, and fined the bearer
-four annas.
-
-That evening, as he was reading in his room, he fancied that he saw
-something moving about on the hearth-rug, outside the circle of light
-from his reading-lamp. When the thing began to myowl, he realised that
-it was a kitten—a wee white kitten, nearly blind and very miserable. He
-was seriously angry, and spoke bitterly to his bearer, who said that
-there was no kitten in the room when he brought in the lamp, and _real_
-kittens of tender age generally had mother-cats in attendance.
-
-“If the Presence will go out into the verandah and listen,” said the
-bearer, “he will hear no cats. How, therefore, can the kitten on the bed
-and the kitten on the hearth-rug be real kittens?”
-
-Lone Sahib went out to listen, and the bearer followed him, but there
-was no sound of any one mewing for her children. He returned to his
-room, having hurled the kitten down the hillside, and wrote out the
-incidents of the day for the benefit of his co-religionists. Those
-people were so absolutely free from superstition that they ascribed
-anything a little out of the common to Agencies. As it was their
-business to know all about the Agencies, they were on terms of almost
-indecent familiarity with Manifestations of every kind. Their letters
-dropped from the ceiling—un-stamped—and Spirits used to squatter up and
-down their staircases all night; but they had never come into contact
-with kittens. Lone Sahib wrote out the facts, noting the hour and the
-minute, as every Psychical Observer is bound to do, and appending the
-Englishman’s letter because it was the most mysterious document and
-might have had a bearing upon anything in this world or the next. An
-outsider would have translated all the tangle thus: “Look out! You
-laughed at me once, and now I am going to make you sit up.”
-
-Lone Sahib’s co-religionists found that meaning in it; but their
-translation was refined and full of four-syllable words. They held a
-sederunt, and were filled with tremulous joy, for, in spite of their
-familiarity with all the other worlds and cycles, they had a very human
-awe of things sent from Ghost-land. They met in Lone Sahib’s room in
-shrouded and sepulchral gloom, and their conclave was broken up by a
-clinking among the photo-frames on the mantelpiece. A wee white kitten,
-nearly blind, was looping and writhing itself between the clock and the
-candlesticks. That stopped all investigations or doubtings. Here was the
-Manifestation in the flesh. It was, so far as could be seen, devoid of
-purpose, but it was a Manifestation of undoubted authenticity.
-
-They drafted a Round Robin to the Englishman, the backslider of old
-days, adjuring him in the interests of the Creed to explain whether
-there was any connection between the embodiment of some Egyptian God or
-other (I have forgotten the name) and his communication. They called the
-kitten Ra, or Toth, or Tum, or something; and when Lone Sahib confessed
-that the first one had, at his most misguided instance, been drowned by
-the sweeper, they said consolingly that in his next life he would be a
-“bounder,” and not even a “rounder” of the lowest grade. These words may
-not be quite correct, but they accurately express the sense of the
-house.
-
-When the Englishman received the Round Robin—it came by post—he was
-startled and bewildered. He sent into the bazar for Dana Da, who read
-the letter and laughed. “That is my Sending,” said he. “I told you I
-would work well. Now give me another ten rupees.”
-
-“But what in the world is this gibberish about Egyptian Gods?” asked the
-Englishman.
-
-“Cats,” said Dana Da with a hiccough, for he had discovered the
-Englishman’s whiskey-bottle. “Cats, and cats, and cats! Never was such a
-Sending. A hundred of cats. Now give me ten more rupees and write as I
-dictate.”
-
-Dana Da’s letter was a curiosity. It bore the Englishman’s signature,
-and hinted at cats—at a Sending of Cats. The mere words on paper were
-creepy and uncanny to behold.
-
-“What have you done, though?” said the Englishman. “I am as much in the
-dark as ever. Do you mean to say that you can actually send this absurd
-Sending you talk about?”
-
-“Judge for yourself,” said Dana Da. “What does that letter mean? In a
-little time they will all be at my feet and yours, and I—O Glory!—will
-be drugged or drunk all day long.”
-
-Dana Da knew his people.
-
-When a man who hates cats wakes up in the morning and finds a little
-squirming kitten on his breast, or puts his hand into his ulster-pocket
-and finds a little half-dead kitten where his gloves should be, or opens
-his trunk and finds a vile kitten among his dress-shirts, or goes for a
-long ride with his mackintosh strapped on his saddle-bow and shakes a
-little squawling kitten from its folds when he opens it, or goes out to
-dinner and finds a little blind kitten under his chair, or stays at home
-and finds a writhing kitten under the quilt, or wriggling among his
-boots, or hanging, head downwards, in his tobacco-jar, or being mangled
-by his terrier in the verandah,—when such a man finds one kitten,
-neither more nor less, once a day in a place where no kitten rightly
-could or should be, he is naturally upset. When he dare not murder his
-daily trove because he believes it to be a Manifestation, an Emissary,
-an Embodiment, and half a dozen other things all out of the regular
-course of nature, he is more than upset. He is actually distressed. Some
-of Lone Sahib’s co-religionists thought that he was a highly favoured
-individual; but many said that if he had treated the first kitten with
-proper respect—as suited a Toth-Ra-Tum-Sennacherib Embodiment—all this
-trouble would have been averted. They compared him to the Ancient
-Mariner, but none the less they were proud of him and proud of the
-Englishman who had sent the Manifestation. They did not call it a
-Sending because Icelandic magic was not in their programme.
-
-After sixteen kittens, that is to say after one fortnight, for there
-were three kittens on the first day to impress the fact of the Sending,
-the whole camp was uplifted by a letter—it came flying through a
-window—from the Old Man of the Mountains—the Head of all the
-Creed—explaining the Manifestation in the most beautiful language and
-soaking up all the credit for it himself. The Englishman, said the
-letter, was not there at all. He was a backslider without Power or
-Asceticism, who couldn’t even raise a table by force of volition, much
-less project an army of kittens through space. The entire arrangement,
-said the letter, was strictly orthodox, worked and sanctioned by the
-highest authorities within the pale of the Creed. There was great joy at
-this, for some of the weaker brethren seeing, that an outsider who had
-been working on independent lines could create kittens, whereas their
-own rulers had never gone beyond crockery—and broken at best—were
-showing a desire to break line on their own trail. In fact, there was
-the promise of a schism. A second Round Robin was drafted to the
-Englishman, beginning: “O Scoffer,” and ending with a selection of
-curses from the Rites of Mizraim and Memphis and the Commination of
-Jugana, who was a “fifth rounder” upon whose name an upstart
-“third-rounder” once traded. A papal excommunication is a _billet-doux_
-compared to the Commination of Jugana. The Englishman had been proved,
-under the hand and seal of the Old Man of the Mountains, to have
-appropriated Virtue and pretended to have Power which, in reality,
-belonged only to the Supreme Head. Naturally the Round Robin did not
-spare him.
-
-He handed the letter to Dana Da to translate into decent English. The
-effect on Dana Da was curious. At first he was furiously angry, and then
-he laughed for five minutes.
-
-“I had thought,” he said, “that they would have come to me. In another
-week I would have shown that I sent the Sending, and they would have
-dis-crowned the Old Man of the Mountains who has sent this Sending of
-mine. Do you do nothing. The time has come for me to act. Write as I
-dictate, and I will put them to shame. But give me ten more rupees.”
-
-At Dana Da’s dictation the Englishman wrote nothing less than a formal
-challenge to the Old Man of the Mountains. It wound up: “And if this
-Manifestation be from your hand, then let it go forward; but if it be
-from my hand, I will that the Sending shall cease in two days’ time. On
-that day there shall be twelve kittens and thenceforward none at all.
-The people shall judge between us.” This was signed by Dana Da, who
-added pentacles and pentagrams, and a _crux ansata_, and half a dozen
-_swastikas_, and a Triple Tau to his name, just to show that he was all
-he laid claim to be.
-
-The challenge was read out to the gentlemen and ladies, and they
-remembered then that Dana Da had laughed at them some years ago. It was
-officially announced that the Old Man of the Mountains would treat the
-matter with contempt; Dana Da being an Independent Investigator without
-a single “round” at the back of him. But this did not soothe his people.
-They wanted to see a fight. They were very human for all their
-spirituality. Lone Sahib, who was really being worn out with kittens,
-submitted meekly to his fate. He felt that he was being “kittened to
-prove the power of Dana Da,” as the poet says.
-
-When the stated day dawned, the shower of kittens began. Some were white
-and some were tabby, and all were about the same loathsome age. Three
-were on his hearth-rug, three in his bath-room, and the other six turned
-up at intervals among the visitors who came to see the prophecy break
-down. Never was a more satisfactory Sending. On the next day there were
-no kittens, and the next day and all the other days were kittenless and
-quiet. The people murmured and looked to the Old Man of the Mountains
-for an explanation. A letter, written on a palm-leaf, dropped from the
-ceiling, but every one except Lone Sahib felt that letters were not what
-the occasion demanded. There should have been cats, there should have
-been cats,—full-grown ones. The letter proved conclusively that there
-had been a hitch in the Psychic Current which, colliding with a Dual
-Identity, had interfered with the Percipient Activity all along the main
-line. The kittens were still going on, but owing to some failure in the
-Developing Fluid, they were not materialised. The air was thick with
-letters for a few days afterwards. Unseen hands played Glück and
-Beethoven on finger-bowls and clock-shades; but all men felt that
-Psychic Life was a mockery without materialised Kittens. Even Lone Sahib
-shouted with the majority on this head. Dana Da’s letters were very
-insulting, and if he had then offered to lead a new departure, there is
-no knowing what might not have happened.
-
-[Illustration: THE SENDING OF DANA DA]
-
-But Dana Da was dying of whiskey and opium in the Englishman’s godown,
-and had small heart for honours.
-
-“They have been put to shame,” said he. “Never was such a Sending. It
-has killed me.”
-
-“Nonsense,” said the Englishman, “you are going to die, Dana Da, and
-that sort of stuff must be left behind. I’ll admit that you have made
-some queer things come about. Tell me honestly, now, how was it done?”
-
-“Give me ten more rupees,” said Dana Da faintly, “and if I die before I
-spend them, bury them with me.” The silver was counted out while Dana Da
-was fighting with Death. His hand closed upon the money and he smiled a
-grim smile.
-
-“Bend low,” he whispered. The Englishman bent.
-
-“_Bunnia_—Mission-school—expelled—_box-wallah_ (peddler)—Ceylon
-pearl-merchant—all mine English education—out-casted, and made up name
-Dana Da—England with American thought-reading man and—and—you gave me
-ten rupees several times—I gave the Sahib’s bearer two-eight a month for
-cats—little, little cats. I wrote, and he put them about—very clever
-man. Very few kittens now in the bazar. Ask Lone Sahib’s sweeper’s
-wife.”
-
-So saying, Dana Da gasped and passed away into a land where, if all be
-true, there are no materialisations and the making of new creeds is
-discouraged.
-
-But consider the gorgeous simplicity of it all!
-
-
-
-
- THROUGH THE FIRE
-
- Copyright, 1891, by Macmillan & Co.
-
-
-The Policeman rode through the Himalayan forest, under the moss-draped
-oaks, and his orderly trotted after him.
-
-“It’s an ugly business, Bhere Singh,” said the Policeman. “Where are
-they?”
-
-“It is a very ugly business,” said Bhere Singh; “and as for _them_, they
-are, doubtless, now frying in a hotter fire than was ever made of
-spruce-branches.”
-
-“Let us hope not,” said the Policeman, “for, allowing for the difference
-between race and race, it’s the story of Francesca da Rimini, Bhere
-Singh.”
-
-Bhere Singh knew nothing about Francesca da Rimini, so he held his peace
-until they came to the charcoal-burners’ clearing where the dying flames
-said “_whit, whit, whit_” as they fluttered and whispered over the white
-ashes. It must have been a great fire when at full height. Men had seen
-it at Donga Pa across the valley winking and blazing through the night,
-and said that the charcoal-burners of Kodru were getting drunk. But it
-was only Suket Singh, Sepoy of the 102d Punjab Native Infantry, and
-Athira, a woman, burning—burning—burning.
-
-This was how things befell; and the Policeman’s Diary will bear me out.
-
-Athira was the wife of Madu, who was a charcoal-burner, one-eyed and of
-a malignant disposition. A week after their marriage, he beat Athira
-with a heavy stick. A month later, Suket Singh, Sepoy, came that way to
-the cool hills on leave from his regiment, and electrified the villagers
-of Kodru with tales of service and glory under the Government, and the
-honour in which he, Suket Singh, was held by the Colonel Sahib Bahadur.
-And Desdemona listened to Othello as Desdemonas have done all the world
-over, and, as she listened, she loved.
-
-“I’ve a wife of my own,” said Suket Singh, “though that is no matter
-when you come to think of it. I am also due to return to my regiment
-after a time, and I cannot be a deserter—I who intend to be Havildar.”
-There is no Himalayan version of “I could not love thee, dear, as much,
-Loved I not Honour more”; but Suket Singh came near to making one.
-
-“Never mind,” said Athira, “stay with me, and, if Madu tries to beat me,
-you beat him.”
-
-“Very good,” said Suket Singh; and he beat Madu severely, to the delight
-of all the charcoal-burners of Kodru.
-
-“That is enough,” said Suket Singh, as he rolled Madu down the hillside.
-“Now we shall have peace.” But Madu crawled up the grass slope again,
-and hovered round his hut with angry eyes.
-
-“He’ll kill me dead,” said Athira to Suket Singh. “You must take me
-away.”
-
-“There’ll be a trouble in the Lines. My wife will pull out my beard; but
-never mind,” said Suket Singh, “I will take you.”
-
-There was loud trouble in the Lines, and Suket Singh’s beard was pulled,
-and Suket Singh’s wife went to live with her mother and took away the
-children. “That’s all right,” said Athira; and Suket Singh said, “Yes,
-that’s all right.”
-
-So there was only Madu left in the hut that looks across the valley to
-Donga Pa; and, since the beginning of time, no one has had any sympathy
-for husbands so unfortunate as Madu.
-
-He went to Juseen Dazé, the wizard-man who keeps the Talking Monkey’s
-Head.
-
-“Get me back my wife,” said Madu.
-
-“I can’t,” said Juseen Dazé, “until you have made the Sutlej in the
-valley run up the Donga Pa.”
-
-“No riddles,” said Madu, and he shook his hatchet above Juseen Dazé’s
-white head.
-
-“Give all your money to the headmen of the village,” said Juseen Dazé;
-“and they will hold a communal Council, and the Council will send a
-message that your wife must come back.”
-
-So Madu gave up all his worldly wealth, amounting to twenty-seven
-rupees, eight annas, three pice, and a silver chain, to the Council of
-Kodru. And it fell as Juseen Dazé foretold.
-
-They sent Athira’s brother down into Suket Singh’s regiment to call
-Athira home. Suket Singh kicked him once round the Lines, and then
-handed him over to the Havildar, who beat him with a belt.
-
-“Come back,” yelled Athira’s brother.
-
-“Where to?” said Athira.
-
-“To Madu,” said he.
-
-“Never,” said she.
-
-“Then Juseen Dazé will send a curse, and you will wither away like a
-barked tree in the springtime,” said Athira’s brother. Athira slept over
-these things.
-
-Next morning she had rheumatism. “I am beginning to wither away like a
-barked tree in the springtime,” she said. “That is the curse of Juseen
-Dazé.”
-
-And she really began to wither away because her heart was dried up with
-fear, and those who believe in curses die from curses. Suket Singh, too,
-was afraid because he loved Athira better than his very life. Two months
-passed, and Athira’s brother stood outside the regimental Lines again
-and yelped, “Aha! You are withering away. Come back.”
-
-“I will come back,” said Athira.
-
-“Say rather that _we_ will come back,” said Suket Singh.
-
-“Ai; but when?” said Athira’s brother.
-
-“Upon a day very early in the morning,” said Suket Singh; and he tramped
-off to apply to the Colonel Sahib Bahadur for one week’s leave.
-
-“I am withering away like a barked tree in the spring,” moaned Athira.
-
-“You will be better soon,” said Suket Singh; and he told her what was in
-his heart, and the two laughed together softly, for they loved each
-other. But Athira grew better from that hour.
-
-They went away together, travelling third-class by train as the
-regulations provided, and then in a cart to the low hills, and on foot
-to the high ones. Athira sniffed the scent of the pines of her own
-hills, the wet Himalayan hills. “It is good to be alive,” said Athira.
-
-“Hah!” said Suket Singh. “Where is the Kodru road and where is the
-Forest Ranger’s house?”...
-
-“It cost forty rupees twelve years ago,” said the Forest Ranger, handing
-the gun.
-
-“Here are twenty,” said Suket Singh, “and you must give me the best
-bullets.”
-
-“It is _very_ good to be alive,” said Athira wistfully, sniffing the
-scent of the pine-mould; and they waited till the night had fallen upon
-Kodru and the Donga Pa. Madu had stacked the dry wood for the next day’s
-charcoal-burning on the spur above his house. “It is courteous in Madu
-to save us this trouble,” said Suket Singh as he stumbled on the pile,
-which was twelve foot square and four high. “We must wait till the moon
-rises.”
-
-When the moon rose, Athira knelt upon the pile. “If it were only a
-Government Snider,” said Suket Singh ruefully, squinting down the
-wire-bound barrel of the Forest Ranger’s gun.
-
-“Be quick,” said Athira; and Suket Singh was quick; but Athira was quick
-no longer. Then he lit the pile at the four corners and climbed on to
-it, reloading the gun.
-
-The little flames began to peer up between the big logs atop of the
-brushwood. “The Government should teach us to pull the triggers with our
-toes,” said Suket Singh grimly to the moon. That was the last public
-observation of Sepoy Suket Singh.
-
- * * * * *
-
-Upon a day, early in the morning, Madu came to the pyre and shrieked
-very grievously, and ran away to catch the Policeman who was on tour in
-the district.
-
-“The base-born has ruined four rupees’ worth of charcoal wood,” Madu
-gasped. “He has also killed my wife, and he has left a letter which I
-cannot read, tied to a pine bough.”
-
-In the stiff, formal hand taught in the regimental school, Sepoy Suket
-Singh had written—
-
-“Let us be burned together, if anything remain over, for we have made
-the necessary prayers. We have also cursed Madu, and Malak the brother
-of Athira—both evil men. Send my service to the Colonel Sahib Bahadur.”
-
-The Policeman looked long and curiously at the marriage-bed of red and
-white ashes on which lay, dull black, the barrel of the Ranger’s gun. He
-drove his spurred heel absently into a half-charred log, and the
-chattering sparks flew upwards. “Most extraordinary people,” said the
-Policeman.
-
-“_Whe-w, whew, ouiou_,” said the little flames.
-
-The Policeman entered the dry bones of the case, for the Punjab
-Government does not approve of romancing, in his Diary.
-
-“But who will pay me those four rupees?” said Madu.
-
-
-
-
- THE HEAD OF THE DISTRICT
-
- There’s a convict more in the Central Jail,
- Behind the old mud wall;
- There’s a lifter less on the Border trail,
- And the Queen’s Peace over all,
- Dear boys,
- The Queen’s Peace over all.
-
- For we must bear our leader’s blame,
- On us the shame will fall,
- If we lift our hand from a fettered land,
- And the Queen’s Peace over all,
- Dear boys,
- The Queen’s Peace over all!
-
- _The Running of Shindand._
-
-
- I
-
-The Indus had risen in flood without warning. Last night it was a
-fordable shallow; to-night five miles of raving muddy water parted bank
-and caving bank, and the river was still rising under the moon. A litter
-borne by six bearded men, all unused to the work, stopped in the white
-sand that bordered the whiter plain.
-
-“It’s God’s will,” they said. “We dare not cross to-night, even in a
-boat. Let us light a fire and cook food. We be tired men.”
-
-They looked at the litter inquiringly. Within, the Deputy Commissioner
-of the Kot-Kumharsen district lay dying of fever. They had brought him
-across country, six fighting-men of a frontier clan that he had won over
-to the paths of a moderate righteousness, when he had broken down at the
-foot of their inhospitable hills. And Tallantire, his assistant, rode
-with them, heavy-hearted as heavy-eyed with sorrow and lack of sleep. He
-had served under the sick man for three years, and had learned to love
-him as men associated in toil of the hardest learn to love—or hate.
-Dropping from his horse, he parted the curtains of the litter and peered
-inside.
-
-“Orde—Orde, old man, can you hear? We have to wait till the river goes
-down, worse luck.”
-
-“I hear,” returned a dry whisper. “Wait till the river goes down. I
-thought we should reach camp before the dawn. Polly knows. She’ll meet
-me.”
-
-One of the litter-men stared across the river and caught a faint twinkle
-of light on the far side. He whispered to Tallantire, “There are his
-camp-fires, and his wife. They will cross in the morning, for they have
-better boats. Can he live so long?”
-
-Tallantire shook his head. Yardley-Orde was very near to death. What
-need to vex his soul with hopes of a meeting that could not be? The
-river gulped at the banks, brought down a cliff of sand, and snarled the
-more hungrily. The litter-men sought for fuel in the waste—dried
-camel-thorn and refuse of the camps that had waited at the ford. Their
-sword-belts clinked as they moved softly in the haze of the moonlight,
-and Tallantire’s horse coughed to explain that he would like a blanket.
-
-“I’m cold too,” said the voice from the litter. “I fancy this is the
-end. Poor Polly!”
-
-Tallantire rearranged the blankets; Khoda Dad Khan, seeing this,
-stripped off his own heavy-wadded sheepskin coat and added it to the
-pile. “I shall be warm by the fire presently,” said he. Tallantire took
-the wasted body of his chief into his arms and held it against his
-breast. Perhaps if they kept him very warm Orde might live to see his
-wife once more. If only blind Providence would send a three-foot fall in
-the river!
-
-“That’s better,” said Orde faintly. “Sorry to be a nuisance, but is—is
-there anything to drink?”
-
-They gave him milk and whiskey, and Tallantire felt a little warmth
-against his own breast. Orde began to mutter.
-
-“It isn’t that I mind dying,” he said. “It’s leaving Polly and the
-district. Thank God! we have no children. Dick, you know, I’m
-dipped—awfully dipped—debts in my first five years’ service. It isn’t
-much of a pension, but enough for her. She has her mother at home.
-Getting there is the difficulty. And—and—you see, not being a soldier’s
-wife——”
-
-“We’ll arrange the passage home, of course,” said Tallantire quietly.
-
-“It’s not nice to think of sending round the hat; but, good Lord! how
-many men I lie here and remember that had to do it! Morten’s dead—he was
-of my year. Shaughnessy is dead, and he had children; I remember he used
-to read us their school-letters; what a bore we thought him! Evans is
-dead—Kot-Kumharsen killed him! Ricketts of Myndonie is dead—and I’m
-going too. ‘Man that is born of a woman is small potatoes and few in the
-hill.’ That reminds me, Dick; the four Khusru Kheyl villages in our
-border want a one-third remittance this spring. That’s fair; their crops
-are bad. See that they get it, and speak to Ferris about the canal. I
-should like to have lived till that was finished; it means so much for
-the North-Indus villages—but Ferris is an idle beggar—wake him up.
-You’ll have charge of the district till my successor comes. I wish they
-would appoint you permanently; you know the folk. I suppose it will be
-Bullows, though. ’Good man, but too weak for frontier work; and he
-doesn’t understand the priests. The blind priest at Jagai will bear
-watching. You’ll find it in my papers,—in the uniform-case, I think.
-Call the Khusru Kheyl men up; I’ll hold my last public audience. Khoda
-Dad Khan!”
-
-The leader of the men sprang to the side of the litter, his companions
-following.
-
-“Men, I’m dying,” said Orde quickly, in the vernacular; “and soon there
-will be no more Orde Sahib to twist your tails and prevent you from
-raiding cattle.”
-
-“God forbid this thing!” broke out the deep bass chorus: “The Sahib is
-not going to die.”
-
-“Yes, he is; and then he will know whether Mahomed speaks truth, or
-Moses. But you must be good men when I am not here. Such of you as live
-in our borders must pay your taxes quietly as before. I have spoken of
-the villages to be gently treated this year. Such of you as live in the
-hills must refrain from cattle-lifting, and burn no more thatch, and
-turn a deaf ear to the voice of the priests, who, not knowing the
-strength of the Government, would lead you into foolish wars, wherein
-you will surely die and your crops be eaten by strangers. And you must
-not sack any caravans, and must leave your arms at the police-post when
-you come in; as has been your custom, and my order. And Tallantire Sahib
-will be with you, but I do not know who takes my place. I speak now true
-talk, for I am as it were already dead, my children,—for though ye be
-strong men, ye are children.”
-
-“And thou art our father and our mother,” broke in Khoda Dad Khan with
-an oath. “What shall we do, now there is no one to speak for us, or to
-teach us to go wisely!”
-
-“There remains Tallantire Sahib. Go to him; he knows your talk and your
-heart. Keep the young men quiet, listen to the old men, and obey. Khoda
-Dad Khan, take my ring. The watch and chain go to thy brother. Keep
-those things for my sake, and I will speak to whatever God I may
-encounter and tell him that the Khusru Kheyl are good men. Ye have my
-leave to go.”
-
-Khoda Dad Khan, the ring upon his finger, choked audibly as he caught
-the well-known formula that closed an interview. His brother turned to
-look across the river. The dawn was breaking, and a speck of white
-showed on the dull silver of the stream. “She comes,” said the man under
-his breath. “Can he live for another two hours?” And he pulled the
-newly-acquired watch out of his belt and looked uncomprehendingly at the
-dial, as he had seen Englishmen do.
-
-For two hours the bellying sail tacked and blundered up and down the
-river, Tallantire still clasping Orde in his arms, and Khoda Dad Khan
-chafing his feet. He spoke now and again of the district and his wife,
-but, as the end neared, more frequently of the latter. They hoped he did
-not know that she was even then risking her life in a crazy native boat
-to regain him. But the awful foreknowledge of the dying deceived them.
-Wrenching himself forward, Orde looked through the curtains and saw how
-near was the sail. “That’s Polly,” he said simply, though his mouth was
-wried with agony. “Polly and—the grimmest practical joke ever played on
-a man. Dick—you’ll—have—to—explain.”
-
-And an hour later Tallantire met on the bank a woman in a gingham
-riding-habit and a sun-hat who cried out to him for her husband—her boy
-and her darling—while Khoda Dad Khan threw himself face-down on the sand
-and covered his eyes.
-
-
- II
-
-The very simplicity of the notion was its charm. What more easy to win a
-reputation for far-seeing statesmanship, originality, and, above all,
-deference to the desires of the people, than by appointing a child of
-the country to the rule of that country? Two hundred millions of the
-most loving and grateful folk under Her Majesty’s dominion would laud
-the fact, and their praise would endure for ever. Yet he was indifferent
-to praise or blame, as befitted the Very Greatest of All the Viceroys.
-His administration was based upon principle, and the principle must be
-enforced in season and out of season. His pen and tongue had created the
-New India, teeming with possibilities—loud-voiced, insistent, a nation
-among nations—all his very own. Wherefore the Very Greatest of All the
-Viceroys took another step in advance, and with it counsel of those who
-should have advised him on the appointment of a successor to
-Yardley-Orde. There was a gentleman and a member of the Bengal Civil
-Service who had won his place and a university degree to boot in fair
-and open competition with the sons of the English. He was cultured, of
-the world, and, if report spoke truly, had wisely and, above all,
-sympathetically ruled a crowded district in South-Eastern Bengal. He had
-been to England and charmed many drawing-rooms there. His name, if the
-Viceroy recollected aright, was Mr. Grish Chunder Dé, M. A. In short,
-did anybody see any objection to the appointment, always on principle,
-of a man of the people to rule the people? The district in South-Eastern
-Bengal might with advantage, he apprehended, pass over to a younger
-civilian of Mr. G. C. Dé’s nationality (who had written a remarkably
-clever pamphlet on the political value of sympathy in administration);
-and Mr. G. C. Dé could be transferred northward to Kot-Kumharsen. The
-Viceroy was averse, on principle, to interfering with appointments under
-control of the Provincial Governments. He wished it to be understood
-that he merely recommended and advised in this instance. As regarded the
-mere question of race, Mr. Grish Chunder Dé was more English than the
-English, and yet possessed of that peculiar sympathy and insight which
-the best among the best Service in the world could only win to at the
-end of their service.
-
-The stern, black-bearded kings who sit about the Council-board of India
-divided on the step, with the inevitable result of driving the Very
-Greatest of All the Viceroys into the borders of hysteria, and a
-bewildered obstinacy pathetic as that of a child.
-
-“The principle is sound enough,” said the weary-eyed Head of the Red
-Provinces in which Kot-Kumharsen lay, for he too held theories. “The
-only difficulty is——”
-
-“Put the screw on the District officials; brigade Dé with a very strong
-Deputy Commissioner on each side of him; give him the best assistant in
-the Province; rub the fear of God into the people beforehand; and if
-anything goes wrong, say that his colleagues didn’t back him up. All
-these lovely little experiments recoil on the District-Officer in the
-end,” said the Knight of the Drawn Sword with a truthful brutality that
-made the Head of the Red Provinces shudder. And on a tacit understanding
-of this kind the transfer was accomplished, as quietly as might be for
-many reasons.
-
-It is sad to think that what goes for public opinion in India did not
-generally see the wisdom of the Viceroy’s appointment. There were not
-lacking indeed hireling organs, notoriously in the pay of a tyrannous
-bureaucracy, who more than hinted that His Excellency was a fool, a
-dreamer of dreams, a doctrinaire, and, worst of all, a trifler with the
-lives of men. “The Viceroy’s Excellence Gazette,” published in Calcutta,
-was at pains to thank “Our beloved Viceroy for once more and again thus
-gloriously vindicating the potentialities of the Bengali nations for
-extended executive and administrative duties in foreign parts beyond our
-ken. We do not at all doubt that our excellent fellow-townsman, Mr.
-Grish Chunder Dé, Esq., M. A., will uphold the prestige of the Bengali,
-notwithstanding what underhand intrigue and _peshbundi_ may be set on
-foot to insidiously nip his fame and blast his prospects among the proud
-civilians, some of which will now have to serve under a despised native
-and take orders too. How will you like that, Misters? We entreat our
-beloved Viceroy still to substantiate himself superiorly to
-race-prejudice and colour-blindness, and to allow the flower of this now
-_our_ Civil Service all the full pays and allowances granted to his more
-fortunate brethren.”
-
-
- III
-
-“When does this man take over charge? I’m alone just now, and I gather
-that I’m to stand fast under him.”
-
-“Would you have cared for a transfer?” said Bullows keenly. Then, laying
-his hand on Tallantire’s shoulder: “We’re all in the same boat; don’t
-desert us. And yet, why the devil should you stay, if you can get
-another charge?”
-
-“It was Orde’s,” said Tallantire simply.
-
-“Well, it’s Dé’s now. He’s a Bengali of the Bengalis, crammed with code
-and case law; a beautiful man so far as routine and deskwork go, and
-pleasant to talk to. They naturally have always kept him in his own home
-district, where all his sisters and his cousins and his aunts lived,
-somewhere south of Dacca. He did no more than turn the place into a
-pleasant little family preserve, allowed his subordinates to do what
-they liked, and let everybody have a chance at the shekels. Consequently
-he’s immensely popular down there.”
-
-“I’ve nothing to do with that. How on earth am I to explain to the
-district that they are going to be governed by a Bengali? Do you—does
-the Government, I mean—suppose that the Khusru Kheyl will sit quiet when
-they once know? What will the Mahomedan heads of villages say? How will
-the police—Muzbi Sikhs and Pathans—how will _they_ work under him? We
-couldn’t say anything if the Government appointed a sweeper; but my
-people will say a good deal, you know that. It’s a piece of cruel
-folly!”
-
-“My dear boy, I know all that, and more. I’ve represented it, and have
-been told that I am exhibiting ‘culpable and puerile prejudice.’ By
-Jove, if the Khusru Kheyl don’t exhibit something worse than that I
-don’t know the Border! The chances are that you will have the district
-alight on your hands, and I shall have to leave my work and help you
-pull through. I needn’t ask you to stand by the Bengali man in every
-possible way. You’ll do that for your own sake.”
-
-“For Orde’s. I can’t say that I care twopence personally.”
-
-“Don’t be an ass. It’s grievous enough, God knows, and the Government
-will know later on; but that’s no reason for your sulking. _You_ must
-try to run the district; _you_ must stand between him and as much insult
-as possible; _you_ must show him the ropes; _you_ must pacify the Khusru
-Kheyl, and just warn Curbar of the Police to look out for trouble by the
-way. I’m always at the end of a telegraph-wire, and willing to peril my
-reputation to hold the district together. You’ll lose yours, of course.
-If you keep things straight, and he isn’t actually beaten with a stick
-when he’s on tour, he’ll get all the credit. If anything goes wrong,
-you’ll be told that you didn’t support him loyally.”
-
-“I know what I’ve got to do,” said Tallantire wearily, “and I’m going to
-do it. But it’s hard.”
-
-“The work is with us, the event is with Allah,—as Orde used to say when
-he was more than usually in hot water.” And Bullows rode away.
-
-That two gentlemen in Her Majesty’s Bengal Civil Service should thus
-discuss a third, also in that service, and a cultured and affable man
-withal, seems strange and saddening. Yet listen to the artless babble of
-the Blind Mullah of Jagai, the priest of the Khusru Kheyl, sitting upon
-a rock overlooking the Border. Five years before, a chance-hurled shell
-from a screw-gun battery had dashed earth in the face of the Mullah,
-then urging a rush of Ghazis against half a dozen British bayonets. So
-he became blind, and hated the English none the less for the little
-accident. Yardley-Orde knew his failing, and had many times laughed at
-him therefor.
-
-“Dogs you are,” said the Blind Mullah to the listening tribesmen round
-the fire. “Whipped dogs! Because you listened to Orde Sahib and called
-him father and behaved as his children, the British Government have
-proven how they regard you. Orde Sahib ye know is dead.”
-
-“Ai! ai! ai!” said half a dozen voices.
-
-“He was a man. Comes now in his stead, whom think ye? A Bengali of
-Bengal—an eater of fish from the South.”
-
-“A lie!” said Khoda Dad Khan. “And but for the small matter of thy
-priesthood, I’d drive my gun, butt first, down thy throat.”
-
-“Oho, art thou there, lickspittle of the English? Go in to-morrow across
-the Border to pay service to Orde Sahib’s successor, and thou shalt slip
-thy shoes at the tent-door of a Bengali, as thou shalt hand thy offering
-to a Bengali’s black fist. This I know; and in my youth, when a young
-man spoke evil to a Mullah holding the doors of Heaven and Hell, the
-gun-butt was not rammed down the Mullah’s gullet. No!”
-
-The Blind Mullah hated Khoda Dad Khan with Afghan hatred, both being
-rivals for the headship of the tribe; but the latter was feared for
-bodily as the other for spiritual gifts. Khoda Dad Khan looked at Orde’s
-ring and grunted, “I go in to-morrow because I am not an old fool,
-preaching war against the English. If the Government, smitten with
-madness, have done this, then....”
-
-“Then,” croaked the Mullah, “thou wilt take out the young men and strike
-at the four villages within the Border?”
-
-“Or wring thy neck, black raven of Jehannum, for a bearer of
-ill-tidings.”
-
-Khoda Dad Khan oiled his long locks with great care, put on his best
-Bokhara belt, a new turban-cap and fine green shoes, and accompanied by
-a few friends came down from the hills to pay a visit to the new Deputy
-Commissioner of Kot-Kumharsen. Also he bore tribute—four or five
-priceless gold mohurs of Akbar’s time in a white handkerchief. These the
-Deputy Commissioner would touch and remit. The little ceremony used to
-be a sign that, so far as Khoda Dad Khan’s personal influence went, the
-Khusru Kheyl would be good boys,—till the next time; especially if Khoda
-Dad Khan happened to like the new Deputy Commissioner. In Yardley-Orde’s
-consulship his visit concluded with a sumptuous dinner and perhaps
-forbidden liquors; certainly with some wonderful tales and great
-good-fellowship. Then Khoda Dad Khan would swagger back to his hold,
-vowing that Orde Sahib was one prince and Tallantire Sahib another, and
-that whosoever went a-raiding into British territory would be flayed
-alive. On this occasion he found the Deputy Commissioner’s tents looking
-much as usual. Regarding himself as privileged, he strode through the
-open door to confront a suave, portly Bengali in English costume,
-writing at a table. Unversed in the elevating influence of education,
-and not in the least caring for university degrees, Khoda Dad Khan
-promptly set the man down for a Babu—the native clerk of the Deputy
-Commissioner—a hated and despised animal.
-
-“Ugh!” said he cheerfully. “Where’s your master, Babujee?”
-
-“I am the Deputy Commissioner,” said the gentleman in English.
-
-Now he overvalued the effects of university degrees, and stared Khoda
-Dad Khan in the face. But if from your earliest infancy you have been
-accustomed to look on battle, murder, and sudden death, if spilt blood
-affects your nerves as much as red paint, and, above all, if you have
-faithfully believed that the Bengali was the servant of all Hindustan,
-and that all Hindustan was vastly inferior to your own large, lustful
-self, you can endure, even though uneducated, a very large amount of
-looking over. You can even stare down a graduate of an Oxford college if
-the latter has been born in a hothouse, of stock bred in a hothouse, and
-fearing physical pain as some men fear sin; especially if your
-opponent’s mother has frightened him to sleep in his youth with horrible
-stories of devils inhabiting Afghanistan, and dismal legends of the
-black North. The eyes behind the gold spectacles sought the floor. Khoda
-Dad Khan chuckled, and swung out to find Tallantire hard by. “Here,”
-said he roughly, thrusting the coins before him, “touch and remit. That
-answers for _my_ good behaviour. But, O Sahib, has the Government gone
-mad to send a black Bengali dog to us? And am I to pay service to such
-an one? And are you to work under him? What does it mean?”
-
-“It is an order,” said Tallantire. He had expected something of this
-kind. “He is a very clever S-sahib.”
-
-“He a Sahib! He’s a _kala admi_—a black man—unfit to run at the tail of
-a potter’s donkey. All the peoples of the earth have harried Bengal. It
-is written. Thou knowest when we of the North wanted women or plunder
-whither went we? To Bengal—where else? What child’s talk is this of
-Sahibdom—after Orde Sahib too! Of a truth the Blind Mullah was right.”
-
-“What of him?” asked Tallantire uneasily. He mistrusted that old man
-with his dead eyes and his deadly tongue.
-
-“Nay, now, because of the oath that I sware to Orde Sahib when we
-watched him die by the river yonder, I will tell. In the first place, is
-it true that the English have set the heel of the Bengali on their own
-neck, and that there is no more English rule in the land?”
-
-“I am here,” said Tallantire, “and I serve the Maharanee of England.”
-
-“The Mullah said otherwise, and further that because we loved Orde Sahib
-the Government sent us a pig to show that we were dogs who till now have
-been held by the strong hand. Also that they were taking away the white
-soldiers, that more Hindustanis might come, and that all was changing.”
-
-This is the worst of ill-considered handling of a very large country.
-What looks so feasible in Calcutta, so right in Bombay, so unassailable
-in Madras, is misunderstood by the North and entirely changes its
-complexion on the banks of the Indus. Khoda Dad Khan explained as
-clearly as he could that, though he himself intended to be good, he
-really could not answer for the more reckless members of his tribe under
-the leadership of the Blind Mullah. They might or they might not give
-trouble, but they certainly had no intention whatever of obeying the new
-Deputy Commissioner. Was Tallantire perfectly sure that in the event of
-any systematic border-raiding the force in the district could put it
-down promptly?
-
-“Tell the Mullah if he talks any more fool’s talk,” said Tallantire
-curtly, “that he takes his men on to certain death, and his tribe to
-blockade, trespass-fine, and blood-money. But why do I talk to one who
-no longer carries weight in the counsels of the tribe?”
-
-Khoda Dad Khan pocketed that insult. He had learned something that he
-much wanted to know, and returned to his hills to be sarcastically
-complimented by the Mullah, whose tongue raging round the camp-fires was
-deadlier flame than ever dung-cake fed.
-
-IV
-
-Be pleased to consider here for a moment the unknown district of
-Kot-Kumharsen. It lay cut lengthways by the Indus under the line of the
-Khusru hills—ramparts of useless earth and tumbled stone. It was seventy
-miles long by fifty broad, maintained a population of something less
-than two hundred thousand, and paid taxes to the extent of forty
-thousand pounds a year on an area that was by rather more than half
-sheer, hopeless waste. The cultivators were not gentle people, the
-miners for salt were less gentle still, and the cattle-breeders least
-gentle of all. A police-post in the top right-hand corner and a tiny mud
-fort in the top left-hand corner prevented as much salt-smuggling and
-cattle-lifting as the influence of the civilians could not put down; and
-in the bottom right-hand corner lay Jumala, the district headquarters—a
-pitiful knot of lime-washed barns facetiously rented as houses, reeking
-with frontier fever, leaking in the rain, and ovens in the summer.
-
-It was to this place that Grish Chunder Dé was travelling, there
-formally to take over charge of the district. But the news of his coming
-had gone before. Bengalis were as scarce as poodles among the simple
-Borderers, who cut each other’s heads open with their long spades and
-worshipped impartially at Hindu and Mahomedan shrines. They crowded to
-see him, pointing at him, and diversely comparing him to a gravid
-milch-buffalo, or a broken-down horse, as their limited range of
-metaphor prompted. They laughed at his police-guard, and wished to know
-how long the burly Sikhs were going to lead Bengali apes. They inquired
-whether he had brought his women with him, and advised him explicitly
-not to tamper with theirs. It remained for a wrinkled hag by the
-roadside to slap her lean breasts as he passed, crying, “I have suckled
-six that could have eaten six thousand of _him_. The Government shot
-them, and made this That a king!” Whereat a blue-turbaned huge-boned
-plough-mender shouted, “Have hope, mother o’ mine! He may yet go the way
-of thy wastrels.” And the children, the little brown puff-balls,
-regarded curiously. It was generally a good thing for infancy to stray
-into Orde Sahib’s tent, where copper coins were to be won for the mere
-wishing, and tales of the most authentic, such as even their mothers
-knew but the first half of. No! This fat black man could never tell them
-how Pir Prith hauled the eye-teeth out of ten devils; how the big stones
-came to lie all in a row on top of the Khusru hills, and what happened
-if you shouted through the village-gate to the gray wolf at even, “Badl
-Khas is dead.” Meantime Grish Chunder Dé talked hastily and much to
-Tallantire, after the manner of those who are “more English than the
-English,”—of Oxford and “home,” with much curious book-knowledge of
-bump-suppers, cricket-matches, hunting-runs, and other unholy sports of
-the alien. “We must get these fellows in hand,” he said once or twice
-uneasily; “get them well in hand, and drive them on a tight rein. No
-use, you know, being slack with your district.”
-
-And a moment later Tallantire heard Debendra Nath Dé, who brotherliwise
-had followed his kinsman’s fortune and hoped for the shadow of his
-protection as a pleader, whisper in Bengali, “Better are dried fish at
-Dacca than drawn swords at Delhi. Brother of mine, these men are devils,
-as our mother said. And you will always have to ride upon a horse!”
-
-That night there was a public audience in a broken-down little town
-thirty miles from Jumala, when the new Deputy Commissioner, in reply to
-the greetings of the subordinate native officials, delivered a speech.
-It was a carefully thought out speech, which would have been very
-valuable had not his third sentence begun with three innocent words,
-“_Hamara hookum hai_—It is my order.” Then there was a laugh, clear and
-bell-like, from the back of the big tent, where a few border landholders
-sat, and the laugh grew and scorn mingled with it, and the lean, keen
-face of Debendra Nath Dé paled, and Grish Chunder, turning to
-Tallantire, spake: “_You_—you put up this arrangement.” Upon that
-instant the noise of hoofs rang without, and there entered Curbar, the
-District Superintendent of Police, sweating and dusty. The State had
-tossed him into a corner of the province for seventeen weary years,
-there to check smuggling of salt, and to hope for promotion that never
-came. He had forgotten how to keep his white uniform clean, had screwed
-rusty spurs into patent-leather shoes, and clothed his head
-indifferently with a helmet or a turban. Soured, old, worn with heat and
-cold, he waited till he should be entitled to sufficient pension to keep
-him from starving.
-
-“Tallantire,” said he, disregarding Grish Chunder Dé, “come outside. I
-want to speak to you.” They withdrew. “It’s this,” continued Curbar.
-“The Khusru Kheyl have rushed and cut up half a dozen of the coolies on
-Ferris’s new canal-embankment; killed a couple of men and carried off a
-woman. I wouldn’t trouble you about that—Ferris is after them and
-Hugonin, my assistant, with ten mounted police. But that’s only the
-beginning, I fancy. Their fires are out on the Hassan Ardeb heights, and
-unless we’re pretty quick there’ll be a flare-up all along our Border.
-They are sure to raid the four Khusru villages on our side of the line;
-there’s been bad blood between them for years; and you know the Blind
-Mullah has been preaching a holy war since Orde went out. What’s your
-notion?”
-
-“Damn!” said Tallantire thoughtfully. “They’ve begun quick. Well, it
-seems to me I’d better ride off to Fort Ziar and get what men I can
-there to picket among the lowland villages, if it’s not too late. Tommy
-Dodd commands at Fort Ziar, I think. Ferris and Hugonin ought to teach
-the canal-thieves a lesson, and——No, we can’t have the Head of the
-Police ostentatiously guarding the Treasury. You go back to the canal.
-I’ll wire Bullows to come into Jumala with a strong police-guard, and
-sit on the Treasury. They won’t touch the place, but it looks well.”
-
-“I—I—I insist upon knowing what this means,” said the voice of the
-Deputy Commissioner, who had followed the speakers.
-
-“Oh!” said Curbar, who, being in the Police, could not understand that
-fifteen years of education must, on principle, change the Bengali into a
-Briton. “There has been a fight on the Border, and heaps of men are
-killed. There’s going to be another fight, and heaps more will be
-killed.”
-
-“What for?”
-
-“Because the teeming millions of this district don’t exactly approve of
-you, and think that under your benign rule they are going to have a good
-time. It strikes me that you had better make arrangements. I act, as you
-know, by your orders. What do you advise?”
-
-“I—I take you all to witness that I have not yet assumed charge of the
-district,” stammered the Deputy Commissioner, not in the tones of the
-“more English.”
-
-“Ah, I thought so. Well, as I was saying, Tallantire, your plan is
-sound. Carry it out. Do you want an escort?”
-
-“No; only a decent horse. But how about wiring to headquarters?”
-
-“I fancy, from the colour of his cheeks, that your superior officer will
-send some wonderful telegrams before the night’s over. Let him do that,
-and we shall have half the troops of the province coming up to see
-what’s the trouble. Well, run along, and take care of yourself—the
-Khusru Kheyl jab upwards from below, remember. Ho! Mir Khan, give
-Tallantire Sahib the best of the horses, and tell five men to ride to
-Jumala with the Deputy Commissioner Sahib Bahadur. There is a hurry
-toward.”
-
-There was; and it was not in the least bettered by Debendra Nath Dé
-clinging to a policeman’s bridle and demanding the shortest, the very
-shortest way to Jumala. Now originality is fatal to the Bengali.
-Debendra Nath should have stayed with his brother, who rode steadfastly
-for Jumala on the railway-line, thanking gods entirely unknown to the
-most catholic of universities that he had not taken charge of the
-district, and could still—happy resource of a fertile race!—fall sick.
-
-And I grieve to say that when he reached his goal two policemen, not
-devoid of rude wit, who had been conferring together as they bumped in
-their saddles, arranged an entertainment for his behoof. It consisted of
-first one and then the other entering his room with prodigious details
-of war, the massing of bloodthirsty and devilish tribes, and the burning
-of towns. It was almost as good, said these scamps, as riding with
-Curbar after evasive Afghans. Each invention kept the hearer at work for
-half an hour on telegrams which the sack of Delhi would hardly have
-justified. To every power that could move a bayonet or transfer a
-terrified man, Grish Chunder Dé appealed telegraphically. He was alone,
-his assistants had fled, and in truth he had not taken over charge of
-the district. Had the telegrams been despatched many things would have
-occurred; but since the only signaller in Jumala had gone to bed, and
-the station-master, after one look at the tremendous pile of paper,
-discovered that railway regulations forbade the forwarding of imperial
-messages, policemen Ram Singh and Nihal Singh were fain to turn the
-stuff into a pillow and slept on it very comfortably.
-
-Tallantire drove his spurs into a rampant skewbald stallion with
-china-blue eyes, and settled himself for the forty-mile ride to Fort
-Ziar. Knowing his district blindfold, he wasted no time hunting for
-short cuts, but headed across the richer grazing-ground to the ford
-where Orde had died and been buried. The dusty ground deadened the noise
-of his horse’s hoofs, the moon threw his shadow, a restless goblin,
-before him, and the heavy dew drenched him to the skin. Hillock, scrub
-that brushed against the horse’s belly, unmetalled road where the
-whip-like foliage of the tamarisks lashed his forehead, illimitable
-levels of lowland furred with bent and speckled with drowsing cattle,
-waste, and hillock anew, dragged themselves past, and the skewbald was
-labouring in the deep sand of the Indus-ford. Tallantire was conscious
-of no distinct thought till the nose of the dawdling ferry-boat grounded
-on the farther side, and his horse shied snorting at the white headstone
-of Orde’s grave. Then he uncovered, and shouted that the dead might
-hear, “They’re out, old man! Wish me luck.” In the chill of the dawn he
-was hammering with a stirrup-iron at the gate of Fort Ziar, where fifty
-sabres of that tattered regiment, the Belooch Beshaklis, were supposed
-to guard Her Majesty’s interests along a few hundred miles of Border.
-This particular fort was commanded by a subaltern, who, born of the
-ancient family of the Derouletts, naturally answered to the name of
-Tommy Dodd. Him Tallantire found robed in a sheepskin coat, shaking with
-fever like an aspen, and trying to read the native apothecary’s list of
-invalids.
-
-“So you’ve come, too,” said he. “Well, we’re all sick here, and I don’t
-think I can horse thirty men; but we’re bub-bub-bub-blessed willing.
-Stop, does this impress you as a trap or a lie?” He tossed a scrap of
-paper to Tallantire, on which was written painfully in crabbed Gurmukhi,
-“We cannot hold young horses. They will feed after the moon goes down in
-the four border villages issuing from the Jagai pass on the next night.”
-Then in English round hand—“Your sincere friend.”
-
-“Good man!” said Tallantire. “That’s Khoda Dad Khan’s work, I know. It’s
-the only piece of English he could ever keep in his head, and he is
-immensely proud of it. He is playing against the Blind Mullah for his
-own hand—the treacherous young ruffian!”
-
-“Don’t know the politics of the Khusru Kheyl, but if you’re satisfied, I
-am. That was pitched in over the gate-head last night, and I thought we
-might pull ourselves together and see what was on. Oh, but we’re sick
-with fever here, and no mistake! Is this going to be a big business,
-think you?” said Tommy Dodd.
-
-Tallantire gave him briefly the outlines of the case, and Tommy Dodd
-whistled and shook with fever alternately. That day he devoted to
-strategy, the art of war, and the enlivenment of the invalids, till at
-dusk there stood ready forty-two troopers, lean, worn, and dishevelled,
-whom Tommy Dodd surveyed with pride, and addressed thus: “O men! If you
-die you will go to Hell. Therefore endeavour to keep alive. But if you
-go to Hell that place cannot be hotter than this place, and we are not
-told that we shall there suffer from fever. Consequently be not afraid
-of dying. File out there!” They grinned, and went.
-
-V
-
-It will be long ere the Khusru Kheyl forget their night attack on the
-lowland villages. The Mullah had promised an easy victory and unlimited
-plunder; but behold, armed troopers of the Queen had risen out of the
-very earth, cutting, slashing, and riding down under the stars, so that
-no man knew where to turn, and all feared that they had brought an army
-about their ears, and ran back to the hills. In the panic of that flight
-more men were seen to drop from wounds inflicted by an Afghan knife
-jabbed upwards, and yet more from long-range carbine-fire. Then there
-rose a cry of treachery, and when they reached their own guarded
-heights, they had left, with some forty dead and sixty wounded, all
-their confidence in the Blind Mullah on the plains below. They
-clamoured, swore, and argued round the fires; the women wailing for the
-lost, and the Mullah shrieking curses on the returned.
-
-Then Khoda Dad Khan, eloquent and unbreathed, for he had taken no part
-in the fight, rose to improve the occasion. He pointed out that the
-tribe owed every item of its present misfortune to the Blind Mullah, who
-had lied in every possible particular and talked them into a trap. It
-was undoubtedly an insult that a Bengali, the son of a Bengali, should
-presume to administer the Border, but that fact did not, as the Mullah
-pretended, herald a general time of license and lifting; and the
-inexplicable madness of the English had not in the least impaired their
-power of guarding their marches. On the contrary, the baffled and
-out-generalled tribe would now, just when their food-stock was lowest,
-be blockaded from any trade with Hindustan until they had sent hostages
-for good behaviour, paid compensation for disturbance, and blood-money
-at the rate of thirty-six English pounds per head for every villager
-that they might have slain. “And ye know that those lowland dogs will
-make oath that we have slain scores. Will the Mullah pay the fines or
-must we sell our guns?” A low growl ran round the fires. “Now, seeing
-that all this is the Mullah’s work, and that we have gained nothing but
-promises of Paradise thereby, it is in my heart that we of the Khusru
-Kheyl lack a shrine whereat to pray. We are weakened, and henceforth how
-shall we dare to cross into the Madar Kheyl border, as has been our
-custom, to kneel to Pir Sajji’s tomb? The Madar men will fall upon us,
-and rightly. But our Mullah is a holy man. He has helped two score of us
-into Paradise this night. Let him therefore accompany his flock, and we
-will build over his body a dome of the blue tiles of Mooltan, and burn
-lamps at his feet every Friday night. He shall be a saint; we shall have
-a shrine; and there our women shall pray for fresh seed to fill the gaps
-in our fighting-tale. How think you?”
-
-A grim chuckle followed the suggestion, and the soft _wheep, wheep_ of
-unscabbarded knives followed the chuckle. It was an excellent notion,
-and met a long-felt want of the tribe. The Mullah sprang to his feet,
-glaring with withered eyeballs at the drawn death he could not see, and
-calling down the curses of God and Mahomed on the tribe. Then began a
-game of blind man’s buff round and between the fires, whereof Khuruk
-Shah, the tribal poet, has sung in verse that will not die.
-
-They tickled him gently under the armpit with the knife-point. He leaped
-aside screaming, only to feel a cold blade drawn lightly over the back
-of his neck, or a rifle-muzzle rubbing his beard. He called on his
-adherents to aid him, but most of these lay dead on the plains, for
-Khoda Dad Khan had been at some pains to arrange their decease. Men
-described to him the glories of the shrine they would build, and the
-little children, clapping their hands, cried, “Run, Mullah, run! There’s
-a man behind you!” In the end, when the sport wearied, Khoda Dad Khan’s
-brother sent a knife home between his ribs. “Wherefore,” said Khoda Dad
-Khan with charming simplicity, “I am now Chief of the Khusru Kheyl!” No
-man gainsaid him; and they all went to sleep very stiff and sore.
-
-On the plain below Tommy Dodd was lecturing on the beauties of a cavalry
-charge by night, and Tallantire, bowed on his saddle, was gasping
-hysterically because there was a sword dangling from his wrist flecked
-with the blood of the Khusru Kheyl, the tribe that Orde had kept in
-leash so well. When a Rajpoot trooper pointed out that the skewbald’s
-right ear had been taken off at the root by some blind slash of its
-unskilled rider, Tallantire broke down altogether, and laughed and
-sobbed till Tommy Dodd made him lie down and rest.
-
-“We must wait about till the morning,” said he. “I wired to the Colonel,
-just before we left, to send a wing of the Beshaklis after us. He’ll be
-furious with me for monopolizing the fun, though. Those beggars in the
-hills won’t give us any more trouble.”
-
-“Then tell the Beshaklis to go on and see what has happened to Curbar on
-the canal. We must patrol the whole line of the Border. You’re quite
-sure, Tommy, that—that stuff was—was only the skewbald’s ear?”
-
-“Oh, quite,” said Tommy. “You just missed cutting off his head. _I_ saw
-you when we went into the mess. Sleep, old man.”
-
-Noon brought two squadrons of Beshaklis and a knot of furious brother
-officers demanding the court-martial of Tommy Dodd for “spoiling the
-picnic,” and a gallop across country to the canal-works where Ferris,
-Curbar, and Hugonin were haranguing the terror-stricken coolies on the
-enormity of abandoning good work and high pay, merely because half a
-dozen of their fellows had been cut down. The sight of a troop of the
-Beshaklis restored wavering confidence, and the police-hunted section of
-the Khusru Kheyl had the joy of watching the canal-bank humming with
-life as usual, while such of their men as had taken refuge in the
-water-courses and ravines were being driven out by the troopers. By
-sundown began the remorseless patrol of the Border by police and
-trooper, most like the cow-boys’ eternal ride round restless cattle.
-
-“Now,” said Khoda Dad Khan to his fellows, pointing out a line of
-twinkling fires below, “ye may see how far the old order changes. After
-their horse will come the little devil-guns that they can drag up to the
-tops of the hills, and, for aught I know, to the clouds when we crown
-the hills. If the tribe-council thinks good, I will go to Tallantire
-Sahib—who loves me—and see if I can stave off at least the blockade. Do
-I speak for the tribe?”
-
-“Ay, speak for the tribe in God’s name. How those accursed fires wink!
-Do the English send their troops on the wire—or is this the work of the
-Bengali?”
-
-As Khoda Dad Khan went down the hill he was delayed by an interview with
-a hard-pressed tribesman, which caused him to return hastily for
-something he had forgotten. Then, handing himself over to the two
-troopers who had been chasing his friend, he claimed escort to
-Tallantire Sahib, then with Bullows at Jumala. The Border was safe, and
-the time for reasons in writing had begun.
-
-“Thank Heaven,” said Bullows, “that the trouble came at once. Of course
-we can never put down the reason in black and white, but all India will
-understand. And it is better to have a sharp, short outbreak than five
-years of impotent administration inside the Border. It costs less. Grish
-Chunder Dé has reported himself sick, and has been transferred to his
-own province without any sort of reprimand. He was strong on not having
-taken over the district.”
-
-“Of course,” said Tallantire bitterly. “Well, what am I supposed to have
-done that was wrong?”
-
-“Oh, you will be told that you exceeded all your powers, and should have
-reported, and written, and advised for three weeks until the Khusru
-Kheyl could really come down in force. But I don’t think the authorities
-will dare to make a fuss about it. They’ve had their lesson. Have you
-seen Curbar’s version of the affair? He can’t write a report, but he can
-speak the truth.”
-
-“What’s the use of the truth? He’d much better tear up the report. I’m
-sick and heart-broken over it all. It was so utterly unnecessary—except
-in that it rid us of the Babu.”
-
-Entered unabashed Khoda Dad Khan, a stuffed forage-net in his hand, and
-the troopers behind him.
-
-“May you never be tired!” said he cheerily. “Well, Sahibs, that was a
-good fight, and Naim Shah’s mother is in debt to you, Tallantire Sahib.
-A clean cut, they tell me, through jaw, wadded coat, and deep into the
-collar-bone. Well done! But I speak for the tribe. There has been a
-fault—a great fault. Thou knowest that I and mine, Tallantire Sahib,
-kept the oath we sware to Orde Sahib on the banks of the Indus.”
-
-“As an Afghan keeps his knife—sharp on one side, blunt on the other,”
-said Tallantire.
-
-“The better swing in the blow, then. But I speak God’s truth. Only the
-Blind Mullah carried the young men on the tip of his tongue, and said
-that there was no more Border-law because a Bengali had been sent, and
-we need not fear the English at all. So they came down to avenge that
-insult and get plunder. Ye know what befell, and how far I helped. Now
-five score of us are dead or wounded, and we are all shamed and sorry,
-and desire no further war. Moreover, that ye may better listen to us, we
-have taken off the head of the Blind Mullah, whose evil counsels have
-led us to folly. I bring it for proof,”—and he heaved on the floor the
-head. “He will give no more trouble, for _I_ am chief now, and so I sit
-in a higher place at all audiences. Yet there is an offset to this head.
-That was another fault. One of the men found that black Bengali beast,
-through whom this trouble arose, wandering on horseback and weeping.
-Reflecting that he had caused loss of much good life, Alla Dad Khan,
-whom, if you choose, I will to-morrow shoot, whipped off this head, and
-I bring it to you to cover your shame, that ye may bury it. See, no man
-kept the spectacles, though they were of gold.”
-
-Slowly rolled to Tallantire’s feet the crop-haired head of a spectacled
-Bengali gentleman, open-eyed, open-mouthed—the head of Terror incarnate.
-Bullows bent down. “Yet another blood-fine and a heavy one, Khoda Dad
-Khan, for this is the head of Debendra Nath, the man’s brother. The Babu
-is safe long since. All but the fools of the Khusru Kheyl know that.”
-
-“Well, I care not for carrion. Quick meat for me. The thing was under
-our hills asking the road to Jumala, and Alla Dad Khan showed him the
-road to Jehannum, being, as thou sayest, but a fool. Remains now what
-the Government will do to us. As to the blockade——”
-
-“Who art thou, seller of dog’s flesh,” thundered Tallantire, “to speak
-of terms and treaties? Get hence to the hills—go and wait there,
-starving, till it shall please the Government to call thy people out for
-punishment—children and fools that ye be! Count your dead, and be still.
-Rest assured that the Government will send you a _man_!”
-
-“Ay,” returned Khoda Dad Khan, “for we also be men.”
-
-As he looked Tallantire between the eyes, he added, “And by God, Sahib,
-may thou be that man!”
-
-
-
-
- THE AMIR’S HOMILY
-
- Copyright, 1891, by Macmillan & Co.
-
-
-His Royal Highness Abdur Rahman, Amir of Afghanistan, G. C. S. I., and
-trusted ally of Her Imperial Majesty the Queen of England and Empress of
-India, is a gentleman for whom all right-thinking people should have a
-profound regard. Like most other rulers, he governs not as he would, but
-as he can, and the mantle of his authority covers the most turbulent
-race under the stars. To the Afghan neither life, property, law, nor
-kingship are sacred when his own lusts prompt him to rebel. He is a
-thief by instinct, a murderer by heredity and training, and frankly and
-bestially immoral by all three. None the less he has his own crooked
-notions of honour, and his character is fascinating to study. On
-occasion he will fight without reason given till he is hacked in pieces;
-on other occasions he will refuse to show fight till he is driven into a
-corner. Herein he is as unaccountable as the gray wolf, who is his
-blood-brother.
-
-And these men His Highness rules by the only weapon that they
-understand—the fear of death, which among some Orientals is the
-beginning of wisdom. Some say that the Amir’s authority reaches no
-farther than a rifle-bullet can range; but as none are quite certain
-when their king may be in their midst, and as he alone holds every one
-of the threads of Government, his respect is increased among men. Gholam
-Hyder, the Commander-in-chief of the Afghan army, is feared reasonably,
-for he can impale; all Kabul city fears the Governor of Kabul, who has
-power of life and death through all the wards; but the Amir of
-Afghanistan, though outlying tribes pretend otherwise when his back is
-turned, is dreaded beyond chief and governor together. His word is red
-law; by the gust of his passion falls the leaf of man’s life, and his
-favour is terrible. He has suffered many things, and been a hunted
-fugitive before he came to the throne, and he understands all the
-classes of his people. By the custom of the East any man or woman having
-a complaint to make, or an enemy against whom to be avenged, has the
-right of speaking face to face with the king at the daily public
-audience. This is personal government, as it was in the days of Harun al
-Raschid of blessed memory, whose times exist still and will exist long
-after the English have passed away.
-
-The privilege of open speech is of course exercised at certain personal
-risk. The king may be pleased, and raise the speaker to honour for that
-very bluntness of speech which three minutes later brings a too
-imitative petitioner to the edge of the ever-ready blade. And the people
-love to have it so, for it is their right.
-
-It happened upon a day in Kabul that the Amir chose to do his day’s work
-in the Baber Gardens, which lie a short distance from the city of Kabul.
-A light table stood before him, and round the table in the open air were
-grouped generals and finance ministers according to their degree. The
-Court and the long tail of feudal chiefs—men of blood, fed and cowed by
-blood—stood in an irregular semicircle round the table, and the wind
-from the Kabul orchards blew among them. All day long sweating couriers
-dashed in with letters from the outlying districts with rumours of
-rebellion, intrigue, famine, failure of payments, or announcements of
-treasure on the road; and all day long the Amir would read the dockets,
-and pass such of these as were less private to the officials whom they
-directly concerned, or call up a waiting chief for a word of
-explanation. It is well to speak clearly to the ruler of Afghanistan.
-Then the grim head, under the black astrachan cap with the diamond star
-in front, would nod gravely, and that chief would return to his fellows.
-Once that afternoon a woman clamoured for divorce against her husband,
-who was bald, and the Amir, hearing both sides of the case, bade her
-pour curds over the bare scalp, and lick them off, that the hair might
-grow again, and she be contented. Here the Court laughed, and the woman
-withdrew, cursing her king under her breath.
-
-But when twilight was falling, and the order of the Court was a little
-relaxed, there came before the king, in custody, a trembling, haggard
-wretch, sore with much buffeting, but of stout enough build, who had
-stolen three rupees—of such small matters does His Highness take
-cognisance.
-
-“Why did you steal?” said he; and when the king asks questions they do
-themselves service who answer directly.
-
-“I was poor, and no one gave. Hungry, and there was no food.”
-
-“Why did you not work?”
-
-“I could find no work, Protector of the Poor, and I was starving.”
-
-“You lie. You stole for drink, for lust, for idleness, for anything but
-hunger, since any man who will may find work and daily bread.”
-
-The prisoner dropped his eyes. He had attended the Court before, and he
-knew the ring of the death-tone.
-
-“Any man may get work. Who knows this so well as I do? for I too have
-been hungered—not like you, bastard scum, but as any honest man may be,
-by the turn of Fate and the will of God.”
-
-Growing warm, the Amir turned to his nobles all arow, and thrust the
-hilt of his sabre aside with his elbow.
-
-“You have heard this Son of Lies? Hear me tell a true tale. I also was
-once starved, and tightened my belt on the sharp belly-pinch. Nor was I
-alone, for with me was another, who did not fail me in my evil days,
-when I was hunted, before ever I came to this throne. And wandering like
-a houseless dog by Kandahar, my money melted, melted, melted till——” He
-flung out a bare palm before the audience. “And day upon day, faint and
-sick, I went back to that one who waited, and God knows how we lived,
-till on a day I took our best _lihaf_—silk it was, fine work of Iran,
-such as no needle now works, warm, and a coverlet for two, and all that
-we had. I brought it to a money-lender in a by-lane, and I asked for
-three rupees upon it. He said to me, who am now the King, ‘You are a
-thief. This is worth three hundred.’ ‘I am no thief,’ I answered, ‘but a
-prince of good blood, and I am hungry.’—‘Prince of wandering beggars,’
-said that money-lender, ‘I have no money with me, but go to my house
-with my clerk and he will give you two rupees eight annas, for that is
-all I will lend.’ So I went with the clerk to the house, and we talked
-on the way, and he gave me the money. We lived on it till it was spent,
-and we fared hard. And then that clerk said, being a young man of a good
-heart, ‘Surely the money-lender will lend yet more on that _lihaf_,’ and
-he offered me two rupees. These I refused, saying, ‘Nay; but get me some
-work.’ And he got me work, and I, even I, Abdur Rahman, Amir of
-Afghanistan, wrought day by day as a coolie, bearing burdens, and
-labouring of my hands, receiving four annas wage a day for my sweat and
-backache. But he, this bastard son of naught, must steal! For a year and
-four months I worked, and none dare say that I lie, for I have a
-witness, even that clerk who is now my friend.”
-
-Then there rose in his place among the Sirdars and the nobles one clad
-in silk, who folded his hands and said, “This is the truth of God, for
-I, who, by the favour of God and the Amir, am such as you know, was once
-clerk to that money-lender.”
-
-There was a pause, and the Amir cried hoarsely to the prisoner, throwing
-scorn upon him, till he ended with the dread, “_Dar arid_,” which
-clinches justice.
-
-So they led the thief away, and the whole of him was seen no more
-together; and the Court rustled out of its silence, whispering, “Before
-God and the Prophet, but this is a man!”
-
-
-
-
- AT TWENTY-TWO
-
-Narrow as the womb, deep as the Pit, and dark as the heart of a
- man.—_Sonthal Miner’s Proverb._
-
-
-“A weaver went out to reap, but stayed to unravel the corn-stalks. Ha!
-Ha! Ha! Is there any sense in a weaver?”
-
-Janki Meah glared at Kundoo, but, as Janki Meah was blind, Kundoo was
-not impressed. He had come to argue with Janki Meah, and, if chance
-favoured, to make love to the old man’s pretty young wife.
-
-This was Kundoo’s grievance, and he spoke in the name of all the five
-men who, with Janki Meah, composed the gang in Number Seven gallery of
-Twenty-Two. Janki Meah had been blind for the thirty years during which
-he had served the Jimahari Collieries with pick and crowbar. All through
-those thirty years he had regularly, every morning before going down,
-drawn from the overseer his allowance of lamp-oil—just as if he had been
-an eyed miner. What Kundoo’s gang resented, as hundreds of gangs had
-resented before, was Janki Meah’s selfishness. He would not add the oil
-to the common stock of his gang, but would save and sell it.
-
-“I knew these workings before you were born,” Janki Meah used to reply:
-“I don’t want the light to get my coal out by, and I am not going to
-help you. The oil is mine, and I intend to keep it.”
-
-A strange man in many ways was Janki Meah, the white-haired,
-hot-tempered, sightless weaver who had turned pitman. All day
-long—except Sundays and Mondays, when he was usually drunk—he worked in
-the Twenty-Two shaft of the Jimahari Colliery as cleverly as a man with
-all the senses. At evening he went up in the great steam-hauled cage to
-the pit-bank, and there called for his pony—a rusty, coal-dusty beast,
-nearly as old as Janki Meah. The pony would come to his side, and Janki
-Meah would clamber on to its back and be taken at once to the plot of
-land which he, like the other miners, received from the Jimahari
-Company. The pony knew that place, and when, after six years, the
-Company changed all the allotments to prevent the miners from acquiring
-proprietary rights, Janki Meah represented, with tears in his eyes, that
-were his holding shifted, he would never be able to find his way to the
-new one. “My horse only knows that place,” pleaded Janki Meah, and so he
-was allowed to keep his land.
-
-On the strength of this concession and his accumulated oil-savings,
-Janki Meah took a second wife—a girl of the Jolaha main stock of the
-Meahs, and singularly beautiful. Janki Meah could not see her beauty;
-wherefore he took her on trust, and forbade her to go down the pit. He
-had not worked for thirty years in the dark without knowing that the pit
-was no place for pretty women. He loaded her with ornaments—not brass or
-pewter, but real silver ones—and she rewarded him by flirting
-outrageously with Kundoo of Number Seven gallery gang. Kundoo was really
-the gang-head, but Janki Meah insisted upon all the work being entered
-in his own name, and chose the men that he worked with. Custom—stronger
-even than the Jimahari Company—dictated that Janki, by right of his
-years, should manage these things, and should, also, work despite his
-blindness. In Indian mines, where they cut into the solid coal with the
-pick and clear it out from floor to ceiling, he could come to no great
-harm. At Home, where they undercut the coal and bring it down in
-crashing avalanches from the roof, he would never have been allowed to
-set foot in a pit. He was not a popular man, because of his oil-savings;
-but all the gangs admitted that Janki knew all the _khads_, or workings,
-that had ever been sunk or worked since the Jimahari Company first
-started operations on the Tarachunda fields.
-
-Pretty little Unda only knew that her old husband was a fool who could
-be managed. She took no interest in the collieries except in so far as
-they swallowed up Kundoo five days out of the seven, and covered him
-with coal-dust. Kundoo was a great workman, and did his best not to get
-drunk, because, when he had saved forty rupees, Unda was to steal
-everything that she could find in Janki’s house and run with Kundoo to a
-land where there were no mines, and every one kept three fat bullocks
-and a milch-buffalo. While this scheme ripened it was his custom to drop
-in upon Janki and worry him about the oil-savings. Unda sat in a corner
-and nodded approval. On the night when Kundoo had quoted that
-objectionable proverb about weavers, Janki grew angry.
-
-“Listen, you pig,” said he, “blind I am, and old I am, but, before ever
-you were born, I was gray among the coal. Even in the days when the
-Twenty-Two _khad_ was unsunk and there were not two thousand men here, I
-was known to have all knowledge of the pits. What _khad_ is there that I
-do not know, from the bottom of the shaft to the end of the last drive?
-Is it the Baromba _khad_, the oldest, or the Twenty-Two where Tibu’s
-gallery runs up to Number Five?”
-
-“Hear the old fool talk!” said Kundoo, nodding to Unda. “No gallery of
-Twenty-Two will cut into Five before the end of the Rains. We have a
-month’s solid coal before us. The Babuji says so.”
-
-“Babuji! Pigji! Dogji! What do these fat slugs from Calcutta know? He
-draws and draws and draws, and talks and talks and talks, and his maps
-are all wrong. I, Janki, know that this is so. When a man has been shut
-up in the dark for thirty years, God gives him knowledge. The old
-gallery that Tibu’s gang made is not six feet from Number Five.”
-
-“Without doubt God gives the blind knowledge,” said Kundoo, with a look
-at Unda. “Let it be as you say. I, for my part, do not know where lies
-the gallery of Tibu’s gang, but _I_ am not a withered monkey who needs
-oil to grease his joints with.”
-
-Kundoo swung out of the hut laughing, and Unda giggled. Janki turned his
-sightless eyes toward his wife and swore. “I have land, and I have sold
-a great deal of lamp-oil,” mused Janki; “but I was a fool to marry this
-child.”
-
-A week later the Rains set in with a vengeance, and the gangs paddled
-about in coal-slush at the pit-banks. Then the big mine-pumps were made
-ready, and the Manager of the Colliery ploughed through the wet towards
-the Tarachunda River swelling between its soppy banks. “Lord send that
-this beastly beck doesn’t misbehave,” said the Manager piously, and he
-went to take counsel with his Assistant about the pumps.
-
-But the Tarachunda misbehaved very much indeed. After a fall of three
-inches of rain in an hour it was obliged to do something. It topped its
-bank and joined the flood-water that was hemmed between two low hills
-just where the embankment of the Colliery main line crossed. When a
-large part of a rain-fed river, and a few acres of flood-water, make a
-dead set for a nine-foot culvert, the culvert may spout its finest, but
-the water cannot _all_ get out. The Manager pranced upon one leg with
-excitement, and his language was improper.
-
-He had reason to swear, because he knew that one inch of water on land
-meant a pressure of one hundred tons to the acre; and here were about
-five feet of water forming, behind the railway embankment, over the
-shallower workings of Twenty-Two. You must understand that, in a
-coal-mine, the coal nearest the surface is worked first from the central
-shaft. That is to say, the miners may clear out the stuff to within ten,
-twenty, or thirty feet of the surface, and, when all is worked out,
-leave only a skin of earth upheld by some few pillars of coal. In a deep
-mine where they know that they have any amount of material at hand, men
-prefer to get all their mineral out at one shaft, rather than make a
-number of little holes to tap the comparatively unimportant
-surface-coal.
-
-And the Manager watched the flood.
-
-The culvert spouted a nine-foot gush; but the water still formed, and
-word was sent to clear the men out of Twenty-Two. The cages came up
-crammed and crammed again with the men nearest the pit-eye, as they call
-the place where you can see daylight from the bottom of the main shaft.
-All away and away up the long black galleries the flare-lamps were
-winking and dancing like so many fireflies, and the men and the women
-waited for the clanking, rattling, thundering cages to come down and fly
-up again. But the out-workings were very far off, and word could not be
-passed quickly, though the heads of the gangs and the Assistant shouted
-and swore and tramped and stumbled. The Manager kept one eye on the
-great troubled pool behind the embankment, and prayed that the culvert
-would give way and let the water through in time. With the other eye he
-watched the cages come up and saw the headmen counting the roll of the
-gangs. With all his heart and soul he swore at the winder who controlled
-the iron drum that wound up the wire rope on which hung the cages.
-
-In a little time there was a down-draw in the water behind the
-embankment—a sucking whirlpool, all yellow and yeasty. The water had
-smashed through the skin of the earth and was pouring into the old
-shallow workings of Twenty-Two.
-
-Deep down below, a rush of black water caught the last gang waiting for
-the cage, and as they clambered in the whirl was about their waists. The
-cage reached the pit-bank, and the Manager called the roll. The gangs
-were all safe except Gang Janki, Gang Mogul, and Gang Rahim, eighteen
-men, with perhaps ten basket-women who loaded the coal into the little
-iron carriages that ran on the tramways of the main galleries. These
-gangs were in the out-workings, three-quarters of a mile away, on the
-extreme fringe of the mine. Once more the cage went down, but with only
-two Englishmen in it, and dropped into a swirling, roaring current that
-had almost touched the roof of some of the lower side-galleries. One of
-the wooden balks with which they had propped the old workings shot past
-on the current, just missing the cage.
-
-“If we don’t want our ribs knocked out, we’d better go,” said the
-Manager. “We can’t even save the Company’s props.”
-
-The cage drew out of the water with a splash, and a few minutes later it
-was officially reported that there were at least ten feet of water in
-the pit’s eye. Now ten feet of water there meant that all other places
-in the mine were flooded except such galleries as were more than ten
-feet above the level of the bottom of the shaft. The deep workings would
-be full, the main galleries would be full, but in the high workings
-reached by inclines from the main roads there would be a certain amount
-of air cut off, so to speak, by the water and squeezed up by it. The
-little science-primers explain how water behaves when you pour it down
-test-tubes. The flooding of Twenty-Two was an illustration on a large
-scale.
-
- * * * * *
-
-“By the Holy Grove, what has happened to the air!” It was a Sonthal
-gangman of Gang Mogul in Number Nine gallery, and he was driving a
-six-foot way through the coal. Then there was a rush from the other
-galleries, and Gang Janki and Gang Rahim stumbled up with their
-basket-women.
-
-“Water has come in the mine,” they said, “and there is no way of getting
-out.”
-
-“I went down,” said Janki—“down the slope of my gallery, and I felt the
-water.”
-
-“There has been no water in the cutting in our time,” clamoured the
-women. “Why cannot we go away?”
-
-“Be silent!” said Janki. “Long ago, when my father was here, water came
-to Ten—no, Eleven—cutting, and there was great trouble. Let us get away
-to where the air is better.”
-
-The three gangs and the basket-women left Number Nine gallery and went
-further up Number Sixteen. At one turn of the road they could see the
-pitchy black water lapping on the coal. It had touched the roof of a
-gallery that they knew well—a gallery where they used to smoke their
-_huqas_ and manage their flirtations. Seeing this, they called aloud
-upon their Gods, and the Meahs, who are thrice bastard Muhammadans,
-strove to recollect the name of the Prophet. They came to a great open
-square whence nearly all the coal had been extracted. It was the end of
-the out-workings, and the end of the mine.
-
-Far away down the gallery a small pumping-engine, used for keeping dry a
-deep working and fed with steam from above, was throbbing faithfully.
-They heard it cease.
-
-“They have cut off the steam,” said Kundoo hopefully. “They have given
-the order to use all the steam for the pit-bank pumps. They will clear
-out the water.”
-
-“If the water has reached the smoking-gallery,” said Janki, “all the
-Company’s pumps can do nothing for three days.”
-
-“It is very hot,” moaned Jasoda, the Meah basket-woman. “There is a very
-bad air here because of the lamps.”
-
-“Put them out,” said Janki; “why do you want lamps?” The lamps were put
-out and the company sat still in the utter dark. Somebody rose quietly
-and began walking over the coals. It was Janki, who was touching the
-walls with his hands. “Where is the ledge?” he murmured to himself.
-
-“Sit, sit!” said Kundoo. “If we die, we die. The air is very bad.”
-
-But Janki still stumbled and crept and tapped with his pick upon the
-walls. The women rose to their feet.
-
-“Stay all where you are. Without the lamps you cannot see, and I—I am
-always seeing,” said Janki. Then he paused, and called out: “Oh, you who
-have been in the cutting more than ten years, what is the name of this
-open place? I am an old man and I have forgotten.”
-
-“Bullia’s Room,” answered the Sonthal who had complained of the vileness
-of the air.
-
-“Again,” said Janki.
-
-“Bullia’s Room.”
-
-“Then I have found it,” said Janki. “The name only had slipped my
-memory. Tibu’s gang’s gallery is here.”
-
-“A lie,” said Kundoo. “There have been no galleries in this place since
-my day.”
-
-“Three paces was the depth of the ledge,” muttered Janki without
-heeding—“and—oh, my poor bones!—I have found it! It is here, up this
-ledge. Come all you, one by one, to the place of my voice, and I will
-count you.”
-
-There was a rush in the dark, and Janki felt the first man’s face hit
-his knees as the Sonthal scrambled up the ledge.
-
-“Who?” cried Janki.
-
-“I, Sunua Manji.”
-
-“Sit you down,” said Janki. “Who next?”
-
-One by one the women and the men crawled up the ledge which ran along
-one side of “Bullia’s Room.” Degraded Muhammadan, pig-eating Musahr and
-wild Sonthal, Janki ran his hand over them all.
-
-“Now follow after,” said he, “catching hold of my heel, and the women
-catching the men’s clothes.” He did not ask whether the men had brought
-their picks with them. A miner, black or white, does not drop his pick.
-One by one, Janki leading, they crept into the old gallery—a six-foot
-way with a scant four feet from thill to roof.
-
-“The air is better here,” said Jasoda. They could hear her heart beating
-in thick, sick bumps.
-
-“Slowly, slowly,” said Janki. “I am an old man, and I forget many
-things. This is Tibu’s gallery, but where are the four bricks where they
-used to put their _huqa_ fire on when the Sahibs never saw? Slowly,
-slowly, O you people behind.”
-
-They heard his hands disturbing the small coal on the floor of the
-gallery and then a dull sound. “This is one unbaked brick, and this is
-another and another. Kundoo is a young man—let him come forward. Put a
-knee upon this brick and strike here. When Tibu’s gang were at dinner on
-the last day before the good coal ended, they heard the men of Five on
-the other side, and Five worked _their_ gallery two Sundays later—or it
-may have been one. Strike there, Kundoo, but give me room to go back.”
-
-Kundoo, doubting, drove the pick, but the first soft crush of the coal
-was a call to him. He was fighting for his life and for Unda—pretty
-little Unda with rings on all her toes—for Unda and the forty rupees.
-The women sang the Song of the Pick—the terrible, slow, swinging melody
-with the muttered chorus that repeats the sliding of the loosened coal,
-and, to each cadence, Kundoo smote in the black dark. When he could do
-no more, Sunua Manji took the pick, and struck for his life and his
-wife, and his village beyond the blue hills over the Tarachunda River.
-An hour the men worked, and then the women cleared away the coal.
-
-“It is farther than I thought,” said Janki. “The air is very bad; but
-strike, Kundoo, strike hard.”
-
-For the fifth time Kundoo took up the pick as the Sonthal crawled back.
-The song had scarcely recommenced when it was broken by a yell from
-Kundoo that echoed down the gallery: “_Par hua! Par hua!_ We are
-through, we are through!” The imprisoned air in the mine shot through
-the opening, and the women at the far end of the gallery heard the water
-rush through the pillars of “Bullia’s Room” and roar against the ledge.
-Having fulfilled the law under which it worked, it rose no farther. The
-women screamed and pressed forward. “The water has come—we shall be
-killed! Let us go.”
-
-Kundoo crawled through the gap and found himself in a propped gallery by
-the simple process of hitting his head against a beam.
-
-“Do I know the pits or do I not?” chuckled Janki. “This is the Number
-Five; go you out slowly, giving me your names. Ho! Rahim, count your
-gang! Now let us go forward, each catching hold of the other as before.”
-
-They formed a line in the darkness and Janki led them—for a pit-man in a
-strange pit is only one degree less liable to err than an ordinary
-mortal underground for the first time. At last they saw a flare-lamp,
-and Gangs Janki, Mogul, and Rahim of Twenty-Two stumbled dazed into the
-glare of the draught-furnace at the bottom of Five: Janki feeling his
-way and the rest behind.
-
-“Water has come into Twenty-Two. God knows where are the others. I have
-brought these men from Tibu’s gallery in our cutting; making connection
-through the north side of the gallery. Take us to the cage,” said Janki
-Meah.
-
- * * * * *
-
-At the pit-bank of Twenty-Two some thousand people clamoured and wept
-and shouted. One hundred men—one thousand men—had been drowned in the
-cutting. They would all go to their homes to-morrow. Where were their
-men? Little Unda, her cloth drenched with the rain, stood at the
-pit-mouth, calling down the shaft for Kundoo. They had swung the cages
-clear of the mouth, and her only answer was the murmur of the flood in
-the pit’s eye two hundred and sixty feet below.
-
-“Look after that woman! She’ll chuck herself down the shaft in a
-minute,” shouted the Manager.
-
-But he need not have troubled; Unda was afraid of Death. She wanted
-Kundoo. The Assistant was watching the flood and seeing how far he could
-wade into it. There was a lull in the water, and the whirlpool had
-slackened. The mine was full, and the people at the pit-bank howled.
-
-“My faith, we shall be lucky if we have five hundred hands on the place
-to-morrow!” said the Manager. “There’s some chance yet of running a
-temporary dam across that water. Shove in anything—tubs and
-bullock-carts if you haven’t enough bricks. Make them work _now_ if they
-never worked before. Hi! you gangers, make them work.”
-
-Little by little the crowd was broken into detachments, and pushed
-towards the water with promises of overtime. The dam-making began, and
-when it was fairly under way, the Manager thought that the hour had come
-for the pumps. There was no fresh inrush into the mine. The tall, red,
-iron-clamped pump-beam rose and fell, and the pumps snored and guttered
-and shrieked as the first water poured out of the pipe.
-
-“We must run her all to-night,” said the Manager wearily, “but there’s
-no hope for the poor devils down below. Look here, Gur Sahai, if you are
-proud of your engines, show me what they can do now.”
-
-Gur Sahai grinned and nodded, with his right hand upon the lever and an
-oil-can in his left. He could do no more than he was doing, but he could
-keep that up till the dawn. Were the Company’s pumps to be beaten by the
-vagaries of that troublesome Tarachunda River? Never, never! And the
-pumps sobbed and panted: “Never, never!” The Manager sat in the shelter
-of the pit-bank roofing, trying to dry himself by the pump-boiler fire,
-and, in the dreary dusk, he saw the crowds on the dam scatter and fly.
-
-“That’s the end,” he groaned. “’Twill take us six weeks to persuade ’em
-that we haven’t tried to drown their mates on purpose. Oh, for a decent,
-rational Geordie!”
-
-But the flight had no panic in it. Men had run over from Five with
-astounding news, and the foremen could not hold their gangs together.
-Presently, surrounded by a clamorous crew, Gangs Rahim, Mogul, and
-Janki, and ten basket-women walked up to report themselves, and pretty
-little Unda stole away to Janki’s hut to prepare his evening meal.
-
-“Alone I found the way,” explained Janki Meah, “and now will the Company
-give me pension?”
-
-The simple pit-folk shouted and leaped and went back to the dam,
-reassured in their old belief that, whatever happened, so great was the
-power of the Company whose salt they ate, none of them could be killed.
-But Gur Sahai only bared his white teeth and kept his hand upon the
-lever and proved his pumps to the uttermost.
-
- * * * * *
-
-“I say,” said the Assistant to the Manager, a week later, “do you
-recollect ‘Germinal’?”
-
-“Yes. ’Queer thing. I thought of it in the cage when that balk went by.
-Why?”
-
-“Oh, this business seems to be ‘Germinal’ upside down. Janki was in my
-verandah all this morning, telling me that Kundoo had eloped with his
-wife—Unda or Anda, I think her name was.”
-
-“Hillo! And those were the cattle that you risked your life to clear out
-of Twenty-Two!”
-
-“No—I was thinking of the Company’s props, not the Company’s men.”
-
-“Sounds better to say so _now_; but I don’t believe you, old fellow.”
-
-
-
-
- JEWS IN SHUSHAN
-
- Copyright, 1891, by Macmillan & Co.
-
-
-My newly purchased house furniture was, at the least, insecure; the legs
-parted from the chairs, and the tops from the tables, on the slightest
-provocation. But such as it was, it was to be paid for, and Ephraim,
-agent and collector for the local auctioneer, waited in the verandah
-with the receipt. He was announced by the Mahomedan servant as “Ephraim,
-Yahudi”—Ephraim the Jew. He who believes in the Brotherhood of Man
-should hear my Elahi Bukhsh grinding the second word through his white
-teeth with all the scorn he dare show before his master. Ephraim was,
-personally, meek in manner—so meek indeed that one could not understand
-how he had fallen into the profession of bill-collecting. He resembled
-an over-fed sheep, and his voice suited his figure. There was a fixed,
-unvarying mask of childish wonder upon his face. If you paid him, he was
-as one marvelling at your wealth; if you sent him away, he seemed
-puzzled at your hard-heartedness. Never was Jew more unlike his dread
-breed.
-
-Ephraim wore list slippers and coats of duster-cloth, so preposterously
-patterned that the most brazen of British subalterns would have shied
-from them in fear. Very slow and deliberate was his speech, and
-carefully guarded to give offense to no one. After many weeks, Ephraim
-was induced to speak to me of his friends.
-
-“There be eight of us in Shushan, and we are waiting till there are ten.
-Then we shall apply for a synagogue, and get leave from Calcutta. To-day
-we have no synagogue; and I, only I, am Priest and Butcher to our
-people. I am of the tribe of Judah—I think, but I am not sure. My father
-was of the tribe of Judah, and we wish much to get our synagogue. I
-shall be a priest of that synagogue.”
-
-Shushan is a big city in the North of India, counting its dwellers by
-the ten thousand; and these eight of the Chosen People were shut up in
-its midst, waiting till time or chance sent them their full
-congregation.
-
-Miriam, the wife of Ephraim, two little children, an orphan boy of their
-people, Ephraim’s uncle Jackrael Israel, a white-haired old man, his
-wife Hester, a Jew from Cutch, one Hyem Benjamin, and Ephraim, Priest
-and Butcher, made up the list of the Jews in Shushan. They lived in one
-house, on the outskirts of the great city, amid heaps of saltpetre,
-rotten bricks, herds of kine, and a fixed pillar of dust caused by the
-incessant passing of the beasts to the river to drink. In the evening,
-the children of the City came to the waste place to fly their kites, and
-Ephraim’s sons held aloof, watching the sport from the roof, but never
-descending to take part in it. At the back of the house stood a small
-brick enclosure, in which Ephraim prepared the daily meat for his people
-after the custom of the Jews. Once the rude door of the square was
-suddenly smashed open by a struggle from inside, and showed the meek
-bill-collector at his work, nostrils dilated, lips drawn back over his
-teeth, and his hands upon a half-maddened sheep. He was attired in
-strange raiment, having no relation whatever to duster coats or list
-slippers, and a knife was in his mouth. As he struggled with the animal
-between the walls, the breath came from him in thick sobs, and the
-nature of the man seemed changed. When the ordained slaughter was ended,
-he saw that the door was open and shut it hastily, his hand leaving a
-red mark on the timber, while his children from the neighbouring
-house-top looked down awe-stricken and open-eyed. A glimpse of Ephraim
-busied in one of his religious capacities was no thing to be desired
-twice.
-
-Summer came upon Shushan, turning the trodden waste-ground to iron, and
-bringing sickness to the city.
-
-“It will not touch us,” said Ephraim confidently. “Before the winter we
-shall have our synagogue. My brother and his wife and children are
-coming up from Calcutta, and _then_ I shall be the priest of the
-synagogue.”
-
-Jackrael Israel, the old man, would crawl out in the stifling evenings
-to sit on the rubbish-heap and watch the corpses being borne down to the
-river.
-
-“It will not come near us,” said Jackrael Israel feebly, “for we are the
-people of God, and my nephew will be priest of our synagogue. Let them
-die.” He crept back to his house again and barred the door to shut
-himself off from the world of the Gentile.
-
-But Miriam, the wife of Ephraim, looked out of the window at the dead as
-the biers passed, and said that she was afraid. Ephraim comforted her
-with hopes of the synagogue to be, and collected bills as was his
-custom.
-
-In one night the two children died and were buried early in the morning
-by Ephraim. The deaths never appeared in the City returns. “The sorrow
-is my sorrow,” said Ephraim; and this to him seemed a sufficient reason
-for setting at naught the sanitary regulations of a large, flourishing,
-and remarkably well-governed Empire.
-
-The orphan boy, dependent on the charity of Ephraim and his wife, could
-have felt no gratitude, and must have been a ruffian. He begged for
-whatever money his protectors would give him, and with that fled down
-country for his life. A week after the death of her children Miriam left
-her bed at night and wandered over the country to find them. She heard
-them crying behind every bush, or drowning in every pool of water in the
-fields, and she begged the cartmen on the Grand Trunk Road not to steal
-her little ones from her. In the morning the sun rose and beat upon her
-bare head, and she turned into the cool, wet crops to lie down, and
-never came back, though Hyem Benjamin and Ephraim sought her for two
-nights.
-
-The look of patient wonder on Ephraim’s face deepened, but he presently
-found an explanation. “There are so few of us here, and these people are
-so many,” said he, “that, it may be, our God has forgotten us.”
-
-In the house on the outskirts of the city old Jackrael Israel and Hester
-grumbled that there was no one to wait on them, and that Miriam had been
-untrue to her race. Ephraim went out and collected bills, and in the
-evenings smoked with Hyem Benjamin till, one dawning, Hyem Benjamin
-died, having first paid all his debts to Ephraim. Jackrael Israel and
-Hester sat alone in the empty house all day, and, when Ephraim returned,
-wept the easy tears of age till they cried themselves asleep.
-
-A week later Ephraim, staggering under a huge bundle of clothes and
-cooking-pots, led the old man and woman to the railway station, where
-the bustle and confusion made them whimper.
-
-“We are going back to Calcutta,” said Ephraim, to whose sleeve Hester
-was clinging. “There are more of us there, and here my house is empty.”
-
-He helped Hester into the carriage and, turning back, said to me, “I
-should have been priest of the synagogue if there had been ten of us.
-Surely we must have been forgotten by our God.”
-
-The remnant of the broken colony passed out of the station on their
-journey south; while a subaltern, turning over the books on the
-bookstall, was whistling to himself “The Ten Little Nigger Boys.”
-
-But the tune sounded as solemn as the Dead March.
-
-It was the dirge of the Jews in Shushan.
-
-
-
-
- GEORGIE PORGIE
-
- Copyright, 1891, by Macmillan & Co.
-
- Georgie Porgie, pudding and pie,
- Kissed the girls and made them cry.
- When the girls came out to play
- Georgie Porgie ran away.
-
-
-If you will admit that a man has no right to enter his drawing-room
-early in the morning, when the housemaid is setting things right and
-clearing away the dust, you will concede that civilised people who eat
-out of china and own card-cases have no right to apply their standard of
-right and wrong to an unsettled land. When the place is made fit for
-their reception, by those men who are told off to the work, they can
-come up, bringing in their trunks their own society and the Decalogue,
-and all the other apparatus. Where the Queen’s Law does not carry, it is
-irrational to expect an observance of other and weaker rules. The men
-who run ahead of the cars of Decency and Propriety, and make the jungle
-ways straight, cannot be judged in the same manner as the stay-at-home
-folk of the ranks of the regular _Tchin_.
-
-Not many months ago the Queen’s Law stopped a few miles north of
-Thayetmyo on the Irrawaddy. There was no very strong Public Opinion up
-to that limit, but it existed to keep men in order. When the Government
-said that the Queen’s Law must carry up to Bhamo and the Chinese border,
-the order was given, and some men whose desire was to be ever a little
-in advance of the rush of Respectability flocked forward with the
-troops. These were the men who could never pass examinations, and would
-have been too pronounced in their ideas for the administration of
-bureau-worked Provinces. The Supreme Government stepped in as soon as
-might be, with codes and regulations, and all but reduced New Burma to
-the dead Indian level; but there was a short time during which strong
-men were necessary and ploughed a field for themselves.
-
-Among the fore-runners of Civilisation was Georgie Porgie, reckoned by
-all who knew him a strong man. He held an appointment in Lower Burma
-when the order came to break the Frontier, and his friends called him
-Georgie Porgie because of the singularly Burmese-like manner in which he
-sang a song whose first line is something like the words “Georgie
-Porgie.” Most men who have been in Burma will know the song. It means:
-“Puff, puff, puff, puff, great steamboat!” Georgie sang it to his banjo,
-and his friends shouted with delight, so that you could hear them far
-away in the teak-forest.
-
-When he went to Upper Burma he had no special regard for God or Man, but
-he knew how to make himself respected, and to carry out the mixed
-Military-Civil duties that fell to most men’s share in those months. He
-did his office work and entertained, now and again, the detachments of
-fever-shaken soldiers who blundered through his part of the world in
-search of a flying party of dacoits. Sometimes he turned out and dressed
-down dacoits on his own account; for the country was still smouldering
-and would blaze when least expected. He enjoyed these charivaris, but
-the dacoits were not so amused. All the officials who came in contact
-with him departed with the idea that Georgie Porgie was a valuable
-person, well able to take care of himself, and, on that belief, he was
-left to his own devices.
-
-At the end of a few months he wearied of his solitude, and cast about
-for company and refinement. The Queen’s Law had hardly begun to be felt
-in the country, and Public Opinion, which is more powerful than the
-Queen’s Law, had yet to come. Also, there was a custom in the country
-which allowed a white man to take to himself a wife of the Daughters of
-Heth upon due payment. The marriage was not quite so binding as is the
-_nikkah_ ceremony among Mahomedans, but the wife was very pleasant.
-
-When all our troops are back from Burma there will be a proverb in their
-mouths, “As thrifty as a Burmese wife,” and pretty English ladies will
-wonder what in the world it means.
-
-The headman of the village next to Georgie Porgie’s post had a fair
-daughter who had seen Georgie Porgie and loved him from afar. When news
-went abroad that the Englishman with the heavy hand who lived in the
-stockade was looking for a housekeeper, the headman came in and
-explained that, for five hundred rupees down, he would entrust his
-daughter to Georgie Porgie’s keeping, to be maintained in all honour,
-respect, and comfort, with pretty dresses, according to the custom of
-the country. This thing was done, and Georgie Porgie never repented it.
-
-He found his rough-and-tumble house put straight and made comfortable,
-his hitherto unchecked expenses cut down by one half, and himself petted
-and made much of by his new acquisition, who sat at the head of his
-table and sang songs to him and ordered his Madrassee servants about,
-and was in every way as sweet and merry and honest and winning a little
-woman as the most exacting of bachelors could have desired. No race, men
-say who know, produces such good wives and heads of households as the
-Burmese. When the next detachment tramped by on the war-path the
-Subaltern in Command found at Georgie Porgie’s table a hostess to be
-deferential to, a woman to be treated in every way as one occupying an
-assured position. When he gathered his men together next dawn and
-replunged into the jungle, he thought regretfully of the nice little
-dinner and the pretty face, and envied Georgie Porgie from the bottom of
-his heart. Yet _he_ was engaged to a girl at Home, and that is how some
-men are constructed.
-
-The Burmese girl’s name was not a pretty one; but as she was promptly
-christened Georgina by Georgie Porgie, the blemish did not matter.
-Georgie Porgie thought well of the petting and the general comfort, and
-vowed that he had never spent five hundred rupees to a better end.
-
-After three months of domestic life, a great idea struck him.
-Matrimony—English matrimony—could not be such a bad thing after all. If
-he were so thoroughly comfortable at the Back of Beyond with this
-Burmese girl who smoked cheroots, how much more comfortable would he be
-with a sweet English maiden who would not smoke cheroots, and would play
-upon a piano instead of a banjo? Also he had a desire to return to his
-kind, to hear a Band once more, and to feel how it felt to wear a
-dress-suit again. Decidedly, Matrimony would be a very good thing. He
-thought the matter out at length of evenings, while Georgina sang to
-him, or asked him why he was so silent, and whether she had done
-anything to offend him. As he thought he smoked, and as he smoked he
-looked at Georgina, and in his fancy turned her into a fair, thrifty,
-amusing, merry little English girl, with hair coming low down on her
-forehead, and perhaps a cigarette between her lips. Certainly not a big,
-thick, Burma cheroot, of the brand that Georgina smoked. He would wed a
-girl with Georgina’s eyes and most of her ways. But not all. She could
-be improved upon. Then he blew thick smoke-wreaths through his nostrils
-and stretched himself. He would taste marriage. Georgina had helped him
-to save money, and there were six months’ leave due to him.
-
-“See here, little woman,” he said, “we must put by more money for these
-next three months. I want it.” That was a direct slur on Georgina’s
-housekeeping; for she prided herself on her thrift; but since her God
-wanted money she would do her best.
-
-“You want money?” she said with a little laugh. “I _have_ money. Look!”
-She ran to her own room and fetched out a small bag of rupees. “Of all
-that you give me, I keep back some. See! One hundred and seven rupees.
-Can you want more money than that? Take it. It is my pleasure if you use
-it.” She spread out the money on the table and pushed it towards him
-with her quick, little, pale yellow fingers.
-
-Georgie Porgie never referred to economy in the household again.
-
-Three months later, after the despatch and receipt of several mysterious
-letters which Georgina could not understand, and hated for that reason,
-Georgie Porgie said that he was going away and she must return to her
-father’s house and stay there.
-
-Georgina wept. She would go with her God from the world’s end to the
-world’s end. Why should she leave him? She loved him.
-
-“I am only going to Rangoon,” said Georgie Porgie. “I shall be back in a
-month, but it is safer to stay with your father. I will leave you two
-hundred rupees.”
-
-“If you go for a month, what need of two hundred? Fifty are more than
-enough. There is some evil here. Do not go, or at least let me go with
-you.”
-
-Georgie Porgie does not like to remember that scene even at this date.
-In the end he got rid of Georgina by a compromise of seventy-five
-rupees. She would not take more. Then he went by steamer and rail to
-Rangoon.
-
-The mysterious letters had granted him six months’ leave. The actual
-flight and an idea that he might have been treacherous hurt severely at
-the time, but as soon as the big steamer was well out into the blue,
-things were easier, and Georgina’s face, and the queer little stockaded
-house, and the memory of the rushes of shouting dacoits by night, the
-cry and struggle of the first man that he had ever killed with his own
-hand, and a hundred other more intimate things, faded and faded out of
-Georgie Porgie’s heart, and the vision of approaching England took its
-place. The steamer was full of men on leave, all rampantly jovial souls
-who had shaken off the dust and sweat of Upper Burma and were as merry
-as schoolboys. They helped Georgie Porgie to forget.
-
-Then came England with its luxuries and decencies and comforts, and
-Georgie Porgie walked in a pleasant dream upon pavements of which he had
-nearly forgotten the ring, wondering why men in their senses ever left
-Town. He accepted his keen delight in his furlough as the reward of his
-services. Providence further arranged for him another and greater
-delight—all the pleasures of a quiet English wooing, quite different
-from the brazen businesses of the East, when half the community stand
-back and bet on the result, and the other half wonder what Mrs.
-So-and-So will say to it.
-
-It was a pleasant girl and a perfect summer, and a big country-house
-near Petworth where there are acres and acres of purple heather and
-high-grassed water-meadows to wander through. Georgie Porgie felt that
-he had at last found something worth the living for, and naturally
-assumed that the next thing to do was to ask the girl to share his life
-in India. She, in her ignorance, was willing to go. On this occasion
-there was no bartering with a village headman. There was a fine
-middle-class wedding in the country, with a stout Papa and a weeping
-Mamma, and a best man in purple and fine linen, and six snub-nosed girls
-from the Sunday-School to throw roses on the path between the tombstones
-up to the Church door. The local paper described the affair at great
-length, even down to giving the hymns in full. But that was because the
-Direction were starving for want of material.
-
-Then came a honeymoon at Arundel, and the Mamma wept copiously before
-she allowed her one daughter to sail away to India under the care of
-Georgie Porgie the Bridegroom. Beyond any question, Georgie Porgie was
-immensely fond of his wife, and she was devoted to him as the best and
-greatest man in the world. When he reported himself at Bombay he felt
-justified in demanding a good station for his wife’s sake; and, because
-he had made a little mark in Burma and was beginning to be appreciated,
-they allowed him nearly all that he asked for, and posted him to a
-station which we will call Sutrain. It stood upon several hills, and was
-styled officially a “Sanitarium,” for the good reason that the drainage
-was utterly neglected. Here Georgie Porgie settled down, and found
-married life come very naturally to him. He did not rave, as do many
-bridegrooms, over the strangeness and delight of seeing his own true
-love sitting down to breakfast with him every morning “as though it were
-the most natural thing in the world.” “He had been there before,” as the
-Americans say, and, checking the merits of his own present grace by
-those of Georgina, he was more and more inclined to think that he had
-done well.
-
-But there was no peace or comfort across the Bay of Bengal, under the
-teak-trees where Georgina lived with her father, waiting for Georgie
-Porgie to return. The headman was old, and remembered the war of ’51. He
-had been to Rangoon, and knew something of the ways of the _Kullahs_.
-Sitting in front of his door in the evenings, he taught Georgina a dry
-philosophy which did not console her in the least.
-
-The trouble was that she loved Georgie Porgie just as much as the French
-girl in the English History books loved the priest whose head was broken
-by the King’s bullies. One day she disappeared from the village, with
-all the rupees that Georgie Porgie had given her, and a very small
-smattering of English—also gained from Georgie Porgie.
-
-The headman was angry at first, but lit a fresh cheroot and said
-something uncomplimentary about the sex in general. Georgina had started
-on a search for Georgie Porgie, who might be in Rangoon, or across the
-Black Water, or dead, for aught that she knew. Chance favoured her. An
-old Sikh policeman told her that Georgie Porgie had crossed the Black
-Water. She took a steerage-passage from Rangoon and went to Calcutta,
-keeping the secret of her search to herself.
-
-In India every trace of her was lost for six weeks, and no one knows
-what trouble of heart she must have undergone.
-
-She reappeared, four hundred miles north of Calcutta, steadily heading
-northwards, very worn and haggard, but very fixed in her determination
-to find Georgie Porgie. She could not understand the language of the
-people; but India is infinitely charitable, and the women-folk along the
-Grand Trunk gave her food. Something made her believe that Georgie
-Porgie was to be found at the end of that pitiless road. She may have
-seen a sepoy who knew him in Burma, but of this no one can be certain.
-At last she found a regiment on the line of march, and met there one of
-the many subalterns whom Georgie Porgie had invited to dinner in the
-far-off, old days of the dacoit-hunting. There was a certain amount of
-amusement among the tents when Georgina threw herself at the man’s feet
-and began to cry. There was no amusement when her story was told; but a
-collection was made, and that was more to the point. One of the
-subalterns knew of Georgie Porgie’s whereabouts, but not of his
-marriage. So he told Georgina and she went her way joyfully to the
-north, in a railway carriage where there was rest for tired feet and
-shade for a dusty little head. The marches from the train through the
-hills into Sutrain were trying, but Georgina had money, and families
-journeying in bullock-carts gave her help. It was an almost miraculous
-journey, and Georgina felt sure that the good spirits of Burma were
-looking after her. The hill-road to Sutrain is a chilly stretch, and
-Georgina caught a bad cold. Still there was Georgie Porgie at the end of
-all the trouble to take her up in his arms and pet her, as he used to do
-in the old days when the stockade was shut for the night and he had
-approved of the evening meal. Georgina went forward as fast as she
-could; and her good spirits did her one last favour.
-
-An Englishman stopped her, in the twilight, just at the turn of the road
-into Sutrain, saying, “Good Heavens! What are you doing here?”
-
-He was Gillis, the man who had been Georgie Porgie’s assistant in Upper
-Burma, and who occupied the next post to Georgie Porgie’s in the jungle.
-Georgie Porgie had applied to have him to work with at Sutrain because
-he liked him.
-
-“I have come,” said Georgina simply. “It was such a long way, and I have
-been months in coming. Where is his house?”
-
-Gillis gasped. He had seen enough of Georgina in the old times to know
-that explanations would be useless. You cannot explain things to the
-Oriental. You must show.
-
-“I’ll take you there,” said Gillis, and he led Georgina off the road, up
-the cliff, by a little pathway, to the back of a house set on a platform
-cut into the hillside.
-
-The lamps were just lit, but the curtains were not drawn. “Now look,”
-said Gillis, stopping in front of the drawing-room window. Georgina
-looked and saw Georgie Porgie and the Bride.
-
-She put her hand up to her hair, which had come out of its top-knot and
-was straggling about her face. She tried to set her ragged dress in
-order, but the dress was past pulling straight, and she coughed a queer
-little cough, for she really had taken a very bad cold. Gillis looked,
-too, but while Georgina only looked at the Bride once, turning her eyes
-always on Georgie Porgie, Gillis looked at the Bride all the time.
-
-“What are you going to do?” said Gillis, who held Georgina by the wrist,
-in case of any unexpected rush into the lamplight. “Will you go in and
-tell that English woman that you lived with her husband?”
-
-“No,” said Georgina faintly. “Let me go. I am going away. I swear that I
-am going away.” She twisted herself free and ran off into the dark.
-
-“Poor little beast!” said Gillis, dropping on to the main road. “I’d ha’
-given her something to get back to Burma with. What a narrow shave,
-though! And that angel would never have forgiven it.”
-
-This seems to prove that the devotion of Gillis was not entirely due to
-his affection for Georgie Porgie.
-
-The Bride and the Bridegroom came out into the verandah after dinner, in
-order that the smoke of Georgie Porgie’s cheroots might not hang in the
-new drawing-room curtains.
-
-“What is that noise down there?” said the Bride. Both listened.
-
-“Oh,” said Georgie Porgie, “I suppose some brute of a hillman has been
-beating his wife.”
-
-“Beating—his—wife! How ghastly!” said the Bride. “Fancy _your_ beating
-_me_!” She slipped an arm round her husband’s waist, and, leaning her
-head against his shoulder, looked out across the cloud-filled valley in
-deep content and security.
-
-But it was Georgina crying, all by herself, down the hillside, among the
-stones of the water-course where the washermen wash the clothes.
-
-
-
-
- LITTLE TOBRAH
-
- Copyright, 1891, by Macmillan & Co.
-
-
-“Prisoner’s head did not reach to the top of the dock,” as the English
-newspapers say. This case, however, was not reported because nobody
-cared by so much as a hempen rope for the life or death of Little
-Tobrah. The assessors in the red courthouse sat upon him all through the
-long hot afternoon, and whenever they asked him a question he salaamed
-and whined. Their verdict was that the evidence was inconclusive, and
-the Judge concurred. It was true that the dead body of Little Tobrah’s
-sister had been found at the bottom of the well, and Little Tobrah was
-the only human being within a half-mile radius at the time; but the
-child might have fallen in by accident. Therefore Little Tobrah was
-acquitted, and told to go where he pleased. This permission was not so
-generous as it sounds, for he had nowhere to go to, nothing in
-particular to eat, and nothing whatever to wear.
-
-He trotted into the court-compound, and sat upon the well-curb,
-wondering whether an unsuccessful dive into the black water below would
-end in a forced voyage across the other Black Water. A groom put down an
-emptied nose-bag on the bricks, and Little Tobrah, being hungry, set
-himself to scrape out what wet grain the horse had overlooked.
-
-“O Thief—and but newly set free from the terror of the Law! Come along!”
-said the groom, and Little Tobrah was led by the ear to a large and fat
-Englishman, who heard the tale of the theft.
-
-“Hah!” said the Englishman three times (only he said a stronger word).
-“Put him into the net and take him home.” So Little Tobrah was thrown
-into the net of the cart, and, nothing doubting that he should be stuck
-like a pig, was driven to the Englishman’s house. “Hah!” said the
-Englishman as before. “Wet grain, by Jove! Feed the little beggar, some
-of you, and we’ll make a riding-boy of him? See? Wet grain, good Lord!”
-
-“Give an account of yourself,” said the head of the Grooms to Little
-Tobrah after the meal had been eaten and the servants lay at ease in
-their quarters behind the house. “You are not of the groom caste, unless
-it be for the stomach’s sake. How came you into the court, and why?
-Answer, little devil’s spawn!”
-
-“There was not enough to eat,” said Little Tobrah calmly. “This is a
-good place.”
-
-“Talk straight talk,” said the Head Groom, “or I will make you clean out
-the stable of that large red stallion who bites like a camel.”
-
-“We be _Telis_, oil-pressers,” said Little Tobrah, scratching his toes
-in the dust. “We were _Telis_—my father, my mother, my brother, the
-elder by four years, myself, and the sister.”
-
-“She who was found dead in the well?” said one who had heard something
-of the trial.
-
-“Even so,” said Little Tobrah gravely. “She who was found dead in the
-well. It befell upon a time, which is not in my memory, that the
-sickness came to the village where our oil-press stood, and first my
-sister was smitten as to her eyes, and went without sight, for it was
-_mata_—the small-pox. Thereafter, my father and my mother died of that
-same sickness, so we were alone—my brother who had twelve years, I who
-had eight, and the sister who could not see. Yet were there the bullock
-and the oil-press remaining, and we made shift to press the oil as
-before. But Surjun Dass, the grain-seller, cheated us in his dealings;
-and it was always a stubborn bullock to drive. We put marigold flowers
-for the Gods upon the neck of the bullock, and upon the great
-grinding-beam that rose through the roof; but we gained nothing thereby,
-and Surjun Dass was a hard man.”
-
-“_Bapri-bap_,” muttered the grooms’ wives, “to cheat a child so! But we
-know what the _bunnia_-folk are, sisters.”
-
-“The press was an old press, and we were not strong men—my brother and
-I; nor could we fix the neck of the beam firmly in the shackle.”
-
-“Nay, indeed,” said the gorgeously-clad wife of the Head Groom, joining
-the circle. “That is a strong man’s work. When I was a maid in my
-father’s house——”
-
-“Peace, woman,” said the Head Groom. “Go on, boy.”
-
-“It is nothing,” said Little Tobrah. “The big beam tore down the roof
-upon a day which is not in my memory, and with the roof fell much of the
-hinder wall, and both together upon our bullock, whose back was broken.
-Thus we had neither home, nor press, nor bullock—my brother, myself, and
-the sister who was blind. We went crying away from that place,
-hand-in-hand, across the fields; and our money was seven annas and six
-pie. There was a famine in the land. I do not know the name of the land.
-So, on a night when we were sleeping, my brother took the five annas
-that remained to us and ran away. I do not know whither he went. The
-curse of my father be upon him. But I and the sister begged food in the
-villages, and there was none to give. Only all men said—‘Go to the
-Englishmen and they will give.’ I did not know what the Englishmen were;
-but they said that they were white, living in tents. I went forward; but
-I cannot say whither I went, and there was no more food for myself or
-the sister. And upon a hot night, she weeping and calling for food, we
-came to a well, and I bade her sit upon the curb, and thrust her in,
-for, in truth, she could not see; and it is better to die than to
-starve.”
-
-“Ai! Ahi!” wailed the grooms’ wives in chorus; “he thrust her in, for it
-is better to die than to starve!”
-
-“I would have thrown myself in also, but that she was not dead and
-called to me from the bottom of the well, and I was afraid and ran. And
-one came out of the crops saying that I had killed her and defiled the
-well, and they took me before an Englishman, white and terrible, living
-in a tent, and me he sent here. But there were no witnesses, and it is
-better to die than to starve. She, furthermore, could not see with her
-eyes, and was but a little child.”
-
-“Was but a little child,” echoed the Head Groom’s wife. “But who art
-thou, weak as a fowl and small as a day-old colt, what art _thou_?”
-
-“I who was empty am now full,” said Little Tobrah, stretching himself
-upon the dust. “And I would sleep.”
-
-The groom’s wife spread a cloth over him while Little Tobrah slept the
-sleep of the just.
-
-
-
-
- GEMINI
-
- Great is the justice of the White Man—greater the power
- of a lie.—_Native Proverb._
-
-
-This is your English Justice, Protector of the Poor. Look at my back and
-loins which are beaten with sticks—heavy sticks! I am a poor man, and
-there is no justice in Courts.
-
-There were two of us, and we were born of one birth, but I swear to you
-that I was born the first, and Ram Dass is the younger by three full
-breaths. The astrologer said so, and it is written in my horoscope—the
-horoscope of Durga Dass.
-
-But we were alike—I and my brother who is a beast without honour—so
-alike that none knew, together or apart, which was Durga Dass. I am a
-Mahajun of Pali in Marwar, and an honest man. This is true talk. When we
-were men, we left our father’s house in Pali, and went to the Punjab,
-where all the people are mud-heads and sons of asses. We took shop
-together in Isser Jang—I and my brother—near the big well where the
-Governor’s camp draws water. But Ram Dass, who is without truth, made
-quarrel with me, and we were divided. He took his books, and his pots,
-and his Mark, and became a _bunnia_—a money-lender—in the long street of
-Isser Jang, near the gateway of the road that goes to Montgomery. It was
-not my fault that we pulled each other’s turbans. I am a Mahajun of
-Pali, and I _always_ speak true talk. Ram Dass was the thief and the
-liar.
-
-Now no man, not even the little children, could at one glance see which
-was Ram Dass and which was Durga Dass. But all the people of Isser
-Jang—may they die without sons!—said that we were thieves. They used
-much bad talk, but I took money on their bedsteads and their
-cooking-pots and the standing crop and the calf unborn, from the well in
-the big square to the gate of the Montgomery road. They were fools,
-these people—unfit to cut the toe-nails of a Marwari from Pali. I lent
-money to them all. A little, very little only—here a pice and there a
-pice. God is my witness that I am a poor man! The money is all with Ram
-Dass—may his sons turn Christian, and his daughter be a burning fire and
-a shame in the house from generation to generation! May she die unwed,
-and be the mother of a multitude of bastards! Let the light go out in
-the house of Ram Dass, my brother. This I pray daily twice—with
-offerings and charms.
-
-Thus the trouble began. We divided the town of Isser Jang between us—I
-and my brother. There was a landholder beyond the gates, living but one
-short mile out, on the road that leads to Montgomery, and his name was
-Muhammad Shah, son of a Nawab. He was a great devil and drank wine. So
-long as there were women in his house, and wine and money for the
-marriage-feasts, he was merry and wiped his mouth. Ram Dass lent him the
-money, a lakh or half a lakh—how do I know?—and so long as the money was
-lent, the landholder cared not what he signed.
-
-The people of Isser Jang were my portion, and the landholder and the
-out-town were the portion of Ram Dass; for so we had arranged. I was the
-poor man, for the people of Isser Jang were without wealth. I did what I
-could, but Ram Dass had only to wait without the door of the
-landholder’s garden-court, and to lend him the money; taking the bonds
-from the hand of the steward.
-
-In the autumn of the year after the lending, Ram Dass said to the
-landholder: “Pay me my money,” but the landholder gave him abuse. But
-Ram Dass went into the Courts with the papers and the bonds—all
-correct—and took out decrees against the landholder; and the name of the
-Government was across the stamps of the decrees. Ram Dass took field by
-field, and mango-tree by mango-tree, and well by well; putting in his
-own men—debtors of the out-town of Isser Jang—to cultivate the crops. So
-he crept up across the land, for he had the papers, and the name of the
-Government was across the stamps, till his men held the crops for him on
-all sides of the big white house of the landholder. It was well done;
-but when the landholder saw these things he was very angry and cursed
-Ram Dass after the manner of the Muhammadans.
-
-And thus the landholder was angry, but Ram Dass laughed and claimed more
-fields, as was written upon the bonds. This was in the month of Phagun.
-I took my horse and went out to speak to the man who makes lac-bangles
-upon the road that leads to Montgomery, because he owed me a debt. There
-was in front of me, upon his horse, my brother Ram Dass. And when he saw
-me, he turned aside into the high crops, because there was hatred
-between us. And I went forward till I came to the orange-bushes by the
-landholder’s house. The bats were flying, and the evening smoke was low
-down upon the land. Here met me four men—swashbucklers and
-Muhammadans—with their faces bound up, laying hold of my horse’s bridle
-and crying out: “This is Ram Dass! Beat!” Me they beat with their
-staves—heavy staves bound about with wire at the end, such weapons as
-those swine of Punjabis use—till, having cried for mercy, I fell down
-senseless. But these shameless ones still beat me, saying: “O Ram Dass,
-this is your interest—well weighed and counted into your hand, Ram
-Dass.” I cried aloud that I was not Ram Dass, but Durga Dass, his
-brother, yet they only beat me the more, and when I could make no more
-outcry they left me. But I saw their faces. There was Elahi Baksh who
-runs by the side of the landholder’s white horse, and Nur Ali the keeper
-of the door, and Wajib Ali the very strong cook, and Abdul Latif the
-messenger—all of the household of the landholder. These things I can
-swear on the Cow’s Tail if need be, but—_Ahi! Ahi!_—it has been already
-sworn, and I am a poor man whose honour is lost.
-
-When these four had gone away laughing, my brother Ram Dass came out of
-the crops and mourned over me as one dead. But I opened my eyes, and
-prayed him to get me water. When I had drunk, he carried me on his back,
-and by byways brought me into the town of Isser Jang. My heart was
-turned to Ram Dass, my brother, in that hour, because of his kindness,
-and I lost my enmity.
-
-But a snake is a snake till it is dead; and a liar is a liar till the
-Judgment of the Gods takes hold of his heel. I was wrong in that I
-trusted my brother—the son of my mother.
-
-When we had come to his house and I was a little restored, I told him my
-tale, and he said: “Without doubt it is me whom they would have beaten.
-But the Law Courts are open, and there is the Justice of the Sirkar
-above all; and to the Law Courts do thou go when this sickness is
-over-past.”
-
-Now when we two had left Pali in the old years, there fell a famine that
-ran from Jeysulmir to Gurgaon and touched Gogunda in the south. At that
-time the sister of my father came away and lived with us in Isser Jang;
-for a man must above all see that his folk do not die of want. When the
-quarrel between us twain came about, the sister of my father—a lean
-she-dog without teeth—said that Ram Dass had the right, and went with
-him. Into her hands—because she knew medicines and many cures—Ram Dass,
-my brother, put me faint with the beating, and much bruised even to the
-pouring of blood from the mouth. When I had two days’ sickness the fever
-came upon me; and I set aside the fever to the account written in my
-mind against the landholder.
-
-The Punjabis of Isser Jang are all the sons of Belial and a she-ass, but
-they are very good witnesses, bearing testimony unshakingly whatever the
-pleaders may say. I would purchase witnesses by the score, and each man
-should give evidence, not only against Nur Ali, Wajib Ali, Abdul Latif,
-and Elahi Baksh, but against the landholder, saying that he upon his
-white horse had called his men to beat me; and, further that they had
-robbed me of two hundred rupees. For the latter testimony I would remit
-a little of the debt of the man who sold the lac-bangles, and he should
-say that he had put the money into my hands, and had seen the robbery
-from afar, but, being afraid, had run away. This plan I told to my
-brother Ram Dass; and he said that the arrangement was good, and bade me
-take comfort and make swift work to be abroad again. My heart was opened
-to my brother in my sickness, and I told him the names of those whom I
-would call as witnesses—all men in my debt, but of that the Magistrate
-Sahib could have no knowledge, nor the landholder. The fever stayed with
-me, and after the fever I was taken with colic, and gripings very
-terrible. In that day I thought that my end was at hand, but I know now
-that she who gave me the medicines, the sister of my father—a widow with
-a widow’s heart—had brought about my second sickness. Ram Dass, my
-brother, said that my house was shut and locked, and brought me the big
-door-key and my books, together with all the moneys that were in my
-house—even the money that was buried under the floor; for I was in great
-fear lest thieves should break in and dig. I speak true talk; there was
-but very little money in my house. Perhaps ten rupees—perhaps twenty.
-How can I tell? God is my witness that I am a poor man.
-
-One night when I had told Ram Dass all that was in my heart of the
-lawsuit that I would bring against the landholder, and Ram Dass had said
-that he had made the arrangements with the witnesses, giving me their
-names written, I was taken with a new great sickness, and they put me on
-the bed. When I was a little recovered—I cannot tell how many days
-afterwards—I made enquiry for Ram Dass, and the sister of my father said
-that he had gone to Montgomery upon a lawsuit. I took medicine and slept
-very heavily without waking. When my eyes were opened, there was a great
-stillness in the house of Ram Dass, and none answered when I called—not
-even the sister of my father. This filled me with fear, for I knew not
-what had happened.
-
-Taking a stick in my hand, I went out slowly, till I came to the great
-square by the well, and my heart was hot in me against the landholder
-because of the pain of every step I took.
-
-I called for Jowar Singh, the carpenter, whose name was first upon the
-list of those who should bear evidence against the landholder, saying:
-“Are all things ready, and do you know what should be said?”
-
-Jowar Singh answered: “What is this, and whence do you come, Durga
-Dass?”
-
-I said: “From my bed, where I have so long lain sick because of the
-landholder. Where is Ram Dass, my brother, who was to have made the
-arrangement for the witnesses? Surely you and yours know these things!”
-
-Then Jowar Singh said: “What has this to do with us, O Liar? I have
-borne witness and I have been paid, and the landholder has, by the order
-of the Court, paid both the five hundred rupees that he robbed from Ram
-Dass and yet other five hundred because of the great injury he did to
-your brother.”
-
-The well and the jujube-tree above it and the square of Isser Jang
-became dark in my eyes, but I leaned on my stick and said: “Nay! This is
-child’s talk and senseless. It was I who suffered at the hands of the
-landholder, and I am come to make ready the case. Where is my brother
-Ram Dass?”
-
-But Jowar Singh shook his head, and a woman cried: “What lie is here?
-What quarrel had the landholder with you, _bunnia_? It is only a
-shameless one and one without faith who profits by his brother’s smarts.
-Have these _bunnias_ no bowels?”
-
-I cried again, saying: “By the Cow—by the Oath of the Cow, by the Temple
-of the Blue-throated Mahadeo, I and I only was beaten—beaten to the
-death! Let your talk be straight, O people of Isser Jang, and I will pay
-for the witnesses.” And I tottered where I stood, for the sickness and
-the pain of the beating were heavy upon me.
-
-Then Ram Narain, who has his carpet spread under the jujube-tree by the
-well, and writes all letters for the men of the town, came up and said:
-“To-day is the one and fortieth day since the beating, and since these
-six days the case has been judged in the Court, and the Assistant
-Commissioner Sahib has given it for your brother Ram Dass, allowing the
-robbery, to which, too, I bore witness, and all things else as the
-witnesses said. There were many witnesses, and twice Ram Dass became
-senseless in the Court because of his wounds, and the Stunt Sahib—the
-_baba_ Stunt Sahib—gave him a chair before all the pleaders. Why do you
-howl, Durga Dass? These things fell as I have said. Was it not so?”
-
-And Jowar Singh said: “That is truth. I was there, and there was a red
-cushion in the chair.”
-
-And Ram Narain said: “Great shame has come upon the landholder because
-of this judgment, and fearing his anger, Ram Dass and all his house have
-gone back to Pali. Ram Dass told us that you also had gone first, the
-enmity being healed between you, to open a shop in Pali. Indeed, it were
-well for you that you go even now, for the landholder has sworn that if
-he catch any one of your house, he will hang him by the heels from the
-well-beam, and, swinging him to and fro, will beat him with staves till
-the blood runs from his ears. What I have said in respect to the case is
-true, as these men here can testify—even to the five hundred rupees.”
-
-I said: “Was it five hundred?” And Kirpa Ram, the Jat, said: “Five
-hundred; for I bore witness also.”
-
-And I groaned, for it had been in my heart to have said two hundred
-only.
-
-Then a new fear came upon me and my bowels turned to water, and, running
-swiftly to the house of Ram Dass, I sought for my books and my money in
-the great wooden chest under my bedstead. There remained nothing: not
-even a cowrie’s value. All had been taken by the devil who said he was
-my brother. I went to my own house also and opened the boards of the
-shutters; but there also was nothing save the rats among the
-grain-baskets. In that hour my senses left me, and, tearing my clothes,
-I ran to the well-place, crying out for the Justice of the English on my
-brother Ram Dass, and, in my madness, telling all that the books were
-lost. When men saw that I would have jumped down the well, they believed
-the truth of my talk; more especially because upon my back and bosom
-were still the marks of the staves of the landholder.
-
-Jowar Singh the carpenter withstood me, and turning me in his hands—for
-he is a very strong man—showed the scars upon my body, and bowed down
-with laughter upon the well-curb. He cried aloud so that all heard him,
-from the well-square to the Caravanserai of the Pilgrims: “Oho! The
-jackals have quarrelled, and the gray one has been caught in the trap.
-In truth, this man has been grievously beaten, and his brother has taken
-the money which the Court decreed! Oh, _bunnia_, this shall be told for
-years against you! The jackals have quarrelled, and, moreover, the books
-are burned. O people indebted to Durga Dass—and I know that ye be
-many—the books are burned!”
-
-Then all Isser Jang took up the cry that the books were burned—_Ahi!
-Ahi!_ that in my folly I had let that escape my mouth—and they laughed
-throughout the city. They gave me the abuse of the Punjabi, which is a
-terrible abuse and very hot; pelting me also with sticks and cow-dung
-till I fell down and cried for mercy.
-
-Ram Narain, the letter-writer, bade the people cease, for fear that the
-news should get into Montgomery, and the Policemen might come down to
-enquire. He said, using many bad words: “This much mercy will I do to
-you, Durga Dass, though there was no mercy in your dealings with my
-sister’s son over the matter of the dun heifer. Has any man a pony on
-which he sets no store, that this fellow may escape? If the landholder
-hears that one of the twain (and God knows whether he beat one or both,
-but this man is certainly beaten) be in the city, there will be a murder
-done, and then will come the Police, making inquisition into each man’s
-house and eating the sweet-seller’s stuff all day long.”
-
-Kirpa Ram, the Jat, said: “I have a pony very sick. But with beating he
-can be made to walk for two miles. If he dies, the hide-sellers will
-have the body.”
-
-Then Chumbo, the hide-seller, said: “I will pay three annas for the
-body, and will walk by this man’s side till such time as the pony dies.
-If it be more than two miles, I will pay two annas only.”
-
-Kirpa Ram said: “Be it so.” Men brought out the pony, and I asked leave
-to draw a little water from the well, because I was dried up with fear.
-
-Then Ram Narain said: “Here be four annas. God has brought you very low,
-Durga Dass, and I would not send you away empty, even though the matter
-of my sister’s son’s dun heifer be an open sore between us. It is a long
-way to your own country. Go, and if it be so willed, live; but, above
-all, do not take the pony’s bridle, for that is mine.”
-
-And I went out of Isser Jang, amid the laughing of the huge-thighed
-Jats, and the hide-seller walked by my side waiting for the pony to fall
-dead. In one mile it died, and being full of fear of the landholder, I
-ran till I could run no more, and came to this place.
-
-But I swear by the Cow, I swear by all things whereon Hindus and
-Musalmans, and even the Sahibs swear, that I, and not my brother, was
-beaten by the landholder. But the case is shut and the doors of the Law
-Courts are shut, and God knows where the _baba_ Stunt Sahib—the mother’s
-milk is not yet dry upon his hairless lip—is gone. _Ahi! Ahi!_ I have no
-witnesses, and the scars will heal, and I am a poor man. But, on my
-Father’s Soul, on the oath of a Mahajun from Pali, I, and not my
-brother, I was beaten by the landholder!
-
-What can I do? The Justice of the English is as a great river. Having
-gone forward, it does not return. Howbeit, do you, Sahib, take a pen and
-write clearly what I have said, that the Dipty Sahib may see, and remove
-the Stunt Sahib, who is a colt yet unlicked by the mare, so young is he.
-I, and not my brother, was beaten, and he is gone to the west—I do not
-know where.
-
-But, above all things, write—so that Sahibs may read, and his disgrace
-be accomplished—that Ram Dass, my brother, son of Purun Dass, Mahajun of
-Pali, is a swine and a night-thief, a taker of life, an eater of flesh,
-a jackal-spawn without beauty, or faith, or cleanliness, or honour!
-
-
-
-
- THE LIMITATIONS OF PAMBÉ SERANG
-
- Copyright, 1891, by Macmillan & Co.
-
-
-If you consider the circumstances of the case, it was the only thing
-that he could do. But Pambé Serang has been hanged by the neck till he
-is dead, and Nurkeed is dead also.
-
-Three years ago, when the Elsass-Lothringen steamer _Saarbruck_ was
-coaling at Aden and the weather was very hot indeed, Nurkeed, the big
-fat Zanzibar stoker who fed the second right furnace thirty feet down in
-the hold, got leave to go ashore. He departed “a Seedee boy,” as they
-call the stokers; he returned the full-blooded Sultan of Zanzibar—His
-Highness Sayyid Burgash, with a bottle in each hand. Then he sat on the
-fore-hatch grating, eating salt fish and onions, and singing the songs
-of a far country. The food belonged to Pambé, the serang or head man of
-the lascar sailors. He had just cooked it for himself, turned to borrow
-some salt, and when he came back Nurkeed’s dirty black fingers were
-spading into the rice.
-
-A serang is a person of importance, far above a stoker, though the
-stoker draws better pay. He sets the chorus of “Hya! Hulla! Hee-ah!
-Heh!” when the captain’s gig is pulled up to the davits; he heaves the
-lead too; and sometimes, when all the ship is lazy, he puts on his
-whitest muslin and a big red sash, and plays with the passengers’
-children on the quarter-deck. Then the passengers give him money, and he
-saves it all up for an orgy at Bombay or Calcutta, or Pulu Penang.
-
-“Ho! you fat black barrel, you’re eating my food!” said Pambé, in the
-Other Lingua Franca that begins where the Levant tongue stops, and runs
-from Port Said eastward till east is west, and the sealing-brigs of the
-Kurile Islands gossip with the strayed Hakodate junks.
-
-“Son of Eblis, monkey-face, dried shark’s liver, pig-man, I am the
-Sultan Sayyid Burgash, and the commander of all this ship. Take away
-your garbage”; and Nurkeed thrust the empty pewter rice-plate into
-Pambé’s hand.
-
-Pambé beat it into a basin over Nurkeed’s woolly head. Nurkeed drew his
-sheath-knife and stabbed Pambé in the leg. Pambé drew _his_
-sheath-knife; but Nurkeed dropped down into the darkness of the hold and
-spat through the grating at Pambé, who was staining the clean fore-deck
-with his blood.
-
-Only the white moon saw these things; for the officers were looking
-after the coaling, and the passengers were tossing in their close
-cabins. “All right,” said Pambé—and went forward to tie up his leg—“we
-will settle the account later on.”
-
-He was a Malay born in India: married once in Burma, where his wife had
-a cigar-shop on the Shwe-Dagon road; once in Singapore, to a Chinese
-girl; and once in Madras, to a Mahomedan woman who sold fowls. The
-English sailor cannot, owing to postal and telegraph facilities, marry
-as profusely as he used to do; but native sailors can, being
-uninfluenced by the barbarous inventions of the Western savage. Pambé
-was a good husband when he happened to remember the existence of a wife;
-but he was also a very good Malay; and it is not wise to offend a Malay,
-because he does not forget anything. Moreover, in Pambé’s case blood had
-been drawn and food spoiled.
-
-Next morning Nurkeed rose with a blank mind. He was no longer Sultan of
-Zanzibar, but a very hot stoker. So he went on deck and opened his
-jacket to the morning breeze, till a sheath-knife came like a
-flying-fish and stuck into the wood-work of the cook’s galley half an
-inch from his right armpit. He ran down below before his time, trying to
-remember what he could have said to the owner of the weapon. At noon,
-when all the ship’s lascars were feeding, Nurkeed advanced into their
-midst, and, being a placid man with a large regard for his own skin, he
-opened negotiations, saying, “Men of the ship, last night I was drunk,
-and this morning I know that I behaved unseemly to some one or another
-of you. Who was that man, that I may meet him face to face and say that
-I was drunk?”
-
-Pambé measured the distance to Nurkeed’s naked breast. If he sprang at
-him he might be tripped up, and a blind blow at the chest sometimes only
-means a gash on the breast-bone. Ribs are difficult to thrust between
-unless the subject be asleep. So he said nothing; nor did the other
-lascars. Their faces immediately dropped all expression, as is the
-custom of the Oriental when there is killing on the carpet or any chance
-of trouble. Nurkeed looked long at the white eyeballs. He was only an
-African, and could not read characters. A big sigh—almost a groan—broke
-from him, and he went back to the furnaces. The lascars took up the
-conversation where he had interrupted it. They talked of the best
-methods of cooking rice.
-
-Nurkeed suffered considerably from lack of fresh air during the run to
-Bombay. He only came on deck to breathe when all the world was about;
-and even then a heavy block once dropped from a derrick within a foot of
-his head, and an apparently firm-lashed grating on which he set his foot
-began to turn over with the intention of dropping him on the cased cargo
-fifteen feet below; and one insupportable night the sheath-knife dropped
-from the fo’c’s’le, and this time it drew blood. So Nurkeed made
-complaint; and, when the _Saarbruck_ reached Bombay, fled and buried
-himself among eight hundred thousand people, and did not sign articles
-till the ship had been a month gone from the port. Pambé waited too; but
-his Bombay wife grew clamorous, and he was forced to sign in the
-_Spicheren_ to Hongkong, because he realised that all play and no work
-gives Jack a ragged shirt. In the foggy China seas he thought a great
-deal of Nurkeed, and, when Elsass-Lothringen steamers lay in port with
-the _Spicheren_, inquired after him and found he had gone to England
-_via_ the Cape, on the _Gravelotte_. Pambé came to England on the
-_Worth_. The _Spicheren_ met her by the Nore Light. Nurkeed was going
-out with the _Spicheren_ to the Calicut coast.
-
-“Want to find a friend, my trap-mouthed coal-scuttle?” said a gentleman
-in the mercantile service. “Nothing easier. Wait at the Nyanza Docks
-till he comes. Every one comes to the Nyanza Docks. Wait, you poor
-heathen.” The gentleman spoke truth. There are three great doors in the
-world where, if you stand long enough, you shall meet any one you wish.
-The head of the Suez Canal is one, but there Death comes also; Charing
-Cross Station is the second—for inland work; and the Nyanza Docks is the
-third. At each of these places are men and women looking eternally for
-those who will surely come. So Pambé waited at the docks. Time was no
-object to him; and the wives could wait, as he did from day to day, week
-to week, and month to month, by the Blue Diamond funnels, the Red Dot
-smoke-stacks, the Yellow Streaks, and the nameless dingy gypsies of the
-sea that loaded and unloaded, jostled, whistled, and roared in the
-everlasting fog. When money failed, a kind gentleman told Pambé to
-become a Christian; and Pambé became one with great speed, getting his
-religious teachings between ship and ship’s arrival, and six or seven
-shillings a week for distributing tracts to mariners. What the faith was
-Pambé did not in the least care; but he knew if he said “Native
-Ki-lis-ti-an, Sar,” to men with long black coats he might get a few
-coppers; and the tracts were vendible at a little public-house that sold
-shag by the “dottel,” which is even smaller weight than the half-screw,
-which is less than the half-ounce, and a most profitable retail trade.
-
-But after eight months Pambé fell sick with pneumonia, contracted from
-long standing still in slush; and much against his will he was forced to
-lie down in his two-and-sixpenny room raging against Fate.
-
-The kind gentleman sat by his bedside, and grieved to find that Pambé
-talked in strange tongues, instead of listening to good books, and
-almost seemed to become a benighted heathen again—till one day he was
-roused from semi-stupor by a voice in the street by the dock-head. “My
-friend—he,” whispered Pambé. “Call now—call Nurkeed. Quick! God has sent
-him!”
-
-“He wanted one of his own race,” said the kind gentleman; and, going
-out, he called “Nurkeed!” at the top of his voice. An excessively
-coloured man in a rasping white shirt and brand-new slops, a shining
-hat, and a breast-pin, turned round. Many voyages had taught Nurkeed how
-to spend his money and made him a citizen of the world.
-
-“Hi! Yes!” said he, when the situation was explained. “Command him—black
-nigger—when I was in the _Saarbruck_. Ole Pambé, good ole Pambé. Dam
-lascar. Show him up, Sar”; and he followed into the room. One glance
-told the stoker what the kind gentleman had overlooked. Pambé was
-desperately poor. Nurkeed drove his hands deep into his pockets, then
-advanced with clenched fists on the sick, shouting, “Hya, Pambé. Hya!
-Hee-ah! Hulla! Heh! Takilo! Takilo! Make fast aft, Pambé. You know,
-Pambé. You know me. Dekho, jee! Look! Dam big fat lazy lascar!”
-
-Pambé beckoned with his left hand. His right was under his pillow.
-Nurkeed removed his gorgeous hat and stooped over Pambé till he could
-catch a faint whisper. “How beautiful!” said the kind gentleman. “How
-these Orientals love like children!”
-
-“Spit him out,” said Nurkeed, leaning over Pambé yet more closely.
-
-“Touching the matter of that fish and onions,” said Pambé—and sent the
-knife home under the edge of the rib-bone upwards and forwards.
-
-There was a thick, sick cough, and the body of the African slid slowly
-from the bed, his clutching hands letting fall a shower of silver pieces
-that ran across the room.
-
-“Now I can die!” said Pambé.
-
-But he did not die. He was nursed back to life with all the skill that
-money could buy, for the Law wanted him; and in the end he grew
-sufficiently healthy to be hanged in due and proper form.
-
-Pambé did not care particularly; but it was a sad blow to the kind
-gentleman.
-
-
-
-
- ONE VIEW OF THE QUESTION
-
- Copyright, 1893, by D. Appleton & Co.
-
-
-_From Shafiz Ullah Khan, son of Hyat Ullah Khan, in the honoured service
- of His Highness the Rao Sahib of Jagesur, which is in the northern
- borders of Hindustan, and Orderly to His Highness, this to Kazi
- Jamal-ud-Din, son of Kazi Ferisht ud Din Khan, in the service of the
- Rao Sahib, a minister much honoured. From that place which they call
- the Northbrook Club, in the town of London, under the shadow of the
- Empress, it is written_:
-
- Between brother and chosen brother be no long protestations of Love
- and Sincerity. Heart speaks naked to Heart, and the Head answers for
- all. Glory and Honour on thy house till the ending of the years, and
- a tent in the borders of Paradise.
-
-MY BROTHER,—In regard to that for which I was despatched follows the
-account. I have purchased for the Rao Sahib, and paid sixty pounds in
-every hundred, the things he most desired. Thus, two of the great
-fawn-coloured tiger-dogs, male and female, their pedigree being written
-upon paper, and silver collars adorning their necks. For the Rao Sahib’s
-greater pleasure I send them at once by the steamer, in charge of a man
-who will render account of them at Bombay to the bankers there. They are
-the best of all dogs in this place. Of guns I have bought five—two
-silver-sprigged in the stock, with gold scroll-work about the hammer,
-both double-barrelled, hard-striking, cased in velvet and red leather;
-three of unequalled workmanship, but lacking adornment; a pump-gun that
-fires fourteen times—this when the Rao Sahib drives pig; a
-double-barrelled shell-gun for tiger, and that is a miracle of
-workmanship; and a fowling-piece no lighter than a feather, with green
-and blue cartridges by the thousand. Also a very small rifle for
-blackbuck, that yet would slay a man at four hundred paces. The harness
-with the golden crests for the Rao Sahib’s coach is not yet complete, by
-reason of the difficulty of lining the red velvet into leather; but the
-two-horse harness and the great saddle with the golden holsters that is
-for state use have been put with camphor into a tin box, and I have
-signed it with my ring. Of the grained-leather case of women’s tools and
-tweezers for the hair and beard, of the perfumes and the silks, and all
-that was wanted by the women behind the curtains, I have no knowledge.
-They are matters of long coming, and the hawk-bells, hoods, and jesses
-with the golden lettering are as much delayed as they. Read this in the
-Rao Sahib’s ear, and speak of my diligence and zeal, that favour may not
-be abated by absence, and keep the eye of constraint upon that jesting
-dog without teeth—Bahadur Shah—for by thy aid and voice, and what I have
-done in regard to the guns, I look, as thou knowest, for the headship of
-the army of Jagesur. That conscienceless one desires it also, and I have
-heard that the Rao Sahib leans thatward. Have ye done, then, with the
-drinking of wine in your house, my brother, or has Bahadur Shah become a
-forswearer of brandy? I would not that drink should end him, but the
-well-mixed draught leads to madness. Consider.
-
-And now in regard to this land of the Sahibs, follows that thou hast
-demanded. God is my witness that I have striven to understand all that I
-saw and a little of what I heard. My words and intention are those of
-truth, yet it may be that I write of nothing but lies.
-
-Since the first wonder and bewilderment of my beholding is gone—we note
-the jewels in the ceiling-dome, but later the filth on the floor—I see
-clearly that this town, London, which is as large as all Jagesur, is
-accursed, being dark and unclean, devoid of sun, and full of low-born,
-who are perpetually drunk, and howl in the streets like jackals, men and
-women together. At nightfall it is the custom of countless thousands of
-women to descend into the streets and sweep them, roaring, making jests,
-and demanding liquor. At the hour of this attack it is the custom of the
-householders to take their wives and children to the playhouses and the
-places of entertainment; evil and good thus returning home together as
-do kine from the pools at sundown. I have never seen any sight like this
-sight in all the world, and I doubt that a double is to be found on the
-hither side of the gates of Hell. Touching the mystery of their craft,
-it is an ancient one, but the householders assemble in herds, being men
-and women, and cry aloud to their God that it is not there; the said
-women pounding at the doors without. Moreover, upon the day when they go
-to prayer the drink-places are only opened when the mosques are shut; as
-who should dam the Jumna river for Friday only. Therefore the men and
-women, being forced to accomplish their desires in the shorter space,
-become the more furiously drunk, and roll in the gutter together. They
-are there regarded by those going to pray. Further, and for visible sign
-that the place is forgotten of God, there falls upon certain days,
-without warning, a cold darkness, whereby the sun’s light is altogether
-cut off from all the city and the people, male and female, and the
-drivers of the vehicles grope and howl in this Pit at high noon, none
-seeing the other. The air being filled with the smoke of Hell—sulphur
-and pitch as it is written—they die speedily with gaspings, and so are
-buried in the dark. This is a terror beyond the pen, but by my hand I
-write of what I have seen!
-
-It is not true that the Sahibs worship one God, as do we of the Faith,
-or that the differences in their creed be like those now running between
-Shiah and Sunni. I am but a fighting man, and no darvesh, caring, as
-thou knowest, as much for Shiah as Sunni. But I have spoken to many
-people of the nature of their Gods. One there is who is the head of the
-Mukht-i-Fauj,[2] and he is worshipped by men in blood-red clothes, who
-shout and become without sense. Another is an image, before whom they
-burn candles and incense in just such a place as I have seen when I went
-to Rangoon to buy Burma ponies for the Rao. Yet a third has naked altars
-facing a great assembly of dead. To him they sing chiefly; and for
-others there is a woman who was the mother of the great prophet that was
-before Mahomed. The common folk have no God, but worship those who may
-speak to them hanging from the lamps in the street. The most wise people
-worship themselves and such things as they have made with their mouths
-and their hands, and this is to be found notably among the barren women,
-of whom there are many. Thou wilt not believe this, my brother. Nor did
-I when I was first told, but now it is nothing to me; so greatly has the
-foot of travel let out the stirrup-holes of belief.
-
-Footnote 2:
-
- Salvation Army.
-
-But thou wilt say, “What matter to us whether Ahmed’s beard or Mahmud’s
-be the longer! Speak what thou canst of the Accomplishment of Desire.”
-Would that thou wert here to talk face to face; to walk abroad with me
-and learn.
-
-With this people it is a matter of Heaven and Hell whether Ahmed’s beard
-and Mahmud’s tally or differ but by a hair. Thou knowest the system of
-their statecraft? It is this. Certain men, appointing themselves, go
-about and speak to the low-born, the peasants, the leather-workers, and
-the cloth-dealers, and the women, saying: “Give us leave by your favour
-to speak for you in the council.” Securing that permission by large
-promises, they return to the council-place, and, sitting unarmed, some
-six hundred together, speak at random each for himself and his own ball
-of low-born. The viziers and dewans of the Empress must ever beg money
-at their hands, for unless more than a half of the six hundred be of one
-heart towards the spending of the revenues, neither horse can be shod,
-rifle loaded, or man clothed throughout the land. Remember this very
-continually. The six hundred are above the Empress, above the Viceroy of
-India, above the Head of the Army and every other power that thou hast
-ever known. Because they hold the revenues.
-
-They are divided into two hordes—the one perpetually hurling abuse at
-the other, and bidding the low-born hamper and rebel against all that
-the other may devise for government. Except that they sit unarmed, and
-so call each other liar, dog, and bastard without fear, even under the
-shadow of the Empress’s throne, they are at bitter war which is without
-any end. They pit lie against lie, till the low-born and common folk
-grow drunk with lies, and in their turn begin to lie and refuse to pay
-the revenues. Further, they divide their women into bands, and send them
-into this fight with yellow flowers in their hands, and since the belief
-of a woman is but her lover’s belief stripped of judgment, very many
-wild words are added. Well said the slave girl to Mámún in the
-delectable pages of the Son of Abdullah:—
-
- “Oppression and the sword slay fast—
- Thy breath kills slowly but at last.”
-
-If they desire a thing they declare that it is true. If they desire it
-not, though that were Death itself, they cry aloud, “It has never been.”
-Thus their talk is the talk of children, and like children they snatch
-at what they covet, not considering whether it be their own or
-another’s. And in their councils, when the army of unreason has come to
-the defile of dispute, and there is no more talk left on either side,
-they, dividing, count heads, and the will of that side which has the
-larger number of heads makes that law. But the outnumbered side run
-speedily among the common people and bid them trample on that law, and
-slay the officers thereof. Follow slaughter by night of men unarmed, and
-the slaughter of cattle and insults to women. They do not cut off the
-noses of women, but they crop their hair and scrape the flesh with pins.
-Then those shameless ones of the council stand up before the judges
-wiping their mouths and making oath. They say: “Before God we are free
-from blame. Did we say ‘Heave that stone out of that road and kill that
-one and no other’?” So they are not made shorter by the head because
-they said only: “Here are stones and yonder is such a fellow obeying the
-Law which is no law because we do not desire it.”
-
-Read this in the Rao Sahib’s ear, and ask him if he remembers that
-season when the Manglôt headmen refused revenue, not because they could
-not pay, but because they judged the cess extreme. I and thou went out
-with the troopers all one day and the black lances raised the thatch, so
-that there was hardly any need of firing; and no man was slain. But this
-land is at secret war and veiled killing. In five years of peace they
-have slain within their own borders and of their own kin more men than
-would have fallen had the ball of dissension been left to the mallet of
-the army. And yet there is no hope of peace, for soon the sides again
-divide, and then they will cause to be slain more men unarmed and in the
-fields. And so much for that matter, which is to our advantage. There is
-a better thing to be told, and one tending to the Accomplishment of
-Desire. Read here with a fresh mind after sleep. I write as I
-understand.
-
-Above all this war without honour lies that which I find hard to put
-into writing, and thou knowest I am unhandy of the pen. I will ride the
-steed of Inability sideways at the wall of Expression. The earth
-underfoot is sick and sour with the much handling of man, as a
-grazing-ground sours under cattle; and the air is sick too. Upon the
-ground they have laid in this town, as it were, the stinking boards of a
-stable, and through these boards, between a thousand thousand houses,
-the rank humours of the earth sweat through to the over-burdened air
-that returns them to their breeding-place; for the smoke of their
-cooking-fires keeps all in as the cover the juices of the sheep. And in
-like manner there is a green-sickness among the people, and especially
-among the six hundred men who talk. Neither winter nor autumn abates
-that malady of the soul. I have seen it among women in our own country,
-and in boys not yet blooded to the sword; but I have never seen so much
-thereof before. Through the peculiar operation of this air the people,
-abandoning honour and steadfastness, question all authority, not as men
-question, but as girls, whimperingly, with pinchings in the back when
-the back is turned, and mowing. If one cries in the streets, “There has
-been an injustice,” they take him not to make complaint to those
-appointed, but all who pass, drinking his words, fly clamorously to the
-house of the accused and write evil things of him, his wives and his
-daughters; for they take no thought to the weighing of evidence, but are
-as women. And with one hand they beat their constables who guard the
-streets, and with the other beat the constables for resenting that
-beating, and fine them. When they have in all things made light of the
-State they cry to the State for help, and it is given; so that the next
-time they will cry more. Such as are oppressed riot through the streets,
-bearing banners that hold four days’ labour and a week’s bread in cost
-and toil; and when neither horse nor foot can pass by they are
-satisfied. Others, receiving wages, refuse to work till they get more,
-and the priests help them, and also men of the six hundred—for where
-rebellion is one of those men will come as a kite to a dead bullock—and
-priests, talker, and men together declare that it is right because these
-will not work that no others may attempt. In this manner they have so
-confused the loading and the unloading of the ships that come to this
-town that, in sending the Rao Sahib’s guns and harness, I saw fit to
-send the cases by the train to another ship that sailed from another
-place. There is now no certainty in any sending. But who injures the
-merchants shuts the door of well-being on the city and the army. And ye
-know what Sa’adi saith:—
-
- “How may the merchant westward fare
- When he hears the tale of the tumults there?”
-
-No man can keep faith, because he cannot tell how his underlings will
-go. They have made the servant greater than the master, for that he is
-the servant; not reckoning that each is equal under God to the appointed
-task. That is a thing to be put aside in the cupboard of the mind.
-
-Further, the misery and outcry of the common folk, of whom the earth’s
-bosom is weary, has so wrought upon the minds of certain people who have
-never slept under fear nor seen the flat edge of the sword on the heads
-of a mob, that they cry out: “Let us abate everything that is, and
-altogether labour with our bare hands.” Their hands in that employ would
-fester at the second stroke; and I have seen, for all their unrest at
-the agonies of others, that they abandon no whit of soft living.
-Unknowing the common folk, or indeed the minds of men, they offer strong
-drink of words, such as they themselves use, to empty bellies; and that
-wine breeds drunkenness of soul. The distressful persons stand all day
-long at the door of the drink-places to the number of very many
-thousands. The well-wishing people of small discernment give them words
-or pitifully attempt in schools to turn them into craftsmen, weavers, or
-builders, of whom there be more than enough. Yet they have not the
-wisdom to look at the hands of the taught, whereon a man’s craft and
-that of his father is written by God and Necessity. They believe that
-the son of a drunkard shall drive a straight chisel and the charioteer
-do plaster-work. They take no thought in the dispensation of generosity,
-which is as the closed fingers of a water-scooping palm. Therefore the
-rough timber of a very great army drifts unhewn through the slime of
-their streets. If the Government, which is to-day and to-morrow changes,
-spent on these hopeless ones some money to clothe and equip, I should
-not write what I write. But these people despise the trade of arms, and
-rest content with the memory of old battles; the women and the
-talking-men aiding them.
-
-Thou wilt say: “Why speak continually of women and fools?” I answer by
-God, the Fashioner of the Heart, the fools sit among the six hundred,
-and the women sway their councils. Hast thou forgotten when the order
-came across the seas that rotted out the armies of the English with us,
-so that soldiers fell sick by the hundred where but ten had sickened
-before? That was the work of not more than twenty of the men and some
-fifty of the barren women. I have seen three or four of them, male and
-female, and they triumph openly, in the name of their God, because three
-regiments of the white troops are not. This is to our advantage, because
-the sword with the rust-spot breaks over the turban of the enemy. But if
-they thus tear their own flesh and blood ere their madness be risen to
-its height, what will they do when the moon is full?
-
-Seeing that power lay in the hands of the six hundred, and not in the
-Viceroy or elsewhere, I have throughout my stay sought the shadow of
-those among them who talk most and most extravagantly. They lead the
-common folk, and receive permission of their good-will. It is the desire
-of some of these men—indeed, of almost as many as caused the rotting of
-the English army—that our lands and peoples should accurately resemble
-those of the English upon this very day. May God, the Contemner of
-Folly, forbid! I myself am accounted a show among them, and of us and
-ours they know naught, some calling me Hindu and others Rajput, and
-using towards me, in ignorance, slave-talk and expressions of great
-disrespect. Some of them are well-born, but the greater part are
-low-born, coarse-skinned, waving their arms, high-voiced, without
-dignity, slack in the mouth, shifty-eyed, and, as I have said, swayed by
-the wind of a woman’s cloak.
-
-Now this is a tale but two days old. There was a company at meat, and a
-high-voiced woman spoke to me, in the face of the men, of the affairs of
-our womankind. It was her ignorance that made each word an edged insult.
-Remembering this, I held my peace till she had spoken a new law as to
-the control of our zenanas, and of all who are behind the curtains.
-
-Then I—“Hast thou ever felt the life stir under thy heart or laid a
-little son between thy breasts, O most unhappy?” Thereto she, hotly,
-with a haggard eye—“No, for I am a free woman, and no servant of babes.”
-Then I, softly—“God deal lightly with thee, my sister, for thou art in
-heavier bondage than any slave, and the fuller half of the earth is
-hidden from thee. The first ten years of the life of a man are his
-mother’s, and from the dusk to the dawn surely the wife may command the
-husband. Is it a great thing to stand back in the waking hours while the
-men go abroad unhampered by thy hands on the bridle-rein?” Then she
-wondered that a heathen should speak thus: yet she is a woman honoured
-among these men, and openly professes that she hath no profession of
-faith in her mouth. Read this in the ear of the Rao Sahib, and demand
-how it would fare with me if I brought such a woman for his use. It were
-worse than that yellow desert-bred girl from Cutch, who set the girls to
-fighting for her own pleasure, and slippered the young prince across the
-mouth. Rememberest thou?
-
-In truth the fountain-head of power is putrid with long standing still.
-These men and women would make of all India a dung-cake, and would fain
-leave the mark of the fingers upon it. And they have power and the
-control of the revenues, and that is why I am so particular in
-description. _They have power over all India._ Of what they speak they
-understand nothing, for the low-born’s soul is bounded by his field, and
-he grasps not the connection of affairs from pole to pole. They boast
-openly that the Viceroy and the others are their servants. When the
-masters are mad, what shall the servants do?
-
-Some hold that all war is sin, and Death the greatest fear under God.
-Others declare with the Prophet that it is evil to drink, to which
-teaching their streets bear evident witness; and others there are,
-specially the low-born, who aver that all dominion is wicked and
-sovereignty of the sword accursed. These protested to me, making, as it
-were, an apology that their kin should hold Hindustan, and hoping that
-some day they would withdraw. Knowing well the breed of white man in our
-borders, I would have laughed, but forbore, remembering that these
-speakers had power in the counting of heads. Yet others cry aloud
-against the taxation of Hindustan under the Sahibs’ rule. To this I
-assent, remembering the yearly mercy of the Rao Sahib when the turbans
-of the troopers come through the blighted corn, and the women’s anklets
-go into the melting-pot. But I am no good speaker. _That_ is the duty of
-the boys from Bengal—hill-asses with an eastern bray—Mahrattas from
-Poona, and the like. These, moving among fools, represent themselves as
-the sons of some one, being beggar-taught, offspring of grain-dealers,
-curriers, sellers of bottles, and money-lenders, as thou knowest. Now,
-we of Jagesur owe naught save friendship to the English who took us by
-the sword, and having taken us let us go, assuring the Rao Sahib’s
-succession for all time. But _these_ base-born, having won their
-learning through the mercy of the Government, attired in English
-clothes, forswearing the faith of their fathers for gain, spread rumour
-and debate against the Government, and are therefore very dear to
-certain of the six hundred. I have heard these cattle speak as princes
-and rulers of men, and I have laughed, but not altogether.
-
-Once it happened that a son of some grain-bag sat with me at meat, who
-was arrayed and speaking after the manner of the English. At each
-mouthful he committed perjury against the salt that he had eaten, the
-men and women applauding. When, craftily falsifying, he had magnified
-oppression and invented untold wrong, together with the desecration of
-his tun-bellied gods, he demanded in the name of his people the
-government of all our land, and turning, laid palm to my shoulder,
-saying—“Here is one who is with us, albeit he professes another faith;
-he will bear out my words.” This he delivered in English, and, as it
-were, exhibited me to that company. Preserving a smiling countenance, I
-answered in our own tongue—“Take away that hand, man without a father,
-or the folly of these folk shall not save thee, nor my silence guard thy
-reputation. Sit off, herd!” And in their speech I said—“He speaks truth.
-When the favour and wisdom of the English allows us yet a little larger
-share in the burden and the reward, the Musalman will deal with the
-Hindu.” He alone saw what was in my heart. I was merciful towards him
-because he was accomplishing our desires; but remember that his father
-is one Durga Charan Laha, in Calcutta. Lay thy hand upon _his_ shoulder
-if ever chance sends. It is not good that bottle-dealers and auctioneers
-should paw the sons of princes. I walk abroad sometimes with the man,
-that all the world may know the Hindu and Musalman are one, but when we
-come to the unfrequented streets I bid him walk behind me, and that is
-sufficient honour.
-
-And why did I eat dirt?
-
-Thus, my brother, it seems to my heart, which has almost burst in the
-consideration of these matters. The Bengalis and the beggar-taught boys
-know well that the Sahibs’ power to govern comes neither from the
-Viceroy nor the head of the army, but from the hands of the six hundred
-in this town, and peculiarly those who talk most. They will therefore
-yearly address themselves more and more to that protection, and working
-on the green-sickness of the land, as has ever been their custom, will
-in time cause, through the perpetually instigated interference of the
-six hundred, the hand of the Indian Government to become inoperative, so
-that no measure nor order may be carried through without clamour and
-argument on their part; for that is the delight of the English at this
-hour. Have I overset the bounds of possibility? No. Even thou must have
-heard that one of the six hundred, having neither knowledge, fear, nor
-reverence before his eyes, has made in sport a new and a written scheme
-for the government of Bengal, and openly shows it abroad as a king might
-read his crowning proclamation. And this man, meddling in affairs of
-State, speaks in the council for an assemblage of leather-dressers,
-makers of boots and harness, and openly glories in that he has no God.
-Has either minister of the Empress, Empress, Viceroy, or any other
-raised a voice against this leather-man? Is not his power therefore to
-be sought, and that of his like-thinkers with it? Thou seest.
-
-The telegraph is the servant of the six hundred, and all the Sahibs in
-India, omitting not one, are the servants of the telegraph. Yearly, too,
-thou knowest, the beggar-taught will hold that which they call their
-Congress, first at one place and then at another, leavening Hindustan
-with rumour, echoing the talk among the low-born people here, and
-demanding that they, like the six hundred, control the revenues. And
-they will bring every point and letter over the heads of the Governors
-and the Lieutenant-Governors, and whoever hold authority, and cast it
-clamorously at the feet of the six hundred here; and certain of those
-word-confounders and the barren women will assent to their demands, and
-others will weary of disagreement Thus fresh confusion will be thrown
-into the councils of the Empress, even as an island near by is helped
-and comforted into the smothered war of which I have written. Then
-yearly, as they have begun and we have seen, the low-born men of the six
-hundred anxious for honour will embark for our land, and, staying a
-little while, will gather round them and fawn before the beggar-taught,
-and these departing from their side will assuredly inform the peasants,
-and the fighting men for whom there is no employ, that there is a change
-toward and a coming of help from over the seas. That rumour will not
-grow smaller in the spreading. And, most of all, the Congress, when it
-is not under the eye of the six hundred—who, though they foment
-dissension and death, pretend great reverence for the law which is no
-law—will, stepping aside, deliver uneasy words to the peasants,
-speaking, as it has done already, of the remission of taxation, and
-promising a new rule. That is to our advantage, but the flower of danger
-is in the seed of it. Thou knowest what evil a rumour may do; though in
-the Black Year, when thou and I were young, our standing to the English
-brought gain to Jagesur and enlarged our borders, for the Government
-gave us land on both sides. Of the Congress itself nothing is to be
-feared that ten troopers could not remove, but if its words too soon
-perturb the minds of those waiting or _of princes in idleness_, a flame
-may come _before the time_, and since there are now many white hands to
-quench it, all will return to the former condition. If the flame be kept
-under we need have no fear, because, sweating and panting, the one
-trampling on the other, the white people here are digging their own
-graves. The hand of the Viceroy will be tied, the hearts of the Sahibs
-will be downcast, and all eyes will turn to England disregarding any
-orders. Meantime, keeping tally on the sword-hilt against the hour when
-the score must be made smooth by the blade, it is well for us to assist
-and greatly befriend the Bengali that he may get control of the revenues
-and the posts. We must even write to England that we be of one blood
-with the schoolmen. It is not long to wait; by my head it is not long!
-This people are like the great king Ferisht, who, eaten with the scab of
-long idleness, plucked off his crown and danced naked among the
-dung-hills. But I have not forgotten the profitable end of that tale.
-The vizier set him upon a horse and led him into battle. Presently his
-health returned, and he caused to be engraven on the crown:—
-
- “Though I was cast away by the king
- Yet, through God, I returned and he added to my brilliance
- Two great rubies (Balkh and Iran).”
-
-If this people be purged and bled out by battle, their sickness may go
-and their eyes be cleared to the necessities of things. But they are now
-far gone in rottenness. Even the stallion, too long heel-roped, forgets
-how to fight: and these men are mules. I do not lie when I say that
-unless they are bled and taught with the whip, they will hear and obey
-all that is said by the Congress and the black men here, hoping to turn
-our land into their own orderless Jehannum. For the men of the six
-hundred, being chiefly low-born and unused to authority, desire much to
-exercise rule, extending their arms to the sun and moon, and shouting
-very greatly in order to hear the echo of their voices, each one saying
-some new strange thing and parting the goods and honour of others among
-the rapacious, that he may obtain the favour of the common folk. And all
-this is to our advantage.
-
-Therefore write, that they may read, of gratitude and of love and the
-law. I myself, when I return, will show how the dish should be dressed
-to take the taste here; for it is here that we must come. Cause to be
-established in Jagesur a newspaper, and fill it with translations of
-their papers. A beggar-taught may be brought from Calcutta for thirty
-rupees a month, and if he writes in Gurmukhi our people cannot read.
-Create, further, councils other than the panchayats of headmen, village
-by village and district by district, instructing them beforehand what to
-say according to the order of the Rao. Print all these things in a book
-in English, and send it to this place, and to every man of the six
-hundred. Bid the beggar-taught write in front of all that Jagesur
-follows fast on the English plan. If thou squeezest the Hindu shrine at
-Theegkot, and it is ripe, remit the head-tax, and perhaps the
-marriage-tax, with great publicity. But above all things keep the troops
-ready, and in good pay, even though we glean the stubble with the wheat
-and stint the Rao Sahib’s women. All must go softly. Protest thou thy
-love for the voice of the common people in all things, and affect to
-despise the troops. That shall be taken for a witness in this land. The
-headship of the troops must be mine. See that Bahadur Shah’s wits go
-wandering over the wine, but do not send him to God. I am an old man,
-but I may yet live to lead.
-
-If this people be not bled out and regain strength, we, watching how the
-tide runs, when we see that the shadow of their hand is all but lifted
-from Hindustan, must bid the Bengali demand the removal of the residue
-or set going an uneasiness to that end. We must have a care neither to
-hurt the life of the Englishmen nor the honour of their women, for in
-that case six times the six hundred here could not hold those who remain
-from making the land swim. We must care that they are not mobbed by the
-Bengalis, but honourably escorted, while the land is held down with the
-threat of the sword if a hair of their heads fall. Thus we shall gain a
-good name, and when rebellion is unaccompanied by bloodshed, as has
-lately befallen in a far country, the English, disregarding honour, call
-it by a new name: even one who has been a minister of the Empress, but
-is now at war against the law, praises it openly before the common folk.
-So greatly are they changed since the days of Nikhal Seyn![3] And then,
-if all go well and the Sahibs, who through continual checking and
-browbeating will have grown sick at heart, see themselves abandoned by
-their kin—for this people have allowed their greatest to die on dry sand
-through delay and fear of expense—we may go forward. This people are
-swayed by names. A new name therefore must be given to the rule of
-Hindustan (and that the Bengalis may settle among themselves), and there
-will be many writings and oaths of love, such as the little island over
-seas makes when it would fight more bitterly; and after that the residue
-are diminished the hour comes, and we must strike so that the Sword is
-never any more questioned.
-
-Footnote 3:
-
- Nicholson, a gentleman once of some notoriety in India.
-
-By the favour of God and the conservation of the Sahibs these many
-years, Hindustan contains very much plunder, which we can in no way eat
-hurriedly. There will be to our hand the scaffolding of the house of
-state, for the Bengali shall continue to do our work, and must account
-to us for the revenue, and learn his seat in the order of things.
-Whether the Hindu kings of the West will break in to share that spoil
-before we have swept it altogether, thou knowest better than I; but be
-certain that, _then_, strong hands will seek their own thrones, and it
-may be that the days of the king of Delhi will return if we only,
-curbing our desires, pay due obedience to the outward appearances and
-the names. Thou rememberest the old song:—
-
- “Hadst thou not called it Love, I had said it were a drawn sword,
- But since thou hast spoken, I believe and—I die.”
-
-It is in my heart that there will remain in our land a few Sahibs
-undesirous of returning to England. These we must cherish and protect,
-that by their skill and cunning we may hold together and preserve unity
-in time of war. The Hindu kings will never trust a Sahib in the core of
-their counsels. I say again that if we of the Faith confide in them, we
-shall trample upon our enemies.
-
-Is all this a dream to thee, gray fox of my mother’s bearing? I have
-written of what I have seen and heard, but from the same clay two men
-will never fashion platters alike, nor from the same facts draw equal
-conclusions. Once more, there is a green-sickness upon all the people of
-this country. They eat dirt even now to stay their cravings. Honour and
-stability have departed from their councils, and the knife of dissension
-has brought down upon their heads the flapping tent-flies of confusion.
-The Empress is old. They speak disrespectfully of her and hers in the
-street. They despise the sword, and believe that the tongue and the pen
-sway all. The measure of their ignorance and their soft belief is
-greater than the measure of the wisdom of Solomon, the son of David. All
-these things I have seen whom they regard as a wild beast and a
-spectacle. By God the Enlightener of Intelligence, if the Sahibs in
-India could breed sons who lived so that their houses might be
-established, I would almost fling my sword at the Viceroy’s feet,
-saying: “Let us here fight for a kingdom together, thine and mine,
-disregarding the babble across the water. Write a letter to England,
-saying that we love them, but would depart from their camps and make all
-clean under a new crown.” But the Sahibs die out at the third generation
-in our land, and it may be that I dream dreams. Yet not altogether.
-Until a white calamity of steel and bloodshed, the bearing of burdens,
-the trembling for life, and the hot rage of insult—_for pestilence would
-unman them if eyes not unused to men see clear_—befall this people, our
-path is safe. They are sick. The Fountain of Power is a gutter which all
-may defile; and the voices of the men are overborne by the squealings of
-mules and the whinnying of barren mares. If through adversity they
-become wise, then, my brother, strike with and for them, and later, when
-thou and I are dead, and the disease grows up again (the young men bred
-in the school of fear and trembling and word-confounding have yet to
-live out their appointed span), those who have fought on the side of the
-English may ask and receive what they choose. At present seek quietly to
-confuse, and delay, and evade, and make of no effect. In this business
-four score of the six hundred are our true helpers.
-
-Now the pen, and the ink, and the hand weary together, as thy eyes will
-weary in this reading. Be it known to my house that I return soon, but
-do not speak of the hour. Letters without name have come to me touching
-my honour. The honour of my house is thine. If they be, as I believe,
-the work of a dismissed groom, Futteh Lal, that ran at the tail of my
-wine-coloured Katthiawar stallion, his village is beyond Manglôt; look
-to it that his tongue no longer lengthens itself on the names of those
-who are mine. If it be otherwise, put a guard upon my house till I come,
-and especially see that no sellers of jewelry, astrologers, or midwives
-have entrance to the women’s rooms. We rise by our slaves, and by our
-slaves we fall, as it was said. To all who are of my remembrance I bring
-gifts according to their worth. I have written twice of the gift that I
-would cause to be given to Bahadur Shah.
-
-The blessing of God and his Prophet on thee and thine till the end which
-is appointed. Give me felicity by informing me of the state of thy
-health. My head is at the Rao Sahib’s feet; my sword is at his left
-side, a little above my heart. Follows my seal.
-
-
-
-
- ON THE CITY WALL
-
-Then she let them down by a cord through the window; for her house was
- upon the town-wall, and she dwelt upon the wall.—_Joshua_ ii. 15.
-
-
-Lalun is a member of the most ancient profession in the world. Lilith
-was her very-great-grand-mamma, and that was before the days of Eve, as
-every one knows. In the West, people say rude things about Lalun’s
-profession, and write lectures about it, and distribute the lectures to
-young persons in order that Morality may be preserved. In the East,
-where the profession is hereditary, descending from mother to daughter,
-nobody writes lectures or takes any notice; and that is a distinct proof
-of the inability of the East to manage its own affairs.
-
-Lalun’s real husband, for even ladies of Lalun’s profession in the East
-must have husbands, was a big jujube-tree. Her Mamma, who had married a
-fig-tree, spent ten thousand rupees on Lalun’s wedding, which was
-blessed by forty-seven clergymen of Mamma’s church, and distributed five
-thousand rupees in charity to the poor. And that was the custom of the
-land. The advantages of having a jujube-tree for a husband are obvious.
-You cannot hurt his feelings, and he looks imposing.
-
-Lalun’s husband stood on the plain outside the City walls, and Lalun’s
-house was upon the east wall, facing the river. If you fell from the
-broad window-seat you dropped thirty feet sheer into the City Ditch. But
-if you stayed where you should and looked forth, you saw all the cattle
-of the City being driven down to water, the students of the Government
-College playing cricket, the high grass and trees that fringed the
-river-bank, the great sand-bars that ribbed the river, the red tombs of
-dead Emperors beyond the river, and very far away through the blue
-heat-haze, a glint of the snows of the Himalayas.
-
-Wali Dad used to lie in the window-seat for hours at a time, watching
-this view. He was a young Muhammadan who was suffering acutely from
-education of the English variety, and knew it. His father had sent him
-to a Mission-school to get wisdom, and Wali Dad had absorbed more than
-ever his father or the Missionaries intended he should. When his father
-died, Wali Dad was independent and spent two years experimenting with
-the creeds of the Earth and reading books that are of no use to anybody.
-
-After he had made an unsuccessful attempt to enter the Roman Catholic
-Church and the Presbyterian fold at the same time (the Missionaries
-found him out and called him names, but they did not understand his
-trouble), he discovered Lalun on the City wall and became the most
-constant of her few admirers. He possessed a head that English artists
-at home would rave over and paint amid impossible surroundings—a face
-that female novelists would use with delight through nine hundred pages.
-In reality he was only a clean-bred young Muhammadan, with penciled
-eyebrows, small-cut nostrils, little feet and hands, and a very tired
-look in his eyes. By virtue of his twenty-two years he had grown a neat
-black beard which he stroked with pride and kept delicately scented. His
-life seemed to be divided between borrowing books from me and making
-love to Lalun in the window-seat. He composed songs about her, and some
-of the songs are sung to this day in the City from the Street of the
-Mutton-Butchers to the Copper-Smiths’ ward.
-
-One song, the prettiest of all, says that the beauty of Lalun was so
-great that it troubled the hearts of the British Government and caused
-them to lose their peace of mind. That is the way the song is sung in
-the streets; but, if you examine it carefully and know the key to the
-explanation, you will find that there are three puns in it—on “beauty,”
-“heart,” and “peace of mind,”—so that it runs: “By the subtlety of Lalun
-the administration of the Government was troubled and it lost such and
-such a man.” When Wali Dad sings that song his eyes glow like hot coals,
-and Lalun leans back among the cushions and throws bunches of
-jasmine-buds at Wali Dad.
-
-But first it is necessary to explain something about the Supreme
-Government which is above all and below all and behind all. Gentlemen
-come from England, spend a few weeks in India, walk round this great
-Sphinx of the Plains, and write books upon its ways and its works,
-denouncing or praising it as their own ignorance prompts. Consequently
-all the world knows how the Supreme Government conducts itself. But no
-one, not even the Supreme Government, knows everything about the
-administration of the Empire. Year by year England sends out fresh
-drafts for the first fighting-line, which is officially called the
-Indian Civil Service. These die, or kill themselves by overwork, or are
-worried to death or broken in health and hope in order that the land may
-be protected from death and sickness, famine and war, and may eventually
-become capable of standing alone. It will never stand alone, but the
-idea is a pretty one, and men are willing to die for it, and yearly the
-work of pushing and coaxing and scolding and petting the country into
-good living goes forward. If an advance be made all credit is given to
-the native, while the Englishmen stand back and wipe their foreheads. If
-a failure occurs the Englishmen step forward and take the blame.
-Overmuch tenderness of this kind has bred a strong belief among many
-natives that the native is capable of administering the country, and
-many devout Englishmen believe this also, because the theory is stated
-in beautiful English with all the latest political colour.
-
-There be other men who, though uneducated, see visions and dream dreams,
-and they, too, hope to administer the country in their own way—that is
-to say, with a garnish of Red Sauce. Such men must exist among two
-hundred million people, and, if they are not attended to, may cause
-trouble and even break the great idol called “Pax Britannic,” which, as
-the newspapers say, lives between Peshawur and Cape Comorin. Were the
-Day of Doom to dawn to-morrow, you would find the Supreme Government
-“taking measures to allay popular excitement” and putting guards upon
-the graveyards that the Dead might troop forth orderly. The youngest
-Civilian would arrest Gabriel on his own responsibility if the Archangel
-could not produce a Deputy Commissioner’s permission to “make music or
-other noises” as the license says.
-
-Whence it is easy to see that mere men of the flesh who would create a
-tumult must fare badly at the hands of the Supreme Government. And they
-do. There is no outward sign of excitement; there is no confusion; there
-is no knowledge. When due and sufficient reasons have been given,
-weighed and approved, the machinery moves forward, and the dreamer of
-dreams and the seer of visions is gone from his friends and following.
-He enjoys the hospitality of Government; there is no restriction upon
-his movements within certain limits; but he must not confer any more
-with his brother dreamers. Once in every six months the Supreme
-Government assures itself that he is well and takes formal
-acknowledgment of his existence. No one protests against his detention,
-because the few people who know about it are in deadly fear of seeming
-to know him; and never a single newspaper “takes up his case” or
-organises demonstrations on his behalf, because the newspapers of India
-have got behind that lying proverb which says the Pen is mightier than
-the Sword, and can walk delicately.
-
-So now you know as much as you ought about Wali Dad, the educational
-mixture, and the Supreme Government.
-
-Lalun has not yet been described. She would need, so Wali Dad says, a
-thousand pens of gold and ink scented with musk. She has been variously
-compared to the Moon, the Dil Sagar Lake, a spotted quail, a gazelle,
-the Sun on the Desert of Kutch, the Dawn, the Stars, and the young
-bamboo. These comparisons imply that she is beautiful exceedingly
-according to the native standards, which are practically the same as
-those of the West. Her eyes are black and her hair is black, and her
-eyebrows are black as leeches; her mouth is tiny and says witty things;
-her hands are tiny and have saved much money; her feet are tiny and have
-trodden on the naked hearts of many men. But, as Wali Dad sings: “Lalun
-_is_ Lalun, and when you have said that, you have only come to the
-Beginnings of Knowledge.”
-
-The little house on the City wall was just big enough to hold Lalun, and
-her maid, and a pussy-cat with a silver collar. A big pink and blue
-cut-glass chandelier hung from the ceiling of the reception room. A
-petty Nawab had given Lalun the horror, and she kept it for politeness’
-sake. The floor of the room was of polished chunam, white as curds. A
-latticed window of carved wood was set in one wall; there was a
-profusion of squabby pluffy cushions and fat carpets everywhere, and
-Lalun’s silver _huqa_, studded with turquoises, had a special little
-carpet all to its shining self. Wali Dad was nearly as permanent a
-fixture as the chandelier. As I have said, he lay in the window-seat and
-meditated on Life and Death and Lalun—specially Lalun. The feet of the
-young men of the City tended to her doorways and then—retired, for Lalun
-was a particular maiden, slow of speech, reserved of mind, and not in
-the least inclined to orgies which were nearly certain to end in strife.
-“If I am of no value, I am unworthy of this honour,” said Lalun. “If I
-am of value, they are unworthy of Me.” And that was a crooked sentence.
-
-In the long hot nights of latter April and May all the City seemed to
-assemble in Lalun’s little white room to smoke and to talk. Shiahs of
-the grimmest and most uncompromising persuasion; Sufis who had lost all
-belief in the Prophet and retained but little in God; wandering Hindu
-priests passing southward on their way to the Central India fairs and
-other affairs; Pundits in black gowns, with spectacles on their noses
-and undigested wisdom in their insides; bearded headmen of the wards;
-Sikhs with all the details of the latest ecclesiastical scandal in the
-Golden Temple; red-eyed priests from beyond the Border, looking like
-trapped wolves and talking like ravens; M. A.’s of the University, very
-superior and very voluble—all these people and more also you might find
-in the white room. Wali Dad lay in the window-seat and listened to the
-talk.
-
-“It is Lalun’s _salon_,” said Wali Dad to me, “and it is electic—is not
-that the word? Outside of a Freemason’s Lodge I have never seen such
-gatherings. _There_ I dined once with a Jew—a Yahoudi!” He spat into the
-City Ditch with apologies for allowing national feelings to overcome
-him. “Though I have lost every belief in the world,” said he, “and try
-to be proud of my losing, I cannot help hating a Jew. Lalun admits no
-Jews here.”
-
-“But what in the world do all these men do?” I asked.
-
-“The curse of our country,” said Wali Dad. “They talk. It is like the
-Athenians—always hearing and telling some new thing. Ask the Pearl and
-she will show you how much she knows of the news of the City and the
-Province. Lalun knows everything.”
-
-“Lalun,” I said at random—she was talking to a gentleman of the Kurd
-persuasion who had come in from God-knows-where—“when does the 175th
-Regiment go to Agra?”
-
-“It does not go at all,” said Lalun, without turning her head. “They
-have ordered the 118th to go in its stead. That Regiment goes to Lucknow
-in three months, unless they give a fresh order.”
-
-“That is so,” said Wali Dad without a shade of doubt. “Can you, with
-your telegrams and your newspapers, do better? Always hearing and
-telling some new thing,” he went on. “My friend, has your God ever
-smitten a European nation for gossiping in the bazars? India has
-gossiped for centuries—always standing in the bazars until the soldiers
-go by. Therefore—you are here today instead of starving in your own
-country, and I am not a Muhammadan—I am a Product—a Demnition Product.
-That also I owe to you and yours: that I cannot make an end to my
-sentence without quoting from your authors.” He pulled at the _huqa_ and
-mourned, half feelingly, half in earnest, for the shattered hopes of his
-youth. Wali Dad was always mourning over something or other—the country
-of which he despaired, or the creed in which he had lost faith, or the
-life of the English which he could by no means understand.
-
-Lalun never mourned. She played little songs on the _sitar_, and to hear
-her sing, “O Peacock, cry again,” was always a fresh pleasure. She knew
-all the songs that have ever been sung, from the war-songs of the South
-that make the old men angry with the young men and the young men angry
-with the State, to the love-songs of the North where the swords
-whinny-whicker like angry kites in the pauses between the kisses, and
-the Passes fill with armed men, and the Lover is torn from his Beloved
-and cries, _Ai, Ai, Ai!_ evermore. She knew how to make up tobacco for
-the _huqa_ so that it smelt like the Gates of Paradise and wafted you
-gently through them. She could embroider strange things in gold and
-silver, and dance softly with the moonlight when it came in at the
-window. Also she knew the hearts of men, and the heart of the City, and
-whose wives were faithful and whose untrue, and more of the secrets of
-the Government Offices than are good to be set down in this place.
-Nasiban, her maid, said that her jewelry was worth ten thousand pounds,
-and that, some night, a thief would enter and murder her for its
-possession; but Lalun said that all the City would tear that thief limb
-from limb, and that he, whoever he was, knew it.
-
-So she took her _sitar_ and sat in the window-seat and sang a song of
-old days that had been sung by a girl of her profession in an armed camp
-on the eve of a great battle—the day before the Fords of the Jumna ran
-red and Sivaji fled fifty miles to Delhi with a Toorkh stallion at his
-horse’s tail and another Lalun on his saddle-bow. It was what men call a
-Mahratta _laonee_, and it said:—
-
- Their warrior forces Chimnajee
- Before the Peishwa led,
- The Children of the Sun and Fire
- Behind him turned and fled.
-
-And the chorus said:—
-
- With them there fought who rides so free
- With sword and turban red,
- The warrior-youth who earns his fee
- At peril of his head.
-
-“At peril of his head,” said Wali Dad in English to me. “Thanks to your
-Government, all our heads are protected, and with the educational
-facilities at my command”—his eyes twinkled wickedly—“I might be a
-distinguished member of the local administration. Perhaps, in time, I
-might even be a member of a Legislative Council.”
-
-“Don’t speak English,” said Lalun, bending over her _sitar_ afresh. The
-chorus went out from the City wall to the blackened wall of Fort Amara
-which dominates the City. No man knows the precise extent of Fort Amara.
-Three kings built it hundreds of years ago, and they say that there are
-miles of underground rooms beneath its walls. It is peopled with many
-ghosts, a detachment of Garrison Artillery and a Company of Infantry. In
-its prime it held ten thousand men and filled its ditches with corpses.
-
-“At peril of his head,” sang Lalun again and again.
-
-A head moved on one of the Ramparts—the gray head of an old man—and a
-voice, rough as shark-skin on a sword-hilt, sent back the last line of
-the chorus and broke into a song that I could not understand, though
-Lalun and Wali Dad listened intently.
-
-“What is it?” I asked. “Who is it?”
-
-“A consistent man,” said Wali Dad. “He fought you in ’46, when he was a
-warrior-youth; refought you in ’57, and he tried to fight you in ’71,
-but you had learned the trick of blowing men from guns too well. Now he
-is old; but he would still fight if he could.”
-
-“Is he a Wahabi, then? Why should he answer to a Mahratta _laonee_ if he
-be Wahabi—or Sikh?” said I.
-
-“I do not know,” said Wali Dad. “He has lost, perhaps, his religion.
-Perhaps he wishes to be a King. Perhaps he is a King. I do not know his
-name.”
-
-“That is a lie, Wali Dad. If you know his career you must know his
-name.”
-
-“That is quite true. I belong to a nation of liars. I would rather not
-tell you his name. Think for yourself.”
-
-Lalun finished her song, pointed to the Fort, and said simply: “Khem
-Singh.”
-
-“Hm,” said Wali Dad. “If the Pearl chooses to tell you the Pearl is a
-fool.”
-
-I translated to Lalun, who laughed. “I choose to tell what I choose to
-tell. They kept Khem Singh in Burma,” said she. “They kept him there for
-many years until his mind was changed in him. So great was the kindness
-of the Government. Finding this, they sent him back to his own country
-that he might look upon it before he died. He is an old man, but when he
-looks upon this his country his memory will come. Moreover, there be
-many who remember him.”
-
-“He is an Interesting Survival,” said Wali Dad, pulling at the _huqa_.
-“He returns to a country now full of educational and political reform,
-but, as the Pearl says, there are many who remember him. He was once a
-great man. There will never be any more great men in India. They will
-all, when they are boys, go whoring after strange gods, and they will
-become citizens—‘fellow-citizens’—‘illustrious fellow-citizens.’ What is
-it that the native papers call them?”
-
-Wali Dad seemed to be in a very bad temper. Lalun looked out of the
-window and smiled into the dust-haze. I went away thinking about Khem
-Singh, who had once made history with a thousand followers, and would
-have been a princeling but for the power of the Supreme Government
-aforesaid.
-
-The Senior Captain Commanding Fort Amara was away on leave, but the
-Subaltern, his Deputy, had drifted down to the Club, where I found him
-and enquired of him whether it was really true that a political prisoner
-had been added to the attractions of the Fort. The Subaltern explained
-at great length, for this was the first time that he had held Command of
-the Fort, and his glory lay heavy upon him.
-
-“Yes,” said he, “a man was sent in to me about a week ago from down the
-line—a thorough gentleman, whoever he is. Of course I did all I could
-for him. He had his two servants and some silver cooking-pots, and he
-looked for all the world like a native officer. I called him Subadar
-Sahib; just as well to be on the safe side, y’know. ‘Look here, Subadar
-Sahib,’ I said, ‘you’re handed over to my authority, and I’m supposed to
-guard you. Now I don’t want to make your life hard, but you must make
-things easy for me. All the Fort is at your disposal, from the
-flag-staff to the dry ditch, and I shall be happy to entertain you in
-any way I can, but you mustn’t take advantage of it. Give me your word
-that you won’t try to escape, Subadar Sahib, and I’ll give you my word
-that you shall have no heavy guard put over you.’ I thought the best way
-of getting at him was by going at him straight, y’know, and it was, by
-Jove! The old man gave me his word, and moved about the Fort as
-contented as a sick crow. He’s a rummy chap—always asking to be told
-where he is and what the buildings about him are. I had to sign a slip
-of blue paper when he turned up, acknowledging receipt of his body and
-all that, and I’m responsible, y’know, that he doesn’t get away. Queer
-thing, though, looking after a Johnnie old enough to be your
-grandfather, isn’t it? Come to the Fort one of these days and see him?”
-
-For reasons which will appear, I never went to the Fort while Khem Singh
-was then within its walls. I knew him only as a gray head seen from
-Lalun’s window—a gray head and a harsh voice. But natives told me that,
-day by day, as he looked upon the fair lands round Amara, his memory
-came back to him and, with it, the old hatred against the Government
-that had been nearly effaced in far-off Burma. So he raged up and down
-the West face of the Fort from morning till noon and from evening till
-the night, devising vain things in his heart, and croaking war-songs
-when Lalun sang on the City wall. As he grew more acquainted with the
-Subaltern he unburdened his old heart of some of the passions that had
-withered it. “Sahib,” he used to say, tapping his stick against the
-parapet, “when I was a young man I was one of twenty thousand horsemen
-who came out of the City and rode round the plain here. Sahib, I was the
-leader of a hundred, then of a thousand, then of five thousand, and
-now!”—he pointed to his two servants. “But from the beginning to to-day
-I would cut the throats of all the Sahibs in the land if I could. Hold
-me fast, Sahib, lest I get away and return to those who would follow me.
-I forgot them when I was in Burma, but now that I am in my own country
-again, I remember everything.”
-
-“Do you remember that you have given me your Honour not to make your
-tendance a hard matter?” said the Subaltern.
-
-“Yes, to you, only to you, Sahib,” said Khem Singh. “To you because you
-are of a pleasant countenance. If my turn comes again, Sahib, I will not
-hang you nor cut your throat.”
-
-“Thank you,” said the Subaltern gravely, as he looked along the line of
-guns that could pound the City to powder in half an hour. “Let us go
-into our own quarters, Khem Singh. Come and talk with me after dinner.”
-
-Khem Singh would sit on his own cushion at the Subaltern’s feet,
-drinking heavy, scented anise-seed brandy in great gulps, and telling
-strange stories of Fort Amara, which had been a palace in the old days,
-of Begums and Ranees tortured to death—aye, in the very vaulted chamber
-that now served as a Mess-room; would tell stories of Sobraon that made
-the Subaltern’s cheeks flush and tingle with pride of race, and of the
-Kuka rising from which so much was expected and the foreknowledge of
-which was shared by a hundred thousand souls. But he never told tales of
-’57 because, as he said, he was the Subaltern’s guest, and ’57 is a year
-that no man, Black or White, cares to speak of. Once only, when the
-anise-seed brandy had slightly affected his head, he said: “Sahib,
-speaking now of a matter which lay between Sobraon and the affair of the
-Kukas, it was ever a wonder to us that you stayed your hand at all, and
-that, having stayed it, you did not make the land one prison. Now I hear
-from without that you do great honour to all men of our country and by
-your own hands are destroying the Terror of your Name which is your
-strong rock and defence. This is a foolish thing. Will oil and water
-mix? Now in ’57——”
-
-“I was not born then, Subadar Sahib,” said the Subaltern, and Khem Singh
-reeled to his quarters.
-
-The Subaltern would tell me of these conversations at the Club, and my
-desire to see Khem Singh increased. But Wali Dad, sitting in the
-window-seat of the house on the City wall, said that it would be a cruel
-thing to do, and Lalun pretended that I preferred the society of a
-grizzled old Sikh to hers.
-
-“Here is tobacco, here is talk, here are many friends and all the news
-of the City, and, above all, here is myself. I will tell you stories and
-sing you songs, and Wali Dad will talk his English nonsense in your
-ears. Is that worse than watching the caged animal yonder? Go to-morrow,
-then, if you must, but to-day such and such an one will be here, and he
-will speak of wonderful things.”
-
-It happened that To-morrow never came, and the warm heat of the latter
-Rains gave place to the chill of early October almost before I was aware
-of the flight of the year. The Captain commanding the Fort returned from
-leave and took over charge of Khem Singh according to the laws of
-seniority. The Captain was not a nice man. He called all natives
-“niggers,” which, besides being extreme bad form, shows gross ignorance.
-
-“What’s the use of telling off two Tommies to watch that old nigger?”
-said he.
-
-“I fancy it soothes his vanity,” said the Subaltern. “The men are
-ordered to keep well out of his way, but he takes them as a tribute to
-his importance, poor old wretch.”
-
-“I won’t have Line men taken off regular guards in this way. Put on a
-couple of Native Infantry.”
-
-“Sikhs?” said the Subaltern, lifting his eyebrows.
-
-“Sikhs, Pathans, Dogras—they’re all alike, these black vermin,” and the
-Captain talked to Khem Singh in a manner which hurt that old gentleman’s
-feelings. Fifteen years before, when he had been caught for the second
-time, every one looked upon him as a sort of tiger. He liked being
-regarded in this light. But he forgot that the world goes forward in
-fifteen years, and many Subalterns are promoted to Captaincies.
-
-“The Captain-pig is in charge of the Fort?” said Khem Singh to his
-native guard every morning. And the native guard said: “Yes, Subadar
-Sahib,” in deference to his age and his air of distinction; but they did
-not know who he was.
-
-In those days the gathering in Lalun’s little white room was always
-large and talked more than before.
-
-“The Greeks,” said Wali Dad, who had been borrowing my books, “the
-inhabitants of the city of Athens, where they were always hearing and
-telling some new thing, rigorously secluded their women—who were fools.
-Hence the glorious institution of the heterodox women—is it not?—who
-were amusing and _not_ fools. All the Greek philosophers delighted in
-their company. Tell me, my friend, how it goes now in Greece and the
-other places upon the Continent of Europe. Are your women-folk also
-fools?”
-
-“Wali Dad,” I said, “you never speak to us about your women-folk, and we
-never speak about ours to you. That is the bar between us.”
-
-“Yes,” said Wali Dad, “it is curious to think that our common
-meeting-place should be here, in the house of a common—how do you call
-_her_?” He pointed with the pipe-mouth to Lalun.
-
-“Lalun is nothing but Lalun,” I said, and that was perfectly true. “But
-if you took your place in the world, Wali Dad, and gave up dreaming
-dreams——”
-
-“I might wear an English coat and trouser. I might be a leading
-Muhammadan pleader. I might be received even at the Commissioner’s
-tennis-parties, where the English stand on one side and the natives on
-the other, in order to promote social intercourse throughout the Empire.
-Heart’s Heart,” said he to Lalun quickly, “the Sahib says that I ought
-to quit you.”
-
-“The Sahib is always talking stupid talk,” returned Lalun with a laugh.
-“In this house I am a Queen and thou art a King. The Sahib”—she put her
-arms above her head and thought for a moment—“the Sahib shall be our
-Vizier—thine and mine, Wali Dad—because he has said that thou shouldst
-leave me.”
-
-Wali Dad laughed immoderately, and I laughed too. “Be it so,” said he.
-“My friend, are you willing to take this lucrative Government
-appointment? Lalun, what shall his pay be?”
-
-But Lalun began to sing, and for the rest of the time there was no hope
-of getting a sensible answer from her or Wali Dad. When the one stopped,
-the other began to quote Persian poetry with a triple pun in every other
-line. Some of it was not strictly proper, but it was all very funny, and
-it only came to an end when a fat person in black, with gold
-_pince-nez_, sent up his name to Lalun, and Wali Dad dragged me into the
-twinkling night to walk in a big rose-garden and talk heresies about
-Religion and Governments and a man’s career in life.
-
-The Mohurrum, the great mourning-festival of the Muhammadans, was close
-at hand, and the things that Wali Dad said about religious fanaticism
-would have secured his expulsion from the loosest-thinking Muslim sect.
-There were the rose-bushes round us, the stars above us, and from every
-quarter of the City came the boom of the big Mohurrum drums. You must
-know that the City is divided in fairly equal proportions between the
-Hindus and the Musalmans, and where both creeds belong to the fighting
-races, a big religious festival gives ample chance for trouble. When
-they can—that is to say when the authorities are weak enough to allow
-it—the Hindus do their best to arrange some minor feast-day of their own
-in time to clash with the period of general mourning for the martyrs
-Hasan and Hussain, the heroes of the Mohurrum. Gilt and painted paper
-presentations of their tombs are borne with shouting and wailing, music,
-torches, and yells, through the principal thoroughfares of the City,
-which fakements are called _tazias_. Their passage is rigorously laid
-down beforehand by the Police, and detachments of Police accompany each
-_tazia_, lest the Hindus should throw bricks at it and the peace of the
-Queen and the heads of her loyal subjects should thereby be broken.
-Mohurrum time in a “fighting” town means anxiety to all the officials,
-because, if a riot breaks out, the officials and not the rioters are
-held responsible. The former must foresee everything, and while not
-making their precautions ridiculously elaborate, must see that they are
-at least adequate.
-
-“Listen to the drums!” said Wali Dad. “That is the heart of the
-people—empty and making much noise. How, think you, will the Mohurrum go
-this year. _I_ think that there will be trouble.”
-
-He turned down a side-street and left me alone with the stars and a
-sleepy Police patrol. Then I went to bed and dreamed that Wali Dad had
-sacked the City and I was made Vizier, with Lalun’s silver _huqa_ for
-mark of office.
-
-All day the Mohurrum drums beat in the City, and all day deputations of
-tearful Hindu gentlemen besieged the Deputy Commissioner with assurances
-that they would be murdered ere next dawning by the Muhammadans.
-“Which,” said the Deputy Commissioner in confidence to the Head of
-Police, “is a pretty fair indication that the Hindus are going to make
-’emselves unpleasant. I think we can arrange a little surprise for them.
-I have given the heads of both Creeds fair warning. If they choose to
-disregard it, so much the worse for them.”
-
-There was a large gathering in Lalun’s house that night, but of men that
-I had never seen before, if I except the fat gentleman in black with the
-gold _pince-nez_. Wali Dad lay in the window-seat, more bitterly
-scornful of his Faith and its manifestations than I had ever known him.
-Lalun’s maid was very busy cutting up and mixing tobacco for the guests.
-We could hear the thunder of the drums as the processions accompanying
-each _tazia_ marched to the central gathering-place in the plain outside
-the City, preparatory to their triumphant re-entry and circuit within
-the walls. All the streets seemed ablaze with torches, and only Fort
-Amara was black and silent.
-
-When the noise of the drums ceased, no one in the white room spoke for a
-time. “The first _tazia_ has moved off,” said Wali Dad, looking to the
-plain.
-
-“That is very early,” said the man with the _pince-nez_.
-
-“It is only half-past eight.” The company rose and departed.
-
-“Some of them were men from Ladakh,” said Lalun, when the last had gone.
-“They brought me brick-tea such as the Russians sell, and a tea-urn from
-Peshawur. Show me, now, how the English _Memsahibs_ make tea.”
-
-The brick-tea was abominable. When it was finished Wali Dad suggested
-going into the streets. “I am nearly sure that there will be trouble
-to-night,” he said. “All the City thinks so, and _Vox Populi_ is _Vox
-Dei_, as the Babus say. Now I tell you that at the corner of the
-Padshahi Gate you will find my horse all this night if you want to go
-about and to see things. It is a most disgraceful exhibition. Where is
-the pleasure of saying ‘_Ya Hasan, Ya Hussain_,’ twenty thousand times
-in a night?”
-
-All the processions—there were two and twenty of them—were now well
-within the City walls. The drums were beating afresh, the crowd were
-howling “_Ya Hasan! Ya Hussain!_” and beating their breasts, the brass
-bands were playing their loudest, and at every corner where space
-allowed Muhammadan preachers were telling the lamentable story of the
-death of the Martyrs. It was impossible to move except with the crowd,
-for the streets were not more than twenty feet wide. In the Hindu
-quarters the shutters of all the shops were up and cross-barred. As the
-first _tazia_, a gorgeous erection ten feet high, was borne aloft on the
-shoulders of a score of stout men into the semi-darkness of the Gully of
-the Horsemen, a brickbat crashed through its talc and tinsel sides.
-
-“Into thy hands, O Lord!” murmured Wali Dad profanely, as a yell went up
-from behind, and a native officer of Police jammed his horse through the
-crowd. Another brickbat followed, and the _tazia_ staggered and swayed
-where it had stopped.
-
-“Go on! In the name of the Sirkar, go forward!” shouted the Policeman;
-but there was an ugly cracking and splintering of shutters, and the
-crowd halted, with oaths and growlings, before the house whence the
-brickbat had been thrown.
-
-Then, without any warning, broke the storm—not only in the Gully of the
-Horsemen, but in half a dozen other places. The _tazias_ rocked like
-ships at sea, the long pole-torches dipped and rose round them, while
-the men shouted: “The Hindus are dishonouring the _tazias_! Strike!
-Strike! Into their temples for the Faith!” The six or eight Policemen
-with each _tazia_ drew their batons and struck as long as they could, in
-the hope of forcing the mob forward, but they were overpowered, and as
-contingents of Hindus poured into the streets the fight became general.
-Half a mile away, where the _tazias_ were yet untouched, the drums and
-the shrieks of “_Ya Hasan! Ya Hussain!_” continued, but not for long.
-The priests at the corners of the streets knocked the legs from the
-bedsteads that supported their pulpits and smote for the Faith, while
-stones fell from the silent houses upon friend and foe, and the packed
-streets bellowed: “_Din! Din! Din!_” A _tazia_ caught fire, and was
-dropped for a flaming barrier between Hindu and Musalman at the corner
-of the Gully. Then the crowd surged forward, and Wali Dad drew me close
-to the stone pillar of a well.
-
-“It was intended from the beginning!” he shouted in my ear, with more
-heat than blank unbelief should be guilty of. “The bricks were carried
-up to the houses beforehand. These swine of Hindus! We shall be gutting
-kine in their temples to-night!”
-
-_Tazia_ after _tazia_, some burning, others torn to pieces, hurried past
-us, and the mob with them, howling, shrieking, and striking at the house
-doors in their flight. At last we saw the reason of the rush. Hugonin,
-the Assistant District Superintendent of Police, a boy of twenty, had
-got together thirty constables and was forcing the crowd through the
-streets. His old gray Police-horse showed no sign of uneasiness as it
-was spurred breast-on into the crowd, and the long dog-whip with which
-he had armed himself was never still.
-
-“They know we haven’t enough Police to hold ’em,” he cried as he passed
-me, mopping a cut on his face. “They _know_ we haven’t! Aren’t any of
-the men from the Club coming down to help? Get on, you sons of burnt
-fathers!” The dog-whip cracked across the writhing backs, and the
-constables smote afresh with baton and gun-butt. With these passed the
-lights and the shouting, and Wali Dad began to swear under his breath.
-From Fort Amara shot up a single rocket; then two side by side. It was
-the signal for troops.
-
-Petitt, the Deputy Commissioner, covered with dust and sweat, but calm
-and gently smiling, cantered up the clean-swept street in rear of the
-main body of the rioters. “No one killed yet,” he shouted. “I’ll keep
-’em on the run till dawn! Don’t let ’em halt, Hugonin! Trot ’em about
-till the troops come.”
-
-The science of the defence lay solely in keeping the mob on the move. If
-they had breathing-space they would halt and fire a house, and then the
-work of restoring order would be more difficult, to say the least of it.
-Flames have the same effect on a crowd as blood has on a wild beast.
-
-Word had reached the Club, and men in evening-dress were beginning to
-show themselves and lend a hand in heading off and breaking up the
-shouting masses with stirrup-leathers, whips, or chance-found staves.
-They were not very often attacked, for the rioters had sense enough to
-know that the death of a European would not mean one hanging, but many,
-and possibly the appearance of the thrice-dreaded Artillery. The clamour
-in the City redoubled. The Hindus had descended into the streets in real
-earnest, and ere long the mob returned. It was a strange sight. There
-were no _tazias_—only their riven platforms—and there were no Police.
-Here and there a City dignitary, Hindu or Muhammadan, was vainly
-imploring his co-religionists to keep quiet and behave themselves—advice
-for which his white beard was pulled. Then a native officer of Police,
-unhorsed but still using his spurs with effect, would be borne along,
-warning all the crowd of the danger of insulting the Government.
-Everywhere men struck aimlessly with sticks, grasping each other by the
-throat, howling and foaming with rage, or beat with their bare hands on
-the doors of the houses.
-
-“It is a lucky thing that they are fighting with natural weapons,” I
-said to Wali Dad, “else we should have half the City killed.”
-
-I turned as I spoke and looked at his face. His nostrils were distended,
-his eyes were fixed, and he was smiting himself softly on the breast.
-The crowd poured by with renewed riot—a gang of Musalmans hard-pressed
-by some hundred Hindu fanatics. Wali Dad left my side with an oath, and
-shouting: “_Ya Hasan! Ya Hussain!_” plunged into the thick of the fight,
-where I lost sight of him.
-
-I fled by a side alley to the Padshahi Gate, where I found Wali Dad’s
-horse, and thence rode to the Fort. Once outside the City wall, the
-tumult sank to a dull roar, very impressive under the stars and
-reflecting great credit on the fifty thousand angry able-bodied men
-who were making it. The troops who, at the Deputy Commissioner’s
-instance, had been ordered to rendezvous quietly near the Fort showed
-no signs of being impressed. Two companies of Native Infantry, a
-squadron of Native Cavalry, and a company of British Infantry were
-kicking their heels in the shadow of the East face, waiting for orders
-to march in. I am sorry to say that they were all pleased, unholily
-pleased, at the chance of what they called “a little fun.” The senior
-officers, to be sure, grumbled at having been kept out of bed, and the
-English troops pretended to be sulky, but there was joy in the hearts
-of all the subalterns, and whispers ran up and down the line: “No
-ball-cartridge—what a beastly shame!” “D’you think the beggars will
-really stand up to us?” “’Hope I shall meet my money-lender there. I
-owe him more than I can afford.” “Oh, they won’t let us even unsheathe
-swords.” “Hurrah! Up goes the fourth rocket. Fall in, there!”
-
-The Garrison Artillery, who to the last cherished a wild hope that they
-might be allowed to bombard the City at a hundred yards’ range, lined
-the parapet above the East gateway and cheered themselves hoarse as the
-British Infantry doubled along the road to the Main Gate of the City.
-The Cavalry cantered on to the Padshahi Gate, and the Native Infantry
-marched slowly to the Gate of the Butchers. The surprise was intended to
-be of a distinctly unpleasant nature, and to come on top of the defeat
-of the Police who had been just able to keep the Muhammadans from firing
-the houses of a few leading Hindus. The bulk of the riot lay in the
-north and north-west wards. The east and south-east were by this time
-dark and silent, and I rode hastily to Lalun’s house, for I wished to
-tell her to send some one in search of Wali Dad. The house was
-unlighted, but the door was open, and I climbed upstairs in the
-darkness. One small lamp in the white room showed Lalun and her maid
-leaning half out of the window, breathing heavily and evidently pulling
-at something that refused to come.
-
-“Thou art late—very late,” gasped Lalun without turning her head. “Help
-us now, O Fool, if thou hast not spent thy strength howling among the
-_tazias_. Pull! Nasiban and I can do no more. O Sahib, is it you? The
-Hindus have been hunting an old Muhammadan round the Ditch with clubs.
-If they find him again they will kill him. Help us to pull him up.”
-
-I put my hands to the long red silk waist-cloth that was hanging out of
-the window, and we three pulled and pulled with all the strength at our
-command. There was something very heavy at the end, and it swore in an
-unknown tongue as it kicked against the City wall.
-
-“Pull, oh, pull!” said Lalun at the last. A pair of brown hands grasped
-the window-sill and a venerable Muhammadan tumbled upon the floor, very
-much out of breath. His jaws were tied up, his turban had fallen over
-one eye, and he was dusty and angry.
-
-Lalun hid her face in her hands for an instant and said something about
-Wali Dad that I could not catch.
-
-Then, to my extreme gratification, she threw her arms round my neck and
-murmured pretty things. I was in no haste to stop her; and Nasiban,
-being a handmaiden of tact, turned to the big jewel-chest that stands in
-the corner of the white room and rummaged among the contents. The
-Muhammadan sat on the floor and glared.
-
-“One service more, Sahib, since thou hast come so opportunely,” said
-Lalun. “Wilt thou”—it is very nice to be thou-ed by Lalun—“take this old
-man across the City—the troops are everywhere, and they might hurt him,
-for he is old—to the Kumharsen Gate? There I think he may find a
-carriage to take him to his house. He is a friend of mine, and thou
-art—more than a friend—therefore I ask this.”
-
-Nasiban bent over the old man, tucked something into his belt, and I
-raised him up and led him into the streets. In crossing from the east to
-the west of the City there was no chance of avoiding the troops and the
-crowd. Long before I reached the Gully of the Horsemen I heard the
-shouts of the British Infantry crying cheeringly: “Hutt, ye beggars!
-Hutt, ye devils! Get along! Go forward, there!” Then followed the
-ringing of rifle-butts and shrieks of pain. The troops were banging the
-bare toes of the mob with their gun-butts—for not a bayonet had been
-fixed. My companion mumbled and jabbered as we walked on until we were
-carried back by the crowd and had to force our way to the troops. I
-caught him by the wrist and felt a bangle there—the iron bangle of the
-Sikhs—but I had no suspicions, for Lalun had only ten minutes before put
-her arms round me. Thrice we were carried back by the crowd, and when we
-made our way past the British Infantry it was to meet the Sikh Cavalry
-driving another mob before them with the butts of their lances.
-
-“What are these dogs?” said the old man.
-
-“Sikhs of the Cavalry, Father,” I said, and we edged our way up the line
-of horses two abreast and found the Deputy Commissioner, his helmet
-smashed on his head, surrounded by a knot of men who had come down from
-the Club as amateur constables and had helped the Police mightily.
-
-“We’ll keep ’em on the run till dawn,” said Petitt. “Who’s your
-villainous friend?”
-
-I had only time to say: “The Protection of the Sirkar!” when a fresh
-crowd flying before the Native Infantry carried us a hundred yards
-nearer to the Kumharsen Gate, and Petitt was swept away like a shadow.
-
-“I do not know—I cannot see—this is all new to me!” moaned my companion.
-“How many troops are there in the City?”
-
-“Perhaps five hundred,” I said.
-
-“A lakh of men beaten by five hundred—and Sikhs among them! Surely,
-surely, I am an old man, but—the Kumharsen Gate is new. Who pulled down
-the stone lions? Where is the conduit? Sahib, I am a very old man, and,
-alas, I—I cannot stand.” He dropped in the shadow of the Kumharsen Gate
-where there was no disturbance. A fat gentleman wearing gold _pince-nez_
-came out of the darkness.
-
-“You are most kind to bring my old friend,” he said suavely. “He is a
-landholder of Akala. He should not be in a big City when there is
-religious excitement. But I have a carriage here. You are quite truly
-kind. Will you help me to put him into the carriage? It is very late.”
-
-We bundled the old man into a hired victoria that stood close to the
-gate, and I turned back to the house on the City wall. The troops were
-driving the people to and fro, while the Police shouted, “To your
-houses! Get to your houses!” and the dog-whip of the Assistant District
-Superintendent cracked remorselessly. Terror-stricken _bunnias_ clung to
-the stirrups of the cavalry, crying that their houses had been robbed
-(which was a lie), and the burly Sikh horsemen patted them on the
-shoulder, and bade them return to those houses lest a worse thing should
-happen. Parties of five or six British soldiers, joining arms, swept
-down the side-gullies, their rifles on their backs, stamping, with
-shouting and song, upon the toes of Hindu and Musalman. Never was
-religious enthusiasm more systematically squashed; and never were poor
-breakers of the peace more utterly weary and footsore. They were routed
-out of holes and corners, from behind well-pillars and byres, and bidden
-to go to their houses. If they had no houses to go to, so much the worse
-for their toes.
-
-On returning to Lalun’s door, I stumbled over a man at the threshold. He
-was sobbing hysterically and his arms flapped like the wings of a goose.
-It was Wali Dad, Agnostic and Unbeliever, shoeless, turbanless, and
-frothing at the mouth, the flesh on his chest bruised and bleeding from
-the vehemence with which he had smitten himself. A broken torch-handle
-lay by his side, and his quivering lips murmured, “_Ya Hasan! Ya
-Hussain!_” as I stooped over him. I pushed him a few steps up the
-staircase, threw a pebble at Lalun’s City window, and hurried home.
-
-Most of the streets were very still, and the cold wind that comes before
-the dawn whistled down them. In the center of the Square of the Mosque a
-man was bending over a corpse. The skull had been smashed in by gun-butt
-or bamboo-stave.
-
-“It is expedient that one man should die for the people,” said Petitt
-grimly, raising the shapeless head. “These brutes were beginning to show
-their teeth too much.”
-
-And from afar we could hear the soldiers singing “Two Lovely Black
-Eyes,” as they drove the remnant of the rioters within doors.
-
- * * * * *
-
-Of course you can guess what happened? I was not so clever. When the
-news went abroad that Khem Singh had escaped from the Fort, I did not,
-since I was then living this story, not writing it, connect myself, or
-Lalun, or the fat gentleman of the gold _pince-nez_, with his
-disappearance. Nor did it strike me that Wali Dad was the man who should
-have convoyed him across the City, or that Lalun’s arms round my neck
-were put there to hide the money that Nasiban gave to Khem Singh, and
-that Lalun had used me and my white face as even a better safeguard than
-Wali Dad, who proved himself so untrustworthy. All that I knew at the
-time was that when Fort Amara was taken up with the riots Khem Singh
-profited by the confusion to get away, and that his two Sikh guards also
-escaped.
-
-But later on I received full enlightenment; and so did Khem Singh. He
-fled to those who knew him in the old days, but many of them were dead
-and more were changed, and all knew something of the Wrath of the
-Government. He went to the young men, but the glamour of his name had
-passed away, and they were entering native regiments or Government
-offices, and Khem Singh could give them neither pension, decorations,
-nor influence—nothing but a glorious death with their backs to the mouth
-of a gun. He wrote letters and made promises, and the letters fell into
-bad hands, and a wholly insignificant subordinate officer of Police
-tracked them down and gained promotion thereby. Moreover, Khem Singh was
-old, and anise-seed brandy was scarce, and he had left his silver
-cooking-pots in Fort Amara with his nice warm bedding, and the gentleman
-with the gold _pince-nez_ was told by those who had employed him that
-Khem Singh as a popular leader was not worth the money paid.
-
-“Great is the mercy of these fools of English!” said Khem Singh when the
-situation was put before him. “I will go back to Fort Amara of my own
-free will and gain honour. Give me good clothes to return in.”
-
-So, at his own time, Khem Singh knocked at the wicket-gate of the Fort
-and walked to the Captain and the Subaltern, who were nearly gray-headed
-on account of correspondence that daily arrived from Simla marked
-“Private.”
-
-“I have come back, Captain Sahib,” said Khem Singh. “Put no more guards
-over me. It is no good out yonder.”
-
-A week later I saw him for the first time to my knowledge, and he made
-as though there were an understanding between us.
-
-“It was well done, Sahib,” said he, “and greatly I admired your
-astuteness in thus boldly facing the troops when I, whom they would have
-doubtless torn to pieces, was with you. Now there is a man in Fort
-Ooltagarh whom a bold man could with ease help to escape. This is the
-position of the Fort as I draw it on the sand——”
-
-But I was thinking how I had become Lalun’s Vizier after all.
-
-
-
-
- THE ENLIGHTENMENTS OF
- PAGETT, M. P.
-
-“Because half a dozen grasshoppers under a fern make the field ring with
- their importunate chink while thousands of great cattle, reposed
- beneath the shadow of the British oak, chew the cud and are silent,
- pray do not imagine that those who make the noise are the only
- inhabitants of the field—that, of course, they are many in number—or
- that, after all, they are other than the little, shrivelled, meagre,
- hopping, though loud and troublesome insects of the hour.”—_Burke_:
- “Reflections on the Revolution in France.”
-
-
-They were sitting in the verandah of “the splendid palace of an Indian
-Pro-Consul,” surrounded by all the glory and mystery of the immemorial
-East. In plain English it was a one-storied, ten-roomed, whitewashed
-mud-roofed bungalow, set in a dry garden of dusty tamarisk trees and
-divided from the road by a low mud wall. The green parrots screamed
-overhead as they flew in battalions to the river for their morning
-drink. Beyond the wall, clouds of fine dust showed where the cattle and
-goats of the city were passing afield to graze. The remorseless white
-light of the winter sunshine of Northern India lay upon everything and
-improved nothing, from the whining Persian-wheel by the lawn-tennis
-court to the long perspective of level road and the blue, domed tombs of
-Mahommedan saints just visible above the trees.
-
-“A Happy New Year,” said Orde to his guest. “It’s the first you’ve ever
-spent out of England, isn’t it?”
-
-“Yes. ’Happy New Year,” said Pagett, smiling at the sunshine. “What a
-divine climate you have here! Just think of the brown cold fog hanging
-over London now!” And he rubbed his hands.
-
-It was more than twenty years since he had last seen Orde, his
-schoolmate, and their paths in the world had divided early. The one had
-quitted college to become a cog-wheel in the machinery of the great
-Indian Government; the other, more blessed with goods, had been whirled
-into a similar position in the English scheme. Three successive
-elections had not affected Pagett’s position with a loyal constituency,
-and he had grown insensibly to regard himself in some sort as a pillar
-of the Empire whose real worth would be known later on. After a few
-years of conscientious attendance at many divisions, after newspaper
-battles innumerable, and the publication of interminable correspondence,
-and more hasty oratory than in his calmer moments he cared to think
-upon, it occurred to him, as it had occurred to many of his fellows in
-Parliament, that a tour to India would enable him to sweep a larger lyre
-and address himself to the problems of Imperial administration with a
-firmer hand. Accepting, therefore, a general invitation extended to him
-by Orde some years before, Pagett had taken ship to Karachi, and only
-over-night had been received with joy by the Deputy-Commissioner of
-Amara. They had sat late, discussing the changes and chances of twenty
-years, recalling the names of the dead, and weighing the futures of the
-living, as is the custom of men meeting after intervals of action.
-
-Next morning they smoked the after-breakfast pipe in the verandah, still
-regarding each other curiously, Pagett in a light gray frock-coat and
-garments much too thin for the time of the year, and a puggried sun-hat
-carefully and wonderfully made; Orde in a shooting-coat,
-riding-breeches, brown cowhide boots with spurs, and a battered flax
-helmet. He had ridden some miles in the early morning to inspect a
-doubtful river-dam. The men’s faces differed as much as their attire.
-Orde’s, worn and wrinkled about the eyes and grizzled at the temples,
-was the harder and more square of the two, and it was with something
-like envy that the owner looked at the comfortable outlines of Pagett’s
-blandly receptive countenance, the clear skin, the untroubled eye, and
-the mobile, clean-shaved lips.
-
-“And this is India!” said Pagett for the twentieth time, staring long
-and intently at the gray feathering of the tamarisks.
-
-“One portion of India only. It’s very much like this for 300 miles in
-every direction. By the way, now that you have rested a little—I
-wouldn’t ask the old question before—what d’you think of the country?”
-
-“’Tis the most pervasive country that ever yet was seen. I acquired
-several pounds of your country coming up from Karachi. The air is heavy
-with it, and for miles and miles along that distressful eternity of rail
-there’s no horizon to show where air and earth separate.”
-
-“Yes. It isn’t easy to see truly or far in India. But you had a decent
-passage out, hadn’t you?”
-
-“Very good on the whole. Your Anglo-Indian may be unsympathetic about
-one’s political views; but he has reduced ship life to a science.”
-
-“The Anglo-Indian is a political orphan, and if he’s wise he won’t be in
-a hurry to be adopted by your party grandmothers. But how were your
-companions unsympathetic?”
-
-“Well, there was a man called Dawlishe, a judge somewhere in this
-country, it seems, and a capital partner at whist, by the way, and when
-I wanted to talk to him about the progress of India in a political sense
-[Orde hid a grin which might or might not have been sympathetic], the
-National Congress movement, and other things in which, as a Member of
-Parliament, I’m of course interested, he shifted the subject, and when I
-once cornered him, he looked me calmly in the eye, and said: ‘That’s all
-Tommy Rot. Come and have a game at Bull.’ You may laugh, but that isn’t
-the way to treat a great and important question; and, knowing who I was,
-well, I thought it rather rude, don’t you know; and yet Dawlishe is a
-thoroughly good fellow.”
-
-“Yes; he’s a friend of mine, and one of the straightest men I know. I
-suppose, like many Anglo-Indians, he felt it was hopeless to give you
-any just idea of any Indian question without the documents before you,
-and in this case the documents you want are the country and the people.”
-
-“Precisely. That was why I came straight to you, bringing an open mind
-to bear on things. I’m anxious to know what popular feeling in India is
-really like, y’know, now that it has wakened into political life. The
-National Congress, in spite of Dawlishe, must have caused great
-excitement among the masses?”
-
-“On the contrary, nothing could be more tranquil than the state of
-popular feeling; and as to excitement, the people would as soon be
-excited over the ‘Rule of Three’ as over the Congress.”
-
-“Excuse me, Orde, but do you think you are a fair judge? Isn’t the
-official Anglo-Indian naturally jealous of any external influences that
-might move the masses, and so much opposed to liberal ideas, truly
-liberal ideas, that he can scarcely be expected to regard a popular
-movement with fairness?”
-
-“What did Dawlishe say about Tommy Rot? Think a moment, old man. You and
-I were brought up together; taught by the same tutors, read the same
-books, lived the same life, and thought, as you may remember, in
-parallel lines. _I_ come out here, learn new languages, and work among
-new races; while you, more fortunate, remain at home. Why should I
-change my mind—our mind—because I change my sky? Why should I and the
-few hundred Englishmen in my service become unreasonable, prejudiced
-fossils, while you and your newer friends alone remain bright and
-open-minded? You surely don’t fancy civilians are members of a Primrose
-League?”
-
-“Of course not, but the mere position of an English official gives him a
-point of view which cannot but bias his mind on this question.” Pagett
-moved his knee up and down a little uneasily as he spoke.
-
-“That sounds plausible enough, but, like more plausible notions on
-Indian matters, I believe it’s a mistake. You’ll find when you come to
-consult the unofficial Briton that our fault, as a class—I speak of the
-civilian now—is rather to magnify the progress that has been made
-towards liberal institutions. It is of English origin, such as it is,
-and the stress of our work since the Mutiny—only thirty years ago—has
-been in that direction. No, I think you will get no fairer or more
-dispassionate view of the Congress business than such men as I can give
-you. But I may as well say at once that those who know most of India,
-from the inside, are inclined to wonder at the noise our scarcely begun
-experiment makes in England.”
-
-“But surely the gathering together of Congress delegates is of itself a
-new thing.”
-
-“There’s nothing new under the sun. When Europe was a jungle half Asia
-flocked to the canonical conferences of Buddhism; and for centuries the
-people have gathered at Puri, Hurdwar, Trimbak, and Benares in immense
-numbers. A great meeting, what you call a mass meeting, is really one of
-the oldest and most popular of Indian institutions. In the case of the
-Congress meetings, the only notable fact is that the priests of the
-altar are British, not Buddhist, Jain or Brahmanical, and that the whole
-thing is a British contrivance kept alive by the efforts of Messrs.
-Hume, Eardley Norton, and Digby.”
-
-“You mean to say, then, it’s not a spontaneous movement?”
-
-“What movement was ever spontaneous in any true sense of the word? This
-seems to be more factitious than usual. You seem to know a great deal
-about it; try it by the touchstone of subscriptions, a coarse but fairly
-trustworthy criterion, and there is scarcely the colour of money in it.
-The delegates write from England that they are out of pocket for working
-expenses, railway fares, and stationery—the mere pasteboard and
-scaffolding of their show. It is, in fact, collapsing from mere
-financial inanition.”
-
-“But you cannot deny that the people of India, who are, perhaps, too
-poor to subscribe, are mentally and morally moved by the agitation,”
-Pagett insisted.
-
-“That is precisely what I _do_ deny. The native side of the movement is
-the work of a limited class, a microscopic minority, as Lord Dufferin
-described it, when compared with the people proper, but still a very
-interesting class, seeing that it is of our own creation. It is composed
-almost entirely of those of the literary or clerkly castes who have
-received an English education.”
-
-“Surely that’s a very important class. Its members must be the ordained
-leaders of popular thought.”
-
-“Anywhere else they might be leaders, but they have no social weight in
-this topsy-turvy land, and though they have been employed in clerical
-work for generations, they have no practical knowledge of affairs. A
-ship’s clerk is a useful person, but he is scarcely the captain; and an
-orderly-room writer, however smart he may be, is not the colonel. You
-see, the writer class in India has never till now aspired to anything
-like command. It wasn’t allowed to. The Indian gentleman, for thousands
-of years past, has resembled Victor Hugo’s noble:
-
- “Un vrai sire
- Chatelain
- Laisse ecrire
- Le vilain.
- Sa main digne
- Quand il signe
- Egratigne
- Le velin.”
-
-And the little _egratignures_ he most likes to make have been scored
-pretty deeply by the sword.“
-
-“But this is childish and mediæval nonsense!”
-
-“Precisely; and from your, or rather our, point of view the pen _is_
-mightier than the sword. In this country it’s otherwise. The fault lies
-in our Indian balances, not yet adjusted to civilised weights and
-measures.”
-
-“Well, at all events, this literary class represent the natural
-aspirations and wishes of the people at large, though it may not exactly
-lead them, and, in spite of all you say, Orde, I defy you to find a
-really sound English Radical who would not sympathise with those
-aspirations.”
-
-Pagett spoke with some warmth, and he had scarcely ceased when a
-well-appointed dog-cart turned into the compound gates, and Orde rose,
-saying:
-
-“Here is Edwards, the Master of the Lodge I neglect so diligently, come
-to talk about accounts, I suppose.”
-
-As the vehicle drove up under the porch Pagett also rose, saying with
-the trained effusion born of much practice:
-
-“But this is also _my_ friend, my old and valued friend, Edwards. I’m
-delighted to see you. I knew you were in India, but not exactly where.”
-
-“Then it isn’t accounts, Mr. Edwards,” said Orde cheerily.
-
-“Why, no, sir; I heard Mr. Pagett was coming, and as our works were
-closed for the New Year I thought I would drive over and see him.”
-
-“A very happy thought. Mr. Edwards, you may not know, Orde, was a
-leading member of our Radical Club at Switchton when I was beginning
-political life, and I owe much to his exertions. There’s no pleasure
-like meeting an old friend, except, perhaps, making a new one. I
-suppose, Mr. Edwards, you stick to the good old cause?”
-
-“Well, you see, sir, things are different out here. There’s precious
-little one can find to say against the Government, which was the main of
-our talk at home, and them that do say things are not the sort o’ people
-a man who respects himself would like to be mixed up with. There are no
-politics, in a manner of speaking, in India. It’s all work.”
-
-“Surely you are mistaken, my good friend. Why, I have come all the way
-from England just to see the working of this great National movement.”
-
-“I don’t know where you’re going to find the nation as moves, to begin
-with, and then you’ll be hard put to it to find what they are moving
-about. It’s like this, sir,” said Edwards, who had not quite relished
-being called “my good friend.” “They haven’t got any grievance—nothing
-to hit with, don’t you see, sir; and then there’s not much to hit
-against, because the Government is more like a kind of general
-Providence, directing an old-established state of things, than that at
-home, where there’s something new thrown down for us to fight about
-every three months.”
-
-“You are probably, in your workshops, full of English mechanics, out of
-the way of learning what the masses think.”
-
-“I don’t know so much about that. There are four of us English foremen,
-and between seven and eight hundred native fitters, smiths, carpenters,
-painters, and such like.”
-
-“And they are full of the Congress, of course?”
-
-“Never hear a word of it from year’s end to year’s end, and I speak the
-talk, too. But I wanted to ask how things are going on at home—old Tyler
-and Brown and the rest?”
-
-“We will speak of them presently, but your account of the indifference
-of your men surprises me almost as much as your own. I fear you are a
-backslider from the good old doctrine, Edwards.” Pagett spoke as one who
-mourned the death of a near relative.
-
-“Not a bit, sir, but I should be if I took up with a parcel of babus,
-pleaders, and schoolboys, as never did a day’s work in their lives, and
-couldn’t if they tried. And if you was to poll us English railway-men,
-mechanics, tradespeople, and the like of that all up and down the
-country from Peshawur to Calcutta, you would find us mostly in a tale
-together. And yet you know we’re the same English you pay some respect
-to at home at ’lection time, and we have the pull o’ knowing something
-about it.”
-
-“This is very curious, but you will let me come and see you, and perhaps
-you will kindly show me the railway works, and we will talk things over
-at leisure. And about all old friends and old times,” added Pagett,
-detecting with quick insight a look of disappointment in the mechanic’s
-face.
-
-Nodding briefly to Orde, Edwards mounted his dog-cart and drove off.
-
-“It’s very disappointing,” said the Member to Orde, who, while his
-friend discoursed with Edwards, had been looking over a bundle of
-sketches drawn on gray paper in purple ink, brought to him by a
-_Chuprassee_.
-
-“Don’t let it trouble you, old chap,” said Orde sympathetically. “Look
-here a moment, here are some sketches by the man who made the
-carved-wood screen you admired so much in the dining-room, and wanted a
-copy of, and the artist himself is here too.”
-
-“A native?” said Pagett.
-
-“Of course,” was the reply, “Bishen Singh is his name, and he has two
-brothers to help him. When there is an important job to do, the three go
-into partnership, but they spend most of their time and all their money
-in litigation over an inheritance, and I’m afraid they are getting
-involved. Thoroughbred Sikhs of the old rock, obstinate, touchy,
-bigoted, and cunning, but good men for all that. Here is Bishen
-Singh—shall we ask _him_ about the Congress?”
-
-But Bishen Singh, who approached with a respectful salaam, had never
-heard of it, and he listened with a puzzled face and obviously feigned
-interest to Orde’s account of its aims and objects, finally shaking his
-vast white turban with great significance when he learned that it was
-promoted by certain pleaders named by Orde, and by educated natives. He
-began with laboured respect to explain how he was a poor man with no
-concern in such matters, which were all under the control of God, but
-presently broke out of Urdu into familiar Punjabi, the mere sound of
-which had a rustic smack of village smoke-reek and plough-tail, as he
-denounced the wearers of white coats, the jugglers with words who
-filched his field from him, the men whose backs were never bowed in
-honest work; and poured ironical scorn on the Bengali. He and one of his
-brothers had seen Calcutta, and being at work there, had Bengali
-carpenters given to them as assistants.
-
-“Those carpenters!” said Bishen Singh. “Black apes were more efficient
-workmates, and as for the Bengali babu—tchick!” The guttural click
-needed no interpretation, but Orde translated the rest, while Pagett
-gazed with interest at the wood-carver.
-
-“He seems to have a most illiberal prejudice against the Bengali,” said
-the M. P.
-
-“Yes, it’s very sad that for ages outside Bengal there should be so
-bitter a prejudice. Pride of race, which also means race-hatred, is the
-plague and curse of India and it spreads far.” Orde pointed with his
-riding-whip to the large map of India on the verandah wall.
-
-“See! I begin with the North,” said he. “There’s the Afghan, and, as a
-highlander, he despises all the dwellers in Hindustan—with the exception
-of the Sikh, whom he hates as cordially as the Sikh hates him. The Hindu
-loathes Sikh and Afghan, and the Rajput—that’s a little lower down
-across this yellow blot of desert—has a strong objection, to put it
-mildly, to the Maratha, who, by the way, poisonously hates the Afghan.
-Let’s go North a minute. The Sindhi hates everybody I’ve mentioned. Very
-good, we’ll take less warlike races. The cultivator of Northern India
-domineers over the man in the next province, and the Behari of the
-North-West ridicules the Bengali. They are all at one on that point. I’m
-giving you merely the roughest possible outlines of the facts, of
-course.”
-
-Bishen Singh, his clean-cut nostrils still quivering, watched the large
-sweep of the whip as it travelled from the frontier, through Sindh, the
-Punjab and Rajputana, till it rested by the valley of the Jumna.
-
-“Hate—eternal and inextinguishable hate,” concluded Orde, flicking the
-lash of the whip across the large map from East to West as he sat down.
-“Remember Canning’s advice to Lord Granville, ‘Never write or speak of
-Indian things without looking at a map.’”
-
-Pagett opened his eyes; Orde resumed. “And the race-hatred is only a
-part of it. What’s really the matter with Bishen Singh is class-hatred,
-which, unfortunately, is even more intense and more widely spread.
-That’s one of the little drawbacks of caste, which some of your recent
-English writers find an impeccable system.”
-
-The wood-carver was glad to be recalled to the business of his craft,
-and his eyes shone as he received instructions for a carved wooden
-doorway for Pagett, which he promised should be splendidly executed and
-despatched to England in six months. It is an irrelevant detail, but in
-spite of Orde’s reminders, fourteen months elapsed before the work was
-finished. Business over, Bishen Singh hung about, reluctant to take his
-leave, and at last joining his hands and approaching Orde with bated
-breath and whispering humbleness, said he had a petition to make. Orde’s
-face suddenly lost all trace of expression. “Speak on, Bishen Singh,”
-said he, and the carver in a whining tone explained that his case
-against his brothers was fixed for hearing before a native judge,
-and—here he dropped his voice still lower till he was summarily stopped
-by Orde, who sternly pointed to the gate with an emphatic Begone!
-
-Bishen Singh, showing but little sign of discomposure, salaamed
-respectfully to the friends and departed.
-
-Pagett looked inquiry; Orde, with complete recovery of his usual
-urbanity, replied: “It’s nothing, only the old story: he wants his case
-to be tried by an English judge—they all do that—but when he began to
-hint that the other side were in improper relations with the native
-judge I had to shut him up. Gunga Ram, the man he wanted to make
-insinuations about, may not be very bright; but he’s as honest as
-daylight on the bench. But that’s just what one can’t get a native to
-believe.”
-
-“Do you really mean to say these people prefer to have their cases tried
-by English judges?”
-
-“Why, certainly.”
-
-Pagett drew a long breath. “I didn’t know that before.” At this point a
-phaeton entered the compound, and Orde rose with “Confound it, there’s
-old Rasul Ali Khan come to pay one of his tiresome duty-calls. I’m
-afraid we shall never get through our little Congress discussion.”
-
-Pagett was an almost silent spectator of the grave formalities of a
-visit paid by a punctilious old Mahommedan gentleman to an Indian
-official; and was much impressed by the distinction of manner and fine
-appearance of the Mahommedan landholder. When the exchange of polite
-banalities came to a pause, he expressed a wish to learn the courtly
-visitor’s opinion of the National Congress.
-
-Orde reluctantly interpreted, and with a smile which even Mahommedan
-politeness could not save from bitter scorn, Rasul Ali Khan intimated
-that he knew nothing about it and cared still less. It was a kind of
-talk encouraged by the Government for some mysterious purpose of its
-own, and for his own part he wondered and held his peace.
-
-Pagett was far from satisfied with this, and wished to have the old
-gentleman’s opinion on the propriety of managing all Indian affairs on
-the basis of an elective system.
-
-Orde did his best to explain, but it was plain the visitor was bored and
-bewildered. Frankly, he didn’t think much of committees; they had a
-Municipal Committee at Lahore and had elected a menial servant, an
-orderly, as a member. He had been informed of this on good authority,
-and after that committees had ceased to interest him. But all was
-according to the rule of Government, and, please God, it was all for the
-best.
-
-“What an old fossil it is!” cried Pagett, as Orde returned from seeing
-his guest to the door; “just like some old blue-blooded hidalgo of
-Spain. What does he really think of the Congress after all, and of the
-elective system?”
-
-“Hates it all like poison. When you are sure of a majority, election is
-a fine system; but you can scarcely expect the Mahommedans, the most
-masterful and powerful minority in the country, to contemplate their own
-extinction with joy. The worst of it is that he and his co-religionists,
-who are many, and the landed proprietors, also of Hindu race, are
-frightened and put out by this election business and by the importance
-we have bestowed on lawyers, pleaders, writers, and the like, who have,
-up to now, been in abject submission to them. They say little, but after
-all they are the most important faggots in the great bundle of
-communities, and all the glib bunkum in the world would not pay for
-their estrangement. They have controlled the land.”
-
-“But I am assured that experience of local self-government in your
-municipalities has been most satisfactory, and when once the principle
-is accepted in your centres, don’t you know, it is bound to spread, and
-these important—ah’m—people of yours would learn it like the rest. I see
-no difficulty at all,” and the smooth lips closed with the complacent
-snap habitual to Pagett, M. P., the “man of cheerful yesterdays and
-confident to-morrows.”
-
-Orde looked at him with a dreary smile.
-
-“The privilege of election has been most reluctantly withdrawn from
-scores of municipalities, others have had to be summarily suppressed,
-and, outside the Presidency towns, the actual work done has been badly
-performed. This is of less moment, perhaps—it only sends up the local
-death-rates—than the fact that the public interest in municipal
-elections, never very strong, has waned, and is waning, in spite of
-careful nursing on the part of Government servants.”
-
-“Can you explain this lack of interest?” said Pagett, putting aside the
-rest of Orde’s remarks.
-
-“You may find a ward of the key in the fact that only one in every
-thousand of our population can spell. Then they are infinitely more
-interested in religion and caste questions than in any sort of politics.
-When the business of mere existence is over, their minds are occupied by
-a series of interests, pleasures, rituals, superstitions, and the like,
-based on centuries of tradition and usage. You, perhaps, find it hard to
-conceive of people absolutely devoid of curiosity, to whom the book, the
-daily paper, and the printed speech are unknown, and you would describe
-their life as blank. That’s a profound mistake. You are in another land,
-another century, down on the bed-rock of society, where the family
-merely, and not the community, is all-important. The average Oriental
-cannot be brought to look beyond his clan. His life, too, is more
-complete and self-sufficing and less sordid and low-thoughted than you
-might imagine. It is bovine and slow in some respects, but it is never
-empty. You and I are inclined to put the cart before the horse, and to
-forget that it is the man that is elemental, not the book.
-
- “The corn and the cattle are all my care,
- And the rest is the will of God.”
-
-Why should such folk look up from their immemorially appointed round of
-duty and interests to meddle with the unknown and fuss with
-voting-papers? How would you, atop of all your interests, care to
-conduct even one-tenth of your life according to the manners and customs
-of the Papuans, let’s say? That’s what it comes to.”
-
-“But if they won’t take the trouble to vote, why do you anticipate that
-Mahommedans, proprietors, and the rest would be crushed by majorities of
-them?”
-
-Again Pagett disregarded the closing sentence.
-
-“Because, though the landholders would not move a finger on any purely
-political question, they could be raised in dangerous excitement by
-religious hatreds. Already the first note of this has been sounded by
-the people who are trying to get up an agitation on the cow-killing
-question, and every year there is trouble over the Mahommedan Muharrum
-processions.”
-
-“But who looks after the popular rights, being thus unrepresented?”
-
-“The Government of Her Majesty the Queen, Empress of India, in which, if
-the Congress promoters are to be believed, the people have an implicit
-trust; for the Congress circular, specially prepared for rustic
-comprehension, says the movement is ‘_for the remission of tax, the
-advancement of Hindustan, and the strengthening of the British
-Government._’ This paper is headed in large letters—‘MAY THE PROSPERITY
-OF THE EMPRESS OF INDIA ENDURE.’”
-
-“Really!” said Pagett, “that shows some cleverness. But there are things
-better worth imitation in our English methods of—er—political statement
-than this sort of amiable fraud.”
-
-“Anyhow,” resumed Orde, “you perceive that not a word is said about
-elections and the elective principle, and the reticence of the Congress
-promoters here shows they are wise in their generation.”
-
-“But the elective principle must triumph in the end, and the little
-difficulties you seem to anticipate would give way on the introduction
-of a well-balanced scheme capable of indefinite extension.”
-
-“But is it possible to devise a scheme which, always assuming that the
-people took any interest in it, without enormous expense, ruinous
-dislocation of the administration and danger to the public peace, can
-satisfy the aspirations of Mr. Hume and his following, and yet safeguard
-the interests of the Mahommedans, the landed and wealthy classes, the
-conservative Hindus, the Eurasians, Parsees, Sikhs, Rajputs, native
-Christians, domiciled Europeans and others, who are each important and
-powerful in their way?”
-
-Pagett’s attention, however, was diverted to the gate, where a group of
-cultivators stood in apparent hesitation.
-
-“Here are the twelve Apostles, by Jove!—come straight out of Raffaele’s
-cartoons,” said the M. P., with the fresh appreciation of a new-comer.
-
-Orde, loath to be interrupted, turned impatiently towards the villagers,
-and their leader, handing his long staff to one of his companions,
-advanced to the house.
-
-“It is old Jelloo, the Lumberdar or head-man of Pind Sharkot, and a very
-intelligent man for a villager.”
-
-The Jat farmer had removed his shoes and stood smiling on the edge of
-the verandah. His strongly marked features glowed with russet bronze,
-and his bright eyes gleamed under deeply set brows, contracted by
-life-long exposure to sunshine. His beard and moustache, streaked with
-gray, swept from bold cliffs of brow and cheek in the large sweeps one
-sees drawn by Michael Angelo, and strands of long black hair mingled
-with the irregularly piled wreaths and folds of his turban. The drapery
-of stout blue cotton cloth thrown over his broad shoulders and girt
-round his narrow loins, hung from his tall form in broadly sculptured
-folds and he would have made a superb model for an artist in search of a
-patriarch.
-
-Orde greeted him cordially, and after a polite pause the countryman
-started off with a long story told with impressive earnestness. Orde
-listened and smiled, interrupting the speaker at times to argue and
-reason with him in a tone which Pagett could hear was kindly, and,
-finally checking the flux of words, was about to dismiss him when Pagett
-suggested that he should be asked about the National Congress.
-
-But Jelloo had never heard of it. He was a poor man, and such things, by
-the favour of his Honour, did not concern him.
-
-“What’s the matter with your big friend that he was so terribly in
-earnest?” asked Pagett, when he had left.
-
-“Nothing much. He wants the blood of the people in the next village, who
-have had smallpox and cattle plague pretty badly, and by the help of a
-wizard, a currier, and several pigs have passed it on to his own
-village. ’Wants to know if they can’t be run in for this awful crime. It
-seems they made a dreadful charivari at the village boundary, threw a
-quantity of spell-bearing objects over the border, a buffalo’s skull and
-other things; then branded a _chamar_—what you would call a currier—on
-his hinder parts and drove him and a number of pigs over into Jelloo’s
-village. Jelloo says he can bring evidence to prove that the wizard
-directing these proceedings, who is a Sansi, has been guilty of theft,
-arson, cattle-killing, perjury and murder, but would prefer to have him
-punished for bewitching them and inflicting smallpox.”
-
-“And how on earth did you answer such a lunatic?”
-
-“Lunatic! the old fellow is as sane as you or I; and he has some ground
-of complaint against those Sansis. I asked if he would like a native
-superintendent of police with some men to make inquiries, but he
-objected on the grounds the police were rather worse than small-pox and
-criminal tribes put together.”
-
-“Criminal tribes—er—I don’t quite understand,” said Pagett.
-
-“We have in India many tribes of people who in the slack ante-British
-days became robbers, in various kind, and preyed on the people. They are
-being restrained and reclaimed little by little, and in time will become
-useful citizens, but they still cherish hereditary traditions of crime,
-and are a difficult lot to deal with. By the way, what about the
-political rights of these folk under your schemes? The country people
-call them vermin, but I suppose they would be electors with the rest.”
-
-“Nonsense—special provision would be made for them in a well-considered
-electoral scheme, and they would doubtless be treated with fitting
-severity,” said Pagett with a magisterial air.
-
-“Severity, yes—but whether it would be fitting is doubtful. Even those
-poor devils have rights, and, after all, they only practise what they
-have been taught.”
-
-“But criminals, Orde!”
-
-“Yes, criminals with codes and rituals of crime, gods and godlings of
-crime, and a hundred songs and sayings in praise of it. Puzzling, isn’t
-it?”
-
-“It’s simply dreadful. They ought to be put down at once. Are there many
-of them?”
-
-“Not more than about sixty thousand in this province, for many of the
-tribes broadly described as criminal are really vagabond and criminal
-only on occasion, while others are being settled and reclaimed. They are
-of great antiquity, a legacy from the past, the golden, glorious Aryan
-past of Max Müller, Birdwood and the rest of your spindrift
-philosophers.”
-
-An orderly brought a card to Orde, who took it with a movement of
-irritation at the interruption, and handed it to Pagett: a large card
-with a ruled border in red ink, and in the centre in school-boy
-copper-plate, _Mr. Dina Nath_. “Give salaam,” said the civilian, and
-there entered in haste a slender youth, clad in a closely fitting coat
-of gray homespun, tight trousers, patent-leather shoes, and a small
-black velvet cap. His thin cheek twitched, and his eyes wandered
-restlessly, for the young man was evidently nervous and uncomfortable,
-though striving to assume a free-and-easy air.
-
-“Your honour may perhaps remember me,” he said in English, and Orde
-scanned him keenly.
-
-“I know your face, somehow. You belonged to the Shershah district, I
-think, when I was in charge there?”
-
-“Yes, sir, my father is writer at Shershah, and your honour gave me a
-prize when I was first in the Middle School examination five years ago.
-Since then I have prosecuted my studies, and I am now second year’s
-student in the Mission College.”
-
-“Of course: you are Kedar Nath’s son—the boy who said he liked geography
-better than play or sugar-cakes, and I didn’t believe you. How is your
-father getting on?”
-
-“He is well, and he sends his salaam, but his circumstances are
-depressed, and he also is down on his luck.”
-
-“You learn English idioms at the Mission College, it seems.”
-
-“Yes, sir, they are the best idioms, and my father ordered me to ask
-your honour to say a word for him to the present incumbent of your
-honour’s shoes, the latchet of which he is not worthy to open, and who
-knows not Joseph; for things are different at Shershah now, and my
-father wants promotion.”
-
-“Your father is a good man, and I will do what I can for him.”
-
-At this point a telegram was handed to Orde, who, after glancing at it,
-said he must leave his young friend, whom he introduced to Pagett, “a
-member of the English House of Commons who wishes to learn about India.”
-
-Orde had scarcely retired with his telegram when Pagett began:
-
-“Perhaps you can tell me something of the National Congress movement?”
-
-“Sir, it is the greatest movement of modern times, and one in which all
-educated men like us _must_ join. All our students are for the
-Congress.”
-
-“Excepting, I suppose, Mahommedans, and the Christians?” said Pagett,
-quick to use his recent instruction.
-
-“These are some _mere_ exceptions to the universal rule.”
-
-“But the people outside the College, the working classes, the
-agriculturists; your father and mother, for instance.”
-
-“My mother,” said the young man, with a visible effort to bring himself
-to pronounce the word, “has no ideas, and my father is not
-agriculturist, nor working class; he is of the Kayeth caste; but he had
-not the advantage of a collegiate education, and he does not know much
-of the Congress. It is a movement for the educated young-man”—connecting
-adjective and noun in a sort of vocal hyphen.
-
-“Ah, yes,” said Pagett, feeling he was a little off the rails, “and what
-are the benefits you expect to gain by it?”
-
-“Oh, sir, everything. England owes its greatness to Parliamentary
-institutions and we should _at once_ gain the same high position in
-scale of nations. Sir, we wish to have the sciences, the arts, the
-manufactures, the industrial factories, with steam-engines and other
-motive powers and public meetings and debates. Already we have a
-debating club in connection with the college and elect a Mr. Speaker.
-Sir, the progress _must_ come. You also are a Member of Parliament and
-worship the great Lord Ripon,” said the youth, breathlessly, and his
-black eyes flashed as he finished his commaless sentences.
-
-“Well,” said Pagett, drily, “it has not yet occurred to me to worship
-his Lordship, although I believe he is a very worthy man, and I am not
-sure that England owes quite all the things you name to the House of
-Commons. You see, my young friend, the growth of a nation like ours is
-slow, subject to many influences, and if you have read your history
-aright——”
-
-“Sir, I know it all—all! Norman Conquest, Magna Charta, Runnymede,
-Reformation, Tudors, Stuarts, Mr. Milton and Mr. Burke, and I have read
-something of Mr. Herbert Spencer and Gibbon’s ‘Decline and Fall,’
-Reynolds’ ‘Mysteries of the Court,’ and——”
-
-Pagett felt like one who had pulled the string of a shower-bath
-unawares, and hastened to stop the torrent with a question as to what
-particular grievances of the people of India the attention of an elected
-assembly should be first directed. But young Mr. Dina Nath was slow to
-particularise. There were many, very many demanding consideration. Mr.
-Pagett would like to hear of one or two typical examples. The Repeal of
-the Arms Act was at last named, and the student learned for the first
-time that a license was necessary before an Englishman could carry a gun
-in England. Then natives of India ought to be allowed to become
-Volunteer Riflemen if they chose, and the absolute equality of the
-Oriental with his European fellow-subject in civil status should be
-proclaimed on principle, and the Indian Army should be considerably
-reduced. The student was not, however, prepared with answers to Mr.
-Pagett’s mildest questions on these points, and he returned to vague
-generalities, leaving the M. P. so much impressed with the crudity of
-his views that he was glad on Orde’s return to say good-bye to his “very
-interesting” young friend.
-
-“What do you think of young India?” asked Orde.
-
-“Curious, very curious—and callow.”
-
-“And yet,” the civilian replied, “one can scarcely help sympathising
-with him for his mere youth’s sake. The young orators of the Oxford
-Union arrived at the same conclusions and showed doubtless just the same
-enthusiasm. If there were any political analogy between India and
-England, if the thousand races of this Empire were one, if there were
-any chance even of their learning to speak one language, if, in short,
-India were a Utopia of the debating-room, and not a real land, this kind
-of talk might be worth listening to, but it is all based on false
-analogy and ignorance of the facts.”
-
-“But he is a native and knows the facts.”
-
-“He is a sort of English schoolboy, but married three years, and the
-father of two weaklings, and knows less than most English schoolboys.
-You saw all he is and knows, and such ideas as he has acquired are
-directly hostile to the most cherished convictions of the vast majority
-of the people.”
-
-“But what does he mean by saying he is a student of a mission college?
-Is he a Christian?”
-
-“He meant just what he said, and he is not a Christian, nor ever will he
-be. Good people in America, Scotland, and England, most of whom would
-never dream of collegiate education for their own sons, are pinching
-themselves to bestow it in pure waste on Indian youths. Their scheme is
-an oblique, subterranean attack on heathenism; the theory being that
-with the jam of secular education, leading to a University degree, the
-pill of moral or religious instruction may be coaxed down the heathen
-gullet.”
-
-“But does it succeed; do they make converts?”
-
-“They make no converts, for the subtle Oriental swallows the jam and
-rejects the pill; but the mere example of the sober, righteous, and
-godly lives of the principals and professors, who are most excellent and
-devoted men, must have a certain moral value. Yet, as Lord Lansdowne
-pointed out the other day, the market is dangerously overstocked with
-graduates of our Universities who look for employment in the
-administration. An immense number are employed, but year by year the
-college mills grind out increasing lists of youths foredoomed to failure
-and disappointment, and meanwhile trade, manufactures, and the
-industrial arts are neglected and in fact regarded with contempt by our
-new literary mandarins _in posse_.”
-
-“But our young friend said he wanted steam-engines and factories,” said
-Pagett.
-
-“Yes, he would like to direct such concerns. He wants to begin at the
-top, for manual labour is held to be discreditable, and he would never
-defile his hands by the apprenticeship which the architects, engineers,
-and manufacturers of England cheerfully undergo; and he would be aghast
-to learn that the leading names of industrial enterprise in England
-belonged a generation or two since, or now belong, to men who wrought
-with their own hands. And, though he talks glibly of manufacturers, he
-refuses to see that the Indian manufacturer of the future will be the
-despised workman of the present. It was proposed, for example, a few
-weeks ago, that a certain municipality in this province should establish
-an elementary technical school for the sons of workmen. The stress of
-the opposition to the plan came from a pleader who owed all he had to a
-college education bestowed on him gratis by Government and missions. You
-would have fancied some fine old crusted Tory squire of the last
-generation was speaking. ‘These people,’ he said, ‘want no education,
-for they learn their trades from their fathers, and to teach a workman’s
-son the elements of mathematics and physical science would give him
-ideas above his business. They must be kept in their place, and it was
-idle to imagine that there was any science in wood or iron work.’ And he
-carried his point. But the Indian workman will rise in the social scale
-in spite of the new literary caste.”
-
-“In England we have scarcely begun to realise that there is an
-industrial class in this country, yet, I suppose, the example of men
-like Edwards, for instance, must tell,” said Pagett thoughtfully.
-
-“That you shouldn’t know much about it is natural enough, for there are
-but few sources of information. India in this, as in other respects, is
-like a badly kept ledger—not written up to date. And men like Edwards
-are, in reality, missionaries who by precept and example are teaching
-more lessons than they know. Only a few, however, of their crowds of
-subordinates seem to care to try to emulate them, and aim at individual
-advancement; the rest drop into the ancient Indian caste groove.”
-
-“How do you mean?” asked Pagett.
-
-“Well, it is found that the new railway and factory workmen, the fitter,
-the smith, the engine-driver, and the rest are already forming separate
-hereditary castes. You may notice this down at Jamalpur in Bengal, one
-of the oldest railway centres; and at other places, and in other
-industries, they are following the same inexorable Indian law.”
-
-“Which means——?” queried Pagett.
-
-“It means that the rooted habit of the people is to gather in small
-self-contained, self-sufficing family groups with no thought or care for
-any interests but their own—a habit which is scarcely compatible with
-the right acceptation of the elective principle.”
-
-“Yet you must admit, Orde, that though our young friend was not able to
-expound the faith that is in him, your Indian army is too big.”
-
-“Not nearly big enough for its main purpose. And, as a side issue, there
-are certain powerful minorities of fighting folk whose interests an
-Asiatic Government is bound to consider. Arms is as much a means of
-livelihood as civil employ under Government and law. And it would be a
-heavy strain on British bayonets to hold down Sikhs, Jats, Bilochis,
-Rohillas, Rajputs, Bhils, Dogras, Pathans, and Gurkhas to abide by the
-decisions of a numerical majority opposed to their interests. Leave the
-‘numerical majority’ to itself without the British bayonets—a flock of
-sheep might as reasonably hope to manage a troop of collies.”
-
-“This complaint about excessive growth of the army is akin to another
-contention of the Congress party. They protest against the malversation
-of the whole of the moneys raised by additional taxes as a Famine
-Insurance Fund to other purposes. You must be aware that this special
-Famine Fund has all been spent on frontier roads and defences and
-strategic railway schemes as a protection against Russia.”
-
-“But there was never a special famine fund raised by special taxation
-and put by as in a box. No sane administrator would dream of such a
-thing. In a time of prosperity a finance minister, rejoicing in a
-margin, proposed to annually apply a million and a half to the
-construction of railways and canals for the protection of districts
-liable to scarcity, and to the reduction of the annual loans for public
-works. But times were not always prosperous, and the finance minister
-had to choose whether he would hang up the insurance scheme for a year
-or impose fresh taxation. When a farmer hasn’t got the little surplus he
-hoped to have for buying a new waggon and draining a low-lying field
-corner, you don’t accuse him of malversation if he spends what he has on
-the necessary work of the rest of his farm.”
-
-A clatter of hoofs was heard, and Orde looked up with vexation, but his
-brow cleared as a horseman halted under the porch.
-
-“Hello, Orde! just looked in to ask if you are coming to polo on
-Tuesday: we want you badly to help to crumple up the Krab Bokhar team.”
-
-Orde explained that he had to go out into the District, and while the
-visitor complained that though good men wouldn’t play, duffers were
-always keen, and that his side would probably be beaten, Pagett rose to
-look at his mount, a red, lathered Biloch mare, with a curious lyre-like
-incurving of the ears. “Quite a little thoroughbred in all other
-respects,” said the M. P., and Orde presented Mr. Reginald Burke,
-Manager of the Sind and Sialkote Bank, to his friend.
-
-“Yes, she’s as good as they make ’em, and she’s all the female I
-possess, and spoiled in consequence, aren’t you, old girl?” said Burke,
-patting the mare’s glossy neck as she backed and plunged.
-
-“Mr. Pagett,” said Orde, “has been asking me about the Congress. What is
-your opinion?” Burke turned to the M. P. with a frank smile.
-
-“Well, if it’s all the same to you, sir, I should say, Damn the
-Congress, but then I’m no politician, but only a business man.”
-
-“You find it a tiresome subject?”
-
-“Yes, it’s all that, and worse than that, for this kind of agitation is
-anything but wholesome for the country.”
-
-“How do you mean?”
-
-“It would be a long job to explain, and Sara here won’t stand, but you
-know how sensitive capital is, and how timid investors are. All this
-sort of rot is likely to frighten them, and we can’t afford to frighten
-them. The passengers aboard an Ocean steamer don’t feel reassured when
-the ship’s way is stopped and they hear the workmen’s hammers tinkering
-at the engines down below. The old Ark’s going on all right as she is,
-and only wants quiet and room to move. Them’s my sentiments, and those
-of some other people who have to do with money and business.”
-
-“Then you are a thick-and-thin supporter of the Government as it is.”
-
-“Why, no! The Indian Government is much too timid with its money—like an
-old maiden aunt of mine—always in a funk about her investments. They
-don’t spend half enough on railways, for instance, and they are slow in
-a general way, and ought to be made to sit up in all that concerns the
-encouragement of private enterprise, and coaxing out into use the
-millions of capital that lie dormant in the country.”
-
-The mare was dancing with impatience, and Burke was evidently anxious to
-be off, so the men wished him good-bye.
-
-“Who is your genial friend who condemns both Congress and Government in
-a breath?” asked Pagett, with an amused smile.
-
-“Just now he is Reggie Burke, keener on polo than on anything else, but
-if you went to the Sind and Sialkote Bank to-morrow you would find Mr.
-Reginald Burke a very capable man of business, known and liked by an
-immense constituency North and South of this.”
-
-“Do you think he is right about the Government’s want of enterprise?”
-
-“I should hesitate to say. Better consult the merchants and chambers of
-commerce in Cawnpore, Madras, Bombay, and Calcutta. But though these
-bodies would like, as Reggie puts it, to make Government sit up, it is
-an elementary consideration in governing a country like India, which
-must be administered for the benefit of the people at large, that the
-counsels of those who resort to it for the sake of making money should
-be judiciously weighed and not allowed to overpower the rest. They are
-welcome guests here, as a matter of course, but it has been found best
-to restrain their influence. Thus the rights of plantation labourers,
-factory operatives, and the like, have been protected, and the
-capitalist, eager to get on, has not always regarded Government action
-with favour. It is quite conceivable that under an elective system the
-commercial communities of the great towns might find means to secure
-majorities on labour questions and on financial matters.”
-
-“They would act at least with intelligence and consideration.”
-
-“Intelligence, yes; but as to consideration, who at the present moment
-most bitterly resents the tender solicitude of Lancashire for the
-welfare and protection of the Indian factory operative? English and
-native capitalists running cotton mills and factories.”
-
-“But is the solicitude of Lancashire in this matter entirely
-disinterested?”
-
-“It is no business of mine to say. I merely indicate an example of how a
-powerful commercial interest might hamper a Government intent in the
-first place on the larger interests of humanity.”
-
-Orde broke off to listen a moment. “There’s Dr. Lathrop talking to my
-wife in the drawing-room,” said he.
-
-“Surely not; that’s a lady’s voice, and if my ears don’t deceive me, an
-American.”
-
-“Exactly; Dr. Eva McCreery Lathrop, chief of the new Women’s Hospital
-here, and a very good fellow forbye. Good morning, Doctor,” he said, as
-a graceful figure came out on the verandah; “you seem to be in trouble.
-I hope Mrs. Orde was able to help you.”
-
-“Your wife is real kind and good; I always come to her when I’m in a
-fix, but I fear it’s more than comforting I want.”
-
-“You work too hard and wear yourself out,” said Orde, kindly. “Let me
-introduce my friend, Mr. Pagett, just fresh from home, and anxious to
-learn his India. You could tell him something of that more important
-half of which a mere man knows so little.”
-
-“Perhaps I could if I’d any heart to do it, but I’m in trouble, I’ve
-lost a case, a case that was doing well, through nothing in the world
-but inattention on the part of a nurse I had begun to trust. And when I
-spoke only a small piece of my mind she collapsed in a whining heap on
-the floor. It is hopeless!”
-
-The men were silent, for the blue eyes of the lady doctor were dim.
-Recovering herself, she looked up with a smile half sad, half humorous.
-“And I am in a whining heap too; but what phase of Indian life are you
-particularly interested in, sir?”
-
-“Mr. Pagett intends to study the political aspect of things and the
-possibility of bestowing electoral institutions on the people.”
-
-“Wouldn’t it be as much to the purpose to bestow point-lace collars on
-them? They need many things more urgently than votes. Why, it’s like
-giving a bread-pill for a broken leg.”
-
-“Er—I don’t quite follow,” said Pagett uneasily.
-
-“Well, what’s the matter with this country is not in the least
-political, but an all-round entanglement of physical, social, and moral
-evils and corruptions, all more or less due to the unnatural treatment
-of women. You can’t gather figs from thistles, and so long as the system
-of infant marriage, the prohibition of the remarriage of widows, the
-lifelong imprisonment of wives and mothers in a worse than penal
-confinement, and the withholding from them of any kind of education or
-treatment as rational beings continues, the country can’t advance a
-step. Half of it is morally dead, and worse than dead, and that’s just
-the half from which we have a right to look for the best impulses. It’s
-right here where the trouble is, and not in any political considerations
-whatsoever.”
-
-“But do they marry so early?” said Pagett, vaguely.
-
-“The average age is seven, but thousands are married still earlier. One
-result is that girls of twelve and thirteen have to bear the burden of
-wifehood and motherhood, and, as might be expected, the rate of
-mortality both for mothers and children is terrible. Pauperism, domestic
-unhappiness, and a low state of health are only a few of the
-consequences of this. Then, when, as frequently happens, the boy-husband
-dies prematurely, his widow is condemned to worse than death. She may
-not re-marry, must live a secluded and despised life, a life so
-unnatural that she sometimes prefers suicide; more often she goes
-astray. You don’t know in England what such words as ‘infant-marriage,
-baby-wife, girl-mother, and virgin-widow’ mean; but they mean
-unspeakable horrors here.”
-
-“Well, but the advanced political party here will surely make it their
-business to advocate social reforms as well as political ones,” said
-Pagett.
-
-“Very surely they will do no such thing,” said the lady doctor,
-emphatically. “I _wish_ I could make you understand. Why, even of the
-funds devoted to the Marchioness of Dufferin’s organisation for medical
-aid to the women of India, it was said in print and in speech that they
-would be better spent on more college scholarships for men. And in all
-the advanced parties’ talk—God forgive them—and in all their programmes,
-they carefully avoid all such subjects. They will talk about the
-protection of the cow, for that’s an ancient superstition—they can all
-understand that; but the protection of the women is a new and dangerous
-idea.” She turned to Pagett impulsively:
-
-“You are a member of the English Parliament. Can you do nothing? The
-foundations of their life are rotten—utterly and bestially rotten. I
-could tell your wife things that I couldn’t tell you. I know the
-life—the inner life that belongs to the native, and I know nothing else;
-and, believe me, you might as well try to grow golden-rod in a
-mushroom-pit as to make anything of a people that are born and reared as
-these—these things are. The men talk of their rights and privileges. I
-have seen the women that bear these very men, and again—may God forgive
-the men!”
-
-Pagett’s eyes opened with a large wonder. Dr. Lathrop rose
-tempestuously.
-
-“I must be off to lecture,” said she, “and I’m sorry that I can’t show
-you my hospitals; but you had better believe, sir, that it’s more
-necessary for India than all the elections in creation.”
-
-“That’s a woman with a mission, and no mistake,” said Pagett, after a
-pause.
-
-“Yes; she believes in her work, and so do I,” said Orde. “I’ve a notion
-that in the end it will be found that the most helpful work done for
-India in this generation was wrought by Lady Dufferin in drawing
-attention—what work that was, by the way, even with her husband’s great
-name to back it!—to the needs of women here. In effect, native habits
-and beliefs are an organised conspiracy against the laws of health and
-happy life—but there is some dawning of hope now.”
-
-“How d’you account for the general indifference, then?”
-
-“I suppose it’s due in part to their fatalism and their utter
-indifference to all human suffering. How much do you imagine the great
-province of the Punjab, with over twenty million people and half a score
-rich towns, has contributed to the maintenance of civil dispensaries
-last year? About seven thousand rupees.”
-
-“That’s seven hundred pounds,” said Pagett quickly.
-
-“I wish it was,” replied Orde; “but anyway, it’s an absurdly inadequate
-sum, and shows one of the blank sides of Oriental character.”
-
-Pagett was silent for a long time. The question of direct and personal
-pain did not lie within his researches. He preferred to discuss the
-weightier matters of the law, and contented himself with murmuring:
-“They’ll do better later on.” Then, with a rush, returning to his first
-thought:
-
-“But, my dear Orde, if it’s merely a class movement of a local and
-temporary character, how d’you account for Bradlaugh, who is at least a
-man of sense, taking it up?”
-
-“I know nothing of the champion of the New Brahmans but what I see in
-the papers. I suppose there is something tempting in being hailed by a
-large assemblage as the representative of the aspirations of two hundred
-and fifty millions of people. Such a man looks ‘through all the roaring
-and the wreaths,’ and does not reflect that it is a false perspective,
-which, as a matter of fact, hides the real complex and manifold India
-from his gaze. He can scarcely be expected to distinguish between the
-ambitions of a new oligarchy and the real wants of the people of whom he
-knows nothing. But it’s strange that a professed Radical should come to
-be the chosen advocate of a movement which has for its aim the revival
-of an ancient tyranny. Shows how even Radicalism can fall into academic
-grooves and miss the essential truths of its own creed. Believe me,
-Pagett, to deal with India you want first-hand knowledge and experience.
-I wish he would come and live here for a couple of years or so.”
-
-“Is not this rather an _ad hominem_ style of argument?”
-
-“Can’t help it in a case like this. Indeed, I am not sure you ought not
-to go further and weigh the whole character and quality and upbringing
-of the man. You must admit that the monumental complacency with which he
-trotted out his ingenious little Constitution for India showed a strange
-want of imagination and the sense of humour.”
-
-“No, I don’t quite admit it,” said Pagett.
-
-“Well, you know him and I don’t, but that’s how it strikes a stranger.”
-He turned on his heel and paced the verandah thoughtfully. “And, after
-all, the burden of the actual, daily unromantic toil falls on the
-shoulders of the men out here, and not on his own. He enjoys all the
-privileges of recommendation without responsibility, and we—well,
-perhaps, when you’ve seen a little more of India you’ll understand. To
-begin with, our death-rate’s five times higher than yours—I speak now
-for the brutal bureaucrat—and we work on the refuse of worked-out cities
-and exhausted civilisations, among the bones of the dead.”
-
-Pagett laughed. “That’s an epigrammatic way of putting it, Orde.”
-
-“Is it? Let’s see,” said the Deputy Commissioner of Amara, striding into
-the sunshine towards a half-naked gardener potting roses. He took the
-man’s hoe, and went to a rain-scarped bank at the bottom of the garden.
-
-“Come here, Pagett,” he said, and cut at the sun-baked soil. After three
-strokes there rolled from under the blade of the hoe the half of a
-clanking skeleton that settled at Pagett’s feet in an unseemly jumble of
-bones. The M. P. drew back.
-
-“Our houses are built on cemeteries,” said Orde. “There are scores of
-thousands of graves within ten miles.”
-
-Pagett was contemplating the skull with the awed fascination of a man
-who has but little to do with the dead. “India’s a very curious place,”
-said he, after a pause.
-
-“Ah? You’ll know all about it in three months. Come in to lunch,” said
-Orde.
-
-------------------------------------------------------------------------
-
- Transcriber’s Note
-
-Many chapters included a copyright statement at the bottom of the first
-page. These have been relocated to directly follow the title.
-
-The name ‘Yardley-Orde’ (pp. 169 & 175) appears twice as ‘Yardely-Orde’
-(pp. 180 & 182). References to the character in Kipling critical texts
-use the former, and the variant is corrected here.
-
-Errors deemed most likely to be the printer’s have been corrected, and
-are noted here. The references are to the page and line in the original.
-The following issues should be noted, along with the resolutions.
-
- 2.29 Do not join me[./,] for Replaced.
-
- 37.20 Whereever where[e]ver a grain cart atilt Removed.
-
- 78.1 two thousand pack-bullocks cross in one Replaced.
- night[,/.]
-
- 151.9 its paws lacking strength or direction[./,] Replaced.
-
- 180.20 Yard[el/le]y-Orde knew his failing Transposed.
-
- 182.12 In Yard[el/le]y-Orde’s consulship Transposed.
-
- 216.4 to clear the men out of Twenty-[t/T]wo Uppercase.
-
- 219.3 and the Me[ha/ah]s, who are thrice bastard Transposed?
- Muhammadans
-
-
-
-
-
-End of the Project Gutenberg EBook of In Black and White, by Rudyard Kipling
-
-*** END OF THIS PROJECT GUTENBERG EBOOK IN BLACK AND WHITE ***
-
-***** This file should be named 62346-0.txt or 62346-0.zip *****
-This and all associated files of various formats will be found in:
- http://www.gutenberg.org/6/2/3/4/62346/
-
-Produced by KD Weeks, MFR and the Online Distributed
-Proofreading Team at https://www.pgdp.net (This file was
-produced from images generously made available by The
-Internet Archive)
-
-Updated editions will replace the previous one--the old editions will
-be renamed.
-
-Creating the works from print editions not protected by U.S. copyright
-law means that no one owns a United States copyright in these works,
-so the Foundation (and you!) can copy and distribute it in the United
-States without permission and without paying copyright
-royalties. Special rules, set forth in the General Terms of Use part
-of this license, apply to copying and distributing Project
-Gutenberg-tm electronic works to protect the PROJECT GUTENBERG-tm
-concept and trademark. Project Gutenberg is a registered trademark,
-and may not be used if you charge for the eBooks, unless you receive
-specific permission. If you do not charge anything for copies of this
-eBook, complying with the rules is very easy. You may use this eBook
-for nearly any purpose such as creation of derivative works, reports,
-performances and research. They may be modified and printed and given
-away--you may do practically ANYTHING in the United States with eBooks
-not protected by U.S. copyright law. Redistribution is subject to the
-trademark license, especially commercial redistribution.
-
-START: FULL LICENSE
-
-THE FULL PROJECT GUTENBERG LICENSE
-PLEASE READ THIS BEFORE YOU DISTRIBUTE OR USE THIS WORK
-
-To protect the Project Gutenberg-tm mission of promoting the free
-distribution of electronic works, by using or distributing this work
-(or any other work associated in any way with the phrase "Project
-Gutenberg"), you agree to comply with all the terms of the Full
-Project Gutenberg-tm License available with this file or online at
-www.gutenberg.org/license.
-
-Section 1. General Terms of Use and Redistributing Project
-Gutenberg-tm electronic works
-
-1.A. By reading or using any part of this Project Gutenberg-tm
-electronic work, you indicate that you have read, understand, agree to
-and accept all the terms of this license and intellectual property
-(trademark/copyright) agreement. If you do not agree to abide by all
-the terms of this agreement, you must cease using and return or
-destroy all copies of Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works in your
-possession. If you paid a fee for obtaining a copy of or access to a
-Project Gutenberg-tm electronic work and you do not agree to be bound
-by the terms of this agreement, you may obtain a refund from the
-person or entity to whom you paid the fee as set forth in paragraph
-1.E.8.
-
-1.B. "Project Gutenberg" is a registered trademark. It may only be
-used on or associated in any way with an electronic work by people who
-agree to be bound by the terms of this agreement. There are a few
-things that you can do with most Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works
-even without complying with the full terms of this agreement. See
-paragraph 1.C below. There are a lot of things you can do with Project
-Gutenberg-tm electronic works if you follow the terms of this
-agreement and help preserve free future access to Project Gutenberg-tm
-electronic works. See paragraph 1.E below.
-
-1.C. The Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation ("the
-Foundation" or PGLAF), owns a compilation copyright in the collection
-of Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works. Nearly all the individual
-works in the collection are in the public domain in the United
-States. If an individual work is unprotected by copyright law in the
-United States and you are located in the United States, we do not
-claim a right to prevent you from copying, distributing, performing,
-displaying or creating derivative works based on the work as long as
-all references to Project Gutenberg are removed. Of course, we hope
-that you will support the Project Gutenberg-tm mission of promoting
-free access to electronic works by freely sharing Project Gutenberg-tm
-works in compliance with the terms of this agreement for keeping the
-Project Gutenberg-tm name associated with the work. You can easily
-comply with the terms of this agreement by keeping this work in the
-same format with its attached full Project Gutenberg-tm License when
-you share it without charge with others.
-
-1.D. The copyright laws of the place where you are located also govern
-what you can do with this work. Copyright laws in most countries are
-in a constant state of change. If you are outside the United States,
-check the laws of your country in addition to the terms of this
-agreement before downloading, copying, displaying, performing,
-distributing or creating derivative works based on this work or any
-other Project Gutenberg-tm work. The Foundation makes no
-representations concerning the copyright status of any work in any
-country outside the United States.
-
-1.E. Unless you have removed all references to Project Gutenberg:
-
-1.E.1. The following sentence, with active links to, or other
-immediate access to, the full Project Gutenberg-tm License must appear
-prominently whenever any copy of a Project Gutenberg-tm work (any work
-on which the phrase "Project Gutenberg" appears, or with which the
-phrase "Project Gutenberg" is associated) is accessed, displayed,
-performed, viewed, copied or distributed:
-
- This eBook is for the use of anyone anywhere in the United States and
- most other parts of the world at no cost and with almost no
- restrictions whatsoever. You may copy it, give it away or re-use it
- under the terms of the Project Gutenberg License included with this
- eBook or online at www.gutenberg.org. If you are not located in the
- United States, you'll have to check the laws of the country where you
- are located before using this ebook.
-
-1.E.2. If an individual Project Gutenberg-tm electronic work is
-derived from texts not protected by U.S. copyright law (does not
-contain a notice indicating that it is posted with permission of the
-copyright holder), the work can be copied and distributed to anyone in
-the United States without paying any fees or charges. If you are
-redistributing or providing access to a work with the phrase "Project
-Gutenberg" associated with or appearing on the work, you must comply
-either with the requirements of paragraphs 1.E.1 through 1.E.7 or
-obtain permission for the use of the work and the Project Gutenberg-tm
-trademark as set forth in paragraphs 1.E.8 or 1.E.9.
-
-1.E.3. If an individual Project Gutenberg-tm electronic work is posted
-with the permission of the copyright holder, your use and distribution
-must comply with both paragraphs 1.E.1 through 1.E.7 and any
-additional terms imposed by the copyright holder. Additional terms
-will be linked to the Project Gutenberg-tm License for all works
-posted with the permission of the copyright holder found at the
-beginning of this work.
-
-1.E.4. Do not unlink or detach or remove the full Project Gutenberg-tm
-License terms from this work, or any files containing a part of this
-work or any other work associated with Project Gutenberg-tm.
-
-1.E.5. Do not copy, display, perform, distribute or redistribute this
-electronic work, or any part of this electronic work, without
-prominently displaying the sentence set forth in paragraph 1.E.1 with
-active links or immediate access to the full terms of the Project
-Gutenberg-tm License.
-
-1.E.6. You may convert to and distribute this work in any binary,
-compressed, marked up, nonproprietary or proprietary form, including
-any word processing or hypertext form. However, if you provide access
-to or distribute copies of a Project Gutenberg-tm work in a format
-other than "Plain Vanilla ASCII" or other format used in the official
-version posted on the official Project Gutenberg-tm web site
-(www.gutenberg.org), you must, at no additional cost, fee or expense
-to the user, provide a copy, a means of exporting a copy, or a means
-of obtaining a copy upon request, of the work in its original "Plain
-Vanilla ASCII" or other form. Any alternate format must include the
-full Project Gutenberg-tm License as specified in paragraph 1.E.1.
-
-1.E.7. Do not charge a fee for access to, viewing, displaying,
-performing, copying or distributing any Project Gutenberg-tm works
-unless you comply with paragraph 1.E.8 or 1.E.9.
-
-1.E.8. You may charge a reasonable fee for copies of or providing
-access to or distributing Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works
-provided that
-
-* You pay a royalty fee of 20% of the gross profits you derive from
- the use of Project Gutenberg-tm works calculated using the method
- you already use to calculate your applicable taxes. The fee is owed
- to the owner of the Project Gutenberg-tm trademark, but he has
- agreed to donate royalties under this paragraph to the Project
- Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation. Royalty payments must be paid
- within 60 days following each date on which you prepare (or are
- legally required to prepare) your periodic tax returns. Royalty
- payments should be clearly marked as such and sent to the Project
- Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation at the address specified in
- Section 4, "Information about donations to the Project Gutenberg
- Literary Archive Foundation."
-
-* You provide a full refund of any money paid by a user who notifies
- you in writing (or by e-mail) within 30 days of receipt that s/he
- does not agree to the terms of the full Project Gutenberg-tm
- License. You must require such a user to return or destroy all
- copies of the works possessed in a physical medium and discontinue
- all use of and all access to other copies of Project Gutenberg-tm
- works.
-
-* You provide, in accordance with paragraph 1.F.3, a full refund of
- any money paid for a work or a replacement copy, if a defect in the
- electronic work is discovered and reported to you within 90 days of
- receipt of the work.
-
-* You comply with all other terms of this agreement for free
- distribution of Project Gutenberg-tm works.
-
-1.E.9. If you wish to charge a fee or distribute a Project
-Gutenberg-tm electronic work or group of works on different terms than
-are set forth in this agreement, you must obtain permission in writing
-from both the Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation and The
-Project Gutenberg Trademark LLC, the owner of the Project Gutenberg-tm
-trademark. Contact the Foundation as set forth in Section 3 below.
-
-1.F.
-
-1.F.1. Project Gutenberg volunteers and employees expend considerable
-effort to identify, do copyright research on, transcribe and proofread
-works not protected by U.S. copyright law in creating the Project
-Gutenberg-tm collection. Despite these efforts, Project Gutenberg-tm
-electronic works, and the medium on which they may be stored, may
-contain "Defects," such as, but not limited to, incomplete, inaccurate
-or corrupt data, transcription errors, a copyright or other
-intellectual property infringement, a defective or damaged disk or
-other medium, a computer virus, or computer codes that damage or
-cannot be read by your equipment.
-
-1.F.2. LIMITED WARRANTY, DISCLAIMER OF DAMAGES - Except for the "Right
-of Replacement or Refund" described in paragraph 1.F.3, the Project
-Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation, the owner of the Project
-Gutenberg-tm trademark, and any other party distributing a Project
-Gutenberg-tm electronic work under this agreement, disclaim all
-liability to you for damages, costs and expenses, including legal
-fees. YOU AGREE THAT YOU HAVE NO REMEDIES FOR NEGLIGENCE, STRICT
-LIABILITY, BREACH OF WARRANTY OR BREACH OF CONTRACT EXCEPT THOSE
-PROVIDED IN PARAGRAPH 1.F.3. YOU AGREE THAT THE FOUNDATION, THE
-TRADEMARK OWNER, AND ANY DISTRIBUTOR UNDER THIS AGREEMENT WILL NOT BE
-LIABLE TO YOU FOR ACTUAL, DIRECT, INDIRECT, CONSEQUENTIAL, PUNITIVE OR
-INCIDENTAL DAMAGES EVEN IF YOU GIVE NOTICE OF THE POSSIBILITY OF SUCH
-DAMAGE.
-
-1.F.3. LIMITED RIGHT OF REPLACEMENT OR REFUND - If you discover a
-defect in this electronic work within 90 days of receiving it, you can
-receive a refund of the money (if any) you paid for it by sending a
-written explanation to the person you received the work from. If you
-received the work on a physical medium, you must return the medium
-with your written explanation. The person or entity that provided you
-with the defective work may elect to provide a replacement copy in
-lieu of a refund. If you received the work electronically, the person
-or entity providing it to you may choose to give you a second
-opportunity to receive the work electronically in lieu of a refund. If
-the second copy is also defective, you may demand a refund in writing
-without further opportunities to fix the problem.
-
-1.F.4. Except for the limited right of replacement or refund set forth
-in paragraph 1.F.3, this work is provided to you 'AS-IS', WITH NO
-OTHER WARRANTIES OF ANY KIND, EXPRESS OR IMPLIED, INCLUDING BUT NOT
-LIMITED TO WARRANTIES OF MERCHANTABILITY OR FITNESS FOR ANY PURPOSE.
-
-1.F.5. Some states do not allow disclaimers of certain implied
-warranties or the exclusion or limitation of certain types of
-damages. If any disclaimer or limitation set forth in this agreement
-violates the law of the state applicable to this agreement, the
-agreement shall be interpreted to make the maximum disclaimer or
-limitation permitted by the applicable state law. The invalidity or
-unenforceability of any provision of this agreement shall not void the
-remaining provisions.
-
-1.F.6. INDEMNITY - You agree to indemnify and hold the Foundation, the
-trademark owner, any agent or employee of the Foundation, anyone
-providing copies of Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works in
-accordance with this agreement, and any volunteers associated with the
-production, promotion and distribution of Project Gutenberg-tm
-electronic works, harmless from all liability, costs and expenses,
-including legal fees, that arise directly or indirectly from any of
-the following which you do or cause to occur: (a) distribution of this
-or any Project Gutenberg-tm work, (b) alteration, modification, or
-additions or deletions to any Project Gutenberg-tm work, and (c) any
-Defect you cause.
-
-Section 2. Information about the Mission of Project Gutenberg-tm
-
-Project Gutenberg-tm is synonymous with the free distribution of
-electronic works in formats readable by the widest variety of
-computers including obsolete, old, middle-aged and new computers. It
-exists because of the efforts of hundreds of volunteers and donations
-from people in all walks of life.
-
-Volunteers and financial support to provide volunteers with the
-assistance they need are critical to reaching Project Gutenberg-tm's
-goals and ensuring that the Project Gutenberg-tm collection will
-remain freely available for generations to come. In 2001, the Project
-Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation was created to provide a secure
-and permanent future for Project Gutenberg-tm and future
-generations. To learn more about the Project Gutenberg Literary
-Archive Foundation and how your efforts and donations can help, see
-Sections 3 and 4 and the Foundation information page at
-www.gutenberg.org
-
-
-
-Section 3. Information about the Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation
-
-The Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation is a non profit
-501(c)(3) educational corporation organized under the laws of the
-state of Mississippi and granted tax exempt status by the Internal
-Revenue Service. The Foundation's EIN or federal tax identification
-number is 64-6221541. Contributions to the Project Gutenberg Literary
-Archive Foundation are tax deductible to the full extent permitted by
-U.S. federal laws and your state's laws.
-
-The Foundation's principal office is in Fairbanks, Alaska, with the
-mailing address: PO Box 750175, Fairbanks, AK 99775, but its
-volunteers and employees are scattered throughout numerous
-locations. Its business office is located at 809 North 1500 West, Salt
-Lake City, UT 84116, (801) 596-1887. Email contact links and up to
-date contact information can be found at the Foundation's web site and
-official page at www.gutenberg.org/contact
-
-For additional contact information:
-
- Dr. Gregory B. Newby
- Chief Executive and Director
- gbnewby@pglaf.org
-
-Section 4. Information about Donations to the Project Gutenberg
-Literary Archive Foundation
-
-Project Gutenberg-tm depends upon and cannot survive without wide
-spread public support and donations to carry out its mission of
-increasing the number of public domain and licensed works that can be
-freely distributed in machine readable form accessible by the widest
-array of equipment including outdated equipment. Many small donations
-($1 to $5,000) are particularly important to maintaining tax exempt
-status with the IRS.
-
-The Foundation is committed to complying with the laws regulating
-charities and charitable donations in all 50 states of the United
-States. Compliance requirements are not uniform and it takes a
-considerable effort, much paperwork and many fees to meet and keep up
-with these requirements. We do not solicit donations in locations
-where we have not received written confirmation of compliance. To SEND
-DONATIONS or determine the status of compliance for any particular
-state visit www.gutenberg.org/donate
-
-While we cannot and do not solicit contributions from states where we
-have not met the solicitation requirements, we know of no prohibition
-against accepting unsolicited donations from donors in such states who
-approach us with offers to donate.
-
-International donations are gratefully accepted, but we cannot make
-any statements concerning tax treatment of donations received from
-outside the United States. U.S. laws alone swamp our small staff.
-
-Please check the Project Gutenberg Web pages for current donation
-methods and addresses. Donations are accepted in a number of other
-ways including checks, online payments and credit card donations. To
-donate, please visit: www.gutenberg.org/donate
-
-Section 5. General Information About Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works.
-
-Professor Michael S. Hart was the originator of the Project
-Gutenberg-tm concept of a library of electronic works that could be
-freely shared with anyone. For forty years, he produced and
-distributed Project Gutenberg-tm eBooks with only a loose network of
-volunteer support.
-
-Project Gutenberg-tm eBooks are often created from several printed
-editions, all of which are confirmed as not protected by copyright in
-the U.S. unless a copyright notice is included. Thus, we do not
-necessarily keep eBooks in compliance with any particular paper
-edition.
-
-Most people start at our Web site which has the main PG search
-facility: www.gutenberg.org
-
-This Web site includes information about Project Gutenberg-tm,
-including how to make donations to the Project Gutenberg Literary
-Archive Foundation, how to help produce our new eBooks, and how to
-subscribe to our email newsletter to hear about new eBooks.
-
diff --git a/old/62346-0.zip b/old/62346-0.zip
deleted file mode 100644
index b9f6088..0000000
--- a/old/62346-0.zip
+++ /dev/null
Binary files differ
diff --git a/old/62346-h.zip b/old/62346-h.zip
deleted file mode 100644
index 2544eba..0000000
--- a/old/62346-h.zip
+++ /dev/null
Binary files differ
diff --git a/old/62346-h/62346-h.htm b/old/62346-h/62346-h.htm
deleted file mode 100644
index 2f93788..0000000
--- a/old/62346-h/62346-h.htm
+++ /dev/null
@@ -1,13571 +0,0 @@
-<!DOCTYPE html PUBLIC "-//W3C//DTD XHTML 1.0 Strict//EN"
- "http://www.w3.org/TR/xhtml1/DTD/xhtml1-strict.dtd">
-<html xmlns="http://www.w3.org/1999/xhtml" xml:lang="en" lang="en">
- <head>
- <meta http-equiv="Content-Type" content="text/html;charset=UTF-8" />
- <title>In Black and White, by Rudyard Kipling</title>
- <link rel="coverpage" href="images/cover.jpg" />
- <style type="text/css">
- body { margin-left: 8%; margin-right: 10%; }
- h1 { text-align: center; font-weight: normal; font-size: 1.4em; }
- h2 { text-align: center; font-weight: normal; font-size: 1.2em; }
- h3 { text-align: center; font-weight: normal; font-size: 1.2em; }
- .pageno { right: 1%; font-size: x-small; background-color: inherit; color: silver;
- text-indent: 0em; text-align: right; position: absolute;
- border: thin solid silver; padding: .1em .2em; font-style: normal;
- font-variant: normal; font-weight: normal; text-decoration: none; }
- p { text-indent: 0; margin-top: 0.5em; margin-bottom: 0.5em; text-align: justify; }
- sup { vertical-align: top; font-size: 0.6em; }
- .fss { font-size: 75%; }
- .sc { font-variant: small-caps; }
- .large { font-size: large; }
- .xxlarge { font-size: xx-large; }
- .small { font-size: small; }
- .lg-container-b { text-align: center; }
- @media handheld { .lg-container-b { clear: both; } }
- .linegroup { display: inline-block; text-align: left; }
- @media handheld { .linegroup { display: block; margin-left: 1.5em; } }
- .linegroup .group { margin: 1em auto; }
- .linegroup .line { text-indent: -3em; padding-left: 3em; }
- div.linegroup > :first-child { margin-top: 0; }
- .linegroup .in2 { padding-left: 4.0em; }
- .linegroup .in23 { padding-left: 14.5em; }
- .linegroup .in24 { padding-left: 15.0em; }
- .linegroup .in29 { padding-left: 17.5em; }
- .linegroup .in34 { padding-left: 20.0em; }
- .linegroup .in4 { padding-left: 5.0em; }
- .linegroup .in44 { padding-left: 25.0em; }
- div.footnote > :first-child { margin-top: 1em; }
- div.footnote p { text-indent: 1em; margin-top: 0.0em; margin-bottom: 0.0em; }
- div.pbb { page-break-before: always; }
- hr.pb { border: none; border-bottom: thin solid; margin-bottom: 1em; }
- @media handheld { hr.pb { display: none; } }
- .chapter { clear: both; page-break-before: always; }
- .figcenter { clear: both; max-width: 100%; margin: 2em auto; text-align: center; }
- div.figcenter p { text-align: center; text-indent: 0; }
- .figcenter img { max-width: 100%; height: auto; }
- .id001 { width:60%; }
- .id002 { width:323px; }
- .id003 { width:150px; }
- .id004 { width:5%; }
- .id005 { width:315px; }
- @media handheld { .id001 { margin-left:20%; width:60%; } }
- @media handheld { .id002 { margin-left:17%; width:66%; } }
- @media handheld { .id003 { margin-left:35%; width:30%; } }
- @media handheld { .id004 { margin-left:47%; width:5%; } }
- @media handheld { .id005 { margin-left:20%; width:60%; } }
- .ic002 { width:100%; }
- .ig001 { width:100%; }
- .table0 { margin: auto; margin-top: 2em; margin-left: 0%; margin-right: 0%;
- width: 100%; }
- .table1 { margin: auto; width: 90%; }
- .nf-center { text-align: center; }
- .nf-center-c0 { text-align: left; margin: 0.5em 0; }
- p.drop-capa0_4_0_4 { text-indent: -0.4em; }
- p.drop-capa0_4_0_4:first-letter { float: left; margin: 0.100em 0.100em 0em 0em;
- font-size: 250%; line-height: 0.4em; text-indent: 0; }
- @media handheld {
- p.drop-capa0_4_0_4 { text-indent: 0; }
- p.drop-capa0_4_0_4:first-letter { float: none; margin: 0; font-size: 100%; }
- }
- .c000 { margin-top: 1em; }
- .c001 { text-indent: 1em; margin-top: 0.0em; margin-bottom: 0.0em; }
- .c002 { margin-top: 2em; }
- .c003 { page-break-before: always; margin-top: 1em; }
- .c004 { page-break-before:auto; margin-top: 4em; }
- .c005 { margin-top: 2em; text-indent: 1em; margin-bottom: 0.0em; }
- .c006 { vertical-align: top; text-align: left; padding-right: 1em; }
- .c007 { vertical-align: top; text-align: right; }
- .c008 { text-align: center; }
- .c009 { page-break-before:auto; margin-top: 8em; }
- .c010 { page-break-before: always; margin-top: 4em; }
- .c011 { page-break-before:auto; margin-top: 1em; }
- .c012 { margin-left: 5.56%; text-indent: -5.56%; margin-top: 2em; font-size: 90%;
- margin-bottom: 0.0em; }
- .c013 { margin-top: 0.0em; margin-bottom: 0.0em; }
- .c014 { border: none; border-bottom: thin solid; margin-top: 0.8em;
- margin-bottom: 0.8em; margin-left: 35%; margin-right: 35%; width: 30%; }
- .c015 { margin-top: 2em; font-size: 95%; }
- .c016 { margin-top: 2em; margin-bottom: 0.0em; }
- .c017 { margin-top: 1em; font-size: 95%; }
- .c018 { text-indent: 0; margin-top: 1em; margin-bottom: 0.0em; }
- .c019 { margin-top: 1em; text-indent: 1em; margin-bottom: 0.0em; }
- .c020 { text-decoration: none; }
- .c021 { page-break-before: always; margin-top: 2em; }
- .c022 { margin-left: 5.56%; font-size: 90%; text-indent: 1em; margin-top: 0.0em;
- margin-bottom: 0.0em; }
- .c023 { text-indent: 0; margin-top: 0.0em; margin-bottom: 0.0em; }
- .c024 { vertical-align: top; text-align: left; }
- a:link { text-decoration: none; }
- div.tnotes { padding-left:1em;padding-right:1em;background-color:#E3E4FA;
- border:1px solid silver; margin:1em 5% 0 5%; text-align: justify; }
- .epubonly {visibility: hidden; display: none; }
- @media handheld { .epubonly { visibility: visible; display: inline; } }
- .htmlonly {visibility: visible; display: inline; }
- @media handheld { .htmlonly { visibility: hidden; display: none; } }
- div.box { border: 1px black solid; }
- ins.correction { text-decoration:none; border-bottom: thin dotted gray; }
- .quote { font-size: 95%; margin-top: 1.0em; margin-bottom: 1.0em; }
- .linegroup .group { margin: 0em auto; }
- .inline { display: inline-block; text-align: center; vertical-align: middle; }
- </style>
- </head>
- <body>
-
-
-<pre>
-
-The Project Gutenberg EBook of In Black and White, by Rudyard Kipling
-
-This eBook is for the use of anyone anywhere in the United States and most
-other parts of the world at no cost and with almost no restrictions
-whatsoever. You may copy it, give it away or re-use it under the terms of
-the Project Gutenberg License included with this eBook or online at
-www.gutenberg.org. If you are not located in the United States, you'll have
-to check the laws of the country where you are located before using this ebook.
-
-Title: In Black and White
- The writings in prose and verse of Rudyard Kipling
-
-Author: Rudyard Kipling
-
-Release Date: June 8, 2020 [EBook #62346]
-
-Language: English
-
-Character set encoding: UTF-8
-
-*** START OF THIS PROJECT GUTENBERG EBOOK IN BLACK AND WHITE ***
-
-
-
-
-Produced by KD Weeks, MFR and the Online Distributed
-Proofreading Team at https://www.pgdp.net (This file was
-produced from images generously made available by The
-Internet Archive)
-
-
-
-
-
-
-</pre>
-
-
-<div class='pbb'>
- <hr class='pb c000' />
-</div>
-<div class='tnotes'>
-
-<div class='nf-center-c0'>
- <div class='nf-center'>
- <div>Transcriber’s Note:</div>
- </div>
-</div>
-
-<p class='c001'>Footnotes have been collected at the end of each chapter, and are
-linked for ease of reference.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>Minor errors, attributable to the printer, have been corrected. Please
-see the transcriber’s <a href='#endnote'>note</a> at the end of this text
-for details regarding the handling of any textual issues encountered
-during its preparation.</p>
-
-<div class='htmlonly'>
-
-<p class='c001'>Any corrections are indicated using an <ins class='correction' title='original'>underline</ins>
-highlight. Placing the cursor over the correction will produce the
-original text in a small popup.</p>
-
-<div class='figcenter id001'>
-<img src='images/cover.jpg' alt='' class='ig001' />
-</div>
-
-</div>
-<div class='epubonly'>
-
-<p class='c001'>Any corrections are indicated as hyperlinks, which will navigate the
-reader to the corresponding entry in the corrections table in the
-note at the end of the text.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class='box'>
-
-<div class='nf-center-c0'>
- <div class='nf-center'>
- <div><span class='large'>RUDYARD KIPLING</span></div>
- <div class='c002'><span class='large'><span class='sc'>Volume IV</span></span></div>
- </div>
-</div>
-
-<div>
- <h1 class='c003'><span class='large'>IN BLACK AND WHITE</span></h1>
-</div>
-
-</div>
-
-<div id='frontis' class='figcenter id002'>
-<img src='images/i_frontis.jpg' alt='' class='ig001' />
-<div class='ic002'>
-<p>ON THE CITY WALL</p>
-</div>
-</div>
-
-<div class='box'>
-
-<div class='nf-center-c0'>
-<div class='nf-center c000'>
- <div>THE WRITINGS IN PROSE AND VERSE OF</div>
- <div class='c000'><span class='large'>RUDYARD KIPLING</span></div>
- </div>
-</div>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class='box'>
-
-<div class='nf-center-c0'>
- <div class='nf-center'>
- <div><span class='xxlarge'>IN BLACK AND</span></div>
- <div><span class='xxlarge'>WHITE</span> <img class="inline" src="images/decoration3.jpg" height="25px" width="125px#" alt="" /></div>
- </div>
-</div>
-
-<div class='figcenter id003'>
-<img src='images/title_medallion.jpg' alt='' class='ig001' />
-</div>
-
-<div class='nf-center-c0'>
- <div class='nf-center'>
- <div>NEW YORK</div>
- <div>CHARLES SCRIBNER’S SONS</div>
- <div>1909</div>
- </div>
-</div>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class='nf-center-c0'>
- <div class='nf-center'>
- <div><i>Copyright, 1895</i>,</div>
- <div>By <span class='sc'>Macmillan and Co.</span></div>
- <div class='c000'><i>Copyright, 1897</i>,</div>
- <div>By <span class='sc'>Rudyard Kipling</span></div>
- </div>
-</div>
-
-<div class='chapter'>
- <span class='pageno' id='Page_v'>v</span>
- <h2 class='c004'>PREFACE</h2>
-</div>
-
-<p class='c005'>In Northern India stood a monastery called The
-Chubára of Dhunni Bhagat. No one remembered
-who or what Dhunni Bhagat had been. He had
-lived his life, made a little money and spent it all,
-as every good Hindu should do, on a work of
-piety—the Chubára. That was full of brick cells,
-gaily painted with the figures of Gods and kings
-and elephants, where worn-out priests could sit
-and meditate on the latter end of things: the paths
-were brick-paved, and the naked feet of thousands
-had worn them into gutters. Clumps of mangoes
-sprouted from between the bricks; great pipal
-trees overhung the well-windlass that whined all
-day; and hosts of parrots tore through the trees.
-Crows and squirrels were tame in that place, for
-they knew that never a priest would touch them.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>The wandering mendicants, charm-sellers, and
-holy vagabonds for a hundred miles round used to
-make the Chubára their place of call and rest.
-Mahommedan, Sikh, and Hindu mixed equally under
-the trees. They were old men, and when man
-has come to the turnstiles of Night all the creeds
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_vi'>vi</span>in the world seem to him wonderfully alike and
-colourless.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>Gobind the one-eyed told me this. He was a
-holy man who lived on an island in the middle of
-a river, and fed the fishes with little bread pellets
-twice a day. In flood-time, when swollen corpses
-stranded themselves at the foot of the island, Gobind
-would cause them to be piously burned, for
-the sake of the honour of mankind, and having
-regard to his own account with God hereafter.
-But when two-thirds of the island was torn away
-in a spate, Gobind came across the river to Dhunni
-Bhagat’s Chubára, he and his brass drinking-vessel
-with the well-cord round the neck, his short arm-rest
-crutch studded with brass nails, his roll of
-bedding, his big pipe, his umbrella, and his tall
-sugar-loaf hat with the nodding peacock feathers
-in it. He wrapped himself up in his patched
-quilt made of every colour and material in the
-world, sat down in a sunny corner of the very
-quiet Chubára, and, resting his arm on his short-handled
-crutch, waited for death. The people
-brought him food and little clumps of marigold
-flowers, and he gave his blessing in return. He
-was nearly blind, and his face was seamed and
-lined and wrinkled beyond belief, for he had lived
-in his time, which was before the English came
-within five hundred miles of Dhunni Bhagat’s
-Chubára.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'><span class='pageno' id='Page_vii'>vii</span>When we grew to know each other well, Gobind
-would tell me tales in a voice most like the
-rumbling of heavy guns over a wooden bridge. His
-tales were true, but not one in twenty could be
-printed in an English book, because the English
-do not think as natives do. They brood over
-matters that a native would dismiss till a fitting
-occasion; and what they would not think twice
-about a native will brood over till a fitting occasion:
-then native and English stare at each other
-hopelessly across great gulfs of miscomprehension.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>“And what,” said Gobind one Sunday evening,
-“is your honoured craft, and by what manner of
-means earn you your daily bread?”</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>“I am,” said I, “a <em>kerani</em>—one who writes
-with a pen upon paper, not being in the service
-of the Government.”</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>“Then what do you write?” said Gobind.
-“Come nearer, for I cannot see your countenance,
-and the light fails.”</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>“I write of all matters that lie within my understanding,
-and of many that do not. But chiefly
-I write of Life and Death, and men and women,
-and Love and Fate, according to the measure of
-my ability, telling the tale through the mouths of
-one, two, or more people. Then by the favour
-of God the tales are sold and money accrues to
-me that I may keep alive.”</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>“Even so,” said Gobind. “That is the work
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_viii'>viii</span>of the bazar story-teller; but he speaks straight to
-men and women and does not write anything at
-all. Only when the tale has aroused expectation
-and calamities are about to befall the virtuous, he
-stops suddenly and demands payment ere he continues
-the narration. Is it so in your craft, my
-son?”</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>“I have heard of such things when a tale is of
-great length, and is sold as a cucumber, in small
-pieces.”</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>“Ay, I was once a famed teller of stories when
-I was begging on the road between Koshin and
-Etra, before the last pilgrimage that ever I took
-to Orissa. I told many tales and heard many more
-at the rest-houses in the evening when we were
-merry at the end of the march. It is in my heart
-that grown men are but as little children in the
-matter of tales, and the oldest tale is the most beloved.”</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>“With your people that is truth,” said I. “But
-in regard to our people they desire new tales, and
-when all is written they rise up and declare that
-the tale were better told in such and such a manner,
-and doubt either the truth or the invention
-thereof.”</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>“But what folly is theirs!” said Gobind, throwing
-out his knotted hand. “A tale that is told is
-a true tale as long as the telling lasts. And of
-their talk upon it—you know how Bilas Khan,
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_ix'>ix</span>that was the prince of tale-tellers, said to one
-who mocked him in the great rest-house on the
-Jhelum road: ‘Go on, my brother, and finish that
-I have begun,’ and he who mocked took up the
-tale, but having neither voice nor manner for the
-task, came to a standstill, and the pilgrims at supper
-made him eat abuse and stick half that night.”</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>“Nay, but with our people, money having
-passed, it is their right; as we should turn against
-a shoeseller in regard to shoes if those wore out.
-If ever I make a book you shall see and judge.”</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>“And the parrot said to the falling tree, Wait,
-brother, till I fetch a prop!” said Gobind with a
-grim chuckle. “God has given me eighty years,
-and it may be some over. I cannot look for more
-than day granted by day and as a favour at this
-tide. Be swift.”</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>“In what manner is it best to set about the
-task,” said I, “O chiefest of those who string
-pearls with their tongue?”</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>“How do I know? Yet”—he thought for a
-little—“how should I not know? God has made
-very many heads, but there is only one heart in all
-the world among your people or my people. They
-are children in the matter of tales.”</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>“But none are so terrible as the little ones, if a
-man misplace a word, or in a second telling vary
-events by so much as one small devil.”</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>“Ay, I also have told tales to the little ones,
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_x'>x</span>but do thou this—” His old eyes fell on the
-gaudy paintings of the wall, the blue and red
-dome, and the flames of the poinsettias beyond.
-“Tell them first of those things that thou hast
-seen and they have seen together. Thus their
-knowledge will piece out thy imperfections. Tell
-them of what thou alone hast seen, then what
-thou hast heard, and since they be children tell
-them of battles and kings, horses, devils, elephants,
-and angels, but omit not to tell them of love and
-such like. All the earth is full of tales to him who
-listens and does not drive away the poor from his
-door. The poor are the best of tale-tellers; for
-they must lay their ear to the ground every night.”</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>After this conversation the idea grew in my
-head, and Gobind was pressing in his inquiries as
-to the health of the book.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>Later, when we had been parted for months, it
-happened that I was to go away and far off, and
-I came to bid Gobind good-bye.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>“It is farewell between us now, for I go a very
-long journey,” I said.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>“And I also. A longer one than thou. But
-what of the book?” said he.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>“It will be born in due season if it is so ordained.”</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>“I would I could see it,” said the old man,
-huddling beneath his quilt. “But that will not
-be. I die three days hence, in the night, a little
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_xi'>xi</span>before the dawn. The term of my years is accomplished.”</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>In nine cases out of ten a native makes no miscalculation
-as to the day of his death. He has
-the foreknowledge of the beasts in this respect.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>“Then thou wilt depart in peace, and it is good
-talk, for thou hast said that life is no delight to
-thee.”</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>“But it is a pity that our book is not born.
-How shall I know that there is any record of my
-name?”</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>“Because I promise, in the forepart of the book,
-preceding everything else, that it shall be written,
-Gobind, sadhu, of the island in the river and
-awaiting God in Dhunni Bhagat’s Chubára, first
-spoke of the book,” said I.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>“And gave counsel—an old man’s counsel.
-Gobind, son of Gobind of the Chumi village in
-the Karaon tehsil, in the district of Mooltan. Will
-that be written also?”</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>“That will be written also.”</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>“And the book will go across the Black Water
-to the houses of your people, and all the Sahibs
-will know of me who am eighty years old?”</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>“All who read the book shall know. I cannot
-promise for the rest.”</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>“That is good talk. Call aloud to all who are
-in the monastery, and I will tell them this thing.”</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>They trooped up, <em>faquirs</em>, <em>sadhus</em>, <em>sunnyasis</em>, <em>byragis</em>,
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_xii'>xii</span><em>nihangs</em>, and <em>mullahs</em>, priests of all faiths and
-every degree of raggedness, and Gobind, leaning
-upon his crutch, spoke so that they were visibly
-filled with envy, and a white-haired senior bade
-Gobind think of his latter end instead of transitory
-repute in the mouths of strangers. Then Gobind
-gave me his blessing, and I came away.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>These tales have been collected from all places,
-and all sorts of people, from priests in the Chubára,
-from Ala Yar the carver, Jiwun Singh the carpenter,
-nameless men on steamers and trains round the
-world, women spinning outside their cottages in
-the twilight, officers and gentlemen now dead and
-buried, and a few, but these are the very best, my
-father gave me. The greater part of them have
-been published in magazines and newspapers, to
-whose editors I am indebted; but some are new on
-this side of the water, and some have not seen the
-light before.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>The most remarkable stories are, of course, those
-which do not appear—for obvious reasons.</p>
-
-<div class='chapter'>
- <span class='pageno' id='Page_xiii'>xiii</span>
- <h2 class='c004'>CONTENTS</h2>
-</div>
-
-<table class='table0' summary=''>
-<colgroup>
-<col width='83%' />
-<col width='16%' />
-</colgroup>
- <tr>
- <td class='c006'>&nbsp;</td>
- <td class='c007'><span class='small'>PAGE</span></td>
- </tr>
- <tr>
- <td class='c006'>DRAY WARA YOW DEE</td>
- <td class='c007'><a href='#Page_1'>1</a></td>
- </tr>
- <tr>
- <td class='c006'>NAMGAY DOOLA</td>
- <td class='c007'><a href='#Page_17'>17</a></td>
- </tr>
- <tr>
- <td class='c006'>“THE CITY OF DREADFUL NIGHT”</td>
- <td class='c007'><a href='#Page_35'>35</a></td>
- </tr>
- <tr>
- <td class='c006'>THE JUDGMENT OF DUNGARA</td>
- <td class='c007'><a href='#Page_46'>46</a></td>
- </tr>
- <tr>
- <td class='c006'>THE FINANCES OF THE GODS</td>
- <td class='c007'><a href='#Page_60'>60</a></td>
- </tr>
- <tr>
- <td class='c006'>AT HOWLI THANA</td>
- <td class='c007'><a href='#Page_67'>67</a></td>
- </tr>
- <tr>
- <td class='c006'>IN FLOOD TIME</td>
- <td class='c007'><a href='#Page_75'>75</a></td>
- </tr>
- <tr>
- <td class='c006'>MOTI GUJ—MUTINEER</td>
- <td class='c007'><a href='#Page_90'>90</a></td>
- </tr>
- <tr>
- <td class='c006'>WITHOUT BENEFIT OF CLERGY</td>
- <td class='c007'><a href='#Page_101'>101</a></td>
- </tr>
- <tr>
- <td class='c006'>NABOTH</td>
- <td class='c007'><a href='#Page_139'>139</a></td>
- </tr>
- <tr>
- <td class='c006'>THE SENDING OF DANA DA</td>
- <td class='c007'><a href='#Page_145'>145</a></td>
- </tr>
- <tr>
- <td class='c006'>THROUGH THE FIRE</td>
- <td class='c007'><a href='#Page_161'>161</a></td>
- </tr>
- <tr>
- <td class='c006'>THE HEAD OF THE DISTRICT</td>
- <td class='c007'><a href='#Page_168'>168</a></td>
- </tr>
- <tr>
- <td class='c006'>THE AMIR’S HOMILY</td>
- <td class='c007'><a href='#Page_204'>204</a></td>
- </tr>
- <tr>
- <td class='c006'>AT TWENTY-TWO</td>
- <td class='c007'><a href='#Page_210'>210</a></td>
- </tr>
- <tr>
- <td class='c006'>JEWS IN SHUSHAN</td>
- <td class='c007'><a href='#Page_227'>227</a></td>
- </tr>
- <tr>
- <td class='c006'>GEORGIE PORGIE</td>
- <td class='c007'><a href='#Page_233'>233</a></td>
- </tr>
- <tr>
- <td class='c006'><span class='pageno' id='Page_xiv'>xiv</span>LITTLE TOBRAH</td>
- <td class='c007'><a href='#Page_247'>247</a></td>
- </tr>
- <tr>
- <td class='c006'>GEMINI</td>
- <td class='c007'><a href='#Page_252'>252</a></td>
- </tr>
- <tr>
- <td class='c006'>THE LIMITATIONS OF PAMBÉ SERANG</td>
- <td class='c007'><a href='#Page_266'>266</a></td>
- </tr>
- <tr>
- <td class='c006'>ONE VIEW OF THE QUESTION</td>
- <td class='c007'><a href='#Page_274'>274</a></td>
- </tr>
- <tr><td class='c008' colspan='2'><span class='small'>FROM “MANY INVENTIONS.”</span></td></tr>
- <tr>
- <td class='c006'>ON THE CITY WALL</td>
- <td class='c007'><a href='#Page_302'>302</a></td>
- </tr>
- <tr>
- <td class='c006'>THE ENLIGHTENMENTS OF PAGETT, M. P.</td>
- <td class='c007'><a href='#Page_340'>340</a></td>
- </tr>
-</table>
-
-<div class='figcenter id004'>
-<img src='images/decoration.jpg' alt='' class='ig001' />
-</div>
-
-<div class='chapter'>
- <span class='pageno' id='Page_xv'>xv</span>
- <h2 class='c009'>ILLUSTRATIONS</h2>
-</div>
-
-<table class='table0' summary=''>
-<colgroup>
-<col width='78%' />
-<col width='21%' />
-</colgroup>
- <tr>
- <td class='c006'>ON THE CITY WALL</td>
- <td class='c007'><span class='fss'>FRONTISPIECE</span></td>
- </tr>
- <tr>
- <td class='c006'>THE JUDGMENT OF DUNGARA</td>
- <td class='c007'><span class='fss'>PAGE</span> <a href='#i052'>52</a></td>
- </tr>
- <tr>
- <td class='c006'>THE SENDING OF DANA DA</td>
- <td class='c007'><a href='#i158'>158</a></td>
- </tr>
-</table>
-
-<div>
- <span class='pageno' id='Page_1'>1</span>
- <h1 class='c010'>IN BLACK AND WHITE</h1>
-</div>
-
-<div class='chapter'>
- <h2 class='c011'>DRAY WARA YOW DEE</h2>
-</div>
-
-<p class='c012'>For jealousy is the rage of a man: therefore he will not
-spare in the day of vengeance.—<cite>Prov.</cite> vi. 34.</p>
-
-<p class='drop-capa0_4_0_4 c013'>Almonds and raisins, Sahib? Grapes from
-Kabul? Or a pony of the rarest if the
-Sahib will only come with me. He is thirteen
-three, Sahib, plays polo, goes in a cart, carries a
-lady and—Holy Kurshed and the Blessed Imams,
-it is the Sahib himself! My heart is made fat and
-my eye glad. May you never be tired! As is
-cold water in the Tirah, so is the sight of a friend
-in a far place. And what do <em>you</em> in this accursed
-land? South of Delhi, Sahib, you know the saying—“Rats
-are the men and trulls the women.”
-It was an order? Ahoo! An order is an order
-till one is strong enough to disobey. O my
-brother, O my friend, we have met in an auspicious
-hour! Is all well in the heart and the body and
-the house? In a lucky day have we two come
-together again.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'><span class='pageno' id='Page_2'>2</span>I am to go with you? Your favour is great.
-Will there be picket-room in the compound? I
-have three horses and the bundles and the horse-boy.
-Moreover, remember that the police here
-hold me a horse-thief. What do these Lowland
-bastards know of horse-thieves? Do you remember
-that time in Peshawur when Kamal hammered
-on the gates of Jumrud—mountebank that he
-was—and lifted the Colonel’s horses all in one
-night? Kamal is dead now, but his nephew has
-taken up the matter, and there will be more horses
-amissing if the Khaiber Levies do not look to it.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>The Peace of God and the favour of His
-Prophet be upon this house and all that is in it!
-Shafizullah, rope the mottled mare under the tree
-and draw water. The horses can stand in the sun,
-but double the felts over the loins. Nay, my
-friend, do not trouble to look them over. They
-are to sell to the Officer fools who know so many
-things of the horse. The mare is heavy in foal;
-the gray is a devil unlicked; and the dun—but
-you know the trick of the peg. When they are
-sold I go back to Pubbi, or, it may be, the Valley
-of Peshawur.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>O friend of my heart, it is good to see you
-again. I have been bowing and lying all day to
-the Officer Sahibs in respect to those horses; and
-my mouth is dry for straight talk. <em>Auggrh!</em>
-Before a meal tobacco is good. Do not join <a id='corr2.29'></a><span class='htmlonly'><ins class='correction' title='me.'>me,</ins></span><span class='epubonly'><a href='#c_2.29'><ins class='correction' title='me.'>me,</ins></a></span>
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_3'>3</span>for we are not in our own country. Sit in the
-verandah and I will spread my cloth here. But
-first I will drink. <em>In the name of God returning
-thanks, thrice!</em> This is sweet water, indeed—sweet
-as the water of Sheoran when it comes from
-the snows.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>They are all well and pleased in the North—Khoda
-Baksh and the others. Yar Khan has
-come down with the horses from Kurdistan—six
-and thirty head only, and a full half pack-ponies—and
-has said openly in the Kashmir Serai that
-you English should send guns and blow the Amir
-into Hell. There are <em>fifteen</em> tolls now on the
-Kabul road; and at Dakka, when he thought he
-was clear, Yar Khan was stripped of all his Balkh
-stallions by the Governor! This is a great injustice,
-and Yar Khan is hot with rage. And of
-the others: Mahbub Ali is still at Pubbi, writing
-God knows what. Tugluq Khan is in jail for the
-business of the Kohat Police Post. Faiz Beg
-came down from Ismail-ki-Dhera with a Bokhariot
-belt for thee, my brother, at the closing of the year,
-but none knew whither thou hadst gone: there
-was no news left behind. The Cousins have taken
-a new run near Pakpattan to breed mules for the
-Government carts, and there is a story in Bazar of
-a priest. Oho! Such a salt tale! Listen——</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>Sahib, why do you ask that? My clothes are
-fouled because of the dust on the road. My eyes
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_4'>4</span>are sad because of the glare of the sun. My feet
-are swollen because I have washed them in bitter
-water, and my cheeks are hollow because the food
-here is bad. Fire burn your money! What do
-I want with it? I am rich and I thought you
-were my friend; but you are like the others—a
-Sahib. Is a man sad? Give him money, say the
-Sahibs. Is he dishonoured? Give him money,
-say the Sahibs. Hath he a wrong upon his head?
-Give him money, say the Sahibs. Such are the
-Sahibs, and such art thou—even thou.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>Nay, do not look at the feet of the dun. Pity
-it is that I ever taught you to know the legs of
-a horse. Footsore? Be it so. What of that?
-The roads are hard. And the mare footsore?
-She bears a double burden, Sahib.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>And now I pray you, give me permission to
-depart. Great favour and honour has the Sahib
-done me, and graciously has he shown his belief
-that the horses are stolen. Will it please him to
-send me to the Thana? To call a sweeper and
-have me led away by one of these lizard-men?
-I am the Sahib’s friend. I have drunk water in
-the shadow of his house, and he has blackened my
-face. Remains there anything more to do? Will
-the Sahib give me eight annas to make smooth the
-injury and—complete the insult——?</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>Forgive me, my brother. I knew not—I know
-not now—what I say. Yes, I lied to you! I
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_5'>5</span>will put dust on my head—and I am an Afridi!
-The horses have been marched footsore from the
-Valley to this place, and my eyes are dim, and my
-body aches for the want of sleep, and my heart is
-dried up with sorrow and shame. But as it was
-my shame, so by God the Dispenser of Justice—by
-Allah-al-Mumit—it shall be my own revenge!</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>We have spoken together with naked hearts
-before this, and our hands have dipped into the
-same dish and thou hast been to me as a brother.
-Therefore I pay thee back with lies and ingratitude—as
-a Pathan. Listen now! When the
-grief of the soul is too heavy for endurance it
-may be a little eased by speech, and, moreover,
-the mind of a true man is as a well, and the pebble
-of confession dropped therein sinks and is no
-more seen. From the Valley have I come on
-foot, league by league, with a fire in my chest
-like the fire of the Pit. And why? Hast thou,
-then, so quickly forgotten our customs, among
-this folk who sell their wives and their daughters
-for silver? Come back with me to the North
-and be among men once more. Come back,
-when this matter is accomplished and I call for
-thee! The bloom of the peach-orchards is upon
-all the Valley, and <em>here</em> is only dust and a great
-stink. There is a pleasant wind among the mulberry
-trees, and the streams are bright with snow-water,
-and the caravans go up and the caravans go
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_6'>6</span>down, and a hundred fires sparkle in the gut of
-the Pass, and tent-peg answers hammer-nose, and
-pack-horse squeals to pack-horse across the drift
-smoke of the evening. It is good in the North
-now. Come back with me. Let us return to our
-own people! Come!</p>
-
-<hr class='c014' />
-
-<p class='c001'>Whence is my sorrow? Does a man tear out
-his heart and make fritters thereof over a slow fire
-for aught other than a woman? Do not laugh,
-friend of mine, for your time will also be. A woman
-of the Abazai was she, and I took her to wife to
-staunch the feud between our village and the men
-of Ghor. I am no longer young? The lime has
-touched my beard? True. I had no need of the
-wedding? Nay, but I loved her. What saith
-Rahman: “Into whose heart Love enters, there is
-Folly <em>and naught else</em>. By a glance of the eye she
-hath blinded thee; and by the eyelids and the
-fringe of the eyelids taken thee into the captivity
-without ransom, <em>and naught else</em>.” Dost thou remember
-that song at the sheep-roasting in the
-Pindi camp among the Uzbegs of the Amir?</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>The Abazai are dogs and their women the servants
-of sin. There was a lover of her own people,
-but of that her father told me naught. My friend,
-curse for me in your prayers, as I curse at each
-praying from the Fakr to the Isha, the name of
-Daoud Shah, Abazai, whose head is still upon his
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_7'>7</span>neck, whose hands are still upon his wrists, who
-has done me dishonour, who has made my name
-a laughing-stock among the women of Little
-Malikand.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>I went into Hindustan at the end of two months—to
-Cherat. I was gone twelve days only; but
-I had said that I would be fifteen days absent.
-This I did to try her, for it is written: “Trust not
-the incapable.” Coming up the gorge alone in the
-falling of the light, I heard the voice of a man
-singing at the door of my house; and it was the
-voice of Daoud Shah, and the song that he sang
-was “<em>Dray wara yow dee</em>”—“All three are one.”
-It was as though a heel-rope had been slipped round
-my heart and all the Devils were drawing it tight
-past endurance. I crept silently up the hill-road,
-but the fuse of my matchlock was wetted with the
-rain, and I could not slay Daoud Shah from afar.
-Moreover, it was in my mind to kill the woman
-also. Thus he sang, sitting outside my house, and,
-anon, the woman opened the door, and I came
-nearer, crawling on my belly among the rocks. I
-had only my knife to my hand. But a stone slipped
-under my foot, and the two looked down the hillside,
-and he, leaving his matchlock, fled from my
-anger, because he was afraid for the life that was
-in him. But the woman moved not till I stood in
-front of her, crying: “O woman, what is this that
-thou hast done?” And she, void of fear, though
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_8'>8</span>she knew my thought, laughed, saying: “It is a
-little thing. I loved him, and <em>thou</em> art a dog and
-cattle-thief coming by night. Strike!” And I,
-being still blinded by her beauty, for, O my friend,
-the women of the Abazai are very fair, said: “Hast
-thou no fear?” And she answered: “None—but
-only the fear that I do not die.” Then said
-I: “Have no fear.” And she bowed her head,
-and I smote it off at the neck-bone so that it leaped
-between my feet. Thereafter the rage of our people
-came upon me, and I hacked off the breasts,
-that the men of Little Malikand might know the
-crime, and cast the body into the water-course
-that flows to the Kabul river. <em>Dray wara yow
-dee! Dray wara yow dee!</em> The body without
-the head, the soul without light, and my own
-darkling heart—all three are one—all three are
-one!</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>That night, making no halt, I went to Ghor and
-demanded news of Daoud Shah. Men said: “He
-is gone to Pubbi for horses. What wouldst thou
-of him? There is peace between the villages.”
-I made answer: “Aye! The peace of treachery
-and the love that the Devil Atala bore to Gurel.”
-So I fired thrice into the gate and laughed and
-went my way.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>In those hours, brother and friend of my heart’s
-heart, the moon and the stars were as blood above
-me, and in my mouth was the taste of dry earth.
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_9'>9</span>Also, I broke no bread, and my drink was the rain
-of the Valley of Ghor upon my face.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>At Pubbi I found Mahbub Ali, the writer, sitting
-upon his charpoy, and gave up my arms according
-to your Law. But I was not grieved, for
-it was in my heart that I should kill Daoud Shah
-with my bare hands thus—as a man strips a bunch
-of raisins. Mahbub Ali said: “Daoud Shah has
-even now gone hot-foot to Peshawur, and he will
-pick up his horses upon the road to Delhi, for it
-is said that the Bombay Tramway Company are
-buying horses there by the truck-load; eight horses
-to the truck.” And that was a true saying.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>Then I saw that the hunting would be no little
-thing, for the man was gone into your borders
-to save himself against my wrath. And shall he
-save himself so? Am I not alive? Though he
-run northward to the Dora and the snow, or southerly
-to the Black Water, I will follow him, as a
-lover follows the footsteps of his mistress, and coming
-upon him I will take him tenderly—Aho! so
-tenderly!—in my arms, saying: “Well hast thou
-done and well shalt thou be repaid.” And out of
-that embrace Daoud Shah shall not go forth with
-the breath in his nostrils. <em>Auggrh!</em> Where is the
-pitcher? I am as thirsty as a mother-mare in the
-first month.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>Your Law! What is your Law to me? When
-the horses fight on the runs do they regard the
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_10'>10</span>boundary pillars; or do the kites of Ali Musjid
-forbear because the carrion lies under the shadow
-of the Ghor Kuttri? The matter began across
-the Border. It shall finish where God pleases.
-Here, in my own country, or in Hell. All three
-are one.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>Listen now, sharer of the sorrow of my heart,
-and I will tell of the hunting. I followed to Peshawur
-from Pubbi, and I went to and fro about
-the streets of Peshawur like a houseless dog, seeking
-for my enemy. Once I thought that I saw
-him washing his mouth in the conduit in the big
-square, but when I came up he was gone. It may
-be that it was he, and, seeing my face, he had fled.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>A girl of the bazar said that he would go to
-Nowshera. I said: “O heart’s heart, does Daoud
-Shah visit thee?” And she said: “Even so.” I
-said: “I would fain see him, for we be friends
-parted for two years. Hide me, I pray, here in
-the shadow of the window shutter, and I will wait
-for his coming.” And the girl said: “O Pathan,
-look into my eyes!” And I turned, leaning upon
-her breast, and looked into her eyes, swearing that
-I spoke the very Truth of God. But she answered:
-“Never friend waited friend with such eyes. Lie
-to God and the Prophet, but to a woman ye cannot
-lie. Get hence! There shall no harm befall
-Daoud Shah by cause of me.”</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>I would have strangled that girl but for the fear
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_11'>11</span>of your Police; and thus the hunting would have
-come to naught. Therefore I only laughed and
-departed, and she leaned over the window-bar in
-the night and mocked me down the street. Her
-name is Jamun. When I have made my account
-with the man I will return to Peshawur and—her
-lovers shall desire her no more for her beauty’s
-sake. She shall not be <em>Jamun</em>, but <em>Ak</em>, the cripple
-among trees. Ho! Ho! <em>Ak</em> shall she be!</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>At Peshawur I bought the horses and grapes,
-and the almonds and dried fruits, that the reason
-of my wanderings might be open to the Government,
-and that there might be no hindrance upon
-the road. But when I came to Nowshera he was
-gone, and I knew not where to go. I stayed one
-day at Nowshera, and in the night a Voice spoke
-in my ears as I slept among the horses. All night
-it flew round my head and would not cease from
-whispering. I was upon my belly, sleeping as
-the Devils sleep, and it may have been that the
-Voice was the voice of a Devil. It said: “Go
-south, and thou shalt come upon Daoud Shah.”
-Listen, my brother and chiefest among friends—listen!
-Is the tale a long one? Think how it was
-long to me. I have trodden every league of the
-road from Pubbi to this place; and from Nowshera
-my guide was only the Voice and the lust
-of vengeance.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>To the Uttock I went, but that was no hindrance
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_12'>12</span>to me. Ho! Ho! A man may turn the
-word twice, even in his trouble. The Uttock
-was no <em>uttock</em> [obstacle] to me; and I heard the
-Voice above the noise of the waters beating on
-the big rock, saying: “Go to the right.” So I
-went to Pindigheb, and in those days my sleep
-was taken from me utterly, and the head of the
-woman of the Abazai was before me night and
-day, even as it had fallen between my feet. <i>Dray
-wara yow dee! Dray wara yow dee!</i> Fire, ashes,
-and my couch, all three are one—all three are
-one!</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>Now I was far from the winter path of the dealers
-who had gone to Sialkot and so south by the
-rail and the Big Road to the line of cantonments;
-but there was a Sahib in camp at Pindigheb who
-bought from me a white mare at a good price,
-and told me that one Daoud Shah had passed to
-Shahpur with horses. Then I saw that the warning
-of the Voice was true, and made swift to come
-to the Salt Hills. The Jhelum was in flood, but
-I could not wait, and, in the crossing, a bay stallion
-was washed down and drowned. Herein
-was God hard to me—not in respect of the beast,
-of that I had no care—but in this snatching.
-While I was upon the right bank urging the
-horses into the water, Daoud Shah was upon the
-left; for—<em>Alghias! Alghias!</em>—the hoofs of my
-mare scattered the hot ashes of his fires when we
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_13'>13</span>came up the hither bank in the light of morning.
-But he had fled. His feet were made swift by
-the terror of Death. And I went south from
-Shahpur as the kite flies. I dared not turn aside,
-lest I should miss my vengeance—which is my
-right. From Shahpur I skirted by the Jhelum,
-for I thought that he would avoid the Desert of
-the Rechna. But, presently, at Sahiwal, I turned
-away upon the road to Jhang, Samundri, and
-Gugera, till, upon a night, the mottled mare
-breasted the fence of the rail that runs to Montgomery.
-And that place was Okara, and the head
-of the woman of the Abazai lay upon the sand
-between my feet.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>Thence I went to Fazilka, and they said that
-I was mad to bring starved horses there. The
-Voice was with me, and I was <em>not</em> mad, but only
-wearied, because I could not find Daoud Shah.
-It was written that I should not find him at Rania
-nor Bahadurgarh, and I came into Delhi from the
-west, and there also I found him not. My friend,
-I have seen many strange things in my wanderings.
-I have seen Devils rioting across the Rechna
-as the stallions riot in spring. I have heard the
-<em>Djinns</em> calling to each other from holes in the
-sand, and I have seen them pass before my face.
-There are no Devils, say the Sahibs? They are
-very wise, but they do not know all things about
-devils or—horses. Ho! Ho! I say to you who
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_14'>14</span>are laughing at my misery, that I have seen the
-Devils at high noon whooping and leaping on the
-shoals of the Chenab. And was I afraid? My
-brother, when the desire of a man is set upon one
-thing alone, he fears neither God nor Man nor
-Devil. If my vengeance failed, I would splinter
-the Gates of Paradise with the butt of my gun, or
-I would cut my way into Hell with my knife,
-and I would call upon Those who Govern there
-for the body of Daoud Shah. What love so deep
-as hate?</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>Do not speak. I know the thought in your
-heart. Is the white of this eye clouded? How
-does the blood beat at the wrist? There is no
-madness in my flesh, but only the vehemence
-of the desire that has eaten me up. Listen!</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>South of Delhi I knew not the country at all.
-Therefore I cannot say where I went, but I passed
-through many cities. I knew only that it was laid
-upon me to go south. When the horses could
-march no more, I threw myself upon the earth,
-and waited till the day. There was no sleep with
-me in that journeying; and that was a heavy burden.
-Dost thou know, brother of mine, the evil of
-wakefulness that cannot break—when the bones
-are sore for lack of sleep, and the skin of the temples
-twitches with weariness, and yet—there is no
-sleep—there is no sleep? <em>Dray wara yow dee!
-Dray wara yow dee!</em> The eye of the Sun, the eye
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_15'>15</span>of the Moon, and my own unrestful eyes—all
-three are one—all three are one!</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>There was a city the name whereof I have forgotten,
-and there the Voice called all night. That
-was ten days ago. It has cheated me afresh.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>I have come hither from a place called Hamirpur,
-and, behold, it is my Fate that I should meet
-with thee to my comfort and the increase of friendship.
-This is a good omen. By the joy of looking
-upon thy face the weariness has gone from my
-feet, and the sorrow of my so long travel is forgotten.
-Also my heart is peaceful; for I know
-that the end is near.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>It may be that I shall find Daoud Shah in this
-city going northward, since a Hillman will ever
-head back to his Hills when the spring warns.
-And shall he see those hills of our country?
-Surely I shall overtake him! Surely my vengeance
-is safe! Surely God hath him in the hollow
-of His hand against my claiming. There
-shall no harm befall Daoud Shah till I come; for
-I would fain kill him quick and whole with the
-life sticking firm in his body. A pomegranate is
-sweetest when the cloves break away unwilling
-from the rind. Let it be in the daytime, that I
-may see his face, and my delight may be crowned.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>And when I have accomplished the matter and
-my Honour is made clean, I shall return thanks
-unto God, the Holder of the Scale of the Law,
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_16'>16</span>and I shall sleep. From the night, through the
-day, and into the night again I shall sleep; and
-no dream shall trouble me.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>And now, O my brother, the tale is all told.
-<em>Ahi! Ahi! Alghias! Ahi!</em></p>
-
-<div class='chapter'>
- <span class='pageno' id='Page_17'>17</span>
- <h2 class='c004'>NAMGAY DOOLA</h2>
-</div>
-
-<div class='lg-container-b c015'>
- <div class='linegroup'>
- <div class='group'>
- <div class='line'>There came to the beach a poor exile of Erin,</div>
- <div class='line in2'>The dew on his wet robe hung heavy and chill;</div>
- <div class='line'>Ere the steamer that brought him had passed out of hearin’,</div>
- <div class='line in2'>He was Alderman Mike inthrojuicin’ a bill!</div>
- <div class='line in34'><cite>American Song.</cite></div>
- </div>
- </div>
-</div>
-
-<p class='drop-capa0_4_0_4 c016'>Once upon a time there was a King who lived on
-the road to Thibet, very many miles in the Himalayas.
-His Kingdom was eleven thousand feet
-above the sea and exactly four miles square; but
-most of the miles stood on end owing to the nature
-of the country. His revenues were rather less
-than four hundred pounds yearly, and they were
-expended in the maintenance of one elephant and
-a standing army of five men. He was tributary
-to the Indian Government, who allowed him certain
-sums for keeping a section of the Himalaya-Thibet
-road in repair. He further increased his
-revenues by selling timber to the railway-companies;
-for he would cut the great deodar trees in
-his one forest, and they fell thundering into the
-Sutlej river and were swept down to the plains
-three hundred miles away and became railway-ties.
-Now and again this King, whose name does
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_18'>18</span>not matter, would mount a ringstraked horse and
-ride scores of miles to Simla-town to confer with
-the Lieutenant-Governor on matters of state, or to
-assure the Viceroy that his sword was at the service
-of the Queen-Empress. Then the Viceroy
-would cause a ruffle of drums to be sounded, and
-the ringstraked horse and the cavalry of the State—two
-men in tatters—and the herald who bore
-the silver stick before the King would trot back
-to their own place, which lay between the tail
-of a heaven-climbing glacier and a dark birch-forest.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>Now, from such a King, always remembering
-that he possessed one veritable elephant, and could
-count his descent for twelve hundred years, I expected,
-when it was my fate to wander through his
-dominions, no more than mere license to live.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>The night had closed in rain, and rolling clouds
-blotted out the lights of the villages in the valley.
-Forty miles away, untouched by cloud or storm,
-the white shoulder of Donga Pa—the Mountain
-of the Council of the Gods—upheld the Evening
-Star. The monkeys sang sorrowfully to each other
-as they hunted for dry roosts in the fern-wreathed
-trees, and the last puff of the day-wind brought
-from the unseen villages the scent of damp wood-smoke,
-hot cakes, dripping undergrowth, and rotting
-pine-cones. That is the true smell of the
-Himalayas, and if once it creeps into the blood of
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_19'>19</span>a man, that man will at the last, forgetting all else,
-return to the hills to die. The clouds closed and
-the smell went away, and there remained nothing
-in all the world except chilling white mist and the
-boom of the Sutlej river racing through the valley
-below. A fat-tailed sheep, who did not want to
-die, bleated piteously at my tent door. He was
-scuffling with the Prime Minister and the Director-General
-of Public Education, and he was a
-royal gift to me and my camp servants. I expressed
-my thanks suitably, and asked if I might
-have audience of the King. The Prime Minister
-readjusted his turban, which had fallen off in the
-struggle, and assured me that the King would be
-very pleased to see me. Therefore I despatched
-two bottles as a foretaste, and when the sheep had
-entered upon another incarnation went to the
-King’s Palace through the wet. He had sent his
-army to escort me, but the army stayed to talk
-with my cook. Soldiers are very much alike all
-the world over.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>The Palace was a four-roomed and whitewashed
-mud and timber house, the finest in all the hills
-for a day’s journey. The King was dressed in a
-purple velvet jacket, white muslin trousers, and a
-saffron-yellow turban of price. He gave me audience
-in a little carpeted room opening off the
-palace courtyard which was occupied by the Elephant
-of State. The great beast was sheeted and
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_20'>20</span>anchored from trunk to tail, and the curve of his
-back stood out grandly against the mist.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>The Prime Minister and the Director-General
-of Public Education were present to introduce
-me, but all the court had been dismissed, lest the
-two bottles aforesaid should corrupt their morals.
-The King cast a wreath of heavy-scented flowers
-round my neck as I bowed, and inquired how my
-honoured presence had the felicity to be. I said
-that through seeing his auspicious countenance the
-mists of the night had turned into sunshine, and
-that by reason of his beneficent sheep his good
-deeds would be remembered by the Gods. He
-said that since I had set my magnificent foot in
-his Kingdom the crops would probably yield seventy
-per cent. more than the average. I said that
-the fame of the King had reached to the four corners
-of the earth, and that the nations gnashed their
-teeth when they heard daily of the glories of his
-realm and the wisdom of his moon-like Prime Minister
-and lotus-like Director-General of Public
-Education.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>Then we sat down on clean white cushions, and
-I was at the King’s right hand. Three minutes
-later he was telling me that the state of the maize
-crop was something disgraceful, and that the railway-companies
-would not pay him enough for his
-timber. The talk shifted to and fro with the bottles,
-and we discussed very many stately things,
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_21'>21</span>and the King became confidential on the subject
-of Government generally. Most of all he dwelt
-on the shortcomings of one of his subjects, who,
-from all I could gather, had been paralyzing the
-executive.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>“In the old days,” said the King, “I could
-have ordered the Elephant yonder to trample him
-to death. Now I must e’en send him seventy
-miles across the hills to be tried, and his keep
-would be upon the State. The Elephant eats
-everything.”</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>“What be the man’s crimes, Rajah Sahib?”
-said I.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>“Firstly, he is an outlander and no man of mine
-own people. Secondly, since of my favour I gave
-him land upon his first coming, he refuses to pay
-revenue. Am I not the lord of the earth, above
-and below, entitled by right and custom to one-eighth
-of the crop? Yet this devil, establishing
-himself, refuses to pay a single tax; and he brings
-a poisonous spawn of babes.”</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>“Cast him into jail,” I said.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>“Sahib,” the King answered, shifting a little on
-the cushions, “once and only once in these forty
-years sickness came upon me so that I was not able
-to go abroad. In that hour I made a vow to my
-God that I would never again cut man or woman
-from the light of the sun and the air of God; for I
-perceived the nature of the punishment. How
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_22'>22</span>can I break my vow? Were it only the lopping
-of a hand or a foot I should not delay. But even
-that is impossible now that the English have rule.
-One or another of my people”—he looked obliquely
-at the Director-General of Public Education—“would
-at once write a letter to the Viceroy,
-and perhaps I should be deprived of my ruffle of
-drums.”</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>He unscrewed the mouthpiece of his silver water-pipe,
-fitted a plain amber mouthpiece, and passed
-his pipe to me. “Not content with refusing revenue,”
-he continued, “this outlander refuses also
-the <em>begar</em>” (this was the corvée or forced labour
-on the roads), “and stirs my people up to the like
-treason. Yet he is, when he wills, an expert log-snatcher.
-There is none better or bolder among
-my people to clear a block of the river when the
-logs stick fast.”</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>“But he worships strange Gods,” said the Prime
-Minister deferentially.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>“For that I have no concern,” said the King,
-who was as tolerant as Akbar in matters of belief.
-“To each man his own God and the fire or Mother
-Earth for us all at last. It is the rebellion that
-offends me.”</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>“The King has an army,” I suggested. “Has
-not the King burned the man’s house and left him
-naked to the night dews?”</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>“Nay, a hut is a hut, and it holds the life of a
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_23'>23</span>man. But once I sent my army against him when
-his excuses became wearisome: of their heads he
-brake three across the top with a stick. The other
-two men ran away. Also the guns would not
-shoot.”</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>I had seen the equipment of the infantry. One-third
-of it was an old muzzle-loading fowling-piece,
-with a ragged rust-hole where the nipples
-should have been, one-third a wire-bound matchlock
-with a worm-eaten stock, and one-third a
-four-bore flint duck-gun without a flint.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>“But it is to be remembered,” said the King,
-reaching out for the bottle, “that he is a very expert
-log-snatcher and a man of a merry face. What
-shall I do to him, Sahib?”</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>This was interesting. The timid hill-folk would
-as soon have refused taxes to their King as revenues
-to their Gods.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>“If it be the King’s permission,” I said, “I will
-not strike my tents till the third day, and I will see
-this man. The mercy of the King is God-like,
-and rebellion is like unto the sin of witchcraft.
-Moreover, both the bottles and another be empty.”</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>“You have my leave to go,” said the King.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>Next morning a crier went through the State
-proclaiming that there was a log-jam on the river,
-and that it behoved all loyal subjects to remove it.
-The people poured down from their villages to
-the moist warm valley of poppy-fields; and the
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_24'>24</span>King and I went with them. Hundreds of dressed
-deodar-logs had caught on a snag of rock, and the
-river was bringing down more logs every minute
-to complete the blockade. The water snarled and
-wrenched and worried at the timber, and the population
-of the State began prodding the nearest logs
-with a pole in the hope of starting a general movement.
-Then there went up a shout of “Namgay
-Doola! Namgay Doola!” and a large red-haired
-villager hurried up, stripping off his clothes as
-he ran.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>“That is he. That is the rebel,” said the King.
-“Now will the dam be cleared.”</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>“But why has he red hair?” I asked, since
-red hair among hill-folks is as common as blue
-or green.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>“He is an outlander,” said the King. “Well
-done! Oh, well done!”</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>Namgay Doola had scrambled out on the jam
-and was clawing out the butt of a log with a rude
-sort of boat-hook. It slid forward slowly as an
-alligator moves, three or four others followed it,
-and the green water spouted through the gaps
-they had made. Then the villagers howled and
-shouted and scrambled across the logs, pulling
-and pushing the obstinate timber, and the red
-head of Namgay Doola was chief among them
-all. The logs swayed and chafed and groaned as
-fresh consignments from up-stream battered the
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_25'>25</span>new weakening dam. All gave way at last in a
-smother of foam, racing logs, bobbing black heads
-and confusion indescribable. The river tossed
-everything before it. I saw the red head go down
-with the last remnants of the jam and disappear between
-the great grinding tree-trunks. It rose close
-to the bank and blowing like a grampus. Namgay
-Doola wrung the water out of his eyes and made
-obeisance to the King. I had time to observe him
-closely. The virulent redness of his shock head
-and beard was most startling; and in the thicket
-of hair wrinkled above high cheek-bones shone
-two very merry blue eyes. He was indeed an
-outlander, but yet a Thibetan in language, habit,
-and attire. He spoke the Lepcha dialect with an
-indescribable softening of the gutturals. It was
-not so much a lisp as an accent.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>“Whence comest thou?” I asked.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>“From Thibet.” He pointed across the hills
-and grinned. That grin went straight to my
-heart. Mechanically I held out my hand and
-Namgay Doola shook it. No pure Thibetan
-would have understood the meaning of the gesture.
-He went away to look for his clothes, and
-as he climbed back to his village I heard a joyous
-yell that seemed unaccountably familiar. It was
-the whooping of Namgay Doola.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>“You see now,” said the King, “why I would
-not kill him. He is a bold man among my logs,
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_26'>26</span>but,” and he shook his head like a schoolmaster,
-“I know that before long there will be complaints
-of him in the court. Let us return to the Palace
-and do justice.” It was that King’s custom to
-judge his subjects every day between eleven and
-three o’clock. I saw him decide equitably in
-weighty matters of trespass, slander, and a little
-wife-stealing. Then his brow clouded and he
-summoned me.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>“Again it is Namgay Doola,” he said despairingly.
-“Not content with refusing revenue on
-his own part, he has bound half his village by an
-oath to the like treason. Never before has such
-a thing befallen me! Nor are my taxes heavy.”</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>A rabbit-faced villager, with a blush-rose stuck
-behind his ear, advanced trembling. He had
-been in the conspiracy, but had told everything
-and hoped for the King’s favour.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>“O King,” said I. “If it be the King’s will
-let this matter stand over till the morning. Only
-the Gods can do right swiftly, and it may be that
-yonder villager has lied.”</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>“Nay, for I know the nature of Namgay Doola;
-but since a guest asks let the matter remain. Wilt
-thou speak harshly to this red-headed outlander?
-He may listen to thee.”</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>I made an attempt that very evening, but for
-the life of me I could not keep my countenance.
-Namgay Doola grinned persuasively, and began
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_27'>27</span>to tell me about a big brown bear in a poppy-field
-by the river. Would I care to shoot it? I spoke
-austerely on the sin of conspiracy, and the certainty
-of punishment. Namgay Doola’s face
-clouded for a moment. Shortly afterwards he
-withdrew from my tent, and I heard him singing
-to himself softly among the pines. The words
-were unintelligible to me, but the tune, like his
-liquid insinuating speech, seemed the ghost of
-something strangely familiar.</p>
-
-<div class='lg-container-b c017'>
- <div class='linegroup'>
- <div class='group'>
- <div class='line'>“Dir hané mard-i-yemen dir</div>
- <div class='line'>To weeree ala gee,”</div>
- </div>
- </div>
-</div>
-
-<p class='c018'>sang Namgay Doola again and again, and I racked
-my brain for that lost tune. It was not till after
-dinner that I discovered some one had cut a
-square foot of velvet from the centre of my best
-camera-cloth. This made me so angry that I
-wandered down the valley in the hope of meeting
-the big brown bear. I could hear him grunting
-like a discontented pig in the poppy-field, and I
-waited shoulder deep in the dew-dripping Indian
-corn to catch him after his meal. The moon was
-at full and drew out the rich scent of the tasselled
-crop. Then I heard the anguished bellow of a
-Himalayan cow, one of the little black crummies
-no bigger than Newfoundland dogs. Two shadows
-that looked like a bear and her cub hurried
-past me. I was in act to fire when I saw that
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_28'>28</span>they had each a brilliant red head. The lesser
-animal was trailing some rope behind it that left
-a dark track on the path. They passed within
-six feet of me, and the shadow of the moonlight
-lay velvet-black on their faces. Velvet-black was
-exactly the word, for by all the powers of moonlight
-they were masked in the velvet of my camera-cloth!
-I marvelled and went to bed.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>Next morning the Kingdom was in uproar.
-Namgay Doola, men said, had gone forth in the
-night and with a sharp knife had cut off the tail
-of a cow belonging to the rabbit-faced villager
-who had betrayed him. It was sacrilege unspeakable
-against the Holy Cow. The State desired
-his blood, but he had retreated into his hut, barricaded
-the doors and windows with big stones,
-and defied the world.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>The King and I and the populace approached
-the hut cautiously. There was no hope of capturing
-the man without loss of life, for from a hole
-in the wall projected the muzzle of an extremely
-well-cared-for gun—the only gun in the State that
-could shoot. Namgay Doola had narrowly missed
-a villager just before we came up. The Standing
-Army stood. It could do no more, for when it
-advanced pieces of sharp shale flew from the
-windows. To these were added from time to
-time showers of scalding water. We saw red
-heads bobbing up and down in the hut. The
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_29'>29</span>family of Namgay Doola were aiding their sire,
-and blood-curdling yells of defiance were the only
-answers to our prayers.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>“Never,” said the King, puffing, “has such a
-thing befallen my State. Next year I will certainly
-buy a little cannon.” He looked at me
-imploringly.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>“Is there any priest in the Kingdom to whom
-he will listen?” said I, for a light was beginning
-to break upon me.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>“He worships his own God,” said the Prime
-Minister. “We can starve him out.”</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>“Let the white man approach,” said Namgay
-Doola from within. “All others I will kill. Send
-me the white man.”</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>The door was thrown open and I entered the
-smoky interior of a Thibetan hut crammed with
-children. And every child had flaming red hair.
-A raw cow’s tail lay on the floor, and by its side
-two pieces of black velvet—my black velvet—rudely
-hacked into the semblance of masks.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>“And what is this shame, Namgay Doola?” said I.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>He grinned more winningly than ever. “There
-is no shame,” said he. “I did but cut off the tail
-of that man’s cow. He betrayed me. I was
-minded to shoot him, Sahib. But not to death.
-Indeed not to death. Only in the legs.”</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>“And why at all, since it is the custom to pay
-revenue to the King? Why at all?”</p>
-
-<p class='c001'><span class='pageno' id='Page_30'>30</span>“By the God of my father I cannot tell,” said
-Namgay Doola.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>“And who was thy father?”</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>“The same that had this gun.” He showed
-me his weapon—a Tower musket bearing date
-1832 and the stamp of the Honourable East India
-Company.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>“And thy father’s name?” said I.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>“Timlay Doola,” said he. “At the first, I being
-then a little child, it is in my mind that he
-wore a red coat.”</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>“Of that I have no doubt. But repeat the
-name of thy father thrice or four times.”</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>He obeyed, and I understood whence the
-puzzling accent in his speech came. “Thimla
-Dhula,” said he excitedly. “To this hour I worship
-his God.”</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>“May I see that God?”</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>“In a little while—at twilight time.”</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>“Rememberest thou aught of thy father’s
-speech?”</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>“It is long ago. But there is one word which
-he said often. Thus, ‘<em>Shun</em>.’ Then I and my
-brethren stood upon our feet, our hands to our
-sides. Thus.”</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>“Even so. And what was thy mother?”</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>“A woman of the hills. We be Lepchas of
-Darjeeling, but me they call an outlander because
-my hair is as thou seest.”</p>
-
-<p class='c001'><span class='pageno' id='Page_31'>31</span>The Thibetan woman, his wife, touched him on
-the arm gently. The long parley outside the fort
-had lasted far into the day. It was now close
-upon twilight—the hour of the Angelus. Very
-solemnly, the red-headed brats rose from the floor
-and formed a semicircle. Namgay Doola laid his
-gun against the wall, lighted a little oil lamp, and
-set it before a recess in the wall. Pulling aside a
-curtain of dirty cloth, he revealed a worn brass
-crucifix leaning against the helmet-badge of a
-long-forgotten East India regiment. “Thus did
-my father,” he said, crossing himself clumsily.
-The wife and children followed suit. Then all
-together they struck up the wailing chant that I
-heard on the hillside—</p>
-
-<div class='lg-container-b c017'>
- <div class='linegroup'>
- <div class='group'>
- <div class='line'>Dir hané mard-i-yemen dir</div>
- <div class='line'>To weeree ala gee.</div>
- </div>
- </div>
-</div>
-
-<p class='c019'>I was puzzled no longer. Again and again they
-crooned, as if their hearts would break, their version
-of the chorus of the “Wearing of the Green”—</p>
-
-<div class='lg-container-b c017'>
- <div class='linegroup'>
- <div class='group'>
- <div class='line'>They’re hanging men and women too,</div>
- <div class='line'>For the wearing of the green.</div>
- </div>
- </div>
-</div>
-
-<p class='c019'>A diabolical inspiration came to me. One of the
-brats, a boy about eight years old, was watching
-me as he sang. I pulled out a rupee, held the
-coin between finger and thumb, and looked—only
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_32'>32</span>looked—at the gun against the wall. A grin of
-brilliant and perfect comprehension overspread the
-face of the child. Never for an instant stopping
-the song, he held out his hand for the money, and
-then slid the gun to my hand. I might have shot
-Namgay Doola as he chanted. But I was satisfied.
-The blood-instinct of the race held true. Namgay
-Doola drew the curtain across the recess. Angelus
-was over.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>“Thus my father sang. There is much more,
-but I have forgotten, and I do not know the purport
-of these words, but it may be that the God
-will understand. I am not of this people, and I
-will not pay revenue.”</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>“And why?”</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>Again that soul-compelling grin. “What occupation
-would be to me between crop and crop?
-It is better than scaring bears. But these people
-do not understand.” He picked the masks from the
-floor, and looked in my face as simply as a child.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>“By what road didst thou attain knowledge to
-make these devilries?” I said, pointing.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>“I cannot tell. I am but a Lepcha of Darjeeling,
-and yet the stuff——”</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>“Which thou hast stolen.”</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>“Nay, surely. Did I steal? I desired it so.
-The stuff—the stuff—what else should I have
-done with the stuff?” He twisted the velvet between
-his fingers.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'><span class='pageno' id='Page_33'>33</span>“But the sin of maiming the cow—consider
-that.”</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>“That is true; but oh, Sahib, that man betrayed
-me, and I had no thought—but the heifer’s tail
-waved in the moonlight and I had my knife.
-What else should I have done? The tail came
-off ere I was aware. Sahib, thou knowest more
-than I.”</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>“That is true,” said I. “Stay within the door.
-I go to speak to the King.”</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>The population of the State were ranged on the
-hillsides. I went forth and spoke to the King.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>“O King,” said I. “Touching this man there
-be two courses open to thy wisdom. Thou canst
-either hang him from a tree, he and his brood, till
-there remains no hair that is red within the land.”</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>“Nay,” said the King. “Why should I hurt
-the little children?”</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>They had poured out of the hut door and were
-making plump obeisance to everybody. Namgay
-Doola waited with his gun across his arm.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>“Or thou canst, discarding the impiety of the
-cow-maiming, raise him to honour in thy Army.
-He comes of a race that will not pay revenue. A
-red flame is in his blood which comes out at the
-top of his head in that glowing hair. Make him
-chief of the Army. Give him honour as may befall,
-and full allowance of work, but look to it, O
-King, that neither he nor his hold a foot of earth
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_34'>34</span>from thee henceforward. Feed him with words
-and favour, and also liquor from certain bottles
-that thou knowest of, and he will be a bulwark of
-defence. But deny him even a tuft of grass for
-his own. This is the nature that God has given
-him. Moreover, he has brethren——”</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>The State groaned unanimously.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>“But if his brethren come, they will surely fight
-with each other till they die; or else the one will
-always give information concerning the other.
-Shall he be of thy Army, O King? Choose.”</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>The King bowed his head, and I said, “Come
-forth, Namgay Doola, and command the King’s
-Army. Thy name shall no more be Namgay in
-the mouths of men, but Patsay Doola, for as thou
-hast said, I know.”</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>Then Namgay. Doola, new christened Patsay
-Doola, son of Timlay Doola, which is Tim Doolan
-gone very wrong indeed, clasped the King’s feet,
-cuffed the Standing Army, and hurried in an agony
-of contrition from temple to temple, making offerings
-for the sin of cattle-maiming.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>And the King was so pleased with my perspicacity
-that he offered to sell me a village for twenty
-pounds sterling. But I buy no villages in the
-Himalayas so long as one red head flares between
-the tail of the heaven-climbing glacier and the
-dark birch-forest.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>I know that breed.</p>
-
-<div class='chapter'>
- <span class='pageno' id='Page_35'>35</span>
- <h2 class='c004'>“THE CITY OF DREADFUL NIGHT”</h2>
-</div>
-
-<div class='nf-center-c0'>
-<div class='nf-center c002'>
- <div><span class='small'>Copyright, 1891, by Macmillan &amp; Co.</span></div>
- </div>
-</div>
-
-<p class='c005'>The dense wet heat that hung over the face of
-land, like a blanket, prevented all hope of sleep in
-the first instance. The cicalas helped the heat;
-and the yelling jackals the cicalas. It was impossible
-to sit still in the dark, empty, echoing house
-and watch the punkah beat the dead air. So, at
-ten o’clock of the night, I set my walking-stick on
-end in the middle of the garden, and waited to see
-how it would fall. It pointed directly down the
-moonlit road that leads to the City of Dreadful
-Night. The sound of its fall disturbed a hare.
-She limped from her form and ran across to a disused
-Mahomedan burial-ground, where the jawless
-skulls and rough-butted shank-bones, heartlessly
-exposed by the July rains, glimmered like
-mother o’ pearl on the rain-channelled soil. The
-heated air and the heavy earth had driven the very
-dead upward for coolness’ sake. The hare limped
-on; snuffed curiously at a fragment of a smoke-stained
-lamp-shard, and died out in the shadow of
-a clump of tamarisk trees.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>The mat-weaver’s hut under the lee of the
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_36'>36</span>Hindu temple was full of sleeping men who lay
-like sheeted corpses. Overhead blazed the unwinking
-eye of the Moon. Darkness gives at least
-a false impression of coolness. It was hard not
-to believe that the flood of light from above was
-warm. Not so hot as the Sun, but still sickly
-warm, and heating the heavy air beyond what was
-our due. Straight as a bar of polished steel ran
-the road to the City of Dreadful Night; and on
-either side of the road lay corpses disposed on beds
-in fantastic attitudes—one hundred and seventy
-bodies of men. Some shrouded all in white with
-bound-up mouths; some naked and black as ebony
-in the strong light; and one—that lay face upwards
-with dropped jaw, far away from the others—silvery
-white and ashen gray.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>“A leper asleep; and the remainder wearied
-coolies, servants, small shopkeepers, and drivers
-from the hack-stand hard by. The scene—a main
-approach to Lahore city, and the night a warm one
-in August.” This was all that there was to be
-seen; but by no means all that one could see.
-The witchery of the moonlight was everywhere;
-and the world was horribly changed. The long
-line of the naked dead, flanked by the rigid silver
-statue, was not pleasant to look upon. It was
-made up of men alone. Were the womenkind,
-then, forced to sleep in the shelter of the stifling
-mud-huts as best they might? The fretful wail
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_37'>37</span>of a child from a low mud-roof answered the question.
-Where the children are the mothers must
-be also to look after them. They need care on
-these sweltering nights. A black little bullet-head
-peeped over the coping, and a thin—a painfully
-thin—brown leg was slid over on to the
-gutter pipe. There was a sharp clink of glass
-bracelets; a woman’s arm showed for an instant
-above the parapet, twined itself round the lean
-little neck, and the child was dragged back, protesting,
-to the shelter of the bedstead. His thin,
-high-pitched shriek died out in the thick air almost
-as soon as it was raised; for even the children of
-the soil found it too hot to weep.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>More corpses; more stretches of moonlit, white
-road; a string of sleeping camels at rest by the
-wayside; a vision of scudding jackals; <em>ekka</em>-ponies
-asleep—the harness still on their backs,
-and the brass-studded country carts, winking in
-the moonlight—and again more corpses. <a id='corr37.20'></a><span class='htmlonly'><ins class='correction' title='Whereever'>wherever</ins></span><span class='epubonly'><a href='#c_37.20'><ins class='correction' title='Whereever'>wherever</ins></a></span>
-a grain cart atilt, a tree trunk, a sawn log, a
-couple of bamboos and a few handfuls of thatch
-cast a shadow, the ground is covered with them.
-They lie—some face downwards, arms folded, in
-the dust; some with clasped hands flung up above
-their heads; some curled up dog-wise; some thrown
-like limp gunny-bags over the side of the grain-carts;
-and some bowed with their brows on their
-knees in the full glare of the Moon. It would be
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_38'>38</span>a comfort if they were only given to snoring; but
-they are not, and the likeness to corpses is unbroken
-in all respects save one. The lean dogs
-snuff at them and turn away. Here and there a
-tiny child lies on his father’s bedstead, and a protecting
-arm is thrown round it in every instance.
-But, for the most part, the children sleep with their
-mothers on the housetops. Yellow-skinned, white-toothed
-pariahs are not to be trusted within reach
-of brown bodies.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>A stifling hot blast from the mouth of the Delhi
-Gate nearly ends my resolution of entering the
-City of Dreadful Night at this hour. It is a compound
-of all evil savours, animal and vegetable,
-that a walled city can brew in a day and a night.
-The temperature within the motionless groves of
-plantain and orange-trees outside the city walls
-seems chilly by comparison. Heaven help all sick
-persons and young children within the city to-night!
-The high house-walls are still radiating
-heat savagely, and from obscure side gullies fetid
-breezes eddy that ought to poison a buffalo. But
-the buffaloes do not heed. A drove of them are
-parading the vacant main street; stopping now
-and then to lay their ponderous muzzles against
-the closed shutters of a grain-dealer’s shop, and to
-blow thereon like grampuses.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>Then silence follows—the silence that is full of
-the night noises of a great city. A stringed instrument
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_39'>39</span>of some kind is just, and only just, audible.
-High overhead some one throws open a window,
-and the rattle of the wood-work echoes down the
-empty street. On one of the roofs a hookah is in
-full blast; and the men are talking softly as the
-pipe gutters. A little farther on, the noise of conversation
-is more distinct. A slit of light shows
-itself between the sliding shutters of a shop. Inside,
-a stubble-bearded, weary-eyed trader is balancing
-his account-books among the bales of cotton
-prints that surround him. Three sheeted figures
-bear him company, and throw in a remark from
-time to time. First he makes an entry, then a remark;
-then passes the back of his hand across his
-streaming forehead. The heat in the built-in
-street is fearful. Inside the shops it must be almost
-unendurable. But the work goes on steadily;
-entry, guttural growl, and uplifted hand-stroke succeeding
-each other with the precision of clockwork.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>A policeman—turbanless and fast asleep—lies
-across the road on the way to the Mosque of
-Wazir Khan. A bar of moonlight falls across
-the forehead and eyes of the sleeper, but he never
-stirs. It is close upon midnight, and the heat
-seems to be increasing. The open square in front
-of the Mosque is crowded with corpses; and a
-man must pick his way carefully for fear of treading
-on them. The moonlight stripes the Mosque’s
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_40'>40</span>high front of coloured enamel work in broad diagonal
-bands; and each separate dreaming pigeon in
-the niches and corners of the masonry throws a
-squab little shadow. Sheeted ghosts rise up
-wearily from their pallets, and flit into the dark
-depths of the building. Is it possible to climb to
-the top of the great Minars, and thence to look
-down on the city? At all events, the attempt is
-worth making, and the chances are that the door of
-the staircase will be unlocked. Unlocked it is; but
-a deeply-sleeping janitor lies across the threshold,
-face turned to the Moon. A rat dashes out of his
-turban at the sound of approaching footsteps.
-The man grunts, opens his eyes for a minute, turns
-round and goes to sleep again. All the heat of a
-decade of fierce Indian summers is stored in the
-pitch-black, polished walls of the corkscrew staircase.
-Half-way up, there is something alive, warm,
-and feathery; and it snores. Driven from step to
-step as it catches the sound of my advance, it flutters
-to the top and reveals itself as a yellow-eyed,
-angry kite. Dozens of kites are asleep on this and
-the other Minars, and on the domes below. There
-is the shadow of a cool, or at least a less sultry
-breeze at this height; and, refreshed thereby, turn
-to look on the City of Dreadful Night.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>Doré might have drawn it! Zola could describe
-it—this spectacle of sleeping thousands in
-the moonlight and in the shadow of the Moon.
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_41'>41</span>The roof-tops are crammed with men, women, and
-children; and the air is full of undistinguishable
-noises. They are restless in the City of Dreadful
-Night; and small wonder. The marvel is that
-they can even breathe. If you gaze intently at
-the multitude, you can see that they are almost as
-uneasy as a daylight crowd; but the tumult is subdued.
-Everywhere, in the strong light, you can
-watch the sleepers turning to and fro; shifting
-their beds and again resettling them. In the pit-like
-courtyards of the houses there is the same
-movement.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>The pitiless Moon shows it all. Shows, too,
-the plains outside the city, and here and there a
-hand’s-breadth of the Ravee without the walls.
-Shows lastly a splash of glittering silver on a
-house-top almost directly below the mosque Minar.
-Some poor soul has risen to throw a jar of
-water over his fevered body; the tinkle of the
-falling water strikes faintly on the ear. Two or
-three other men, in far-off corners of the City of
-Dreadful Night, follow his example, and the water
-flashes like heliographic signals. A small cloud
-passes over the face of the Moon, and the city and
-its inhabitants—clear drawn in black and white
-before—fade into masses of black and deeper
-black. Still the unrestful noise continues, the
-sigh of a great city overwhelmed with the heat,
-and of a people seeking in vain for rest. It is
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_42'>42</span>only the lower-class women who sleep on the
-housetops. What must the torment be in the
-latticed zenanas, where a few lamps are still
-twinkling? There are footfalls in the court below.
-It is the <em>Muezzin</em>—faithful minister; but
-he ought to have been here an hour ago to tell
-the Faithful that prayer is better than sleep—the
-sleep that will not come to the city.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>The <em>Muezzin</em> fumbles for a moment with the
-door of one of the Minars, disappears awhile, and
-a bull-like roar—a magnificent bass thunder—tells
-that he has reached the top of the Minar.
-They must hear the cry to the banks of the
-shrunken Ravee itself! Even across the courtyard
-it is almost overpowering. The cloud drifts
-by and shows him outlined in black against the
-sky, hands laid upon his ears, and broad chest heaving
-with the play of his lungs—“Allah ho Akbar”;
-then a pause while another <em>Muezzin</em> somewhere
-in the direction of the Golden Temple
-takes up the call—“Allah ho Akbar.” Again
-and again; four times in all; and from the bedsteads
-a dozen men have risen up already.—“I
-bear witness that there is no God but God.”
-What a splendid cry it is, the proclamation of the
-creed that brings men out of their beds by scores
-at midnight! Once again he thunders through
-the same phrase, shaking with the vehemence of
-his own voice; and then, far and near, the night
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_43'>43</span>air rings with “Mahomed is the Prophet of God.”
-It is as though he were flinging his defiance to the
-far-off horizon, where the summer lightning plays
-and leaps like a bared sword. Every <em>Muezzin</em> in
-the city is in full cry, and some men on the roof-tops
-are beginning to kneel. A long pause precedes
-the last cry, “La ilaha Illallah,” and the silence
-closes up on it, as the ram on the head of
-a cotton-bale.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>The <em>Muezzin</em> stumbles down the dark stairway
-grumbling in his beard. He passes the arch of
-the entrance and disappears. Then the stifling
-silence settles down over the City of Dreadful
-Night. The kites on the Minar sleep again, snoring
-more loudly, the hot breeze comes up in puffs
-and lazy eddies, and the Moon slides down towards
-the horizon. Seated with both elbows on the
-parapet of the tower, one can watch and wonder
-over that heat-tortured hive till the dawn. “How
-do they live down there? What do they think
-of? When will they awake?” More tinkling
-of sluiced water-pots; faint jarring of wooden bedsteads
-moved into or out of the shadows; uncouth
-music of stringed instruments softened by distance
-into a plaintive wail, and one low grumble of far-off
-thunder. In the courtyard of the mosque the
-janitor, who lay across the threshold of the Minar
-when I came up, starts wildly in his sleep, throws
-his hands above his head, mutters something, and
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_44'>44</span>falls back again. Lulled by the snoring of the
-kites—they snore like over-gorged humans—I
-drop off into an uneasy doze, conscious that three
-o’clock has struck, and that there is a slight—a
-very slight—coolness in the atmosphere. The
-city is absolutely quiet now, but for some vagrant
-dog’s love-song. Nothing save dead heavy sleep.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>Several weeks of darkness pass after this. For
-the Moon has gone out. The very dogs are still,
-and I watch for the first light of the dawn before
-making my way homeward. Again the noise of
-shuffling feet. The morning call is about to begin,
-and my night watch is over. “Allah ho Akbar!
-Allah ho Akbar!” The east grows gray, and
-presently saffron; the dawn wind comes up as
-though the <em>Muezzin</em> had summoned it; and, as
-one man, the City of Dreadful Night rises from
-its bed and turns its face towards the dawning
-day. With return of life comes return of sound.
-First a low whisper, then a deep bass hum; for
-it must be remembered that the entire city is
-on the housetops. My eyelids weighed down with
-the arrears of long deferred sleep, I escape from
-the Minar through the courtyard and out into the
-square beyond, where the sleepers have risen,
-stowed away the bedsteads, and are discussing the
-morning hookah. The minute’s freshness of the
-air has gone, and it is as hot as at first.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>“Will the Sahib, out of his kindness, make
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_45'>45</span>room?” What is it? Something borne on men’s
-shoulders comes by in the half-light, and I stand
-back. A woman’s corpse going down to the
-burning-ghat, and a bystander says, “She died at
-midnight from the heat.” So the city was of
-Death as well as Night, after all.</p>
-
-<div class='chapter'>
- <span class='pageno' id='Page_46'>46</span>
- <h2 class='c004'>THE JUDGMENT OF DUNGARA</h2>
-</div>
-
-<p class='c012'>See the pale martyr with his shirt on fire.—<cite>Printer’s Error.</cite></p>
-
-<p class='c005'>They tell the tale even now among the groves
-of the Berbulda Hill, and for corroboration point
-to the roofless and windowless Mission-house.
-The great God Dungara, the God of Things as
-They Are, Most Terrible, One-eyed, Bearing the
-Red Elephant Tusk, did it all; and he who refuses
-to believe in Dungara will assuredly be smitten
-by the Madness of Yat—the madness that
-fell upon the sons and the daughters of the Buria
-Kol when they turned aside from Dungara and
-put on clothes. So says Athon Dazé, who is
-High Priest of the shrine and Warden of the
-Red Elephant Tusk. But if you ask the Assistant
-Collector and Agent in Charge of the Buria
-Kol, he will laugh—not because he bears any
-malice against missions, but because he himself
-saw the vengeance of Dungara executed upon the
-spiritual children of the Reverend Justus Krenk,
-Pastor of the Tubingen Mission, and upon Lotta,
-his virtuous wife.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>Yet if ever a man merited good treatment of
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_47'>47</span>the Gods it was the Reverend Justus, one time
-of Heidelberg, who, on the faith of a call, went
-into the wilderness and took the blonde, blue-eyed
-Lotta with him. “We will these Heathen now
-by idolatrous practices so darkened better make,”
-said Justus in the early days of his career. “Yes,”
-he added with conviction, “they shall be good
-and shall with their hands to work learn. For
-all good Christians must work.” And upon a
-stipend more modest even than that of an English
-lay-reader, Justus Krenk kept house beyond Kamala
-and the gorge of Malair, beyond the Berbulda
-River close to the foot of the blue hill of
-Panth on whose summit stands the Temple of
-Dungara—in the heart of the country of the
-Buria Kol—the naked, good-tempered, timid,
-shameless, lazy Buria Kol.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>Do you know what life at a Mission outpost
-means? Try to imagine a loneliness exceeding
-that of the smallest station to which Government
-has ever sent you—isolation that weighs upon
-the waking eyelids and drives you by force headlong
-into the labours of the day. There is no post,
-there is no one of your own colour to speak to,
-there are no roads: there is, indeed, food to keep
-you alive, but it is not pleasant to eat; and whatever
-of good or beauty or interest there is in your
-life, must come from yourself and the grace that
-may be planted in you.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'><span class='pageno' id='Page_48'>48</span>In the morning, with a patter of soft feet, the
-converts, the doubtful, and the open scoffers, troop
-up to the verandah. You must be infinitely kind
-and patient, and, above all, clear-sighted, for you
-deal with the simplicity of childhood, the experience
-of man, and the subtlety of the savage. Your
-congregation have a hundred material wants to be
-considered; and it is for you, as you believe in
-your personal responsibility to your Maker, to pick
-out of the clamouring crowd any grain of spirituality
-that may lie therein. If to the cure of souls
-you add that of bodies, your task will be all the
-more difficult, for the sick and the maimed will
-profess any and every creed for the sake of healing,
-and will laugh at you because you are simple
-enough to believe them.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>As the day wears and the impetus of the morning
-dies away, there will come upon you an overwhelming
-sense of the uselessness of your toil.
-This must be striven against, and the only spur in
-your side will be the belief that you are playing
-against the Devil for the living soul. It is a great,
-a joyous belief; but he who can hold it unwavering
-for four and twenty consecutive hours, must
-be blessed with an abundantly strong physique and
-equable nerve.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>Ask the gray heads of the Bannockburn Medical
-Crusade what manner of life their preachers
-lead; speak to the Racine Gospel Agency, those
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_49'>49</span>lean Americans whose boast is that they go where
-no Englishman dare follow; get a Pastor of the
-Tubingen Mission to talk of his experiences—if
-you can. You will be referred to the printed reports,
-but these contain no mention of the men
-who have lost youth and health, all that a man
-may lose except faith, in the wilds; of English
-maidens who have gone forth and died in the fever-stricken
-jungle of the Panth Hills, knowing from
-the first that death was almost a certainty. Few
-Pastors will tell you of these things any more than
-they will speak of that young David of St. Bees,
-who, set apart for the Lord’s work, broke down in
-the utter desolation, and returned half distraught
-to the Head Mission, crying: “There is no God,
-but I have walked with the Devil!”</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>The reports are silent here, because heroism,
-failure, doubt, despair, and self-abnegation on the
-part of a mere cultured white man are things of
-no weight as compared to the saving of one half-human
-soul from a fantastic faith in wood-spirits,
-goblins of the rock, and river-fiends.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>And Gallio, the Assistant Collector of the
-country-side “cared for none of these things.”
-He had been long in the district, and the Buria
-Kol loved him and brought him offerings of
-speared fish, orchids from the dim moist heart of
-the forests, and as much game as he could eat.
-In return, he gave them quinine, and with Athon
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_50'>50</span>Dazé, the High Priest, controlled their simple
-policies.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>“When you have been some years in the
-country,” said Gallio at the Krenks’ table, “you
-grow to find one creed as good as another. I’ll
-give you all the assistance in my power, of course,
-but don’t hurt my Buria Kol. They are a good
-people and they trust me.”</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>“I will them the Word of the Lord teach,”
-said Justus, his round face beaming with enthusiasm,
-“and I will assuredly to their prejudices no
-wrong hastily without thinking make. But, O my
-friend, this in the mind impartiality-of-creed-judgment-be-looking
-is very bad.”</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>“Heigh-ho!” said Gallio, “I have their bodies
-and the district to see to, but you can try what
-you can do for their souls. Only don’t behave as
-your predecessor did, or I’m afraid that I can’t
-guarantee your life.”</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>“And that?” said Lotta sturdily, handing him
-a cup of tea.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>“He went up to the Temple of Dungara—to
-be sure, he was new to the country—and began
-hammering old Dungara over the head with an
-umbrella; so the Buria Kol turned out and hammered
-<em>him</em> rather savagely. I was in the district,
-and he sent a runner to me with a note saying:
-‘Persecuted for the Lord’s sake. Send wing of
-regiment.’ The nearest troops were about two
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_51'>51</span>hundred miles off, but I guessed what he had been
-doing. I rode to Panth and talked to old Athon
-Dazé like a father, telling him that a man of his
-wisdom ought to have known that the Sahib had
-sunstroke and was mad. You never saw a people
-more sorry in your life. Athon Dazé apologised,
-sent wood and milk and fowls and all sorts of
-things; and I gave five rupees to the shrine, and
-told Macnamara that he had been injudicious.
-He said that I had bowed down in the House of
-Rimmon; but if he had only just gone over the
-brow of the hill and insulted Palin Deo, the idol
-of the Suria Kol, he would have been impaled on
-a charred bamboo long before I could have done
-anything, and then I should have had to have
-hanged some of the poor brutes. Be gentle with
-them, Padri—but I don’t think you’ll do much.”</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>“Not I,” said Justus, “but my Master. We
-will with the little children begin. Many of them
-will be sick—that is so. After the children the
-mothers; and then the men. But I would greatly
-that you were in internal sympathies with us prefer.”</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>Gallio departed to risk his life in mending the
-rotten bamboo bridges of his people, in killing a
-too persistent tiger here or there, in sleeping out
-in the reeking jungle, or in tracking the Suria Kol
-raiders who had taken a few heads from their
-brethren of the Buria clan. He was a knock-kneed,
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_52'>52</span>shambling young man, naturally devoid of
-creed or reverence, with a longing for absolute
-power which his undesirable district gratified.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>“No one wants my post,” he used to say grimly,
-“and my Collector only pokes his nose in when
-he’s quite certain that there is no fever. I’m monarch
-of all I survey, and Athon Dazé is my viceroy.”</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>Because Gallio prided himself on his supreme
-disregard of human life—though he never extended
-the theory beyond his own—he naturally
-rode forty miles to the Mission with a tiny brown
-girl-baby on his saddle-bow.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>“Here is something for you, Padri,” said he.
-“The Kols leave their surplus children to die.
-’Don’t see why they shouldn’t, but you may rear
-this one. I picked it up beyond the Berbulda
-fork. I’ve a notion that the mother has been following
-me through the woods ever since.”</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>“It is the first of the fold,” said Justus, and Lotta
-caught up the screaming morsel to her bosom and
-hushed it craftily; while, as a wolf hangs in the
-field, Matui, who had borne it and in accordance
-with the law of her tribe had exposed it to die,
-panted weary and footsore in the bamboo-brake,
-watching the house with hungry mother-eyes.
-What would the omnipotent Assistant Collector
-do? Would the little man in the black coat eat
-her daughter alive, as Athon Dazé said was the
-custom of all men in black coats?</p>
-<div id='i052' class='figcenter id005'>
-<img src='images/i_052f.jpg' alt='' class='ig001' />
-<div class='ic002'>
-<p>THE JUDGMENT OF DUNGARA</p>
-</div>
-</div>
-
-<p class='c001'><span class='pageno' id='Page_53'>53</span>Matui waited among the bamboos through the
-long night; and, in the morning, there came forth
-a fair white woman, the like of whom Matui had
-never seen, and in her arms was Matui’s daughter
-clad in spotless raiment. Lotta knew little of the
-tongue of the Buria Kol, but when mother calls
-to mother, speech is easy to follow. By the hands
-stretched timidly to the hem of her gown, by the
-passionate gutturals and the longing eyes, Lotta
-understood with whom she had to deal. So Matui
-took her child again—would be a servant, even a
-slave, to this wonderful white woman, for her own
-tribe would recognise her no more. And Lotta
-wept with her exhaustively, after the German
-fashion, which includes much blowing of the nose.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>“First the child, then the mother, and last the
-man, and to the Glory of God all,” said Justus the
-Hopeful. And the man came, with a bow and
-arrows, very angry indeed, for there was no one to
-cook for him.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>But the tale of the Mission is a long one, and I
-have no space to show how Justus, forgetful of his
-injudicious predecessor, grievously smote Moto,
-the husband of Matui, for his brutality; how Moto
-was startled, but being released from the fear of instant
-death, took heart and became the faithful ally
-and first convert of Justus; how the little gathering
-grew, to the huge disgust of Athon Dazé; how the
-Priest of the God of Things as They Are argued
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_54'>54</span>subtilely with the Priest of the God of Things as
-They Should Be, and was worsted; how the dues
-of the Temple of Dungara fell away in fowls and
-fish and honeycomb, how Lotta lightened the
-Curse of Eve among the women, and how Justus
-did his best to introduce the Curse of Adam; how
-the Buria Kol rebelled at this, saying that their
-God was an idle God, and how Justus partially
-overcame their scruples against work, and taught
-them that the black earth was rich in other produce
-than pig-nuts only.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>All these things belong to the history of many
-months, and throughout those months the white-haired
-Athon Dazé meditated revenge for the tribal
-neglect of Dungara. With savage cunning he
-feigned friendship towards Justus, even hinting at
-his own conversion; but to the congregation of
-Dungara he said darkly: “They of the Padri’s
-flock have put on clothes and worship a busy God.
-Therefore Dungara will afflict them grievously till
-they throw themselves, howling, into the waters
-of the Berbulda.” At night the Red Elephant
-Tusk boomed and groaned among the hills, and
-the faithful waked and said: “The God of Things
-as They Are matures revenge against the back-sliders.
-Be merciful, Dungara, to us Thy children,
-and give us all their crops!”</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>Late in the cold weather, the Collector and his
-wife came into the Buria Kol country. “Go and
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_55'>55</span>look at Krenk’s Mission,” said Gallio. “He is
-doing good work in his own way, and I think he’d
-be pleased if you opened the bamboo chapel that
-he has managed to run up. At any rate, you’ll see
-a civilised Buria Kol.”</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>Great was the stir in the Mission. “Now he
-and the gracious lady will that we have done good
-work with their own eyes see, and—yes—we will
-him our converts in all their new clothes by their
-own hands constructed exhibit. It will a great day
-be—for the Lord always,” said Justus; and Lotta
-said, “Amen.” Justus had, in his quiet way, felt
-jealous of the Basel Weaving Mission, his own
-converts being unhandy; but Athon Dazé had
-latterly induced some of them to hackle the glossy
-silky fibres of a plant that grew plenteously on the
-Panth Hills. It yielded a cloth white and smooth
-almost as the <em>tappa</em> of the South Seas, and that day
-the converts were to wear for the first time clothes
-made therefrom. Justus was proud of his work.
-“They shall in white clothes clothed to meet the
-Collector and his well-born lady come down, singing
-‘Now thank we all our God.’ Then he will the
-Chapel open, and—yes—even Gallio to believe
-will begin. Stand so, my children, two by two,
-and—Lotta, why do they thus themselves bescratch?
-It is not seemly to wriggle, Nala, my
-child. The Collector will be here and be pained.”</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>The Collector, his wife, and Gallio climbed the
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_56'>56</span>hill to the Mission-station. The converts were
-drawn up in two lines, a shining band nearly forty
-strong. “Hah!” said the Collector, whose acquisitive
-bent of mind led him to believe that he had
-fostered the institution from the first. “Advancing,
-I see, by leaps and bounds.”</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>Never was truer word spoken! The Mission
-<em>was</em> advancing exactly as he had said—at first by
-little hops and shuffles of shamefaced uneasiness,
-but soon by the leaps of fly-stung horses and the
-bounds of maddened kangaroos. From the hill
-of Panth the Red Elephant Tusk delivered a dry
-and anguished blare. The ranks of the converts
-wavered, broke and scattered with yells and shrieks
-of pain, while Justus and Lotta stood horror-stricken.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>“It is the Judgment of Dungara!” shouted a
-voice. “I burn! I burn! To the river or we
-die!”</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>The mob wheeled and headed for the rocks that
-overhung the Berbulda, writhing, stamping, twisting,
-and shedding its garments as it ran, pursued
-by the thunder of the trumpet of Dungara. Justus
-and Lotta fled to the Collector almost in tears.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>“I cannot understand! Yesterday,” panted
-Justus, “they had the Ten Commandments. What
-is this? Praise the Lord all good spirits by land
-and by sea. Nala! Oh, shame!”</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>With a bound and a scream there alighted on the
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_57'>57</span>rocks above their heads, Nala, once the pride of
-the Mission, a maiden of fourteen summers, good,
-docile, and virtuous—now naked as the dawn and
-spitting like a wild-cat.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>“Was it for this!” she raved, hurling her petticoat
-at Justus, “was it for this I left my people
-and Dungara—for the fires of your Bad Place?
-Blind ape, little earthworm, dried fish that you
-are, you said that I should never burn! O Dungara,
-I burn now! I burn now! Have mercy,
-God of Things as They Are!”</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>She turned and flung herself into the Berbulda,
-and the trumpet of Dungara bellowed jubilantly.
-The last of the converts of the Tubingen Mission
-had put a quarter of a mile of rapid river between
-herself and her teachers.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>“Yesterday,” gulped Justus, “she taught in
-the school A, B, C, D.—Oh! It is the work of
-Satan!”</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>But Gallio was curiously regarding the maiden’s
-petticoat where it had fallen at his feet. He
-felt its texture, drew back his shirt-sleeve beyond
-the deep tan of his wrist and pressed a fold of the
-cloth against the flesh. A blotch of angry red
-rose on the white skin.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>“Ah!” said Gallio calmly, “I thought so.”</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>“What is it?” said Justus.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>“I should call it the Shirt of Nessus, but—Where
-did you get the fibre of this cloth from?”</p>
-
-<p class='c001'><span class='pageno' id='Page_58'>58</span>“Athon Dazé,” said Justus. “He showed the
-boys how it should manufactured be.”</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>“The old fox! Do you know that he has given
-you the Nilgiri Nettle—scorpion—<em>Girardenia
-heterophylla</em>—to work up? No wonder they
-squirmed! Why, it stings even when they make
-bridge-ropes of it, unless it’s soaked for six weeks.
-The cunning brute! It would take about half
-an hour to burn through their thick hides, and
-then——!”</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>Gallio burst into laughter, but Lotta was weeping
-in the arms of the Collector’s wife, and Justus
-had covered his face with his hands.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>“<em>Girardenia heterophylla!</em>” repeated Gallio.
-“Krenk, why <em>didn’t</em> you tell me? I could have
-saved you this. Woven fire! Anybody but a
-naked Kol would have known it, and, if I’m a
-judge of their ways, you’ll never get them back.”</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>He looked across the river to where the converts
-were still wallowing and wailing in the shallows,
-and the laughter died out of his eyes, for he
-saw that the Tubingen Mission to the Buria Kol
-was dead.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>Never again, though they hung mournfully
-round the deserted school for three months, could
-Lotta or Justus coax back even the most promising
-of their flock. No! The end of conversion
-was the fire of the Bad Place—fire that ran
-through the limbs and gnawed into the bones.
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_59'>59</span>Who dare a second time tempt the anger of Dungara?
-Let the little man and his wife go elsewhere.
-The Buria Kol would have none of them.
-An unofficial message to Athon Dazé that if a
-hair of their heads were touched, Athon Dazé and
-the priests of Dungara would be hanged by Gallio
-at the temple shrine, protected Justus and Lotta
-from the stumpy poisoned arrows of the Buria
-Kol, but neither fish nor fowl, honeycomb, salt
-nor young pig were brought to their doors any
-more. And, alas! man cannot live by grace alone
-if meat be wanting.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>“Let us go, mine wife,” said Justus; “there is
-no good here, and the Lord has willed that some
-other man shall the work take—in good time—in
-His own good time. We will go away, and
-I will—yes—some botany bestudy.”</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>If any one is anxious to convert the Buria Kol
-afresh, there lies at least the core of a mission-house
-under the hill of Panth. But the chapel
-and school have long since fallen back into jungle.</p>
-
-<div class='chapter'>
- <span class='pageno' id='Page_60'>60</span>
- <h2 class='c004'>THE FINANCES OF THE GODS</h2>
-</div>
-
-<div class='nf-center-c0'>
-<div class='nf-center c002'>
- <div><span class='small'>Copyright, 1891, by Macmillan &amp; Co.</span></div>
- </div>
-</div>
-
-<p class='c005'>The evening meal was ended in Dhunni Bhagat’s
-Chubara, and the old priests were smoking or
-counting their beads. A little naked child pattered
-in, with its mouth wide open, a handful of marigold
-flowers in one hand, and a lump of conserved
-tobacco in the other. It tried to kneel and make
-obeisance to Gobind, but it was so fat that it fell
-forward on its shaven head, and rolled on its side,
-kicking and gasping, while the marigolds tumbled
-one way and the tobacco the other. Gobind
-laughed, set it up again, and blessed the marigold
-flowers as he received the tobacco.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>“From my father,” said the child. “He has
-the fever, and cannot come. Wilt thou pray for
-him, father?”</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>“Surely, littlest; but the smoke is on the ground,
-and the night-chill is in the air, and it is not good
-to go abroad naked in the autumn.”</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>“I have no clothes,” said the child, “and all to-day
-I have been carrying cow-dung cakes to the
-bazar. It was very hot, and I am very tired.” It
-shivered a little, for the twilight was cool.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>Gobind lifted an arm under his vast tattered quilt
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_61'>61</span>of many colours, and made an inviting little nest
-by his side. The child crept in, and Gobind filled
-his brass-studded leather water-pipe with the new
-tobacco. When I came to the Chubara the shaven
-head with the tuft atop and the beady black eyes
-looked out of the folds of the quilt as a squirrel
-looks out from his nest, and Gobind was smiling
-while the child played with his beard.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>I would have said something friendly, but remembered
-in time that if the child fell ill afterwards
-I should be credited with the Evil Eye, and
-that is a horrible possession.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>“Sit thou still, Thumbling,” I said as it made
-to get up and run away. “Where is thy slate,
-and why has the teacher let such an evil character
-loose on the streets when there are no police to
-protect us weaklings? In which ward dost thou
-try to break thy neck with flying kites from the
-house-tops?”</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>“Nay, Sahib, nay,” said the child, burrowing
-its face into Gobind’s beard, and twisting uneasily.
-“There was a holiday to-day among the schools,
-and I do not always fly kites. I play ker-li-kit
-like the rest.”</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>Cricket is the national game among the school-boys
-of the Punjab, from the naked hedge-school
-children, who use an old kerosene-tin for wicket,
-to the B. A.’s of the University, who compete for
-the Championship belt.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'><span class='pageno' id='Page_62'>62</span>“Thou play kerlikit! Thou art half the height
-of the bat!” I said.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>The child nodded resolutely. “Yea, I <em>do</em> play.
-<em>Perlay-ball.</em> <em>Ow-at!</em> <em>Ran, ran, ran!</em> I know it
-all.”</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>“But thou must not forget with all this to pray
-to the Gods according to custom,” said Gobind,
-who did not altogether approve of cricket and
-western innovations.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>“I do not forget,” said the child in a hushed
-voice.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>“Also to give reverence to thy teacher, and”—Gobind’s
-voice softened—“to abstain from pulling
-holy men by the beard, little badling. Eh, eh, eh?”</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>The child’s face was altogether hidden in the
-great white beard, and it began to whimper till
-Gobind soothed it as children are soothed all the
-world over, with the promise of a story.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>“I did not think to frighten thee, senseless little
-one. Look up! Am I angry? Aré, aré, aré!
-Shall I weep too, and of our tears make a great
-pond and drown us both, and then thy father will
-never get well, lacking thee to pull his beard?
-Peace, peace, and I will tell thee of the Gods.
-Thou hast heard many tales?”</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>“Very many, father.”</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>“Now, this is a new one which thou hast not
-heard. Long and long ago when the Gods walked
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_63'>63</span>with men as they do to-day, but that we have not
-faith to see, Shiv, the greatest of Gods, and Parbati,
-his wife, were walking in the garden of a
-temple.”</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>“Which temple? That in the Nandgaon
-ward?” said the child.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>“Nay, very far away. Maybe at Trimbak or
-Hurdwar, whither thou must make pilgrimage
-when thou art a man. Now, there was sitting in
-the garden under the jujube trees a mendicant that
-had worshipped Shiv for forty years, and he lived
-on the offerings of the pious, and meditated holiness
-night and day.”</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>“Oh, father, was it thou?” said the child, looking
-up with large eyes.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>“Nay, I have said it was long ago, and, moreover,
-this mendicant was married.”</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>“Did they put him on a horse with flowers on
-his head, and forbid him to go to sleep all night
-long? Thus they did to me when they made my
-wedding,” said the child, who had been married a
-few months before.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>“And what didst thou do?” said I.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>“I wept, and they called me evil names, and
-then I smote <em>her</em>, and we wept together.”</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>“Thus did not the mendicant,” said Gobind;
-“for he was a holy man, and very poor. Parbati
-perceived him sitting naked by the temple steps
-where all went up and down, and she said to Shiv,
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_64'>64</span>‘What shall men think of the Gods when the
-Gods thus scorn their worshippers? For forty
-years yonder man has prayed to us, and yet there
-be only a few grains of rice and some broken
-cowries before him, after all. Men’s hearts will be
-hardened by this thing.’ And Shiv said, ‘It shall
-be looked to,’ and so he called to the temple which
-was the temple of his son, Ganesh of the elephant
-head, saying, ‘Son, there is a mendicant without
-who is very poor. What wilt thou do for him?’
-Then that great elephant-headed One awoke in the
-dark and answered, ‘In three days, if it be thy
-will, he shall have one lakh of rupees.’ Then
-Shiv and Parbati went away.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>“But there was a money-lender in the garden
-hidden among the marigolds”—the child looked
-at the ball of crumpled blossoms in its hands—“ay,
-among the yellow marigolds, and he heard
-the Gods talking. He was a covetous man, and
-of a black heart, and he desired that lakh of rupees
-for himself. So he went to the mendicant and
-said, ‘O brother, how much do the pious give
-thee daily?’ The mendicant said, ‘I cannot tell.
-Sometimes a little rice, sometimes a little pulse,
-and a few cowries, and, it has been, pickled mangoes
-and dried fish.’”</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>“That is good,” said the child, smacking its
-lips.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>“Then said the money-lender, ‘Because I have
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_65'>65</span>long watched thee, and learned to love thee and
-thy patience, I will give thee now five rupees
-for all thy earnings of the three days to come.
-There is only a bond to sign on the matter.’ But
-the mendicant said, ‘Thou art mad. In two
-months I do not receive the worth of five rupees,’
-and he told the thing to his wife that evening.
-She, being a woman, said, ‘When did money-lender
-ever make a bad bargain? The wolf runs
-through the corn for the sake of the fat deer.
-Our fate is in the hands of the Gods. Pledge it
-not even for three days.’</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>“So the mendicant returned to the money-lender,
-and would not sell. Then that wicked
-man sat all day before him, offering more and
-more for those three days’ earnings. First, ten,
-fifty, and a hundred rupees; and then, for he did
-not know when the Gods would pour down their
-gifts, rupees by the thousand, till he had offered
-half a lakh of rupees. Upon this sum the mendicant’s
-wife shifted her counsel, and the mendicant
-signed the bond, and the money was paid in silver;
-great white bullocks bringing it by the cart-load.
-But saving only all that money, the mendicant
-received nothing from the Gods at all, and
-the heart of the money-lender was uneasy on account
-of expectation. Therefore at noon of the
-third day the money-lender went into the temple
-to spy upon the councils of the Gods, and to learn
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_66'>66</span>in what manner that gift might arrive. Even as
-he was making his prayers, a crack between the
-stones of the floor gaped, and, closing, caught him
-by the heel. Then he heard the Gods walking in
-the temple in the darkness of the columns, and
-Shiv called to his son Ganesh, saying, ‘Son, what
-hast thou done in regard to the lakh of rupees
-for the mendicant?’ And Ganesh woke, for the
-money-lender heard the dry rustle of his trunk
-uncoiling, and he answered, ‘Father, one half of
-the money has been paid, and the debtor for
-the other half I hold here fast by the heel.’”</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>The child bubbled with laughter. “And the
-money-lender paid the mendicant?” it said.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>“Surely, for he whom the Gods hold by the
-heel must pay to the uttermost. The money was
-paid at evening, all silver, in great carts, and thus
-Ganesh did his work.”</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>“Nathu! Oh[=e], Nathu!”</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>A woman was calling in the dusk by the door
-of the courtyard.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>The child began to wriggle. “That is my
-mother,” it said.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>“Go then, littlest,” answered Gobind; “but
-stay a moment.”</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>He ripped a generous yard from his patchwork-quilt,
-put it over the child’s shoulders, and the
-child ran away.</p>
-
-<div class='chapter'>
- <span class='pageno' id='Page_67'>67</span>
- <h2 class='c004'>AT HOWLI THANA</h2>
-</div>
-
-<p class='c012'>His own shoe, his own head.—<cite>Native Proverb.</cite></p>
-
-<p class='c005'>As a messenger, if the heart of the Presence be
-moved to so great favour. And on six rupees.
-Yes, Sahib, for I have three little little children
-whose stomachs are always empty, and corn is
-now but forty pounds to the rupee. I will make
-so clever a messenger that you shall all day long
-be pleased with me, and, at the end of the year,
-bestow a turban. I know all the roads of the Station
-and many other things. Aha, Sahib! I am
-clever. Give me service. I was aforetime in the
-Police. A bad character? Now without doubt an
-enemy has told this tale. Never was I a scamp. I
-am a man of clean heart, and all my words are true.
-They knew this when I was in the Police. They
-said: “Afzal Khan is a true speaker in whose words
-men may trust.” I am a Delhi Pathan, Sahib—all
-Delhi Pathans are good men. You have seen
-Delhi? Yes, it is true that there be many scamps
-among the Delhi Pathans. How wise is the Sahib!
-Nothing is hid from his eyes, and he will
-make me his messenger, and I will take all his
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_68'>68</span>notes secretly and without ostentation. Nay, Sahib,
-God is my witness that I meant no evil. I
-have long desired to serve under a true Sahib—a
-virtuous Sahib. Many young Sahibs are as devils
-unchained. With these Sahibs I would take no
-service—not though all the stomachs of my little
-children were crying for bread.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>Why am I not still in the Police? I will speak
-true talk. An evil came to the Thana—to Ram
-Baksh, the Havildar, and Maula Baksh, and Juggut
-Ram and Bhim Singh and Suruj Bul. Ram
-Baksh is in the jail for a space, and so also is
-Maula Baksh.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>It was at the Thana of Howli, on the road
-that leads to Gokral-Seetarun, wherein are many
-dacoits. We were all brave men—Rustums.
-Wherefore we were sent to that Thana, which was
-eight miles from the next Thana. All day and all
-night we watched for dacoits. Why does the
-Sahib laugh? Nay, I will make a confession.
-The dacoits were too clever, and, seeing this, we
-made no further trouble. It was in the hot weather.
-What can a man do in the hot days? Is the Sahib
-who is so strong—is he, even, vigorous in that
-hour? We made an arrangement with the dacoits
-for the sake of peace. That was the work
-of the Havildar, who was fat. Ho! Ho! Sahib,
-he is now getting thin in the jail among the carpets.
-The Havildar said: “Give us no trouble,
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_69'>69</span>and we will give you no trouble. At the end of
-the reaping send us a man to lead before the judge,
-a man of infirm mind against whom the trumped-up
-case will break down. Thus we shall save our
-honour.” To this talk the dacoits agreed, and
-we had no trouble at the Thana, and could eat
-melons in peace, sitting upon our charpoys all
-day long. Sweet as sugar-cane are the melons of
-Howli.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>Now there was an assistant commissioner—a
-Stunt Sahib, in that district, called Yunkum Sahib.
-Aha! He was hard—hard even as is the Sahib
-who, without doubt, will give me the shadow of
-his protection. Many eyes had Yunkum Sahib,
-and moved quickly through his district. Men
-called him The Tiger of Gokral-Seetarun, because
-he would arrive unannounced and make his
-kill, and, before sunset, would be giving trouble
-to the Tehsildars thirty miles away. No one knew
-the comings or the goings of Yunkum Sahib. He
-had no camp, and when his horse was weary he
-rode upon a devil-carriage. I do not know its
-name, but the Sahib sat in the midst of three silver
-wheels that made no creaking, and drave them
-with his legs, prancing like a bean-fed horse—thus.
-A shadow of a hawk upon the fields was
-not more without noise than the devil-carriage of
-Yunkum Sahib. It was here: it was there: it
-was gone: and the rapport was made, and there
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_70'>70</span>was trouble. Ask the Tehsildar of Rohestri how
-the hen-stealing came to be known, Sahib.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>It fell upon a night that we of the Thana slept
-according to custom upon our charpoys, having
-eaten the evening meal and drunk tobacco. When
-we awoke in the morning, behold, of our six
-rifles not one remained! Also, the big Police-book
-that was in the Havildar’s charge was gone.
-Seeing these things, we were very much afraid,
-thinking on our parts that the dacoits, regardless
-of honour, had come by night and put us to shame.
-Then said Ram Baksh, the Havildar: “Be silent!
-The business is an evil business, but it may yet
-go well. Let us make the case complete. Bring
-a kid and my tulwar. See you not <em>now</em>, O fools?
-A kick for a horse, but a word is enough for a
-man.”</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>We of the Thana, perceiving quickly what was
-in the mind of the Havildar, and greatly fearing
-that the service would be lost, made haste to take
-the kid into the inner room, and attended to the
-words of the Havildar. “Twenty dacoits came,”
-said the Havildar, and we, taking his words, repeated
-after him according to custom. “There
-was a great fight,” said the Havildar, “and of us
-no man escaped unhurt. The bars of the window
-were broken. Suruj Bul, see thou to that; and,
-O men, put speed into your work, for a runner
-must go with the news to The Tiger of Gokral-Seetarun.”
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_71'>71</span>Thereon, Suruj Bul, leaning with his
-shoulder, brake in the bars of the window, and I,
-beating her with a whip, made the Havildar’s mare
-skip among the melon-beds till they were much
-trodden with hoof-prints.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>These things being made, I returned to the
-Thana, and the goat was slain, and certain portions
-of the walls were blackened with fire, and
-each man dipped his clothes a little into the blood
-of the goat. Know, O Sahib, that a wound made
-by man upon his own body can, by those skilled,
-be easily discerned from a wound wrought by another
-man. Therefore, the Havildar, taking his
-tulwar, smote one of us lightly on the forearm in
-the fat, and another on the leg, and a third on the
-back of the hand. Thus dealt he with all of us
-till the blood came; and Suruj Bul, more eager
-than the others, took out much hair. O Sahib,
-never was so perfect an arrangement. Yea, even
-I would have sworn that the Thana had been
-treated as we said. There was smoke and breaking
-and blood and trampled earth.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>“Ride now, Maula Baksh,” said the Havildar,
-“to the house of the Stunt Sahib, and carry the
-news of the dacoity. Do you also, O Afzal Khan,
-run there, and take heed that you are mired with
-sweat and dust on your in-coming. The blood
-will be dry on the clothes. I will stay and send
-a straight report to the Dipty Sahib, and we will
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_72'>72</span>catch certain that ye know of, villagers, so that all
-may be ready against the Dipty Sahib’s arrival.”</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>Thus Maula Baksh rode and I ran hanging on
-the stirrup, and together we came in an evil plight
-before The Tiger of Gokral-Seetarun in the Rohestri
-tehsil. Our tale was long and correct, Sahib,
-for we gave even the names of the dacoits
-and the issue of the fight, and besought him to
-come. But The Tiger made no sign, and only
-smiled after the manner of Sahibs when they have
-a wickedness in their hearts. “Swear ye to the
-rapport?” said he, and we said: “Thy servants
-swear. The blood of the fight is but newly dry
-upon us. Judge thou if it be the blood of the
-servants of the Presence, or not.” And he said:
-“I see. Ye have done well.” But he did not
-call for his horse or his devil-carriage, and scour
-the land as was his custom. He said: “Rest now
-and eat bread, for ye be wearied men. I will wait
-the coming of the Dipty Sahib.”</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>Now it is the order that the Havildar of the
-Thana should send a straight report of all dacoities
-to the Dipty Sahib. At noon came he, a fat
-man and an old, and overbearing withal, but we
-of the Thana had no fear of his anger; dreading
-more the silences of The Tiger of Gokral-Seetarun.
-With him came Ram Baksh, the Havildar,
-and the others, guarding ten men of the village
-of Howli—all men evil affected towards the
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_73'>73</span>Police of the Sirkar. As prisoners they came,
-the irons upon their hands, crying for mercy—Imam
-Baksh, the farmer, who had denied his wife
-to the Havildar, and others, ill-conditioned rascals
-against whom we of the Thana bore spite. It
-was well done, and the Havildar was proud. But
-the Dipty Sahib was angry with the Stunt for lack
-of zeal, and said “Dam-Dam” after the custom
-of the English people, and extolled the Havildar.
-Yunkum Sahib lay still in his long chair. “Have
-the men sworn?” said Yunkum Sahib. “Aye,
-and captured ten evildoers,” said the Dipty Sahib.
-“There be more abroad in <em>your</em> charge. Take
-horse—ride, and go in the name of the Sirkar!”
-“Truly there be more evildoers abroad,” said
-Yunkum Sahib, “but there is no need of a horse.
-Come all men with me.”</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>I saw the mark of a string on the temples of
-Imam Baksh. Does the Presence know the torture
-of the Cold Draw? I saw also the face of
-The Tiger of Gokral-Seetarun, the evil smile was
-upon it, and I stood back ready for what might
-befall. Well it was, Sahib, that I did this thing.
-Yunkum Sahib unlocked the door of his bathroom,
-and smiled anew. Within lay the six rifles
-and the big Police-book of the Thana of Howli!
-He had come by night in the devil-carriage that is
-noiseless as a ghoul, and moving among us asleep,
-had taken away both the guns and the book!
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_74'>74</span>Twice had he come to the Thana, taking each
-time three rifles. The liver of the Havildar was
-turned to water, and he fell scrabbling in the dirt
-about the boots of Yunkum Sahib, crying—“Have
-mercy!”</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>And I? Sahib, I am a Delhi Pathan, and a
-young man with little children. The Havildar’s
-mare was in the compound. I ran to her and
-rode: the black wrath of the Sirkar was behind
-me, and I knew not whither to go. Till she
-dropped and died I rode the red mare; and by
-the blessing of God, who is without doubt on the
-side of all just men, I escaped. But the Havildar
-and the rest are now in jail.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>I am a scamp? It is as the Presence pleases.
-God will make the Presence a Lord, and give him
-a rich <em>Memsahib</em> as fair as a Peri to wife, and many
-strong sons, if he makes me his orderly. The
-Mercy of Heaven be upon the Sahib! Yes, I will
-only go to the bazar and bring my children to
-these so-palace-like quarters, and then—the Presence
-is my Father and my Mother, and I, Afzal
-Khan, am his slave.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>Ohe, <em>Sirdar-ji</em>! I also am of the household of
-the Sahib.</p>
-
-<div class='chapter'>
- <span class='pageno' id='Page_75'>75</span>
- <h2 class='c004'>IN FLOOD TIME</h2>
-</div>
-
-<div class='lg-container-b c015'>
- <div class='linegroup'>
- <div class='group'>
- <div class='line'>Tweed said tae Till:</div>
- <div class='line'>“What gars ye rin sae still?”</div>
- <div class='line'>Till said tae Tweed:</div>
- <div class='line'>“Though ye rin wi’ speed</div>
- <div class='line'>An’ I rin slaw—</div>
- <div class='line'>Yet where ye droon ae man</div>
- <div class='line'>I droon twa.”</div>
- </div>
- </div>
-</div>
-
-<p class='c005'>There is no getting over the river to-night, Sahib.
-They say that a bullock-cart has been washed down
-already, and the <em>ekka</em> that went over a half hour
-before you came has not yet reached the far side.
-Is the Sahib in haste? I will drive the ford-elephant
-in to show him. Ohe, mahout there in the
-shed! Bring out Ram Pershad, and if he will face
-the current, good. An elephant never lies, Sahib,
-and Ram Pershad is separated from his friend Kala
-Nag. He, too, wishes to cross to the far side.
-Well done! Well done! my King! Go half
-way across, <em>mahoutji</em>, and see what the river says.
-Well done, Ram Pershad! Pearl among elephants,
-go into the river! Hit him on the head,
-fool! Was the goad made only to scratch thy
-own fat back with, bastard? Strike! Strike!
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_76'>76</span>What are the boulders to thee, Ram Pershad,
-my Rustum, my mountain of strength? Go in!
-Go in!</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>No, Sahib! It is useless. You can hear him
-trumpet. He is telling Kala Nag that he cannot
-come over. See! He has swung round and is
-shaking his head. He is no fool. He knows
-what the Barhwi means when it is angry. Aha!
-Indeed, thou art no fool, my child! <em>Salaam</em>, Ram
-Pershad, Bahadur! Take him under the trees,
-mahout, and see that he gets his spices. Well
-done, thou chiefest among tuskers! <em>Salaam</em> to
-the Sirkar and go to sleep.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>What is to be done? The Sahib must wait till
-the river goes down. It will shrink to-morrow morning,
-if God pleases, or the day after at the latest.
-Now why does the Sahib get so angry? I am his
-servant. Before God, <em>I</em> did not create this stream!
-What can I do! My hut and all that is therein
-is at the service of the Sahib, and it is beginning
-to rain. Come away, my Lord. How will the
-river go down for your throwing abuse at it? In
-the old days the English people were not thus.
-The fire-carriage has made them soft. In the old
-days, when they drave behind horses by day or by
-night, they said naught if a river barred the way,
-or a carriage sat down in the mud. It was the
-will of God—not like a fire-carriage which goes
-and goes and goes, and would go though all the
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_77'>77</span>devils in the land hung on to its tail. The fire-carriage
-hath spoiled the English people. After
-all, what is a day lost, or, for that matter, what are
-two days? Is the Sahib going to his own wedding,
-that he is so mad with haste? Ho! Ho!
-Ho! I am an old man and see few Sahibs. Forgive
-me if I have forgotten the respect that is due
-to them. The Sahib is not angry?</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>His own wedding! Ho! Ho! Ho! The
-mind of an old man is like the <em>numah</em>-tree. Fruit,
-bud, blossom, and the dead leaves of all the years
-of the past flourish together. Old and new and
-that which is gone out of remembrance, all three
-are there! Sit on the bedstead, Sahib, and drink
-milk. Or—would the Sahib in truth care to
-drink my tobacco? It is good. It is the tobacco
-of Nuklao. My son, who is in service there, sent
-it to me. Drink, then, Sahib, if you know how to
-handle the tube. The Sahib takes it like a Musalman.
-Wah! Wah! Where did he learn that?
-His own wedding! Ho! Ho! Ho! The Sahib
-says that there is no wedding in the matter at all?
-Now <em>is</em> it likely that the Sahib would speak true
-talk to me who am only a black man? Small
-wonder, then, that he is in haste. Thirty years
-have I beaten the gong at this ford, but never have
-I seen a Sahib in such haste. Thirty years, Sahib!
-That is a very long time. Thirty years ago this
-ford was on the track of the <em>bunjaras</em>, and I have
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_78'>78</span>seen two thousand pack-bullocks cross in one <a id='corr78.1'></a><span class='htmlonly'><ins class='correction' title='night,'>night.</ins></span><span class='epubonly'><a href='#c_78.1'><ins class='correction' title='night,'>night.</ins></a></span>
-Now the rail has come, and the fire-carriage says
-<em>buz-buz-buz</em>, and a hundred lakhs of maunds slide
-across that big bridge. It is very wonderful; but
-the ford is lonely now that there are no <em>bunjaras</em> to
-camp under the trees.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>Nay, do not trouble to look at the sky without.
-It will rain till the dawn. Listen! The boulders
-are talking to-night in the bed of the river. Hear
-them! They would be husking your bones,
-Sahib, had you tried to cross. See, I will shut the
-door and no rain can enter. <em>Wahi!</em> <em>Ahi!</em> <em>Ugh!</em>
-Thirty years on the banks of the ford! An old
-man am I, and—where is the oil for the lamp?</p>
-
-<hr class='c014' />
-
-<p class='c001'>Your pardon, but, because of my years, I sleep
-no sounder than a dog; and you moved to the
-door. Look then, Sahib. Look and listen. A
-full half <em>kos</em> from bank to bank is the stream now—you
-can see it under the stars—and there are
-ten feet of water therein. It will not shrink because
-of the anger in your eyes, and it will not be
-quiet on account of your curses. Which is louder,
-Sahib—your voice or the voice of the river?
-Call to it—perhaps it will be ashamed. Lie
-down and sleep afresh, Sahib. I know the anger
-of the Barhwi when there has fallen rain in the
-foot-hills. I swam the flood, once, on a night ten-fold
-worse than this, and by the Favour of God I
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_79'>79</span>was released from death when I had come to the
-very gates thereof.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>May I tell the tale? Very good talk. I will
-fill the pipe anew.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>Thirty years ago it was, when I was a young
-man and had but newly come to the ford. I was
-strong then, and the <em>bunjaras</em> had no doubt when
-I said, “This ford is clear.” I have toiled all night
-up to my shoulder-blades in running water amid a
-hundred bullocks mad with fear, and have brought
-them across, losing not a hoof. When all was
-done I fetched the shivering men, and they gave
-me for reward the pick of their cattle—the bell-bullock
-of the drove. So great was the honour in
-which I was held! But to-day, when the rain falls
-and the river rises, I creep into my hut and whimper
-like a dog. My strength is gone from me.
-I am an old man, and the fire-carriage has made
-the ford desolate. They were wont to call me the
-Strong One of the Barhwi.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>Behold my face, Sahib—it is the face of a
-monkey. And my arm—it is the arm of an old
-woman. I swear to you, Sahib, that a woman has
-loved this face and has rested in the hollow of this
-arm. Twenty years ago, Sahib. Believe me, this
-was true talk—twenty years ago.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>Come to the door and look across. Can you
-see a thin fire very far away down the stream?
-That is the temple-fire in the shrine of Hanuman,
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_80'>80</span>of the village of Pateera. North, under the big
-star, is the village itself, but it is hidden by a bend
-of the river. Is that far to swim, Sahib? Would
-you take off your clothes and adventure? Yet I
-swam to Pateera—not once, but many times; and
-there are <em>muggers</em> in the river too.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>Love knows no caste; else why should I, a
-Musalman and the son of a Musalman, have sought
-a Hindu woman—a widow of the Hindus—the
-sister of the headman of Pateera? But it was even
-so. They of the headman’s household came on a
-pilgrimage to Muttra when She was but newly a
-bride. Silver tires were upon the wheels of the
-bullock-cart, and silken curtains hid the woman.
-Sahib, I made no haste in their conveyance, for the
-wind parted the curtains and I saw Her. When
-they returned from pilgrimage the boy that was
-Her husband had died, and I saw Her again in
-the bullock-cart. By God, these Hindus are fools!
-What was it to me whether She was Hindu or
-Jain—scavenger, leper, or whole? I would have
-married Her and made Her a home by the ford.
-The Seventh of the Nine Bars says that a man
-may not marry one of the idolaters? Is that
-truth? Both Shiahs and Sunnis say that a Musalman
-may not marry one of the idolaters? Is the
-Sahib a priest, then, that he knows so much? I
-will tell him something that he does not know.
-There is neither Shiah nor Sunni, forbidden nor
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_81'>81</span>idolater, in Love; and the Nine Bars are but nine
-little fagots that the flame of Love utterly burns
-away. In truth, I would have taken Her; but
-what could I do? The headman would have
-sent his men to break my head with staves. I
-am not—I was not—afraid of any five men;
-but against half a village who can prevail?</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>Therefore it was my custom, these things having
-been arranged between us twain, to go by
-night to the village of Pateera, and there we met
-among the crops; no man knowing aught of the
-matter. Behold, now! I was wont to cross here,
-skirting the jungle to the river bend where the
-railway bridge is, and thence across the elbow of
-land to Pateera. The light of the shrine was my
-guide when the nights were dark. That jungle
-near the river is very full of snakes—little <em>karaits</em>
-that sleep on the sand—and moreover, Her
-brothers would have slain me had they found me
-in the crops. But none knew—none knew save
-She and I; and the blown sand of the river-bed
-covered the track of my feet. In the hot months
-it was an easy thing to pass from the ford to Pateera,
-and in the first Rains, when the river rose
-slowly, it was an easy thing also. I set the
-strength of my body against the strength of the
-stream, and nightly I ate in my hut here and
-drank at Pateera yonder. She had said that one
-Hirnam Singh, a thief, had sought Her, and he
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_82'>82</span>was of a village up the river but on the same
-bank. All Sikhs are dogs, and they have refused
-in their folly that good gift of God—tobacco. I
-was ready to destroy Hirnam Singh that ever he
-had come nigh Her; and the more because he
-had sworn to Her that She had a lover, and that
-he would lie in wait and give the name to the
-headman unless She went away with him. What
-curs are these Sikhs!</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>After that news, I swam always with a little
-sharp knife in my belt, and evil would it have
-been for a man had he stayed me. I knew not
-the face of Hirnam Singh, but I would have killed
-any who came between me and Her.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>Upon a night in the beginning of the Rains, I
-was minded to go across to Pateera, albeit the
-river was angry. Now the nature of the Barhwi
-is this, Sahib. In twenty breaths it comes down
-from the Hills, a wall three feet high, and I have
-seen it, between the lighting of a fire and the
-cooking of a <em>chupatty</em>, grow from a runnel to a
-sister of the Jumna.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>When I left this bank there was a shoal a half
-mile down, and I made shift to fetch it and draw
-breath there ere going forward; for I felt the
-hands of the river heavy upon my heels. Yet
-what will a young man not do for Love’s sake?
-There was but little light from the stars, and midway
-to the shoal a branch of the stinking deodar
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_83'>83</span>tree brushed my mouth as I swam. That was a
-sign of heavy rain in the foot-hills and beyond,
-for the deodar is a strong tree, not easily shaken
-from the hillsides. I made haste, the river aiding
-me, but ere I had touched the shoal, the pulse of
-the stream beat, as it were, within me and around,
-and, behold, the shoal was gone and I rode high
-on the crest of a wave that ran from bank to bank.
-Has the Sahib ever been cast into much water
-that fights and will not let a man use his limbs?
-To me, my head upon the water, it seemed as
-though there were naught but water to the world’s
-end, and the river drave me with its driftwood.
-A man is a very little thing in the belly of a
-flood. And <em>this</em> flood, though I knew it not, was
-the Great Flood about which men talk still. My
-liver was dissolved and I lay like a log upon my
-back in the fear of Death. There were living
-things in the water, crying and howling grievously—beasts
-of the forest and cattle, and once
-the voice of a man asking for help. But the rain
-came and lashed the water white, and I heard no
-more save the roar of the boulders below and the
-roar of the rain above. Thus I was whirled downstream,
-wrestling for the breath in me. It is very
-hard to die when one is young. Can the Sahib,
-standing here, see the railway bridge? Look,
-there are the lights of the mail-train going to Peshawur!
-The bridge is now twenty feet above
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_84'>84</span>the river, but upon that night the water was roaring
-against the lattice-work and against the lattice
-came I feet first. But much driftwood was piled
-there and upon the piers, and I took no great
-hurt. Only the river pressed me as a strong man
-presses a weaker. Scarcely could I take hold of
-the lattice-work and crawl to the upper boom.
-Sahib, the water was foaming across the rails a
-foot deep! Judge therefore what manner of flood
-it must have been. I could not hear. I could not
-see. I could but lie on the boom and pant for breath.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>After a while the rain ceased and there came
-out in the sky certain new washed stars, and by
-their light I saw that there was no end to the
-black water as far as the eye could travel, and
-the water had risen upon the rails. There were
-dead beasts in the driftwood on the piers, and
-others caught by the neck in the lattice-work, and
-others not yet drowned who strove to find a foothold
-on the lattice-work—buffaloes and kine, and
-wild pig, and deer one or two, and snakes and
-jackals past all counting. Their bodies were
-black upon the left side of the bridge, but the
-smaller of them were forced through the lattice-work
-and whirled down-stream.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>Thereafter the stars died and the rain came
-down afresh and the river rose yet more, and I
-felt the bridge begin to stir under me as a man
-stirs in his sleep ere he wakes. But I was not
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_85'>85</span>afraid, Sahib. I swear to you that I was not
-afraid, though I had no power in my limbs. I
-knew that I should not die till I had seen Her
-once more. But I was very cold, and I felt that
-the bridge must go.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>There was a trembling in the water, such a
-trembling as goes before the coming of a great
-wave, and the bridge lifted its flank to the rush of
-that coming so that the right lattice dipped under
-water and the left rose clear. On my beard,
-Sahib, I am speaking God’s truth! As a Mirzapore
-stone-boat careens to the wind, so the Barhwi
-Bridge turned. Thus and in no other manner.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>I slid from the boom into deep water, and behind
-me came the wave of the wrath of the river. I
-heard its voice and the scream of the middle part
-of the bridge as it moved from the piers and sank,
-and I knew no more till I rose in the middle of
-the great flood. I put forth my hand to swim,
-and lo! it fell upon the knotted hair of the head
-of a man. He was dead, for no one but I, the
-Strong One of Barhwi, could have lived in that
-race. He had been dead full two days, for he rode
-high, wallowing, and was an aid to me. I laughed
-then, knowing for a surety that I should yet see
-Her and take no harm; and I twisted my fingers
-in the hair of the man, for I was far spent, and
-together we went down the stream—he the dead
-and I the living. Lacking that help I should
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_86'>86</span>have sunk: the cold was in my marrow, and my
-flesh was ribbed and sodden on my bones. But
-<em>he</em> had no fear who had known the uttermost of
-the power of the river; and I let him go where
-he chose. At last we came into the power of a
-side-current that set to the right bank, and I strove
-with my feet to draw with it. But the dead man
-swung heavily in the whirl, and I feared that
-some branch had struck him and that he would
-sink. The tops of the tamarisk brushed my knees,
-so I knew we were come into flood-water above
-the crops, and, after, I let down my legs and felt
-bottom—the ridge of a field—and, after, the
-dead man stayed upon a knoll under a fig-tree,
-and I drew my body from the water rejoicing.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>Does the Sahib know whither the backwash of
-the flood had borne me? To the knoll which is
-the eastern boundary-mark of the village of Pateera!
-No other place. I drew the dead man up
-on the grass for the service that he had done me,
-and also because I knew not whether I should need
-him again. Then I went, crying thrice like a
-jackal, to the appointed place which was near the
-byre of the headman’s house. But my Love was
-already there, weeping. She feared that the flood
-had swept my hut at the Barhwi Ford. When I
-came softly through the ankle-deep water, She
-thought it was a ghost and would have fled, but I
-put my arms round Her, and—I was no ghost in
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_87'>87</span>those days, though I am an old man now. Ho!
-Ho! Dried corn, in truth. Maize without juice.
-Ho! Ho!<a id='r1' /><a href='#f1' class='c020'><sup>[1]</sup></a></p>
-
-<div class='footnote' id='f1'>
-<p class='c001'><a href='#r1'>1</a>. I grieve to say that the Warden of Barhwi Ford is responsible here
-for two very bad puns in the vernacular.—<cite>R. K.</cite></p>
-</div>
-
-<p class='c001'>I told Her the story of the breaking of the Barhwi
-Bridge, and She said that I was greater than mortal
-man, for none may cross the Barhwi in full flood,
-and I had seen what never man had seen before.
-Hand in hand we went to the knoll where the
-dead lay, and I showed Her by what help I had
-made the ford. She looked also upon the body
-under the stars, for the latter end of the night was
-clear, and hid Her face in Her hands, crying: “It
-is the body of Hirnam Singh!” I said: “The
-swine is of more use dead than living, my Beloved,”
-and She said: “Surely, for he has saved the
-dearest life in the world to my love. None the
-less, he cannot stay here, for that would bring
-shame upon me.” The body was not a gunshot
-from Her door.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>Then said I, rolling the body with my hands:
-“God hath judged between us, Hirnam Singh,
-that thy blood might not be upon my head.
-Now, whether I have done thee a wrong in keeping
-thee from the burning-ghat, do thou and the
-crows settle together.” So I cast him adrift into
-the flood-water, and he was drawn out to the open,
-ever wagging his thick black beard like a priest
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_88'>88</span>under the pulpit-board. And I saw no more of
-Hirnam Singh.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>Before the breaking of the day we two parted,
-and I moved towards such of the jungle as was
-not flooded. With the full light I saw what I
-had done in the darkness, and the bones of my
-body were loosened in my flesh, for there ran two
-<em>kos</em> of raging water between the village of Pateera
-and the trees of the far bank, and, in the middle,
-the piers of the Barhwi Bridge showed like broken
-teeth in the jaw of an old man. Nor was there
-any life upon the waters—neither birds nor boats,
-but only an army of drowned things—bullocks
-and horses and men—and the river was redder
-than blood from the clay of the foot-hills. Never
-had I seen such a flood—never since that year
-have I seen the like—and, O Sahib, no man living
-had done what I had done. There was no
-return for me that day. Not for all the lands of
-the headman would I venture a second time without
-the shield of darkness that cloaks danger. I
-went a <em>kos</em> up the river to the house of a blacksmith,
-saying that the flood had swept me from
-my hut, and they gave me food. Seven days I
-stayed with the blacksmith, till a boat came and
-I returned to my house. There was no trace of
-wall, or roof, or floor—naught but a patch of slimy
-mud. Judge, therefore, Sahib, how far the river
-must have risen.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'><span class='pageno' id='Page_89'>89</span>It was written that I should not die either in my
-house, or in the heart of the Barhwi, or under the
-wreck of the Barhwi Bridge, for God sent down
-Hirnam Singh two days dead, though I know not
-how the man died, to be my buoy and support.
-Hirnam Singh has been in Hell these twenty
-years, and the thought of that night must be
-the flower of his torment.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>Listen, Sahib! The river has changed its voice.
-It is going to sleep before the dawn, to which there
-is yet one hour. With the light it will come down
-afresh. How do I know? Have I been here thirty
-years without knowing the voice of the river as a
-father knows the voice of his son? Every moment
-it is talking less angrily. I swear that there
-will be no danger for one hour or, perhaps, two.
-I cannot answer for the morning. Be quick, Sahib!
-I will call Ram Pershad, and he will not
-turn back this time. Is the paulin tightly corded
-upon all the baggage? Ohe, mahout with a mud
-head, the elephant for the Sahib, and tell them on
-the far side that there will be no crossing after
-daylight.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>Money? Nay, Sahib. I am not of that kind.
-No, not even to give sweetmeats to the baby-folk.
-My house, look you, is empty, and I am an old
-man.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'><em>Dutt</em>, Ram Pershad! <em>Dutt! Dutt! Dutt!</em>
-Good luck go with you, Sahib.</p>
-
-<div class='chapter'>
- <span class='pageno' id='Page_90'>90</span>
- <h2 class='c004'>MOTI GUJ—MUTINEER</h2>
-</div>
-
-<p class='c005'>Once upon a time there was a coffee-planter in
-India who wished to clear some forest land for
-coffee-planting. When he had cut down all the
-trees and burned the under-wood the stumps still
-remained. Dynamite is expensive and slow-fire
-slow. The happy medium for stump-clearing is
-the lord of all beasts, who is the elephant. He
-will either push the stump out of the ground with
-his tusks, if he has any, or drag it out with ropes.
-The planter, therefore, hired elephants by ones and
-twos and threes, and fell to work. The very best
-of all the elephants belonged to the very worst of
-all the drivers or mahouts; and the superior beast’s
-name was Moti Guj. He was the absolute property
-of his mahout, which would never have been the
-case under native rule, for Moti Guj was a creature
-to be desired by kings; and his name, being translated,
-meant the Pearl Elephant. Because the
-British Government was in the land, Deesa, the
-mahout, enjoyed his property undisturbed. He
-was dissipated. When he had made much money
-through the strength of his elephant, he would get
-extremely drunk and give Moti Guj a beating
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_91'>91</span>with a tent-peg over the tender nails of the forefeet.
-Moti Guj never trampled the life out of Deesa on
-these occasions, for he knew that after the beating
-was over Deesa would embrace his trunk and
-weep and call him his love and his life and the
-liver of his soul, and give him some liquor. Moti
-Guj was very fond of liquor—arrack for choice,
-though he would drink palm-tree toddy if nothing
-better offered. Then Deesa would go to sleep between
-Moti Guj’s forefeet, and as Deesa generally
-chose the middle of the public road, and as Moti
-Guj mounted guard over him and would not permit
-horse, foot, or cart to pass by, traffic was congested
-till Deesa saw fit to wake up.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>There was no sleeping in the daytime on the
-planter’s clearing: the wages were too high to risk.
-Deesa sat on Moti Guj’s neck and gave him orders,
-while Moti Guj rooted up the stumps—for
-he owned a magnificent pair of tusks; or pulled at
-the end of a rope—for he had a magnificent pair
-of shoulders, while Deesa kicked him behind the
-ears and said he was the king of elephants. At
-evening time Moti Guj would wash down his three
-hundred pounds’ weight of green food with a quart
-of arrack, and Deesa would take a share and sing
-songs between Moti Guj’s legs till it was time to
-go to bed. Once a week Deesa led Moti Guj
-down to the river, and Moti Guj lay on his side
-luxuriously in the shallows, while Deesa went over
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_92'>92</span>him with a coir-swab and a brick. Moti Guj
-never mistook the pounding blow of the latter for
-the smack of the former that warned him to get
-up and turn over on the other side. Then Deesa
-would look at his feet, and examine his eyes, and
-turn up the fringes of his mighty ears in case of
-sores or budding ophthalmia. After inspection,
-the two would “come up with a song from the
-sea,” Moti Guj all black and shining, waving a
-torn tree branch twelve feet long in his trunk, and
-Deesa knotting up his own long wet hair.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>It was a peaceful, well-paid life till Deesa felt
-the return of the desire to drink deep. He wished
-for an orgie. The little draughts that led nowhere
-were taking the manhood out of him.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>He went to the planter, and “My mother’s
-dead,” said he, weeping.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>“She died on the last plantation two months
-ago; and she died once before that when you were
-working for me last year,” said the planter, who
-knew something of the ways of nativedom.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>“Then it’s my aunt, and she was just the same
-as a mother to me,” said Deesa, weeping more than
-ever. “She has left eighteen small children entirely
-without bread, and it is I who must fill their
-little stomachs,” said Deesa, beating his head on
-the floor.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>“Who brought you the news?” said the planter.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>“The post,” said Deesa.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'><span class='pageno' id='Page_93'>93</span>“There hasn’t been a post here for the past week.
-Get back to your lines!”</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>“A devastating sickness has fallen on my village,
-and all my wives are dying,” yelled Deesa, really
-in tears this time.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>“Call Chihun, who comes from Deesa’s village,”
-said the planter. “Chihun, has this man a wife?”</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>“He!” said Chihun. “No. Not a woman of
-our village would look at him. They’d sooner
-marry the elephant.” Chihun snorted. Deesa
-wept and bellowed.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>“You will get into a difficulty in a minute,”
-said the planter. “Go back to your work!”</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>“Now I will speak Heaven’s truth,” gulped
-Deesa, with an inspiration. “I haven’t been drunk
-for two months. I desire to depart in order to get
-properly drunk afar off and distant from this heavenly
-plantation. Thus I shall cause no trouble.”</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>A flickering smile crossed the planter’s face.
-“Deesa,” said he, “you’ve spoken the truth, and
-I’d give you leave on the spot if anything could
-be done with Moti Guj while you’re away. You
-know that he will only obey your orders.”</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>“May the Light of the Heavens live forty thousand
-years. I shall be absent but ten little days.
-After that, upon my faith and honour and soul, I
-return. As to the inconsiderable interval, have I
-the gracious permission of the Heaven-born to call
-up Moti Guj?”</p>
-
-<p class='c001'><span class='pageno' id='Page_94'>94</span>Permission was granted, and, in answer to Deesa’s
-shrill yell, the lordly tusker swung out of the
-shade of a clump of trees where he had been
-squirting dust over himself till his master should
-return.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>“Light of my heart, Protector of the Drunken,
-Mountain of Might, give ear,” said Deesa, standing
-in front of him.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>Moti Guj gave ear, and saluted with his trunk.
-“I am going away,” said Deesa.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>Moti Guj’s eyes twinkled. He liked jaunts as
-well as his master. One could snatch all manner
-of nice things from the roadside then.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>“But you, you fubsy old pig, must stay behind
-and work.”</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>The twinkle died out as Moti Guj tried to look
-delighted. He hated stump-hauling on the plantation.
-It hurt his teeth.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>“I shall be gone for ten days, O Delectable
-One. Hold up your near forefoot and I’ll impress
-the fact upon it, warty toad of a dried mud-puddle.”
-Deesa took a tent-peg and banged Moti
-Guj ten times on the nails. Moti Guj grunted
-and shuffled from foot to foot.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>“Ten days,” said Deesa, “you must work and
-haul and root trees as Chihun here shall order you.
-Take up Chihun and set him on your neck!”
-Moti Guj curled the tip of his trunk, Chihun put
-his foot there and was swung on to the neck.
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_95'>95</span>Deesa handed Chihun the heavy <em>ankus</em>, the iron
-elephant-goad.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>Chihun thumped Moti Guj’s bald head as a
-paviour thumps a kerbstone.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>Moti Guj trumpeted.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>“Be still, hog of the backwoods. Chihun’s
-your mahout for ten days. And now bid me
-good-bye, beast after mine own heart. Oh, my
-lord, my king! Jewel of all created elephants,
-lily of the herd, preserve your honoured health;
-be virtuous. Adieu!”</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>Moti Guj lapped his trunk round Deesa and
-swung him into the air twice. That was his way
-of bidding the man good-bye.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>“He’ll work now,” said Deesa to the planter.
-“Have I leave to go?”</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>The planter nodded, and Deesa dived into the
-woods. Moti Guj went back to haul stumps.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>Chihun was very kind to him, but he felt unhappy
-and forlorn notwithstanding. Chihun gave
-him balls of spices, and tickled him under the chin,
-and Chihun’s little baby cooed to him after work
-was over, and Chihun’s wife called him a darling;
-but Moti Guj was a bachelor by instinct, as Deesa
-was. He did not understand the domestic emotions.
-He wanted the light of his universe back
-again—the drink and the drunken slumber, the
-savage beatings and the savage caresses.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>None the less he worked well, and the planter
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_96'>96</span>wondered. Deesa had vagabonded along the roads
-till he met a marriage procession of his own caste
-and, drinking, dancing, and tippling, had drifted
-past all knowledge of the lapse of time.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>The morning of the eleventh day dawned, and
-there returned no Deesa. Moti Guj was loosed
-from his ropes for the daily stint. He swung
-clear, looked round, shrugged his shoulders, and
-began to walk away, as one having business elsewhere.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>“Hi! ho! Come back, you,” shouted Chihun.
-“Come back, and put me on your neck, Misborn
-Mountain. Return, Splendour of the Hillsides.
-Adornment of all India, heave to, or I’ll bang
-every toe off your fat forefoot!”</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>Moti Guj gurgled gently, but did not obey.
-Chihun ran after him with a rope and caught him
-up. Moti Guj put his ears forward, and Chihun
-knew what that meant, though he tried to carry it
-off with high words.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>“None of your nonsense with me,” said he.
-“To your pickets, Devil-son.”</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>“Hrrump!” said Moti Guj, and that was all—that
-and the forebent ears.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>Moti Guj put his hands in his pockets, chewed
-a branch for a toothpick, and strolled about the
-clearing, making jest of the other elephants, who
-had just set to work.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>Chihun reported the state of affairs to the planter,
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_97'>97</span>who came out with a dog-whip and cracked it furiously.
-Moti Guj paid the white man the compliment
-of charging him nearly a quarter of a mile
-across the clearing and “Hrrumping” him into
-the verandah. Then he stood outside the house
-chuckling to himself, and shaking all over with
-the fun of it, as an elephant will.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>“We’ll thrash him,” said the planter. “He
-shall have the finest thrashing that ever elephant
-received. Give Kala Nag and Nazim twelve
-foot of chain apiece, and tell them to lay on
-twenty blows.”</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>Kala Nag—which means Black Snake—and
-Nazim were two of the biggest elephants in the
-lines, and one of their duties was to administer the
-graver punishments, since no man can beat an elephant
-properly.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>They took the whipping-chains and rattled them
-in their trunks as they sidled up to Moti Guj, meaning
-to hustle him between them. Moti Guj had never,
-in all his life of thirty-nine years, been whipped,
-and he did not intend to open new experiences.
-So he waited, weaving his head from right to left,
-and measuring the precise spot in Kala Nag’s fat
-side where a blunt tusk would sink deepest. Kala
-Nag had no tusks; the chain was his badge of authority;
-but he judged it good to swing wide of
-Moti Guj at the last minute, and seem to appear
-as if he had brought out the chain for amusement.
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_98'>98</span>Nazim turned round and went home early. He
-did not feel fighting-fit that morning, and so
-Moti Guj was left standing alone with his ears
-cocked.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>That decided the planter to argue no more, and
-Moti Guj rolled back to his inspection of the
-clearing. An elephant who will not work, and is
-not tied up, is not quite so manageable as an
-eighty-one ton gun loose in a heavy sea-way. He
-slapped old friends on the back and asked them
-if the stumps were coming away easily; he talked
-nonsense concerning labour and the inalienable
-rights of elephants to a long “nooning”; and,
-wandering to and fro, thoroughly demoralized the
-garden till sundown, when he returned to his
-pickets for food.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>“If you won’t work you sha’n’t eat,” said Chihun
-angrily. “You’re a wild elephant, and no
-educated animal at all. Go back to your jungle.”</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>Chihun’s little brown baby, rolling on the floor
-of the hut, stretched its fat arms to the huge shadow
-in the doorway. Moti Guj knew well that
-it was the dearest thing on earth to Chihun. He
-swung out his trunk with a fascinating crook at
-the end, and the brown baby threw itself shouting
-upon it. Moti Guj made fast and pulled up till
-the brown baby was crowing in the air twelve
-feet above his father’s head.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>“Great Chief!” said Chihun. “Flour cakes of
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_99'>99</span>the best, twelve in number, two feet across, and
-soaked in rum shall be yours on the instant, and
-two hundred pounds’ weight of fresh-cut young
-sugar-cane therewith. Deign only to put down
-safely that insignificant brat who is my heart and
-my life to me.”</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>Moti Guj tucked the brown baby comfortably
-between his forefeet, that could have knocked into
-toothpicks all Chihun’s hut, and waited for his food.
-He ate it, and the brown baby crawled away. Moti
-Guj dozed, and thought of Deesa. One of many
-mysteries connected with the elephant is that his
-huge body needs less sleep than anything else that
-lives. Four or five hours in the night suffice—two
-just before midnight, lying down on one side; two
-just after one o’clock, lying down on the other.
-The rest of the silent hours are filled with eating
-and fidgeting and long grumbling soliloquies.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>At midnight, therefore, Moti Guj strode out of
-his pickets, for a thought had come to him that
-Deesa might be lying drunk somewhere in the dark
-forest with none to look after him. So all that night
-he chased through the undergrowth, blowing and
-trumpeting and shaking his ears. He went down
-to the river and blared across the shallows where
-Deesa used to wash him, but there was no answer.
-He could not find Deesa, but he disturbed all the
-elephants in the lines, and nearly frightened to
-death some gypsies in the woods.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'><span class='pageno' id='Page_100'>100</span>At dawn Deesa returned to the plantation. He
-had been very drunk indeed, and he expected to
-fall into trouble for outstaying his leave. He
-drew a long breath when he saw that the bungalow
-and the plantation were still uninjured; for
-he knew something of Moti Guj’s temper; and
-reported himself with many lies and salaams.
-Moti Guj had gone to his pickets for breakfast.
-His night exercise had made him hungry.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>“Call up your beast,” said the planter, and Deesa
-shouted in the mysterious elephant-language, that
-some mahouts believe came from China at the birth
-of the world, when elephants and not men were
-masters. Moti Guj heard and came. Elephants
-do not gallop. They move from spots at varying
-rates of speed. If an elephant wished to catch an
-express train he could not gallop, but he could catch
-the train. Thus Moti Guj was at the planter’s door
-almost before Chihun noticed that he had left his
-pickets. He fell into Deesa’s arms trumpeting
-with joy, and the man and beast wept and slobbered
-over each other, and handled each other from
-head to heel to see that no harm had befallen.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>“Now we will get to work,” said Deesa. “Lift
-me up, my son and my joy.”</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>Moti Guj swung him up, and the two went to
-the coffee-clearing to look for irksome stumps.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>The planter was too astonished to be very angry.</p>
-
-<div class='chapter'>
- <span class='pageno' id='Page_101'>101</span>
- <h2 class='c004'>WITHOUT BENEFIT OF CLERGY</h2>
-</div>
-
-<div class='lg-container-b c015'>
- <div class='linegroup'>
- <div class='group'>
- <div class='line'>Before my Spring I garnered Autumn’s gain,</div>
- <div class='line'>Out of her time my field was white with grain,</div>
- <div class='line in2'>The year gave up her secrets to my woe.</div>
- <div class='line'>Forced and deflowered each sick season lay,</div>
- <div class='line'>In mystery of increase and decay;</div>
- <div class='line'>I saw the sunset ere men saw the day,</div>
- <div class='line in2'>Who am too wise in that I should not know.</div>
- <div class='line in29'><cite>Bitter Waters.</cite></div>
- </div>
- </div>
-</div>
-
-<h3 class='c021'>I</h3>
-<p class='c019'>“But if it be a girl?”</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>“Lord of my life, it cannot be. I have prayed
-for so many nights, and sent gifts to Sheikh Badl’s
-shrine so often, that I know God will give us a
-son—a man-child that shall grow into a man.
-Think of this and be glad. My mother shall be
-his mother till I can take him again, and the mullah
-of the Pattan mosque shall cast his nativity—God
-send he be born in an auspicious hour!—and
-then, and then thou wilt never weary of me,
-thy slave.”</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>“Since when hast thou been a slave, my
-queen?”</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>“Since the beginning—till this mercy came to
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_102'>102</span>me. How could I be sure of thy love when I
-knew that I had been bought with silver?”</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>“Nay, that was the dowry. I paid it to thy
-mother.”</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>“And she has buried it, and sits upon it all day
-long like a hen. What talk is yours of dower!
-I was bought as though I had been a Lucknow
-dancing-girl instead of a child.”</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>“Art thou sorry for the sale?”</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>“I have sorrowed; but to-day I am glad. Thou
-wilt never cease to love me now?—answer, my
-king.”</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>“Never—never. No.”</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>“Not even though the <em>mem-log</em>—the white women
-of thy own blood—love thee? And remember,
-I have watched them driving in the evening;
-they are very fair.”</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>“I have seen fire-balloons by the hundred. I
-have seen the moon, and—then I saw no more
-fire-balloons.”</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>Ameera clapped her hands and laughed. “Very
-good talk,” she said. Then with an assumption
-of great stateliness, “It is enough. Thou hast my
-permission to depart,—if thou wilt.”</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>The man did not move. He was sitting on a
-low red-lacquered couch in a room furnished only
-with a blue and white floor-cloth, some rugs, and
-a very complete collection of native cushions. At
-his feet sat a woman of sixteen, and she was all
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_103'>103</span>but all the world in his eyes. By every rule and
-law she should have been otherwise, for he was an
-Englishman, and she a Mussulman’s daughter
-bought two years before from her mother, who,
-being left without money, would have sold Ameera
-shrieking to the Prince of Darkness if the price
-had been sufficient.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>It was a contract entered into with a light heart;
-but even before the girl had reached her bloom
-she came to fill the greater portion of John
-Holden’s life. For her, and the withered hag her
-mother, he had taken a little house overlooking
-the great red-walled city, and found,—when
-the marigolds had sprung up by the well in the
-courtyard and Ameera had established herself according
-to her own ideas of comfort, and her
-mother had ceased grumbling at the inadequacy
-of the cooking-places, the distance from the daily
-market, and at matters of housekeeping in general,—that
-the house was to him his home. Any
-one could enter his bachelor’s bungalow by day or
-night, and the life that he led there was an unlovely
-one. In the house in the city his feet only could
-pass beyond the outer courtyard to the women’s
-rooms; and when the big wooden gate was bolted
-behind him he was king in his own territory, with
-Ameera for queen. And there was going to be
-added to this kingdom a third person whose arrival
-Holden felt inclined to resent. It interfered with
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_104'>104</span>his perfect happiness. It disarranged the orderly
-peace of the house that was his own. But Ameera
-was wild with delight at the thought of it, and her
-mother not less so. The love of a man, and particularly
-a white man, was at the best an inconstant
-affair, but it might, both women argued, be
-held fast by a baby’s hands. “And then,” Ameera
-would always say, “then he will never care for the
-white <em>mem-log</em>. I hate them all—I hate them all.”</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>“He will go back to his own people in time,”
-said the mother; “but by the blessing of God that
-time is yet afar off.”</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>Holden sat silent on the couch thinking of the
-future, and his thoughts were not pleasant. The
-drawbacks of a double life are manifold. The
-Government, with singular care, had ordered him
-out of the station for a fortnight on special duty in
-the place of a man who was watching by the bedside
-of a sick wife. The verbal notification of the
-transfer had been edged by a cheerful remark that
-Holden ought to think himself lucky in being a
-bachelor and a free man. He came to break the
-news to Ameera.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>“It is not good,” she said slowly, “but it is not
-all bad. There is my mother here, and no harm will
-come to me—unless indeed I die of pure joy.
-Go thou to thy work and think no troublesome
-thoughts. When the days are done I believe ...
-nay, I am sure. And—and then I shall lay <em>him</em>
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_105'>105</span>in thy arms, and thou wilt love me for ever. The
-train goes to-night, at midnight is it not? Go
-now, and do not let thy heart be heavy by cause
-of me. But thou wilt not delay in returning?
-Thou wilt not stay on the road to talk to the bold
-white <em>mem-log</em>. Come back to me swiftly, my
-life.”</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>As he left the courtyard to reach his horse that
-was tethered to the gate-post, Holden spoke to
-the white-haired old watchman who guarded the
-house, and bade him under certain contingencies
-despatch the filled-up telegraph-form that Holden
-gave him. It was all that could be done, and
-with the sensations of a man who has attended his
-own funeral Holden went away by the night mail
-to his exile. Every hour of the day he dreaded
-the arrival of the telegram, and every hour of the
-night he pictured to himself the death of Ameera.
-In consequence his work for the State was not of
-first-rate quality, nor was his temper towards his
-colleagues of the most amiable. The fortnight
-ended without a sign from his home, and, torn to
-pieces by his anxieties, Holden returned to be
-swallowed up for two precious hours by a dinner
-at the club, wherein he heard, as a man hears in a
-swoon, voices telling him how execrably he had
-performed the other man’s duties, and how he had
-endeared himself to all his associates. Then he
-fled on horseback through the night with his heart
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_106'>106</span>in his mouth. There was no answer at first to his
-blows on the gate, and he had just wheeled his
-horse round to kick it in when Pir Khan appeared
-with a lantern and held his stirrup.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>“Has aught occurred?” said Holden.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>“The news does not come from my mouth,
-Protector of the Poor, but——” He held out
-his shaking hand as befitted the bearer of good
-news who is entitled to a reward.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>Holden hurried through the courtyard. A light
-burned in the upper room. His horse neighed in
-the gateway, and he heard a shrill little wail that
-sent all the blood into the apple of his throat. It
-was a new voice, but it did not prove that Ameera
-was alive.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>“Who is there?” he called up the narrow
-brick staircase.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>There was a cry of delight from Ameera, and
-then the voice of the mother, tremulous with old
-age and pride—“We be two women and—the—man—thy—son.”</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>On the threshold of the room Holden stepped
-on a naked dagger, that was laid there to avert ill-luck,
-and it broke at the hilt under his impatient
-heel.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>“God is great!” cooed Ameera in the half-light.
-“Thou hast taken his misfortunes on thy head.”</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>“Ay, but how is it with thee, life of my life?
-Old woman, how is it with her?”</p>
-
-<p class='c001'><span class='pageno' id='Page_107'>107</span>“She has forgotten her sufferings for joy that the
-child is born. There is no harm; but speak softly,”
-said the mother.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>“It only needed thy presence to make me all
-well,” said Ameera. “My king, thou hast been
-very long away. What gifts hast thou for me?
-Ah, ah! It is I that bring gifts this time. Look,
-my life, look. Was there ever such a babe?
-Nay, I am too weak even to clear my arm from
-him.”</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>“Rest then, and do not talk. I am here, <em>bachari</em>
-[little woman].”</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>“Well said, for there is a bond and a heel-rope
-[<em>peecharee</em>] between us now that nothing can break.
-Look—canst thou see in this light? He is without
-spot or blemish. Never was such a man-child.
-<em>Ya illah!</em> he shall be a pundit—no, a trooper of
-the Queen. And, my life, dost thou love me as
-well as ever, though I am faint and sick and worn?
-Answer truly.”</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>“Yea. I love as I have loved, with all my
-soul. Lie still, pearl, and rest.”</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>“Then do not go. Sit by my side here—so.
-Mother, the lord of this house needs a cushion.
-Bring it.” There was an almost imperceptible
-movement on the part of the new life that lay in
-the hollow of Ameera’s arm. “Aho!” she said,
-her voice breaking with love. “The babe is a
-champion from his birth. He is kicking me in
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_108'>108</span>the side with mighty kicks. Was there ever such
-a babe? And he is ours to us—thine and mine.
-Put thy hand on his head, but carefully, for he is
-very young, and men are unskilled in such matters.”</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>Very cautiously Holden touched with the tips
-of his fingers the downy head.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>“He is of the faith,” said Ameera; “for lying
-here in the night-watches I whispered the call to
-prayer and the profession of faith into his ears.
-And it is most marvellous that he was born upon
-a Friday, as I was born. Be careful of him, my
-life; but he can almost grip with his hands.”</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>Holden found one helpless little hand that closed
-feebly on his finger. And the clutch ran through
-his body till it settled about his heart. Till then
-his sole thought had been for Ameera. He began
-to realise that there was some one else in the world,
-but he could not feel that it was a veritable son
-with a soul. He sat down to think, and Ameera
-dozed lightly.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>“Get hence, Sahib,” said her mother under her
-breath. “It is not good that she should find you
-here on waking. She must be still.”</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>“I go,” said Holden submissively. “Here be
-rupees. See that my <em>baba</em> gets fat and finds all
-that he needs.”</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>The chink of the silver roused Ameera. “I am
-his mother, and no hireling,” she said weakly.
-“Shall I look to him more or less for the sake of
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_109'>109</span>money? Mother, give it back. I have born my
-lord a son.”</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>The deep sleep of weakness came upon her
-almost before the sentence was completed. Holden
-went down to the courtyard very softly with his
-heart at ease. Pir Khan, the old watchman, was
-chuckling with delight. “This house is now complete,”
-he said, and without further comment thrust
-into Holden’s hands the hilt of a sabre worn many
-years ago when he, Pir Khan, served the Queen
-in the police. The bleat of a tethered goat came
-from the well-kerb.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>“There be two,” said Pir Khan, “two goats of
-the best. I bought them, and they cost much
-money; and since there is no birth-party assembled
-their flesh will be all mine. Strike craftily, Sahib!
-’Tis an ill-balanced sabre at the best. Wait till
-they raise their heads from cropping the marigolds.”</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>“And why?” said Holden, bewildered.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>“For the birth-sacrifice. What else? Otherwise
-the child being unguarded from fate may die.
-The Protector of the Poor knows the fitting words
-to be said.”</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>Holden had learned them once with little thought
-that he would ever speak them in earnest. The
-touch of the cold sabre-hilt in his palm turned suddenly
-to the clinging grip of the child up-stairs—the
-child that was his own son—and a dread of
-loss filled him.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'><span class='pageno' id='Page_110'>110</span>“Strike!” said Pir Khan. “Never life came
-into the world but life was paid for it. See, the
-goats have raised their heads. Now! With a
-drawing cut!”</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>Hardly knowing what he did Holden cut twice
-as he muttered the Mahomedan prayer that runs:
-“Almighty! In place of this my son I offer life
-for life, blood for blood, head for head, bone for
-bone, hair for hair, skin for skin.” The waiting
-horse snorted and bounded in his pickets at the
-smell of the raw blood that spurted over Holden’s
-riding-boots.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>“Well smitten!” said Pir Khan, wiping the
-sabre. “A swordsman was lost in thee. Go with
-a light heart, Heaven-born. I am thy servant,
-and the servant of thy son. May the Presence
-live a thousand years and ... the flesh of the
-goats is all mine?” Pir Khan drew back richer
-by a month’s pay. Holden swung himself into
-the saddle and rode off through the low-hanging
-wood-smoke of the evening. He was full of riotous
-exultation, alternating with a vast vague tenderness
-directed towards no particular object, that
-made him choke as he bent over the neck of his
-uneasy horse. “I never felt like this in my life,”
-he thought. “I’ll go to the club and pull myself
-together.”</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>A game of pool was beginning, and the room
-was full of men. Holden entered, eager to get to
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_111'>111</span>the light and the company of his fellows, singing
-at the top of his voice—</p>
-
-<div class='lg-container-b c017'>
- <div class='linegroup'>
- <div class='group'>
- <div class='line'>In Baltimore a-walking, a lady I did meet!</div>
- </div>
- </div>
-</div>
-
-<p class='c019'>“Did you?” said the club-secretary from his
-corner. “Did she happen to tell you that your
-boots were wringing wet? Great goodness, man,
-it’s blood!”</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>“Bosh!” said Holden, picking his cue from the
-rack. “May I cut in? It’s dew. I’ve been riding
-through high crops. My faith! my boots are
-in a mess though!</p>
-
-<div class='lg-container-b c017'>
- <div class='linegroup'>
- <div class='group'>
- <div class='line'>“And if it be a girl she shall wear a wedding-ring,</div>
- <div class='line'>And if it be a boy he shall fight for his king,</div>
- <div class='line'>With his dirk, and his cap, and his little jacket blue,</div>
- <div class='line'>He shall walk the quarter-deck—”</div>
- </div>
- </div>
-</div>
-
-<p class='c019'>“Yellow on blue—green next player,” said the
-marker monotonously.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>“‘He shall walk the quarter-deck,’—Am I
-green, marker? ‘He shall walk the quarter-deck,’—eh!
-that’s a bad shot,—‘As his daddy
-used to do!’”</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>“I don’t see that you have anything to crow
-about,” said a zealous junior civilian acidly. “The
-Government is not exactly pleased with your work
-when you relieved Sanders.”</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>“Does that mean a wigging from headquarters?”
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_112'>112</span>said Holden with an abstracted smile. “I think
-I can stand it.”</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>The talk beat up round the ever-fresh subject
-of each man’s work, and steadied Holden till it
-was time to go to his dark empty bungalow, where
-his butler received him as one who knew all his
-affairs. Holden remained awake for the greater
-part of the night, and his dreams were pleasant
-ones.</p>
-
-<h3 class='c021'>II</h3>
-
-<p class='c019'>“How old is he now?”</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>“<em>Ya illah!</em> What a man’s question! He is
-all but six weeks old; and on this night I go up
-to the housetop with thee, my life, to count the
-stars. For that is auspicious. And he was born
-on a Friday under the sign of the Sun, and it has
-been told to me that he will outlive us both and
-get wealth. Can we wish for aught better, beloved?”</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>“There is nothing better. Let us go up to the
-roof, and thou shalt count the stars—but a few
-only, for the sky is heavy with cloud.”</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>“The winter rains are late, and maybe they
-come out of season. Come, before all the stars
-are hid. I have put on my richest jewels.”</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>“Thou hast forgotten the best of all.”</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>“<em>Ai!</em> Ours. He comes also. He has never
-yet seen the skies.”</p>
-
-<p class='c001'><span class='pageno' id='Page_113'>113</span>Ameera climbed the narrow staircase that led
-to the flat roof. The child, placid and unwinking,
-lay in the hollow of her right arm, gorgeous
-in silver-fringed muslin with a small skull-cap on
-his head. Ameera wore all that she valued most.
-The diamond nose-stud that takes the place of
-the Western patch in drawing attention to the
-curve of the nostril, the gold ornament in the centre
-of the forehead studded with tallow-drop emeralds
-and flawed rubies, the heavy circlet of
-beaten gold that was fastened round her neck by
-the softness of the pure metal, and the chinking
-curb-patterned silver anklets hanging low over
-the rosy ankle-bone. She was dressed in jade-green
-muslin as befitted a daughter of the Faith,
-and from shoulder to elbow and elbow to wrist ran
-bracelets of silver tied with floss silk, frail glass
-bangles slipped over the wrist in proof of the slenderness
-of the hand, and certain heavy gold bracelets
-that had no part in her country’s ornaments
-but, since they were Holden’s gift and fastened
-with a cunning European snap, delighted her
-immensely.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>They sat down by the low white parapet of the
-roof, overlooking the city and its lights.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>“They are happy down there,” said Ameera.
-“But I do not think that they are as happy as
-we. Nor do I think the white <em>mem-log</em> are as
-happy. And thou?”</p>
-
-<p class='c001'><span class='pageno' id='Page_114'>114</span>“I know they are not.”</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>“How dost thou know?”</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>“They give their children over to the nurses.”</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>“I have never seen that,” said Ameera with a
-sigh, “nor do I wish to see. <em>Ahi!</em>”—she dropped
-her head on Holden’s shoulder—“I have counted
-forty stars, and I am tired. Look at the child,
-love of my life, he is counting too.”</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>The baby was staring with round eyes at the
-dark of the heavens. Ameera placed him in
-Holden’s arms, and he lay there without a cry.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>“What shall we call him among ourselves?”
-she said. “Look! Art thou ever tired of looking?
-He carries thy very eyes. But the mouth——”</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>“Is thine, most dear. Who should know better
-than I?”</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>“’Tis such a feeble mouth. Oh, so small!
-And yet it holds my heart between its lips. Give
-him to me now. He has been too long away.”</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>“Nay, let him lie; he has not yet begun to
-cry.”</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>“When he cries thou wilt give him back—eh?
-What a man of mankind thou art! If he cried he
-were only the dearer to me. But, my life, what
-little name shall we give him?”</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>The small body lay close to Holden’s heart.
-It was utterly helpless and very soft. He scarcely
-dared to breathe for fear of crushing it. The
-caged green parrot that is regarded as a sort of
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_115'>115</span>guardian-spirit in most native households moved
-on its perch and fluttered a drowsy wing.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>“There is the answer,” said Holden. “Mian
-Mittu has spoken. He shall be the parrot. When
-he is ready he will talk mightily and run about.
-Mian Mittu is the parrot in thy—in the Mussulman
-tongue, is it not?”</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>“Why put me so far off?” said Ameera fretfully.
-“Let it be like unto some English name—but
-not wholly. For he is mine.”</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>“Then call him Tota, for that is likest English.”</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>“Ay, Tota, and that is still the parrot. Forgive
-me, my lord, for a minute ago, but in truth he is
-too little to wear all the weight of Mian Mittu
-for name. He shall be Tota—our Tota to us.
-Hearest thou, O small one? Littlest, thou art
-Tota.” She touched the child’s cheek, and he
-waking wailed, and it was necessary to return him
-to his mother, who soothed him with the wonderful
-rhyme of <em>Aré koko, Jaré koko!</em> which says:</p>
-
-<div class='lg-container-b c017'>
- <div class='linegroup'>
- <div class='group'>
- <div class='line'>Oh crow! Go crow! Baby’s sleeping sound,</div>
- <div class='line'>And the wild plums grow in the jungle, only a penny a pound.</div>
- <div class='line'>Only a penny a pound, <em>baba</em>, only a penny a pound.</div>
- </div>
- </div>
-</div>
-
-<p class='c019'>Reassured many times as to the price of those
-plums, Tota cuddled himself down to sleep. The
-two sleek, white well-bullocks in the courtyard
-were steadily chewing the cud of their evening
-meal; old Pir Khan squatted at the head of Holden’s
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_116'>116</span>horse, his police sabre across his knees, pulling
-drowsily at a big water-pipe that croaked like
-a bull-frog in a pond. Ameera’s mother sat spinning
-in the lower verandah, and the wooden gate
-was shut and barred. The music of a marriage-procession
-came to the roof above the gentle hum
-of the city, and a string of flying-foxes crossed the
-face of the low moon.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>“I have prayed,” said Ameera after a long pause,
-“I have prayed for two things. First, that I may
-die in thy stead if thy death is demanded, and in
-the second that I may die in the place of the child.
-I have prayed to the Prophet and to Beebee Miriam
-[the Virgin Mary]. Thinkest thou either will
-hear?”</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>“From thy lips who would not hear the lightest
-word?”</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>“I asked for straight talk, and thou hast given
-me sweet talk. Will my prayers be heard?”</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>“How can I say? God is very good.”</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>“Of that I am not sure. Listen now. When
-I die, or the child dies, what is thy fate? Living,
-thou wilt return to the bold white <em>mem-log</em>, for kind
-calls to kind.”</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>“Not always.”</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>“With a woman, no; with a man it is otherwise.
-Thou wilt in this life, later on, go back to
-thine own folk. That I could almost endure, for
-I should be dead. But in thy very death thou
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_117'>117</span>wilt be taken away to a strange place and a paradise
-that I do not know.”</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>“Will it be paradise?”</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>“Surely, for who would harm thee? But we
-two—I and the child—shall be elsewhere, and
-we cannot come to thee, nor canst thou come to
-us. In the old days, before the child was born, I
-did not think of these things; but now I think of
-them always. It is very hard talk.”</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>“It will fall as it will fall. To-morrow we do
-not know, but to-day and love we know well.
-Surely we are happy now.”</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>“So happy that it were well to make our happiness
-assured. And thy Beebee Miriam should
-listen to me; for she is also a woman. But then
-she would envy me! It is not seemly for men to
-worship a woman.”</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>Holden laughed aloud at Ameera’s little spasm
-of jealousy.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>“Is it not seemly? Why didst thou not turn
-me from worship of thee, then?”</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>“Thou a worshipper! And of me? My king,
-for all thy sweet words, well I know that I am thy
-servant and thy slave, and the dust under thy feet.
-And I would not have it otherwise. See!”</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>Before Holden could prevent her she stooped
-forward and touched his feet; recovering herself
-with a little laugh she hugged Tota closer to her
-bosom. Then, almost savagely——</p>
-
-<p class='c001'><span class='pageno' id='Page_118'>118</span>“Is it true that the bold white <em>mem-log</em> live for
-three times the length of my life? Is it true that
-they make their marriages not before they are old
-women?”</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>“They marry as do others—when they are
-women.”</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>“That I know, but they wed when they are
-twenty-five. Is that true?”</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>“That is true.”</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>“<em>Ya illah!</em> At twenty-five! Who would of
-his own will take a wife even of eighteen? She
-is a woman—aging every hour. Twenty-five!
-I shall be an old woman at that age, and——Those
-<em>mem-log</em> remain young for ever. How I
-hate them!”</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>“What have they to do with us?”</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>“I cannot tell. I know only that there may
-now be alive on this earth a woman ten years
-older than I who may come to thee and take thy
-love ten years after I am an old woman, gray-headed,
-and the nurse of Tota’s son. That is unjust
-and evil. They should die too.”</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>“Now, for all thy years thou art a child,
-and shalt be picked up and carried down the
-staircase.”</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>“Tota! Have a care for Tota, my lord! Thou
-at least art as foolish as any babe!” Ameera
-tucked Tota out of harm’s way in the hollow of
-her neck, and was carried downstairs laughing in
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_119'>119</span>Holden’s arms, while Tota opened his eyes and
-smiled after the manner of the lesser angels.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>He was a silent infant, and, almost before Holden
-could realise that he was in the world, developed
-into a small gold-coloured little god and unquestioned
-despot of the house overlooking the city.
-Those were months of absolute happiness to Holden
-and Ameera—happiness withdrawn from the
-world, shut in behind the wooden gate that Pir
-Khan guarded. By day Holden did his work with
-an immense pity for such as were not so fortunate
-as himself, and a sympathy for small children that
-amazed and amused many mothers at the little
-station-gatherings. At nightfall he returned to
-Ameera,—Ameera, full of the wondrous doings
-of Tota; how he had been seen to clap his hands
-together and move his fingers with intention and
-purpose—which was manifestly a miracle—how
-later, he had of his own initiative crawled out of
-his low bedstead on to the floor and swayed on both
-feet for the space of three breaths.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>“And they were long breaths, for my heart stood
-still with delight,” said Ameera.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>Then Tota took the beasts into his councils—the
-well-bullocks, the little gray squirrels, the mongoose
-that lived in a hole near the well, and especially
-Mian Mittu, the parrot, whose tail he grievously
-pulled, and Mian Mittu screamed till Ameera
-and Holden arrived.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'><span class='pageno' id='Page_120'>120</span>“O villain! Child of strength! This to thy
-brother on the house-top! <em>Tobah, tobah!</em> Fie!
-Fie! But I know a charm to make him wise as
-Suleiman and Aflatoun [Solomon and Plato].
-Now look,” said Ameera. She drew from an embroidered
-bag a handful of almonds. “See! we
-count seven. In the name of God!”</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>She placed Mian Mittu, very angry and rumpled,
-on the top of his cage, and seating herself
-between the babe and the bird she cracked and
-peeled an almond less white than her teeth. “This
-is a true charm, my life, and do not laugh. See!
-I give the parrot one half and Tota the other.”
-Mian Mittu with careful beak took his share from
-between Ameera’s lips, and she kissed the other
-half into the mouth of the child, who ate it slowly
-with wondering eyes. “This I will do each day
-of seven, and without doubt he who is ours will
-be a bold speaker and wise. Eh, Tota, what wilt
-thou be when thou art a man and I am gray-headed?”
-Tota tucked his fat legs into adorable
-creases. He could crawl, but he was not going to
-waste the spring of his youth in idle speech. He
-wanted Mian Mittu’s tail to tweak.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>When he was advanced to the dignity of a silver
-belt—which, with a magic square engraved
-on silver and hung round his neck, made up the
-greater part of his clothing—he staggered on a
-perilous journey down the garden to Pir Khan
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_121'>121</span>and proffered him all his jewels in exchange for
-one little ride on Holden’s horse, having seen his
-mother’s mother chaffering with pedlars in the verandah.
-Pir Khan wept and set the untried feet
-on his own gray head in sign of fealty, and brought
-the bold adventurer to his mother’s arms, vowing
-that Tota would be a leader of men ere his beard
-was grown.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>One hot evening, while he sat on the roof between
-his father and mother watching the never-ending
-warfare of the kites that the city boys flew,
-he demanded a kite of his own with Pir Khan to
-fly it, because he had a fear of dealing with anything
-larger than himself and when Holden called
-him a “spark,” he rose to his feet and answered
-slowly in defence of his new-found individuality,
-“<em>Hum ’park nahin hai. Hum admi hai</em> [I am no
-spark, but a man].”</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>The protest made Holden choke and devote
-himself very seriously to a consideration of Tota’s
-future. He need hardly have taken the trouble.
-The delight of that life was too perfect to endure.
-Therefore it was taken away as many things are
-taken away in India—suddenly and without warning.
-The little lord of the house, as Pir Khan
-called him, grew sorrowful and complained of
-pains who had never known the meaning of pain.
-Ameera, wild with terror, watched him through
-the night, and in the dawning of the second day
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_122'>122</span>the life was shaken out of him by fever—the
-seasonal autumn fever. It seemed altogether impossible
-that he could die, and neither Ameera
-nor Holden at first believed the evidence of the
-little body on the bedstead. Then Ameera beat
-her head against the wall and would have flung
-herself down the well in the garden had Holden
-not restrained her by main force.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>One mercy only was granted to Holden. He
-rode to his office in broad daylight and found
-waiting him an unusually heavy mail that demanded
-concentrated attention and hard work.
-He was not, however, alive to this kindness of
-the gods.</p>
-
-<h3 class='c021'>III</h3>
-
-<p class='c019'>The first shock of a bullet is no more than a
-brisk pinch. The wrecked body does not send in
-its protest to the soul till ten or fifteen seconds later.
-Holden realised his pain slowly, exactly as he had
-realised his happiness, and with the same imperious
-necessity for hiding all trace of it. In the beginning
-he only felt that there had been a loss,
-and that Ameera needed comforting, where she sat
-with her head on her knees shivering as Mian
-Mittu from the house-top called <em>Tota! Tota! Tota!</em>
-Later all his world and the daily life of it rose up
-to hurt him. It was an outrage that any one of
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_123'>123</span>the children at the band-stand in the evening should
-be alive and clamorous, when his own child lay
-dead. It was more than mere pain when one of
-them touched him, and stories told by over-fond
-fathers of their children’s latest performances cut
-him to the quick. He could not declare his pain.
-He had neither help, comfort, nor sympathy; and
-Ameera at the end of each weary day would lead
-him through the hell of self-questioning reproach
-which is reserved for those who have lost a child,
-and believe that with a little—just a little—more
-care it might have been saved.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>“Perhaps,” Ameera would say, “I did not take
-sufficient heed. Did I, or did I not? The sun
-on the roof that day when he played so long alone
-and I was—<em>ahi!</em> braiding my hair—it may be
-that the sun then bred the fever. If I had warned
-him from the sun he might have lived. But, oh
-my life, say that I am guiltless! Thou knowest
-that I loved him as I love thee. Say that there is
-no blame on me, or I shall die—I shall die!”</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>“There is no blame,—before God, none. It
-was written and how could we do aught to save?
-What has been, has been. Let it go, beloved.”</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>“He was all my heart to me. How can I let
-the thought go when my arm tells me every night
-that he is not here? <em>Ahi! Ahi!</em> O Tota, come
-back to me—come back again, and let us be all
-together as it was before!”</p>
-
-<p class='c001'><span class='pageno' id='Page_124'>124</span>“Peace, peace! For thine own sake, and for
-mine also, if thou lovest me—rest.”</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>“By this I know thou dost not care; and how
-shouldst thou? The white men have hearts of
-stone and souls of iron. Oh, that I had married a
-man of mine own people—though he beat me—and
-had never eaten the bread of an alien!”</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>“Am I an alien—mother of my son?”</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>“What else—Sahib?... Oh, forgive me—forgive!
-The death has driven me mad. Thou
-art the life of my heart, and the light of my eyes,
-and the breath of my life, and—and I have put
-thee from me, though it was but for a moment.
-If thou goest away to whom shall I look for help?
-Do not be angry. Indeed, it was the pain that
-spoke and not thy slave.”</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>“I know, I know. We be two who were three.
-The greater need therefore that we should be one.”</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>They were sitting on the roof as of custom.
-The night was a warm one in early spring, and
-sheet-lightning was dancing on the horizon to a
-broken tune played by far-off thunder. Ameera
-settled herself in Holden’s arms.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>“The dry earth is lowing like a cow for the rain,
-and I—I am afraid. It was not like this when
-we counted the stars. But thou lovest me as
-much as before, though a bond is taken away?
-Answer!”</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>“I love more because a new bond has come
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_125'>125</span>out of the sorrow that we have eaten together,
-and that thou knowest.”</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>“Yea, I knew,” said Ameera in a very small
-whisper. “But it is good to hear thee say so, my
-life, who art so strong to help. I will be a child
-no more, but a woman and an aid to thee. Listen!
-Give me my <em>sitar</em> and I will sing bravely.”</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>She took the light silver-studded <em>sitar</em> and began
-a song of the great hero Rajah Rasalu. The hand
-failed on the strings, the tune halted, checked, and
-at a low note turned off to the poor little nursery-rhyme
-about the wicked crow—</p>
-
-<div class='lg-container-b c017'>
- <div class='linegroup'>
- <div class='group'>
- <div class='line'>And the wild plums grow in the jungle, only a penny a pound.</div>
- <div class='line'>Only a penny a pound, <em>baba</em>—only....</div>
- </div>
- </div>
-</div>
-
-<p class='c019'>Then came the tears, and the piteous rebellion
-against fate till she slept, moaning a little in her
-sleep, with the right arm thrown clear of the body
-as though it protected something that was not
-there. It was after this night that life became a
-little easier for Holden. The ever-present pain of
-loss drove him into his work, and the work repaid
-him by filling up his mind for nine or ten hours a
-day. Ameera sat alone in the house and brooded,
-but grew happier when she understood that Holden
-was more at ease, according to the custom of
-women. They touched happiness again, but this
-time with caution.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'><span class='pageno' id='Page_126'>126</span>“It was because we loved Tota that he died.
-The jealousy of God was upon us,” said Ameera.
-“I have hung up a large black jar before our
-window to turn the evil eye from us, and we
-must make no protestations of delight, but go
-softly underneath the stars, lest God find us out.
-Is that not good talk, worthless one?”</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>She had shifted the accent on the word that
-means “beloved,” in proof of the sincerity of her
-purpose. But the kiss that followed the new
-christening was a thing that any deity might have
-envied. They went about henceforward saying,
-“It is naught, it is naught;” and hoping that all
-the Powers heard.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>The Powers were busy on other things. They
-had allowed thirty million people four years of
-plenty wherein men fed well and the crops were
-certain, and the birth-rate rose year by year; the
-districts reported a purely agricultural population
-varying from nine hundred to two thousand to
-the square mile of the overburdened earth; and
-the Member for Lower Tooting, wandering about
-India in pot-hat and frock-coat, talked largely of
-the benefits of British rule and suggested as the
-one thing needful the establishment of a duly
-qualified electoral system and a general bestowal
-of the franchise. His long-suffering hosts smiled
-and made him welcome, and when he paused to
-admire, with pretty picked words, the blossom of
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_127'>127</span>the blood-red <em>dhak</em>-tree that had flowered untimely
-for a sign of what was coming, they smiled more
-than ever.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>It was the Deputy Commissioner of Kot-Kumharsen,
-staying at the club for a day, who lightly
-told a tale that made Holden’s blood run cold as
-he overheard the end.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>“He won’t bother any one any more. Never
-saw a man so astonished in my life. By Jove, I
-thought he meant to ask a question in the House
-about it. Fellow-passenger in his ship—dined
-next him—bowled over by cholera and died in
-eighteen hours. You needn’t laugh, you fellows.
-The Member for Lower Tooting is awfully
-angry about it; but he’s more scared. I think
-he’s going to take his enlightened self out of
-India.”</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>“I’d give a good deal if he were knocked over.
-It might keep a few vestrymen of his kidney to
-their own parish. But what’s this about cholera?
-It’s full early for anything of that kind,” said
-the warden of an unprofitable salt-lick.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>“Don’t know,” said the Deputy Commissioner
-reflectively. “We’ve got locusts with us. There’s
-sporadic cholera all along the north—at least
-we’re calling it sporadic for decency’s sake. The
-spring crops are short in five districts, and nobody
-seems to know where the rains are. It’s nearly
-March now. I don’t want to scare anybody,
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_128'>128</span>but it seems to me that Nature’s going to
-audit her accounts with a big red pencil this
-summer.”</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>“Just when I wanted to take leave, too!” said
-a voice across the room.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>“There won’t be much leave this year, but
-there ought to be a great deal of promotion. I’ve
-come in to persuade the Government to put my
-pet canal on the list of famine-relief works. It’s
-an ill wind that blows no good. I shall get that
-canal finished at last.”</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>“Is it the old programme then,” said Holden;
-“famine, fever, and cholera?”</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>“Oh, no. Only local scarcity and an unusual
-prevalence of seasonal sickness. You’ll find it all
-in the reports if you live till next year. You’re
-a lucky chap. <em>You</em> haven’t got a wife to send
-out of harm’s way. The hill-stations ought to be
-full of women this year.”</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>“I think you’re inclined to exaggerate the talk
-in the <em>bazars</em>,” said a young civilian in the Secretariat.
-“Now I have observed——”</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>“I daresay you have,” said the Deputy Commissioner,
-“but you’ve a great deal more to
-observe, my son. In the meantime, I wish to observe
-to you——” and he drew him aside to discuss
-the construction of the canal that was so dear
-to his heart. Holden went to his bungalow and
-began to understand that he was not alone in the
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_129'>129</span>world, and also that he was afraid for the sake of
-another—which is the most soul-satisfying fear
-known to man.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>Two months later, as the Deputy had foretold,
-Nature began to audit her accounts with a red pencil.
-On the heels of the spring-reapings came a
-cry for bread, and the Government, which had decreed
-that no man should die of want, sent wheat.
-Then came the cholera from all four quarters of
-the compass. It struck a pilgrim-gathering of
-half a million at a sacred shrine. Many died at
-the feet of their god; the others broke and ran
-over the face of the land, carrying the pestilence
-with them. It smote a walled city and killed two
-hundred a day. The people crowded the trains,
-hanging on to the footboards and squatting on the
-roofs of the carriages, and the cholera followed
-them, for at each station they dragged out the dead
-and the dying. They died by the roadside, and
-the horses of the Englishmen shied at the corpses
-in the grass. The rains did not come, and the
-earth turned to iron lest man should escape death
-by hiding in her. The English sent their wives
-away to the hills and went about their work, coming
-forward as they were bidden to fill the gaps in
-the fighting-line. Holden, sick with fear of losing
-his chiefest treasure on earth, had done his best to
-persuade Ameera to go away with her mother to
-the Himalayas.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'><span class='pageno' id='Page_130'>130</span>“Why should I go?” said she one evening on
-the roof.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>“There is sickness, and people are dying, and
-all the white <em>mem-log</em> have gone.”</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>“All of them?”</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>“All—unless perhaps there remain some old
-scald-head who vexes her husband’s heart by running
-risk of death.”</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>“Nay; who stays is my sister, and thou must
-not abuse her, for I will be a scald-head too. I
-am glad all the bold <em>mem-log</em> are gone.”</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>“Do I speak to a woman or a babe? Go
-to the hills and I will see to it that thou goest
-like a queen’s daughter. Think, child. In a
-red-lacquered bullock-cart, veiled and curtained,
-with brass peacocks upon the pole and red cloth
-hangings. I will send two orderlies for guard,
-and——”</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>“Peace! Thou art the babe in speaking thus.
-What use are those toys to me? <em>He</em> would have
-patted the bullocks and played with the housings.
-For his sake, perhaps,—thou hast made me very
-English—I might have gone. Now, I will not.
-Let the <em>mem-log</em> run.”</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>“Their husbands are sending them, beloved.”</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>“Very good talk. Since when hast thou been
-my husband to tell me what to do? I have but
-borne thee a son. Thou art only all the desire of
-my soul to me. How shall I depart when I know
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_131'>131</span>that if evil befall thee by the breadth of so much
-as my littlest finger-nail—is that not small?—I
-should be aware of it though I were in paradise.
-And here, this summer thou mayest die—<em>ai, janee</em>,
-die!—and in dying they might call to tend thee a
-white woman, and she would rob me in the last
-of thy love!”</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>“But love is not born in a moment or on a
-death-bed!”</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>“What dost thou know of love, stoneheart?
-She would take thy thanks at least, and, by God
-and the Prophet and Beebee Miriam the mother
-of thy Prophet, that I will never endure. My
-lord and my love, let there be no more foolish
-talk of going away. Where thou art, I am. It
-is enough.” She put an arm round his neck and
-a hand on his mouth.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>There are not many happinesses so complete as
-those that are snatched under the shadow of the
-sword. They sat together and laughed, calling
-each other openly by every pet name that could
-move the wrath of the gods. The city below
-them was locked up in its own torments. Sulphur
-fires blazed in the streets; the conches in the
-Hindu temples screamed and bellowed, for the
-gods were inattentive in those days. There was
-a service in the great Mahomedan shrine, and the
-call to prayer from the minarets was almost unceasing.
-They heard the wailing in the houses
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_132'>132</span>of the dead, and once the shriek of a mother who
-had lost a child and was calling for its return. In
-the gray dawn they saw the dead borne out through
-the city gates, each litter with its own little knot
-of mourners. Wherefore they kissed each other
-and shivered.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>It was a red and heavy audit, for the land was
-very sick and needed a little breathing-space ere
-the torrent of cheap life should flood it anew.
-The children of immature fathers and undeveloped
-mothers made no resistance. They were cowed and
-sat still, waiting till the sword should be sheathed
-in November if it were so willed. There were
-gaps among the English, but the gaps were filled.
-The work of superintending famine-relief, cholera-sheds,
-medicine-distribution, and what little sanitation
-was possible, went forward because it was
-so ordered.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>Holden had been told to keep himself in readiness
-to move to replace the next man who should
-fall. There were twelve hours in each day when
-he could not see Ameera, and she might die in
-three. He was considering what his pain would
-be if he could not see her for three months, or if
-she died out of his sight. He was absolutely certain
-that her death would be demanded—so certain
-that when he looked up from the telegram
-and saw Pir Khan breathless in the doorway, he
-laughed aloud. “And?” said he,——</p>
-
-<p class='c001'><span class='pageno' id='Page_133'>133</span>“When there is a cry in the night and the spirit
-flutters into the throat, who has a charm that will
-restore? Come swiftly, Heaven-born! It is the
-black cholera.”</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>Holden galloped to his home. The sky was
-heavy with clouds, for the long-deferred rains were
-near and the heat was stifling. Ameera’s mother
-met him in the courtyard, whimpering, “She is
-dying. She is nursing herself into death. She is
-all but dead. What shall I do, Sahib?”</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>Ameera was lying in the room in which Tota
-had been born. She made no sign when Holden
-entered, because the human soul is a very lonely
-thing, and, when it is getting ready to go away,
-hides itself in a misty borderland where the living
-may not follow. The black cholera does its work
-quietly and without explanation. Ameera was being
-thrust out of life as though the Angel of Death
-had himself put his hand upon her. The quick
-breathing seemed to show that she was either afraid
-or in pain, but neither eyes nor mouth gave any
-answer to Holden’s kisses. There was nothing to
-be said or done. Holden could only wait and suffer.
-The first drops of the rain began to fall on
-the roof, and he could hear shouts of joy in the
-parched city.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>The soul came back a little and the lips moved.
-Holden bent down to listen. “Keep nothing of
-mine,” said Ameera. “Take no hair from my
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_134'>134</span>head. <em>She</em> would make thee burn it later on.
-That flame I should feel. Lower! Stoop lower!
-Remember only that I was thine and bore thee a
-son. Though thou wed a white woman to-morrow,
-the pleasure of receiving in thy arms thy first
-son is taken from thee for ever. Remember me
-when thy son is born—the one that shall carry thy
-name before all men. His misfortunes be on my
-head. I bear witness—I bear witness”—the lips
-were forming the words on his ear—“that there
-is no God but—thee, beloved!”</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>Then she died. Holden sat still, and all thought
-was taken from him,—till he heard Ameera’s
-mother lift the curtain.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>“Is she dead, Sahib?”</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>“She is dead.”</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>“Then I will mourn, and afterwards take an inventory
-of the furniture in this house. For that
-will be mine. The Sahib does not mean to resume
-it? It is so little, so very little, Sahib, and I am
-an old woman. I would like to lie softly.”</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>“For the mercy of God be silent a while. Go
-out and mourn where I cannot hear.”</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>“Sahib, she will be buried in four hours.”</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>“I know the custom. I shall go ere she is taken
-away. That matter is in thy hands. Look to it,
-that the bed on which—on which she lies——”</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>“Aha! That beautiful red-lacquered bed. I
-have long desired——”</p>
-
-<p class='c001'><span class='pageno' id='Page_135'>135</span>“That the bed is left here untouched for my
-disposal. All else in the house is thine. Hire a
-cart, take everything, go hence, and before sunrise
-let there be nothing in this house but that which I
-have ordered thee to respect.”</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>“I am an old woman. I would stay at least
-for the days of mourning, and the rains have just
-broken. Whither shall I go?”</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>“What is that to me? My order is that there
-is a going. The house gear is worth a thousand
-rupees, and my orderly shall bring thee a hundred
-rupees to-night.”</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>“That is very little. Think of the cart-hire.”</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>“It shall be nothing unless thou goest, and with
-speed. O woman, get hence and leave me with
-my dead!”</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>The mother shuffled down the staircase, and in
-her anxiety to take stock of the house-fittings forgot
-to mourn. Holden stayed by Ameera’s side
-and the rain roared on the roof. He could not
-think connectedly by reason of the noise, though
-he made many attempts to do so. Then four
-sheeted ghosts glided dripping into the room and
-stared at him through their veils. They were the
-washers of the dead. Holden left the room and
-went out to his horse. He had come in a dead,
-stifling calm through ankle-deep dust. He found
-the courtyard a rain-lashed pond alive with frogs;
-a torrent of yellow water ran under the gate, and a
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_136'>136</span>roaring wind drove the bolts of the rain like buckshot
-against the mud walls. Pir Khan was shivering
-in his little hut by the gate, and the horse was
-stamping uneasily in the water.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>“I have been told the Sahib’s order,” said Pir
-Khan. “It is well. This house is now desolate.
-I go also, for my monkey-face would be a reminder
-of that which has been. Concerning the
-bed, I will bring that to thy house yonder in the
-morning; but remember, Sahib, it will be to thee a
-knife turning in a green wound. I go upon a pilgrimage,
-and I will take no money. I have grown
-fat in the protection of the Presence whose sorrow is
-my sorrow. For the last time I hold his stirrup.”</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>He touched Holden’s foot with both hands and
-the horse sprang out into the road, where the creaking
-bamboos were whipping the sky, and all the
-frogs were chuckling. Holden could not see for
-the rain in his face. He put his hands before his
-eyes and muttered—</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>“Oh, you brute! You utter brute!”</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>The news of his trouble was already in his bungalow.
-He read the knowledge in his butler’s eyes
-when Ahmed Khan brought in food, and for the
-first and last time in his life laid a hand upon his
-master’s shoulder, saying, “Eat, Sahib, eat. Meat
-is good against sorrow. I also have known. Moreover,
-the shadows come and go, Sahib; the shadows
-come and go. These be curried eggs.”</p>
-
-<p class='c001'><span class='pageno' id='Page_137'>137</span>Holden could neither eat nor sleep. The heavens
-sent down eight inches of rain in that night
-and washed the earth clean. The waters tore down
-walls, broke roads, and scoured open the shallow
-graves on the Mahomedan burying-ground. All
-next day it rained, and Holden sat still in his
-house considering his sorrow. On the morning
-of the third day he received a telegram which said
-only, “Ricketts, Myndonie. Dying. Holden relieve.
-Immediate.” Then he thought that before
-he departed he would look at the house
-wherein he had been master and lord. There was
-a break in the weather, and the rank earth steamed
-with vapour.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>He found that the rains had torn down the mud
-pillars of the gateway, and the heavy wooden gate
-that had guarded his life hung lazily from one
-hinge. There was grass three inches high in the
-courtyard; Pir Khan’s lodge was empty, and the
-sodden thatch sagged between the beams. A gray
-squirrel was in possession of the verandah, as if
-the house had been untenanted for thirty years instead
-of three days. Ameera’s mother had removed
-everything except some mildewed matting.
-The <em>tick-tick</em> of the little scorpions as they hurried
-across the floor was the only sound in the house.
-Ameera’s room and the other one where Tota had
-lived were heavy with mildew; and the narrow
-staircase leading to the roof was streaked and stained
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_138'>138</span>with rain-borne mud. Holden saw all these things,
-and came out again to meet in the road Durga
-Dass, his landlord,—portly, affable, clothed in
-white muslin, and driving a Cee-spring buggy.
-He was overlooking his property to see how the
-roofs stood the stress of the first rains.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>“I have heard,” said he, “you will not take this
-place any more, Sahib?”</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>“What are you going to do with it?”</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>“Perhaps I shall let it again.”</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>“Then I will keep it on while I am away.”</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>Durga Dass was silent for some time. “You
-shall not take it on, Sahib,” he said. “When I
-was a young man I also——, but to-day I am a
-member of the Municipality. Ho! Ho! No.
-When the birds have gone what need to keep the
-nest? I will have it pulled down—the timber
-will sell for something always. It shall be pulled
-down, and the Municipality shall make a road
-across, as they desire, from the burning-ghaut to
-the city wall, so that no man may say where this
-house stood.”</p>
-
-<div class='chapter'>
- <span class='pageno' id='Page_139'>139</span>
- <h2 class='c004'>NABOTH</h2>
-</div>
-
-<div class='nf-center-c0'>
-<div class='nf-center c002'>
- <div><span class='small'>Copyright, 1891, by Macmillan &amp; Co.</span></div>
- </div>
-</div>
-
-<p class='c005'>This was how it happened; and the truth is also
-an allegory of Empire.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>I met him at the corner of my garden, an empty
-basket on his head, and an unclean cloth round
-his loins. That was all the property to which
-Naboth had the shadow of a claim when I first
-saw him. He opened our acquaintance by begging.
-He was very thin and showed nearly as
-many ribs as his basket; and he told me a long
-story about fever and a lawsuit, and an iron cauldron
-that had been seized by the court in execution
-of a decree. I put my hand into my pocket
-to help Naboth, as kings of the East have helped
-alien adventurers to the loss of their kingdoms.
-A rupee had hidden in my waistcoat lining. I
-never knew it was there, and gave the trove to
-Naboth as a direct gift from Heaven. He replied
-that I was the only legitimate Protector of the
-Poor he had ever known.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>Next morning he reappeared, a little fatter in the
-round, and curled himself into knots in the front verandah.
-He said I was his father and his mother,
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_140'>140</span>and the direct descendant of all the gods in his
-Pantheon, besides controlling the destinies of the
-universe. He himself was but a sweetmeat-seller,
-and much less important than the dirt under my
-feet. I had heard this sort of thing before, so I
-asked him what he wanted. My rupee, quoth
-Naboth, had raised him to the everlasting heavens,
-and he wished to prefer a request. He wished to
-establish a sweetmeat-pitch near the house of his
-benefactor, to gaze on my revered countenance as
-I went to and fro illumining the world. I was
-graciously pleased to give permission, and he
-went away with his head between his knees.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>Now at the far end of my garden the ground
-slopes toward the public road, and the slope is
-crowned with a thick shrubbery. There is a short
-carriage-road from the house to the Mall, which
-passes close to the shrubbery. Next afternoon I
-saw that Naboth had seated himself at the bottom
-of the slope, down in the dust of the public road,
-and in the full glare of the sun, with a starved
-basket of greasy sweets in front of him. He had
-gone into trade once more on the strength of my
-munificent donation, and the ground was as Paradise
-by my honoured favour. Remember, there
-was only Naboth, his basket, the sunshine, and
-the gray dust when the sap of my Empire first
-began.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>Next day he had moved himself up the slope
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_141'>141</span>nearer to my shrubbery, and waved a palm-leaf
-fan to keep the flies off the sweets. So I judged
-that he must have done a fair trade.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>Four days later I noticed that he had backed
-himself and his basket under the shadow of the
-shrubbery, and had tied an Isabella-coloured rag
-between two branches in order to make more
-shade. There were plenty of sweets in his basket.
-I thought that trade must certainly be looking up.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>Seven weeks later the Government took up a
-plot of ground for a Chief Court close to the end
-of my compound, and employed nearly four hundred
-coolies on the foundations. Naboth bought
-a blue and white striped blanket, a brass lamp-stand,
-and a small boy to cope with the rush of
-trade, which was tremendous.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>Five days later he bought a huge, fat, red-backed
-account-book and a glass inkstand. Thus I saw
-that the coolies had been getting into his debt, and
-that commerce was increasing on legitimate lines
-of credit. Also I saw that the one basket had
-grown into three, and that Naboth had backed
-and hacked into the shrubbery, and made himself
-a nice little clearing for the proper display of the
-basket, the blanket, the books, and the boy.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>One week and five days later he had built a
-mud fireplace in the clearing, and the fat account-book
-was overflowing. He said that God created
-few Englishmen of my kind, and that I was the
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_142'>142</span>incarnation of all human virtues. He offered me
-some of his sweets as tribute, and by accepting
-these I acknowledged him as my feudatory under
-the skirt of my protection.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>Three weeks later I noticed that the boy was in
-the habit of cooking Naboth’s mid-day meal for
-him, and Naboth was beginning to grow a stomach.
-He had hacked away more of my shrubbery,
-and owned another and a fatter account-book.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>Eleven weeks later Naboth had eaten his way
-nearly through that shrubbery, and there was a reed
-hut with a bedstead outside it, standing in the
-little glade that he had eroded. Two dogs and a
-baby slept on the bedstead. So I fancied Naboth
-had taken a wife. He said that he had, by my
-favour, done this thing, and that I was several
-times finer than Krishna.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>Six weeks and two days later a mud wall had
-grown up at the back of the hut. There were
-fowls in front and it smelt a little. The Municipal
-Secretary said that a cess-pool was forming in the
-public road from the drainage of my compound,
-and that I must take steps to clear it away. I
-spoke to Naboth. He said I was Lord Paramount
-of his earthly concerns, and the garden was all my
-own property, and sent me some more sweets in a
-second-hand duster.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>Two months later a coolie bricklayer was killed
-in a scuffle that took place opposite Naboth’s Vineyard.
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_143'>143</span>The Inspector of Police said it was a serious
-case; went into my servants’ quarters; insulted my
-butler’s wife, and wanted to arrest my butler. The
-curious thing about the murder was that most of
-the coolies were drunk at the time. Naboth pointed
-out that my name was a strong shield between him
-and his enemies, and he expected that another baby
-would be born to him shortly.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>Four months later the hut was <em>all</em> mud walls,
-very solidly built, and Naboth had used most of
-my shrubbery for his five goats. A silver watch
-and an aluminium chain shone upon his very round
-stomach. My servants were alarmingly drunk
-several times, and used to waste the day with Naboth
-when they got the chance. I spoke to Naboth.
-He said, by my favour and the glory of my countenance,
-he would make all his women-folk ladies,
-and that if any one hinted that he was running an
-illicit still under the shadow of the tamarisks, why,
-I, his Suzerain, was to prosecute.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>A week later he hired a man to make several
-dozen square yards of trellis-work to put round the
-back of his hut, that his women-folk might be
-screened from the public gaze. The man went
-away in the evening, and left his day’s work to
-pave the short cut from the public road to my
-house. I was driving home in the dusk, and
-turned the corner by Naboth’s Vineyard quickly.
-The next thing I knew was that the horses of the
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_144'>144</span>phaeton were stamping and plunging in the strongest
-sort of bamboo net-work. Both beasts came
-down. One rose with nothing more than chipped
-knees. The other was so badly kicked that I was
-forced to shoot him.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>Naboth is gone now, and his hut is ploughed
-into its native mud with sweetmeats instead of salt
-for a sign that the place is accursed. I have built
-a summer-house to overlook the end of the garden,
-and it is as a fort on my frontier whence I guard
-my Empire.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>I know exactly how Ahab felt. He has been
-shamefully misrepresented in the Scriptures.</p>
-
-<div class='chapter'>
- <span class='pageno' id='Page_145'>145</span>
- <h2 class='c004'>THE SENDING OF DANA DA</h2>
-</div>
-
-<div class='lg-container-b c015'>
- <div class='linegroup'>
- <div class='group'>
- <div class='line'>When the Devil rides on your chest remember the <em>chamar</em>.</div>
- <div class='line in44'>—<cite>Native Proverb.</cite></div>
- </div>
- </div>
-</div>
-
-<p class='c005'>Once upon a time, some people in India made a
-new Heaven and a new Earth out of broken tea-cups,
-a missing brooch or two, and a hair-brush.
-These were hidden under bushes, or stuffed into
-holes in the hillside, and an entire Civil Service of
-subordinate Gods used to find or mend them again;
-and every one said: “There are more things in
-Heaven and Earth than are dreamt of in our philosophy.”
-Several other things happened also, but
-the Religion never seemed to get much beyond its
-first manifestations; though it added an air-line
-postal service, and orchestral effects in order to
-keep abreast of the times and choke off competition.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>This Religion was too elastic for ordinary use.
-It stretched itself and embraced pieces of everything
-that the medicine-men of all ages have manufactured.
-It approved of and stole from Freemasonry;
-looted the Latter-day Rosicrucians of
-half their pet words; took any fragments of Egyptian
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_146'>146</span>philosophy that it found in the “Encyclopædia
-Britannica”; annexed as many of the Vedas
-as had been translated into French or English, and
-talked of all the rest; built in the German versions
-of what is left of the Zend Avesta; encouraged
-White, Gray and Black Magic, including spiritualism,
-palmistry, fortune-telling by cards, hot
-chestnuts, double-kernelled nuts and tallow-droppings;
-would have adopted Voodoo and Oboe had
-it known anything about them, and showed itself,
-in every way, one of the most accommodating arrangements
-that had ever been invented since the
-birth of the Sea.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>When it was in thorough working order, with
-all the machinery, down to the subscriptions, complete,
-Dana Da came from nowhere, with nothing
-in his hands, and wrote a chapter in its history
-which has hitherto been unpublished. He said
-that his first name was Dana, and his second was
-Da. Now, setting aside Dana of the New York
-“Sun,” Dana is a Bhil name, and Da fits no native
-of India unless you accept the Bengali Dé as the
-original spelling. Da is Lap or Finnish; and
-Dana Da was neither Finn, Chin, Bhil, Bengali,
-Lap, Nair, Gond, Romaney, Magh, Bokhariot,
-Kurd, Armenian, Levantine, Jew, Persian, Punjabi,
-Madrasi, Parsee, nor anything else known to ethnologists.
-He was simply Dana Da, and declined
-to give further information. For the sake of
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_147'>147</span>brevity and as roughly indicating his origin, he
-was called “The Native.” He might have been
-the original Old Man of the Mountains, who is
-said to be the only authorized head of the Tea-cup
-Creed. Some people said that he was; but Dana
-Da used to smile and deny any connection with
-the cult; explaining that he was an “Independent
-Experimenter.”</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>As I have said, he came from nowhere, with his
-hands behind his back, and studied the Creed for
-three weeks; sitting at the feet of those best competent
-to explain its mysteries. Then he laughed
-aloud and went away, but the laugh might have
-been either of devotion or derision.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>When he returned he was without money, but
-his pride was unabated. He declared that he
-knew more about the Things in Heaven and Earth
-than those who taught him, and for this contumacy
-was abandoned altogether.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>His next appearance in public life was at a big
-cantonment in Upper India, and he was then telling
-fortunes with the help of three leaden dice, a
-very dirty old cloth, and a little tin box of opium
-pills. He told better fortunes when he was allowed
-half a bottle of whiskey; but the things
-which he invented on the opium were quite worth
-the money. He was in reduced circumstances.
-Among other people’s he told the fortune of an
-Englishman who had once been interested in the
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_148'>148</span>Simla Creed, but who, later on, had married and
-forgotten all his old knowledge in the study of
-babies and things. The Englishman allowed Dana
-Da to tell a fortune for charity’s sake, and gave
-him five rupees, a dinner, and some old clothes.
-When he had eaten, Dana Da professed gratitude,
-and asked if there were anything he could do for
-his host—in the esoteric line.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>“Is there any one that you love?” said Dana
-Da. The Englishman loved his wife, but had no
-desire to drag her name into the conversation. He
-therefore shook his head.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>“Is there any one that you hate?” said Dana
-Da. The Englishman said that there were several
-men whom he hated deeply.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>“Very good,” said Dana Da, upon whom the
-whiskey and the opium were beginning to tell.
-“Only give me their names, and I will despatch
-a Sending to them and kill them.”</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>Now a Sending is a horrible arrangement, first
-invented, they say, in Iceland. It is a Thing sent
-by a wizard, and may take any form, but, most
-generally, wanders about the land in the shape of
-a little purple cloud till it finds the Sendee, and
-him it kills by changing into the form of a horse,
-or a cat, or a man without a face. It is not strictly
-a native patent, though <em>chamars</em> of the skin and
-hide castes can, if irritated, despatch a Sending
-which sits on the breast of their enemy by night
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_149'>149</span>and nearly kills him. Very few natives care to
-irritate <em>chamars</em> for this reason.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>“Let me despatch a Sending,” said Dana Da;
-“I am nearly dead now with want, and drink, and
-opium; but I should like to kill a man before I
-die. I can send a Sending anywhere you choose,
-and in any form except in the shape of a man.”</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>The Englishman had no friends that he wished
-to kill, but partly to soothe Dana Da, whose eyes
-were rolling, and partly to see what would be done,
-he asked whether a modified Sending could not be
-arranged for—such a Sending as should make a
-man’s life a burden to him, and yet do him no
-harm. If this were possible, he notified his willingness
-to give Dana Da ten rupees for the job.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>“I am not what I was once,” said Dana Da,
-“and I must take the money because I am poor.
-To what Englishman shall I send it?”</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>“Send a Sending to Lone Sahib,” said the Englishman,
-naming a man who had been most bitter
-in rebuking him for his apostasy from the Tea-cup
-Creed. Dana Da laughed and nodded.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>“I could have chosen no better man myself,”
-said he. “I will see that he finds the Sending
-about his path and about his bed.”</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>He lay down on the hearth-rug, turned up the
-whites of his eyes, shivered all over and began to
-snort. This was Magic, or Opium, or the Sending,
-or all three. When he opened his eyes he
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_150'>150</span>vowed that the Sending had started upon the war-path,
-and was at that moment flying up to the
-town where Lone Sahib lives.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>“Give me my ten rupees,” said Dana Da wearily,
-“and write a letter to Lone Sahib, telling him,
-and all who believe with him, that you and a
-friend are using a power greater than theirs. They
-will see that you are speaking the truth.”</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>He departed unsteadily, with the promise of
-some more rupees if anything came of the Sending.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>The Englishman sent a letter to Lone Sahib,
-couched in what he remembered of the terminology
-of the Creed. He wrote: “I also, in the
-days of what you held to be my backsliding, have
-obtained Enlightenment, and with Enlightenment
-has come Power.” Then he grew so deeply mysterious
-that the recipient of the letter could make
-neither head nor tail of it, and was proportionately
-impressed; for he fancied that his friend had become
-a “fifth-rounder.” When a man is a “fifth-rounder”
-he can do more than Slade and Houdin
-combined.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>Lone Sahib read the letter in five different fashions,
-and was beginning a sixth interpretation when
-his bearer dashed in with the news that there was
-a cat on the bed. Now if there was one thing that
-Lone Sahib hated more than another, it was a cat.
-He scolded the bearer for not turning it out of the
-house. The bearer said that he was afraid. All
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_151'>151</span>the doors of the bedroom had been shut throughout
-the morning, and no <em>real</em> cat could possibly
-have entered the room. He would prefer not to
-meddle with the creature.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>Lone Sahib entered the room gingerly, and there,
-on the pillow of his bed, sprawled and whimpered
-a wee white kitten; not a jumpsome, frisky little
-beast, but a slug-like crawler with its eyes barely
-opened and its paws lacking strength or <a id='corr151.9'></a><span class='htmlonly'><ins class='correction' title='direction.'>direction,</ins></span><span class='epubonly'><a href='#c_151.9'><ins class='correction' title='direction.'>direction,</ins></a></span>—a
-kitten that ought to have been in a basket
-with its mamma. Lone Sahib caught it by the
-scruff of its neck, handed it over to the sweeper to
-be drowned, and fined the bearer four annas.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>That evening, as he was reading in his room, he
-fancied that he saw something moving about on
-the hearth-rug, outside the circle of light from his
-reading-lamp. When the thing began to myowl,
-he realised that it was a kitten—a wee white kitten,
-nearly blind and very miserable. He was
-seriously angry, and spoke bitterly to his bearer,
-who said that there was no kitten in the room
-when he brought in the lamp, and <em>real</em> kittens
-of tender age generally had mother-cats in attendance.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>“If the Presence will go out into the verandah
-and listen,” said the bearer, “he will hear no cats.
-How, therefore, can the kitten on the bed and the
-kitten on the hearth-rug be real kittens?”</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>Lone Sahib went out to listen, and the bearer
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_152'>152</span>followed him, but there was no sound of any one
-mewing for her children. He returned to his room,
-having hurled the kitten down the hillside, and
-wrote out the incidents of the day for the benefit
-of his co-religionists. Those people were so absolutely
-free from superstition that they ascribed
-anything a little out of the common to Agencies.
-As it was their business to know all about the
-Agencies, they were on terms of almost indecent
-familiarity with Manifestations of every kind.
-Their letters dropped from the ceiling—un-stamped—and
-Spirits used to squatter up and
-down their staircases all night; but they had never
-come into contact with kittens. Lone Sahib wrote
-out the facts, noting the hour and the minute, as
-every Psychical Observer is bound to do, and appending
-the Englishman’s letter because it was the
-most mysterious document and might have had a
-bearing upon anything in this world or the next.
-An outsider would have translated all the tangle
-thus: “Look out! You laughed at me once, and
-now I am going to make you sit up.”</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>Lone Sahib’s co-religionists found that meaning
-in it; but their translation was refined and full of
-four-syllable words. They held a sederunt, and
-were filled with tremulous joy, for, in spite of their
-familiarity with all the other worlds and cycles,
-they had a very human awe of things sent from
-Ghost-land. They met in Lone Sahib’s room in
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_153'>153</span>shrouded and sepulchral gloom, and their conclave
-was broken up by a clinking among the photo-frames
-on the mantelpiece. A wee white kitten,
-nearly blind, was looping and writhing itself between
-the clock and the candlesticks. That stopped
-all investigations or doubtings. Here was the
-Manifestation in the flesh. It was, so far as could
-be seen, devoid of purpose, but it was a Manifestation
-of undoubted authenticity.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>They drafted a Round Robin to the Englishman,
-the backslider of old days, adjuring him in
-the interests of the Creed to explain whether there
-was any connection between the embodiment of
-some Egyptian God or other (I have forgotten the
-name) and his communication. They called the
-kitten Ra, or Toth, or Tum, or something; and
-when Lone Sahib confessed that the first one had,
-at his most misguided instance, been drowned by
-the sweeper, they said consolingly that in his next
-life he would be a “bounder,” and not even a
-“rounder” of the lowest grade. These words may
-not be quite correct, but they accurately express
-the sense of the house.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>When the Englishman received the Round
-Robin—it came by post—he was startled and
-bewildered. He sent into the bazar for Dana Da,
-who read the letter and laughed. “That is my
-Sending,” said he. “I told you I would work
-well. Now give me another ten rupees.”</p>
-
-<p class='c001'><span class='pageno' id='Page_154'>154</span>“But what in the world is this gibberish about
-Egyptian Gods?” asked the Englishman.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>“Cats,” said Dana Da with a hiccough, for he
-had discovered the Englishman’s whiskey-bottle.
-“Cats, and cats, and cats! Never was such a
-Sending. A hundred of cats. Now give me ten
-more rupees and write as I dictate.”</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>Dana Da’s letter was a curiosity. It bore the
-Englishman’s signature, and hinted at cats—at a
-Sending of Cats. The mere words on paper were
-creepy and uncanny to behold.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>“What have you done, though?” said the Englishman.
-“I am as much in the dark as ever. Do
-you mean to say that you can actually send this absurd
-Sending you talk about?”</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>“Judge for yourself,” said Dana Da. “What
-does that letter mean? In a little time they will
-all be at my feet and yours, and I—O Glory!—will
-be drugged or drunk all day long.”</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>Dana Da knew his people.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>When a man who hates cats wakes up in the
-morning and finds a little squirming kitten on his
-breast, or puts his hand into his ulster-pocket and
-finds a little half-dead kitten where his gloves
-should be, or opens his trunk and finds a vile kitten
-among his dress-shirts, or goes for a long ride
-with his mackintosh strapped on his saddle-bow
-and shakes a little squawling kitten from its folds
-when he opens it, or goes out to dinner and finds
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_155'>155</span>a little blind kitten under his chair, or stays at
-home and finds a writhing kitten under the quilt,
-or wriggling among his boots, or hanging, head
-downwards, in his tobacco-jar, or being mangled
-by his terrier in the verandah,—when such a man
-finds one kitten, neither more nor less, once a day
-in a place where no kitten rightly could or should
-be, he is naturally upset. When he dare not murder
-his daily trove because he believes it to be a
-Manifestation, an Emissary, an Embodiment, and
-half a dozen other things all out of the regular
-course of nature, he is more than upset. He is
-actually distressed. Some of Lone Sahib’s co-religionists
-thought that he was a highly favoured
-individual; but many said that if he had treated
-the first kitten with proper respect—as suited a
-Toth-Ra-Tum-Sennacherib Embodiment—all this
-trouble would have been averted. They compared
-him to the Ancient Mariner, but none the less
-they were proud of him and proud of the Englishman
-who had sent the Manifestation. They did
-not call it a Sending because Icelandic magic was
-not in their programme.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>After sixteen kittens, that is to say after one
-fortnight, for there were three kittens on the first
-day to impress the fact of the Sending, the whole
-camp was uplifted by a letter—it came flying
-through a window—from the Old Man of the
-Mountains—the Head of all the Creed—explaining
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_156'>156</span>the Manifestation in the most beautiful language
-and soaking up all the credit for it himself.
-The Englishman, said the letter, was not there at
-all. He was a backslider without Power or Asceticism,
-who couldn’t even raise a table by force
-of volition, much less project an army of kittens
-through space. The entire arrangement, said the
-letter, was strictly orthodox, worked and sanctioned
-by the highest authorities within the pale of the
-Creed. There was great joy at this, for some of
-the weaker brethren seeing, that an outsider who
-had been working on independent lines could create
-kittens, whereas their own rulers had never
-gone beyond crockery—and broken at best—were
-showing a desire to break line on their own trail.
-In fact, there was the promise of a schism. A
-second Round Robin was drafted to the Englishman,
-beginning: “O Scoffer,” and ending with a
-selection of curses from the Rites of Mizraim and
-Memphis and the Commination of Jugana, who
-was a “fifth rounder” upon whose name an upstart
-“third-rounder” once traded. A papal excommunication
-is a <span lang="fr" xml:lang="fr"><em>billet-doux</em></span> compared to the
-Commination of Jugana. The Englishman had
-been proved, under the hand and seal of the Old
-Man of the Mountains, to have appropriated Virtue
-and pretended to have Power which, in reality,
-belonged only to the Supreme Head. Naturally
-the Round Robin did not spare him.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'><span class='pageno' id='Page_157'>157</span>He handed the letter to Dana Da to translate
-into decent English. The effect on Dana Da was
-curious. At first he was furiously angry, and then
-he laughed for five minutes.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>“I had thought,” he said, “that they would have
-come to me. In another week I would have shown
-that I sent the Sending, and they would have dis-crowned
-the Old Man of the Mountains who has
-sent this Sending of mine. Do you do nothing.
-The time has come for me to act. Write as I
-dictate, and I will put them to shame. But give
-me ten more rupees.”</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>At Dana Da’s dictation the Englishman wrote
-nothing less than a formal challenge to the Old
-Man of the Mountains. It wound up: “And if
-this Manifestation be from your hand, then let it
-go forward; but if it be from my hand, I will that
-the Sending shall cease in two days’ time. On
-that day there shall be twelve kittens and thenceforward
-none at all. The people shall judge between
-us.” This was signed by Dana Da, who
-added pentacles and pentagrams, and a <span lang="la" xml:lang="la"><em>crux ansata</em></span>,
-and half a dozen <em>swastikas</em>, and a Triple Tau to
-his name, just to show that he was all he laid claim
-to be.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>The challenge was read out to the gentlemen
-and ladies, and they remembered then that Dana
-Da had laughed at them some years ago. It was
-officially announced that the Old Man of the Mountains
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_158'>158</span>would treat the matter with contempt; Dana
-Da being an Independent Investigator without a
-single “round” at the back of him. But this did
-not soothe his people. They wanted to see a fight.
-They were very human for all their spirituality.
-Lone Sahib, who was really being worn out with
-kittens, submitted meekly to his fate. He felt
-that he was being “kittened to prove the power
-of Dana Da,” as the poet says.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>When the stated day dawned, the shower of
-kittens began. Some were white and some were
-tabby, and all were about the same loathsome age.
-Three were on his hearth-rug, three in his bath-room,
-and the other six turned up at intervals
-among the visitors who came to see the prophecy
-break down. Never was a more satisfactory Sending.
-On the next day there were no kittens, and
-the next day and all the other days were kittenless
-and quiet. The people murmured and looked to
-the Old Man of the Mountains for an explanation.
-A letter, written on a palm-leaf, dropped from the
-ceiling, but every one except Lone Sahib felt that
-letters were not what the occasion demanded.
-There should have been cats, there should have been
-cats,—full-grown ones. The letter proved conclusively
-that there had been a hitch in the Psychic
-Current which, colliding with a Dual Identity, had
-interfered with the Percipient Activity all along
-the main line. The kittens were still going on,
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_159'>159</span>but owing to some failure in the Developing Fluid,
-they were not materialised. The air was thick
-with letters for a few days afterwards. Unseen
-hands played Glück and Beethoven on finger-bowls
-and clock-shades; but all men felt that Psychic
-Life was a mockery without materialised Kittens.
-Even Lone Sahib shouted with the majority
-on this head. Dana Da’s letters were very insulting,
-and if he had then offered to lead a new departure,
-there is no knowing what might not have
-happened.</p>
-
-<div id='i158' class='figcenter id001'>
-<img src='images/i_158f.jpg' alt='' class='ig001' />
-<div class='ic002'>
-<p>THE SENDING OF DANA DA</p>
-</div>
-</div>
-
-<p class='c001'>But Dana Da was dying of whiskey and opium
-in the Englishman’s godown, and had small heart
-for honours.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>“They have been put to shame,” said he.
-“Never was such a Sending. It has killed me.”</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>“Nonsense,” said the Englishman, “you are going
-to die, Dana Da, and that sort of stuff must be
-left behind. I’ll admit that you have made some
-queer things come about. Tell me honestly, now,
-how was it done?”</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>“Give me ten more rupees,” said Dana Da
-faintly, “and if I die before I spend them, bury
-them with me.” The silver was counted out while
-Dana Da was fighting with Death. His hand
-closed upon the money and he smiled a grim
-smile.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>“Bend low,” he whispered. The Englishman
-bent.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'><span class='pageno' id='Page_160'>160</span>“<em>Bunnia</em>—Mission-school—expelled—<em>box-wallah</em>
-(peddler)—Ceylon pearl-merchant—all
-mine English education—out-casted, and made
-up name Dana Da—England with American
-thought-reading man and—and—you gave me
-ten rupees several times—I gave the Sahib’s bearer
-two-eight a month for cats—little, little cats. I
-wrote, and he put them about—very clever man.
-Very few kittens now in the bazar. Ask Lone
-Sahib’s sweeper’s wife.”</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>So saying, Dana Da gasped and passed away
-into a land where, if all be true, there are no materialisations
-and the making of new creeds is discouraged.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>But consider the gorgeous simplicity of it all!</p>
-
-<div class='chapter'>
- <span class='pageno' id='Page_161'>161</span>
- <h2 class='c004'>THROUGH THE FIRE</h2>
-</div>
-
-<div class='nf-center-c0'>
-<div class='nf-center c002'>
- <div><span class='small'>Copyright, 1891, by Macmillan &amp; Co.</span></div>
- </div>
-</div>
-
-<p class='c005'>The Policeman rode through the Himalayan forest,
-under the moss-draped oaks, and his orderly trotted
-after him.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>“It’s an ugly business, Bhere Singh,” said the
-Policeman. “Where are they?”</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>“It is a very ugly business,” said Bhere Singh;
-“and as for <em>them</em>, they are, doubtless, now frying
-in a hotter fire than was ever made of spruce-branches.”</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>“Let us hope not,” said the Policeman, “for, allowing
-for the difference between race and race,
-it’s the story of Francesca da Rimini, Bhere Singh.”</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>Bhere Singh knew nothing about Francesca da
-Rimini, so he held his peace until they came to
-the charcoal-burners’ clearing where the dying
-flames said “<em>whit, whit, whit</em>” as they fluttered
-and whispered over the white ashes. It must have
-been a great fire when at full height. Men had
-seen it at Donga Pa across the valley winking and
-blazing through the night, and said that the charcoal-burners
-of Kodru were getting drunk. But
-it was only Suket Singh, Sepoy of the 102d Punjab
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_162'>162</span>Native Infantry, and Athira, a woman,
-burning—burning—burning.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>This was how things befell; and the Policeman’s
-Diary will bear me out.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>Athira was the wife of Madu, who was a charcoal-burner,
-one-eyed and of a malignant disposition.
-A week after their marriage, he beat Athira
-with a heavy stick. A month later, Suket Singh,
-Sepoy, came that way to the cool hills on leave
-from his regiment, and electrified the villagers of
-Kodru with tales of service and glory under the
-Government, and the honour in which he, Suket
-Singh, was held by the Colonel Sahib Bahadur.
-And Desdemona listened to Othello as Desdemonas
-have done all the world over, and, as she
-listened, she loved.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>“I’ve a wife of my own,” said Suket Singh,
-“though that is no matter when you come to think
-of it. I am also due to return to my regiment
-after a time, and I cannot be a deserter—I who
-intend to be Havildar.” There is no Himalayan
-version of “I could not love thee, dear, as much,
-Loved I not Honour more”; but Suket Singh
-came near to making one.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>“Never mind,” said Athira, “stay with me, and,
-if Madu tries to beat me, you beat him.”</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>“Very good,” said Suket Singh; and he beat
-Madu severely, to the delight of all the charcoal-burners
-of Kodru.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'><span class='pageno' id='Page_163'>163</span>“That is enough,” said Suket Singh, as he rolled
-Madu down the hillside. “Now we shall have
-peace.” But Madu crawled up the grass slope
-again, and hovered round his hut with angry eyes.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>“He’ll kill me dead,” said Athira to Suket
-Singh. “You must take me away.”</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>“There’ll be a trouble in the Lines. My wife
-will pull out my beard; but never mind,” said
-Suket Singh, “I will take you.”</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>There was loud trouble in the Lines, and Suket
-Singh’s beard was pulled, and Suket Singh’s wife
-went to live with her mother and took away the
-children. “That’s all right,” said Athira; and
-Suket Singh said, “Yes, that’s all right.”</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>So there was only Madu left in the hut that
-looks across the valley to Donga Pa; and, since
-the beginning of time, no one has had any sympathy
-for husbands so unfortunate as Madu.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>He went to Juseen Dazé, the wizard-man who
-keeps the Talking Monkey’s Head.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>“Get me back my wife,” said Madu.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>“I can’t,” said Juseen Dazé, “until you have
-made the Sutlej in the valley run up the Donga Pa.”</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>“No riddles,” said Madu, and he shook his
-hatchet above Juseen Dazé’s white head.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>“Give all your money to the headmen of the
-village,” said Juseen Dazé; “and they will hold
-a communal Council, and the Council will send
-a message that your wife must come back.”</p>
-
-<p class='c001'><span class='pageno' id='Page_164'>164</span>So Madu gave up all his worldly wealth,
-amounting to twenty-seven rupees, eight annas,
-three pice, and a silver chain, to the Council of
-Kodru. And it fell as Juseen Dazé foretold.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>They sent Athira’s brother down into Suket
-Singh’s regiment to call Athira home. Suket
-Singh kicked him once round the Lines, and then
-handed him over to the Havildar, who beat him
-with a belt.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>“Come back,” yelled Athira’s brother.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>“Where to?” said Athira.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>“To Madu,” said he.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>“Never,” said she.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>“Then Juseen Dazé will send a curse, and you
-will wither away like a barked tree in the springtime,”
-said Athira’s brother. Athira slept over
-these things.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>Next morning she had rheumatism. “I am
-beginning to wither away like a barked tree in
-the springtime,” she said. “That is the curse of
-Juseen Dazé.”</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>And she really began to wither away because
-her heart was dried up with fear, and those who
-believe in curses die from curses. Suket Singh,
-too, was afraid because he loved Athira better than
-his very life. Two months passed, and Athira’s
-brother stood outside the regimental Lines again
-and yelped, “Aha! You are withering away.
-Come back.”</p>
-
-<p class='c001'><span class='pageno' id='Page_165'>165</span>“I will come back,” said Athira.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>“Say rather that <em>we</em> will come back,” said Suket
-Singh.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>“Ai; but when?” said Athira’s brother.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>“Upon a day very early in the morning,” said
-Suket Singh; and he tramped off to apply to the
-Colonel Sahib Bahadur for one week’s leave.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>“I am withering away like a barked tree in the
-spring,” moaned Athira.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>“You will be better soon,” said Suket Singh;
-and he told her what was in his heart, and the
-two laughed together softly, for they loved each
-other. But Athira grew better from that hour.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>They went away together, travelling third-class
-by train as the regulations provided, and then in
-a cart to the low hills, and on foot to the high
-ones. Athira sniffed the scent of the pines of her
-own hills, the wet Himalayan hills. “It is good
-to be alive,” said Athira.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>“Hah!” said Suket Singh. “Where is the
-Kodru road and where is the Forest Ranger’s
-house?”...</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>“It cost forty rupees twelve years ago,” said
-the Forest Ranger, handing the gun.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>“Here are twenty,” said Suket Singh, “and
-you must give me the best bullets.”</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>“It is <em>very</em> good to be alive,” said Athira wistfully,
-sniffing the scent of the pine-mould; and
-they waited till the night had fallen upon Kodru
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_166'>166</span>and the Donga Pa. Madu had stacked the dry
-wood for the next day’s charcoal-burning on the
-spur above his house. “It is courteous in Madu
-to save us this trouble,” said Suket Singh as he
-stumbled on the pile, which was twelve foot
-square and four high. “We must wait till the
-moon rises.”</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>When the moon rose, Athira knelt upon the
-pile. “If it were only a Government Snider,”
-said Suket Singh ruefully, squinting down the
-wire-bound barrel of the Forest Ranger’s gun.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>“Be quick,” said Athira; and Suket Singh was
-quick; but Athira was quick no longer. Then he
-lit the pile at the four corners and climbed on to
-it, reloading the gun.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>The little flames began to peer up between the big
-logs atop of the brushwood. “The Government
-should teach us to pull the triggers with our toes,”
-said Suket Singh grimly to the moon. That was
-the last public observation of Sepoy Suket Singh.</p>
-
-<hr class='c014' />
-
-<p class='c001'>Upon a day, early in the morning, Madu came
-to the pyre and shrieked very grievously, and ran
-away to catch the Policeman who was on tour in
-the district.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>“The base-born has ruined four rupees’ worth
-of charcoal wood,” Madu gasped. “He has also
-killed my wife, and he has left a letter which I
-cannot read, tied to a pine bough.”</p>
-
-<p class='c001'><span class='pageno' id='Page_167'>167</span>In the stiff, formal hand taught in the regimental
-school, Sepoy Suket Singh had written—</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>“Let us be burned together, if anything remain
-over, for we have made the necessary prayers.
-We have also cursed Madu, and Malak the
-brother of Athira—both evil men. Send my
-service to the Colonel Sahib Bahadur.”</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>The Policeman looked long and curiously at the
-marriage-bed of red and white ashes on which lay,
-dull black, the barrel of the Ranger’s gun. He
-drove his spurred heel absently into a half-charred
-log, and the chattering sparks flew upwards.
-“Most extraordinary people,” said the Policeman.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>“<em>Whe-w, whew, ouiou</em>,” said the little flames.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>The Policeman entered the dry bones of the case,
-for the Punjab Government does not approve of
-romancing, in his Diary.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>“But who will pay me those four rupees?” said
-Madu.</p>
-
-<div class='chapter'>
- <span class='pageno' id='Page_168'>168</span>
- <h2 class='c004'>THE HEAD OF THE DISTRICT</h2>
-</div>
-
-<div class='lg-container-b c015'>
- <div class='linegroup'>
- <div class='group'>
- <div class='line'>There’s a convict more in the Central Jail,</div>
- <div class='line in2'>Behind the old mud wall;</div>
- <div class='line'>There’s a lifter less on the Border trail,</div>
- <div class='line in2'>And the Queen’s Peace over all,</div>
- <div class='line in24'>Dear boys,</div>
- <div class='line in4'>The Queen’s Peace over all.</div>
- </div>
- <div class='group'>
- <div class='line'>For we must bear our leader’s blame,</div>
- <div class='line in2'>On us the shame will fall,</div>
- <div class='line'>If we lift our hand from a fettered land,</div>
- <div class='line in2'>And the Queen’s Peace over all,</div>
- <div class='line in24'>Dear boys,</div>
- <div class='line in4'>The Queen’s Peace over all!</div>
- </div>
- <div class='group'>
- <div class='line in23'><cite>The Running of Shindand.</cite></div>
- </div>
- </div>
-</div>
-
-<h3 class='c021'>I</h3>
-<p class='c019'>The Indus had risen in flood without warning.
-Last night it was a fordable shallow; to-night five
-miles of raving muddy water parted bank and
-caving bank, and the river was still rising under
-the moon. A litter borne by six bearded men, all
-unused to the work, stopped in the white sand that
-bordered the whiter plain.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>“It’s God’s will,” they said. “We dare not
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_169'>169</span>cross to-night, even in a boat. Let us light a fire
-and cook food. We be tired men.”</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>They looked at the litter inquiringly. Within,
-the Deputy Commissioner of the Kot-Kumharsen
-district lay dying of fever. They had brought
-him across country, six fighting-men of a frontier
-clan that he had won over to the paths of a moderate
-righteousness, when he had broken down at the
-foot of their inhospitable hills. And Tallantire,
-his assistant, rode with them, heavy-hearted as
-heavy-eyed with sorrow and lack of sleep. He
-had served under the sick man for three years, and
-had learned to love him as men associated in toil
-of the hardest learn to love—or hate. Dropping
-from his horse, he parted the curtains of the litter
-and peered inside.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>“Orde—Orde, old man, can you hear? We
-have to wait till the river goes down, worse luck.”</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>“I hear,” returned a dry whisper. “Wait till
-the river goes down. I thought we should reach
-camp before the dawn. Polly knows. She’ll
-meet me.”</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>One of the litter-men stared across the river and
-caught a faint twinkle of light on the far side. He
-whispered to Tallantire, “There are his camp-fires,
-and his wife. They will cross in the morning, for
-they have better boats. Can he live so long?”</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>Tallantire shook his head. Yardley-Orde was
-very near to death. What need to vex his soul
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_170'>170</span>with hopes of a meeting that could not be? The
-river gulped at the banks, brought down a cliff of
-sand, and snarled the more hungrily. The litter-men
-sought for fuel in the waste—dried camel-thorn
-and refuse of the camps that had waited at
-the ford. Their sword-belts clinked as they moved
-softly in the haze of the moonlight, and Tallantire’s
-horse coughed to explain that he would like
-a blanket.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>“I’m cold too,” said the voice from the litter.
-“I fancy this is the end. Poor Polly!”</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>Tallantire rearranged the blankets; Khoda Dad
-Khan, seeing this, stripped off his own heavy-wadded
-sheepskin coat and added it to the pile.
-“I shall be warm by the fire presently,” said he.
-Tallantire took the wasted body of his chief into
-his arms and held it against his breast. Perhaps
-if they kept him very warm Orde might live to
-see his wife once more. If only blind Providence
-would send a three-foot fall in the river!</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>“That’s better,” said Orde faintly. “Sorry to
-be a nuisance, but is—is there anything to drink?”</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>They gave him milk and whiskey, and Tallantire
-felt a little warmth against his own breast.
-Orde began to mutter.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>“It isn’t that I mind dying,” he said. “It’s
-leaving Polly and the district. Thank God! we
-have no children. Dick, you know, I’m dipped—awfully
-dipped—debts in my first five years’ service.
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_171'>171</span>It isn’t much of a pension, but enough for
-her. She has her mother at home. Getting there
-is the difficulty. And—and—you see, not being
-a soldier’s wife——”</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>“We’ll arrange the passage home, of course,”
-said Tallantire quietly.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>“It’s not nice to think of sending round the
-hat; but, good Lord! how many men I lie here
-and remember that had to do it! Morten’s dead—he
-was of my year. Shaughnessy is dead, and
-he had children; I remember he used to read us
-their school-letters; what a bore we thought him!
-Evans is dead—Kot-Kumharsen killed him!
-Ricketts of Myndonie is dead—and I’m going
-too. ‘Man that is born of a woman is small potatoes
-and few in the hill.’ That reminds me,
-Dick; the four Khusru Kheyl villages in our border
-want a one-third remittance this spring. That’s
-fair; their crops are bad. See that they get it, and
-speak to Ferris about the canal. I should like to
-have lived till that was finished; it means so much
-for the North-Indus villages—but Ferris is an
-idle beggar—wake him up. You’ll have charge
-of the district till my successor comes. I wish
-they would appoint you permanently; you know
-the folk. I suppose it will be Bullows, though.
-’Good man, but too weak for frontier work; and
-he doesn’t understand the priests. The blind priest
-at Jagai will bear watching. You’ll find it in
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_172'>172</span>my papers,—in the uniform-case, I think. Call
-the Khusru Kheyl men up; I’ll hold my last public
-audience. Khoda Dad Khan!”</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>The leader of the men sprang to the side of the
-litter, his companions following.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>“Men, I’m dying,” said Orde quickly, in the
-vernacular; “and soon there will be no more Orde
-Sahib to twist your tails and prevent you from
-raiding cattle.”</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>“God forbid this thing!” broke out the
-deep bass chorus: “The Sahib is not going to
-die.”</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>“Yes, he is; and then he will know whether
-Mahomed speaks truth, or Moses. But you must
-be good men when I am not here. Such of you
-as live in our borders must pay your taxes quietly
-as before. I have spoken of the villages to be
-gently treated this year. Such of you as live in
-the hills must refrain from cattle-lifting, and burn
-no more thatch, and turn a deaf ear to the voice
-of the priests, who, not knowing the strength of
-the Government, would lead you into foolish wars,
-wherein you will surely die and your crops be
-eaten by strangers. And you must not sack any
-caravans, and must leave your arms at the police-post
-when you come in; as has been your custom,
-and my order. And Tallantire Sahib will be with
-you, but I do not know who takes my place. I
-speak now true talk, for I am as it were already
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_173'>173</span>dead, my children,—for though ye be strong men,
-ye are children.”</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>“And thou art our father and our mother,”
-broke in Khoda Dad Khan with an oath. “What
-shall we do, now there is no one to speak for us,
-or to teach us to go wisely!”</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>“There remains Tallantire Sahib. Go to him;
-he knows your talk and your heart. Keep the
-young men quiet, listen to the old men, and obey.
-Khoda Dad Khan, take my ring. The watch and
-chain go to thy brother. Keep those things for
-my sake, and I will speak to whatever God I may
-encounter and tell him that the Khusru Kheyl are
-good men. Ye have my leave to go.”</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>Khoda Dad Khan, the ring upon his finger,
-choked audibly as he caught the well-known formula
-that closed an interview. His brother turned
-to look across the river. The dawn was breaking,
-and a speck of white showed on the dull silver of
-the stream. “She comes,” said the man under his
-breath. “Can he live for another two hours?”
-And he pulled the newly-acquired watch out of
-his belt and looked uncomprehendingly at the
-dial, as he had seen Englishmen do.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>For two hours the bellying sail tacked and blundered
-up and down the river, Tallantire still clasping
-Orde in his arms, and Khoda Dad Khan
-chafing his feet. He spoke now and again of the
-district and his wife, but, as the end neared, more
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_174'>174</span>frequently of the latter. They hoped he did
-not know that she was even then risking her life
-in a crazy native boat to regain him. But the
-awful foreknowledge of the dying deceived them.
-Wrenching himself forward, Orde looked through
-the curtains and saw how near was the sail. “That’s
-Polly,” he said simply, though his mouth was
-wried with agony. “Polly and—the grimmest
-practical joke ever played on a man. Dick—you’ll—have—to—explain.”</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>And an hour later Tallantire met on the bank a
-woman in a gingham riding-habit and a sun-hat
-who cried out to him for her husband—her boy
-and her darling—while Khoda Dad Khan threw
-himself face-down on the sand and covered his
-eyes.</p>
-
-<h3 class='c021'>II</h3>
-
-<p class='c019'>The very simplicity of the notion was its charm.
-What more easy to win a reputation for far-seeing
-statesmanship, originality, and, above all, deference
-to the desires of the people, than by appointing
-a child of the country to the rule of that
-country? Two hundred millions of the most
-loving and grateful folk under Her Majesty’s dominion
-would laud the fact, and their praise would
-endure for ever. Yet he was indifferent to praise
-or blame, as befitted the Very Greatest of All the
-Viceroys. His administration was based upon
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_175'>175</span>principle, and the principle must be enforced in
-season and out of season. His pen and tongue
-had created the New India, teeming with possibilities—loud-voiced,
-insistent, a nation among
-nations—all his very own. Wherefore the Very
-Greatest of All the Viceroys took another step in
-advance, and with it counsel of those who should
-have advised him on the appointment of a successor
-to Yardley-Orde. There was a gentleman
-and a member of the Bengal Civil Service who
-had won his place and a university degree to boot
-in fair and open competition with the sons of the
-English. He was cultured, of the world, and, if
-report spoke truly, had wisely and, above all, sympathetically
-ruled a crowded district in South-Eastern
-Bengal. He had been to England and
-charmed many drawing-rooms there. His name,
-if the Viceroy recollected aright, was Mr. Grish
-Chunder Dé, M. A. In short, did anybody see
-any objection to the appointment, always on principle,
-of a man of the people to rule the people?
-The district in South-Eastern Bengal might with
-advantage, he apprehended, pass over to a younger
-civilian of Mr. G. C. Dé’s nationality (who had
-written a remarkably clever pamphlet on the political
-value of sympathy in administration); and
-Mr. G. C. Dé could be transferred northward to
-Kot-Kumharsen. The Viceroy was averse, on
-principle, to interfering with appointments under
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_176'>176</span>control of the Provincial Governments. He wished
-it to be understood that he merely recommended
-and advised in this instance. As regarded the
-mere question of race, Mr. Grish Chunder Dé
-was more English than the English, and yet possessed
-of that peculiar sympathy and insight which
-the best among the best Service in the world could
-only win to at the end of their service.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>The stern, black-bearded kings who sit about
-the Council-board of India divided on the step,
-with the inevitable result of driving the Very
-Greatest of All the Viceroys into the borders of
-hysteria, and a bewildered obstinacy pathetic as
-that of a child.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>“The principle is sound enough,” said the
-weary-eyed Head of the Red Provinces in which
-Kot-Kumharsen lay, for he too held theories.
-“The only difficulty is——”</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>“Put the screw on the District officials; brigade
-Dé with a very strong Deputy Commissioner on
-each side of him; give him the best assistant in
-the Province; rub the fear of God into the people
-beforehand; and if anything goes wrong, say that
-his colleagues didn’t back him up. All these
-lovely little experiments recoil on the District-Officer
-in the end,” said the Knight of the Drawn
-Sword with a truthful brutality that made the
-Head of the Red Provinces shudder. And on a
-tacit understanding of this kind the transfer was
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_177'>177</span>accomplished, as quietly as might be for many
-reasons.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>It is sad to think that what goes for public
-opinion in India did not generally see the wisdom
-of the Viceroy’s appointment. There were not
-lacking indeed hireling organs, notoriously in the
-pay of a tyrannous bureaucracy, who more than
-hinted that His Excellency was a fool, a dreamer
-of dreams, a doctrinaire, and, worst of all, a trifler
-with the lives of men. “The Viceroy’s Excellence
-Gazette,” published in Calcutta, was at pains
-to thank “Our beloved Viceroy for once more
-and again thus gloriously vindicating the potentialities
-of the Bengali nations for extended executive
-and administrative duties in foreign parts
-beyond our ken. We do not at all doubt that
-our excellent fellow-townsman, Mr. Grish Chunder
-Dé, Esq., M. A., will uphold the prestige of
-the Bengali, notwithstanding what underhand intrigue
-and <em>peshbundi</em> may be set on foot to insidiously
-nip his fame and blast his prospects among
-the proud civilians, some of which will now have
-to serve under a despised native and take orders
-too. How will you like that, Misters? We
-entreat our beloved Viceroy still to substantiate
-himself superiorly to race-prejudice and colour-blindness,
-and to allow the flower of this now <em>our</em>
-Civil Service all the full pays and allowances
-granted to his more fortunate brethren.”</p>
-
-<div>
- <span class='pageno' id='Page_178'>178</span>
- <h3 class='c021'>III</h3>
-</div>
-
-<p class='c019'>“When does this man take over charge? I’m
-alone just now, and I gather that I’m to stand fast
-under him.”</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>“Would you have cared for a transfer?” said
-Bullows keenly. Then, laying his hand on Tallantire’s
-shoulder: “We’re all in the same boat;
-don’t desert us. And yet, why the devil should
-you stay, if you can get another charge?”</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>“It was Orde’s,” said Tallantire simply.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>“Well, it’s Dé’s now. He’s a Bengali of the
-Bengalis, crammed with code and case law; a
-beautiful man so far as routine and deskwork go,
-and pleasant to talk to. They naturally have always
-kept him in his own home district, where all
-his sisters and his cousins and his aunts lived,
-somewhere south of Dacca. He did no more than
-turn the place into a pleasant little family preserve,
-allowed his subordinates to do what they liked, and
-let everybody have a chance at the shekels. Consequently
-he’s immensely popular down there.”</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>“I’ve nothing to do with that. How on earth
-am I to explain to the district that they are going
-to be governed by a Bengali? Do you—does
-the Government, I mean—suppose that the
-Khusru Kheyl will sit quiet when they once know?
-What will the Mahomedan heads of villages say?
-How will the police—Muzbi Sikhs and Pathans—how
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_179'>179</span>will <em>they</em> work under him? We couldn’t
-say anything if the Government appointed a
-sweeper; but my people will say a good deal, you
-know that. It’s a piece of cruel folly!”</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>“My dear boy, I know all that, and more. I’ve
-represented it, and have been told that I am exhibiting
-‘culpable and puerile prejudice.’ By
-Jove, if the Khusru Kheyl don’t exhibit something
-worse than that I don’t know the Border!
-The chances are that you will have the district
-alight on your hands, and I shall have to leave
-my work and help you pull through. I needn’t
-ask you to stand by the Bengali man in every possible
-way. You’ll do that for your own sake.”</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>“For Orde’s. I can’t say that I care twopence
-personally.”</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>“Don’t be an ass. It’s grievous enough, God
-knows, and the Government will know later on;
-but that’s no reason for your sulking. <em>You</em> must
-try to run the district; <em>you</em> must stand between him
-and as much insult as possible; <em>you</em> must show him
-the ropes; <em>you</em> must pacify the Khusru Kheyl, and
-just warn Curbar of the Police to look out for trouble
-by the way. I’m always at the end of a telegraph-wire,
-and willing to peril my reputation to
-hold the district together. You’ll lose yours, of
-course. If you keep things straight, and he isn’t
-actually beaten with a stick when he’s on tour,
-he’ll get all the credit. If anything goes wrong,
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_180'>180</span>you’ll be told that you didn’t support him
-loyally.”</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>“I know what I’ve got to do,” said Tallantire
-wearily, “and I’m going to do it. But it’s hard.”</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>“The work is with us, the event is with Allah,—as
-Orde used to say when he was more than
-usually in hot water.” And Bullows rode away.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>That two gentlemen in Her Majesty’s Bengal
-Civil Service should thus discuss a third, also in
-that service, and a cultured and affable man withal,
-seems strange and saddening. Yet listen to the
-artless babble of the Blind Mullah of Jagai, the
-priest of the Khusru Kheyl, sitting upon a rock
-overlooking the Border. Five years before, a
-chance-hurled shell from a screw-gun battery had
-dashed earth in the face of the Mullah, then urging
-a rush of Ghazis against half a dozen British
-bayonets. So he became blind, and hated the
-English none the less for the little accident.
-<a id='corr180.20'></a><span class='htmlonly'><ins class='correction' title='Yardely-Orde'>Yardley-Orde</ins></span><span class='epubonly'><a href='#c_180.20'><ins class='correction' title='Yardely-Orde'>Yardley-Orde</ins></a></span> knew his failing, and had many
-times laughed at him therefor.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>“Dogs you are,” said the Blind Mullah to the
-listening tribesmen round the fire. “Whipped dogs!
-Because you listened to Orde Sahib and called
-him father and behaved as his children, the British
-Government have proven how they regard you.
-Orde Sahib ye know is dead.”</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>“Ai! ai! ai!” said half a dozen voices.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>“He was a man. Comes now in his stead, whom
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_181'>181</span>think ye? A Bengali of Bengal—an eater of fish
-from the South.”</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>“A lie!” said Khoda Dad Khan. “And but
-for the small matter of thy priesthood, I’d drive
-my gun, butt first, down thy throat.”</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>“Oho, art thou there, lickspittle of the English?
-Go in to-morrow across the Border to pay service
-to Orde Sahib’s successor, and thou shalt slip thy
-shoes at the tent-door of a Bengali, as thou shalt
-hand thy offering to a Bengali’s black fist. This
-I know; and in my youth, when a young man
-spoke evil to a Mullah holding the doors of
-Heaven and Hell, the gun-butt was not rammed
-down the Mullah’s gullet. No!”</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>The Blind Mullah hated Khoda Dad Khan with
-Afghan hatred, both being rivals for the headship
-of the tribe; but the latter was feared for bodily as
-the other for spiritual gifts. Khoda Dad Khan
-looked at Orde’s ring and grunted, “I go in to-morrow
-because I am not an old fool, preaching
-war against the English. If the Government,
-smitten with madness, have done this, then....”</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>“Then,” croaked the Mullah, “thou wilt take
-out the young men and strike at the four villages
-within the Border?”</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>“Or wring thy neck, black raven of Jehannum,
-for a bearer of ill-tidings.”</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>Khoda Dad Khan oiled his long locks with
-great care, put on his best Bokhara belt, a new
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_182'>182</span>turban-cap and fine green shoes, and accompanied
-by a few friends came down from the hills to pay
-a visit to the new Deputy Commissioner of Kot-Kumharsen.
-Also he bore tribute—four or five
-priceless gold mohurs of Akbar’s time in a white
-handkerchief. These the Deputy Commissioner
-would touch and remit. The little ceremony
-used to be a sign that, so far as Khoda Dad Khan’s
-personal influence went, the Khusru Kheyl would
-be good boys,—till the next time; especially if
-Khoda Dad Khan happened to like the new
-Deputy Commissioner. In <a id='corr182.12'></a><span class='htmlonly'><ins class='correction' title='Yardely-Orde’s'>Yardley-Orde’s</ins></span><span class='epubonly'><a href='#c_182.12'><ins class='correction' title='Yardely-Orde’s'>Yardley-Orde’s</ins></a></span> consulship
-his visit concluded with a sumptuous dinner
-and perhaps forbidden liquors; certainly with some
-wonderful tales and great good-fellowship. Then
-Khoda Dad Khan would swagger back to his hold,
-vowing that Orde Sahib was one prince and Tallantire
-Sahib another, and that whosoever went a-raiding
-into British territory would be flayed alive. On
-this occasion he found the Deputy Commissioner’s
-tents looking much as usual. Regarding himself
-as privileged, he strode through the open door to
-confront a suave, portly Bengali in English costume,
-writing at a table. Unversed in the elevating
-influence of education, and not in the least
-caring for university degrees, Khoda Dad Khan
-promptly set the man down for a Babu—the
-native clerk of the Deputy Commissioner—a
-hated and despised animal.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'><span class='pageno' id='Page_183'>183</span>“Ugh!” said he cheerfully. “Where’s your
-master, Babujee?”</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>“I am the Deputy Commissioner,” said the
-gentleman in English.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>Now he overvalued the effects of university degrees,
-and stared Khoda Dad Khan in the face.
-But if from your earliest infancy you have been
-accustomed to look on battle, murder, and sudden
-death, if spilt blood affects your nerves as much
-as red paint, and, above all, if you have faithfully
-believed that the Bengali was the servant of all
-Hindustan, and that all Hindustan was vastly inferior
-to your own large, lustful self, you can
-endure, even though uneducated, a very large
-amount of looking over. You can even stare
-down a graduate of an Oxford college if the latter
-has been born in a hothouse, of stock bred in a
-hothouse, and fearing physical pain as some men
-fear sin; especially if your opponent’s mother has
-frightened him to sleep in his youth with horrible
-stories of devils inhabiting Afghanistan, and dismal
-legends of the black North. The eyes behind
-the gold spectacles sought the floor. Khoda
-Dad Khan chuckled, and swung out to find Tallantire
-hard by. “Here,” said he roughly, thrusting
-the coins before him, “touch and remit. That
-answers for <em>my</em> good behaviour. But, O Sahib,
-has the Government gone mad to send a black
-Bengali dog to us? And am I to pay service to
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_184'>184</span>such an one? And are you to work under him?
-What does it mean?”</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>“It is an order,” said Tallantire. He had expected
-something of this kind. “He is a very
-clever S-sahib.”</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>“He a Sahib! He’s a <em>kala admi</em>—a black man—unfit
-to run at the tail of a potter’s donkey.
-All the peoples of the earth have harried Bengal.
-It is written. Thou knowest when we of the
-North wanted women or plunder whither went we?
-To Bengal—where else? What child’s talk is
-this of Sahibdom—after Orde Sahib too! Of a
-truth the Blind Mullah was right.”</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>“What of him?” asked Tallantire uneasily.
-He mistrusted that old man with his dead eyes
-and his deadly tongue.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>“Nay, now, because of the oath that I sware to
-Orde Sahib when we watched him die by the river
-yonder, I will tell. In the first place, is it true
-that the English have set the heel of the Bengali
-on their own neck, and that there is no more
-English rule in the land?”</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>“I am here,” said Tallantire, “and I serve the
-Maharanee of England.”</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>“The Mullah said otherwise, and further that
-because we loved Orde Sahib the Government sent
-us a pig to show that we were dogs who till now
-have been held by the strong hand. Also that
-they were taking away the white soldiers, that
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_185'>185</span>more Hindustanis might come, and that all was
-changing.”</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>This is the worst of ill-considered handling of
-a very large country. What looks so feasible in
-Calcutta, so right in Bombay, so unassailable in
-Madras, is misunderstood by the North and entirely
-changes its complexion on the banks of the
-Indus. Khoda Dad Khan explained as clearly as he
-could that, though he himself intended to be good,
-he really could not answer for the more reckless
-members of his tribe under the leadership of the
-Blind Mullah. They might or they might not give
-trouble, but they certainly had no intention whatever
-of obeying the new Deputy Commissioner.
-Was Tallantire perfectly sure that in the event of
-any systematic border-raiding the force in the district
-could put it down promptly?</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>“Tell the Mullah if he talks any more fool’s
-talk,” said Tallantire curtly, “that he takes his
-men on to certain death, and his tribe to blockade,
-trespass-fine, and blood-money. But why do
-I talk to one who no longer carries weight in the
-counsels of the tribe?”</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>Khoda Dad Khan pocketed that insult. He
-had learned something that he much wanted to
-know, and returned to his hills to be sarcastically
-complimented by the Mullah, whose tongue raging
-round the camp-fires was deadlier flame than
-ever dung-cake fed.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'><span class='pageno' id='Page_186'>186</span>IV</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>Be pleased to consider here for a moment the
-unknown district of Kot-Kumharsen. It lay cut
-lengthways by the Indus under the line of the
-Khusru hills—ramparts of useless earth and tumbled
-stone. It was seventy miles long by fifty
-broad, maintained a population of something less
-than two hundred thousand, and paid taxes to the
-extent of forty thousand pounds a year on an area
-that was by rather more than half sheer, hopeless
-waste. The cultivators were not gentle people,
-the miners for salt were less gentle still, and the
-cattle-breeders least gentle of all. A police-post in
-the top right-hand corner and a tiny mud fort in
-the top left-hand corner prevented as much salt-smuggling
-and cattle-lifting as the influence of the
-civilians could not put down; and in the bottom
-right-hand corner lay Jumala, the district headquarters—a
-pitiful knot of lime-washed barns
-facetiously rented as houses, reeking with frontier
-fever, leaking in the rain, and ovens in the
-summer.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>It was to this place that Grish Chunder Dé was
-travelling, there formally to take over charge of
-the district. But the news of his coming had gone
-before. Bengalis were as scarce as poodles among
-the simple Borderers, who cut each other’s heads
-open with their long spades and worshipped impartially
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_187'>187</span>at Hindu and Mahomedan shrines. They
-crowded to see him, pointing at him, and diversely
-comparing him to a gravid milch-buffalo, or a
-broken-down horse, as their limited range of metaphor
-prompted. They laughed at his police-guard,
-and wished to know how long the burly Sikhs were
-going to lead Bengali apes. They inquired whether
-he had brought his women with him, and advised
-him explicitly not to tamper with theirs.
-It remained for a wrinkled hag by the roadside to
-slap her lean breasts as he passed, crying, “I have
-suckled six that could have eaten six thousand of
-<em>him</em>. The Government shot them, and made this
-That a king!” Whereat a blue-turbaned huge-boned
-plough-mender shouted, “Have hope,
-mother o’ mine! He may yet go the way of thy
-wastrels.” And the children, the little brown puff-balls,
-regarded curiously. It was generally a good
-thing for infancy to stray into Orde Sahib’s tent,
-where copper coins were to be won for the mere
-wishing, and tales of the most authentic, such as
-even their mothers knew but the first half of. No!
-This fat black man could never tell them how Pir
-Prith hauled the eye-teeth out of ten devils; how
-the big stones came to lie all in a row on top of
-the Khusru hills, and what happened if you shouted
-through the village-gate to the gray wolf at even,
-“Badl Khas is dead.” Meantime Grish Chunder
-Dé talked hastily and much to Tallantire, after the
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_188'>188</span>manner of those who are “more English than the
-English,”—of Oxford and “home,” with much curious
-book-knowledge of bump-suppers, cricket-matches,
-hunting-runs, and other unholy sports of
-the alien. “We must get these fellows in hand,”
-he said once or twice uneasily; “get them well in
-hand, and drive them on a tight rein. No use,
-you know, being slack with your district.”</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>And a moment later Tallantire heard Debendra
-Nath Dé, who brotherliwise had followed his kinsman’s
-fortune and hoped for the shadow of his
-protection as a pleader, whisper in Bengali,
-“Better are dried fish at Dacca than drawn swords
-at Delhi. Brother of mine, these men are devils,
-as our mother said. And you will always have to
-ride upon a horse!”</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>That night there was a public audience in a
-broken-down little town thirty miles from Jumala,
-when the new Deputy Commissioner, in reply to
-the greetings of the subordinate native officials,
-delivered a speech. It was a carefully thought out
-speech, which would have been very valuable had
-not his third sentence begun with three innocent
-words, “<em>Hamara hookum hai</em>—It is my order.”
-Then there was a laugh, clear and bell-like, from
-the back of the big tent, where a few border landholders
-sat, and the laugh grew and scorn mingled
-with it, and the lean, keen face of Debendra Nath
-Dé paled, and Grish Chunder, turning to Tallantire,
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_189'>189</span>spake: “<em>You</em>—you put up this arrangement.”
-Upon that instant the noise of hoofs rang without,
-and there entered Curbar, the District Superintendent
-of Police, sweating and dusty. The
-State had tossed him into a corner of the province
-for seventeen weary years, there to check smuggling
-of salt, and to hope for promotion that never came.
-He had forgotten how to keep his white uniform
-clean, had screwed rusty spurs into patent-leather
-shoes, and clothed his head indifferently with a
-helmet or a turban. Soured, old, worn with
-heat and cold, he waited till he should be
-entitled to sufficient pension to keep him from
-starving.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>“Tallantire,” said he, disregarding Grish
-Chunder Dé, “come outside. I want to speak to
-you.” They withdrew. “It’s this,” continued
-Curbar. “The Khusru Kheyl have rushed and
-cut up half a dozen of the coolies on Ferris’s new
-canal-embankment; killed a couple of men and
-carried off a woman. I wouldn’t trouble you
-about that—Ferris is after them and Hugonin,
-my assistant, with ten mounted police. But that’s
-only the beginning, I fancy. Their fires are out
-on the Hassan Ardeb heights, and unless we’re
-pretty quick there’ll be a flare-up all along our
-Border. They are sure to raid the four Khusru
-villages on our side of the line; there’s been bad
-blood between them for years; and you know the
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_190'>190</span>Blind Mullah has been preaching a holy war since
-Orde went out. What’s your notion?”</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>“Damn!” said Tallantire thoughtfully.
-“They’ve begun quick. Well, it seems to me
-I’d better ride off to Fort Ziar and get what men
-I can there to picket among the lowland villages,
-if it’s not too late. Tommy Dodd commands at
-Fort Ziar, I think. Ferris and Hugonin ought to
-teach the canal-thieves a lesson, and——No, we
-can’t have the Head of the Police ostentatiously
-guarding the Treasury. You go back to the canal.
-I’ll wire Bullows to come into Jumala with a
-strong police-guard, and sit on the Treasury. They
-won’t touch the place, but it looks well.”</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>“I—I—I insist upon knowing what this
-means,” said the voice of the Deputy Commissioner,
-who had followed the speakers.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>“Oh!” said Curbar, who, being in the Police,
-could not understand that fifteen years of education
-must, on principle, change the Bengali into
-a Briton. “There has been a fight on the Border,
-and heaps of men are killed. There’s going
-to be another fight, and heaps more will be
-killed.”</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>“What for?”</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>“Because the teeming millions of this district
-don’t exactly approve of you, and think that under
-your benign rule they are going to have a
-good time. It strikes me that you had better
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_191'>191</span>make arrangements. I act, as you know, by your
-orders. What do you advise?”</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>“I—I take you all to witness that I have not
-yet assumed charge of the district,” stammered
-the Deputy Commissioner, not in the tones of the
-“more English.”</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>“Ah, I thought so. Well, as I was saying,
-Tallantire, your plan is sound. Carry it out. Do
-you want an escort?”</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>“No; only a decent horse. But how about
-wiring to headquarters?”</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>“I fancy, from the colour of his cheeks, that
-your superior officer will send some wonderful
-telegrams before the night’s over. Let him do
-that, and we shall have half the troops of the
-province coming up to see what’s the trouble.
-Well, run along, and take care of yourself—the
-Khusru Kheyl jab upwards from below, remember.
-Ho! Mir Khan, give Tallantire Sahib the
-best of the horses, and tell five men to ride to
-Jumala with the Deputy Commissioner Sahib
-Bahadur. There is a hurry toward.”</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>There was; and it was not in the least bettered
-by Debendra Nath Dé clinging to a policeman’s
-bridle and demanding the shortest, the very shortest
-way to Jumala. Now originality is fatal to
-the Bengali. Debendra Nath should have stayed
-with his brother, who rode steadfastly for Jumala
-on the railway-line, thanking gods entirely unknown
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_192'>192</span>to the most catholic of universities that
-he had not taken charge of the district, and could
-still—happy resource of a fertile race!—fall sick.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>And I grieve to say that when he reached his
-goal two policemen, not devoid of rude wit, who
-had been conferring together as they bumped in
-their saddles, arranged an entertainment for his
-behoof. It consisted of first one and then the
-other entering his room with prodigious details
-of war, the massing of bloodthirsty and devilish
-tribes, and the burning of towns. It was almost
-as good, said these scamps, as riding with Curbar
-after evasive Afghans. Each invention kept the
-hearer at work for half an hour on telegrams which
-the sack of Delhi would hardly have justified. To
-every power that could move a bayonet or transfer
-a terrified man, Grish Chunder Dé appealed telegraphically.
-He was alone, his assistants had
-fled, and in truth he had not taken over charge
-of the district. Had the telegrams been despatched
-many things would have occurred; but
-since the only signaller in Jumala had gone to
-bed, and the station-master, after one look at the
-tremendous pile of paper, discovered that railway
-regulations forbade the forwarding of imperial
-messages, policemen Ram Singh and Nihal Singh
-were fain to turn the stuff into a pillow and slept
-on it very comfortably.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>Tallantire drove his spurs into a rampant skewbald
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_193'>193</span>stallion with china-blue eyes, and settled
-himself for the forty-mile ride to Fort Ziar.
-Knowing his district blindfold, he wasted no time
-hunting for short cuts, but headed across the richer
-grazing-ground to the ford where Orde had died
-and been buried. The dusty ground deadened
-the noise of his horse’s hoofs, the moon threw his
-shadow, a restless goblin, before him, and the
-heavy dew drenched him to the skin. Hillock,
-scrub that brushed against the horse’s belly, unmetalled
-road where the whip-like foliage of the
-tamarisks lashed his forehead, illimitable levels of
-lowland furred with bent and speckled with drowsing
-cattle, waste, and hillock anew, dragged themselves
-past, and the skewbald was labouring in
-the deep sand of the Indus-ford. Tallantire was
-conscious of no distinct thought till the nose of
-the dawdling ferry-boat grounded on the farther
-side, and his horse shied snorting at the white
-headstone of Orde’s grave. Then he uncovered,
-and shouted that the dead might hear, “They’re
-out, old man! Wish me luck.” In the chill of
-the dawn he was hammering with a stirrup-iron
-at the gate of Fort Ziar, where fifty sabres of that
-tattered regiment, the Belooch Beshaklis, were
-supposed to guard Her Majesty’s interests along
-a few hundred miles of Border. This particular
-fort was commanded by a subaltern, who, born
-of the ancient family of the Derouletts, naturally
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_194'>194</span>answered to the name of Tommy Dodd. Him
-Tallantire found robed in a sheepskin coat, shaking
-with fever like an aspen, and trying to read
-the native apothecary’s list of invalids.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>“So you’ve come, too,” said he. “Well, we’re
-all sick here, and I don’t think I can horse thirty
-men; but we’re bub-bub-bub-blessed willing.
-Stop, does this impress you as a trap or a lie?”
-He tossed a scrap of paper to Tallantire, on which
-was written painfully in crabbed Gurmukhi, “We
-cannot hold young horses. They will feed after
-the moon goes down in the four border villages
-issuing from the Jagai pass on the next night.”
-Then in English round hand—“Your sincere
-friend.”</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>“Good man!” said Tallantire. “That’s Khoda
-Dad Khan’s work, I know. It’s the only piece of
-English he could ever keep in his head, and he is
-immensely proud of it. He is playing against the
-Blind Mullah for his own hand—the treacherous
-young ruffian!”</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>“Don’t know the politics of the Khusru Kheyl,
-but if you’re satisfied, I am. That was pitched in
-over the gate-head last night, and I thought we
-might pull ourselves together and see what was
-on. Oh, but we’re sick with fever here, and no
-mistake! Is this going to be a big business, think
-you?” said Tommy Dodd.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>Tallantire gave him briefly the outlines of the
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_195'>195</span>case, and Tommy Dodd whistled and shook with
-fever alternately. That day he devoted to strategy,
-the art of war, and the enlivenment of the invalids,
-till at dusk there stood ready forty-two troopers,
-lean, worn, and dishevelled, whom Tommy Dodd
-surveyed with pride, and addressed thus: “O
-men! If you die you will go to Hell. Therefore
-endeavour to keep alive. But if you go to Hell
-that place cannot be hotter than this place, and we
-are not told that we shall there suffer from fever.
-Consequently be not afraid of dying. File out
-there!” They grinned, and went.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>V</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>It will be long ere the Khusru Kheyl forget
-their night attack on the lowland villages. The
-Mullah had promised an easy victory and unlimited
-plunder; but behold, armed troopers of
-the Queen had risen out of the very earth, cutting,
-slashing, and riding down under the stars, so that
-no man knew where to turn, and all feared that
-they had brought an army about their ears, and
-ran back to the hills. In the panic of that flight
-more men were seen to drop from wounds inflicted
-by an Afghan knife jabbed upwards, and yet more
-from long-range carbine-fire. Then there rose a
-cry of treachery, and when they reached their own
-guarded heights, they had left, with some forty
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_196'>196</span>dead and sixty wounded, all their confidence in
-the Blind Mullah on the plains below. They
-clamoured, swore, and argued round the fires;
-the women wailing for the lost, and the Mullah
-shrieking curses on the returned.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>Then Khoda Dad Khan, eloquent and unbreathed,
-for he had taken no part in the fight,
-rose to improve the occasion. He pointed out
-that the tribe owed every item of its present misfortune
-to the Blind Mullah, who had lied in every
-possible particular and talked them into a trap. It
-was undoubtedly an insult that a Bengali, the son
-of a Bengali, should presume to administer the
-Border, but that fact did not, as the Mullah pretended,
-herald a general time of license and lifting;
-and the inexplicable madness of the English had
-not in the least impaired their power of guarding
-their marches. On the contrary, the baffled and
-out-generalled tribe would now, just when their
-food-stock was lowest, be blockaded from any
-trade with Hindustan until they had sent hostages
-for good behaviour, paid compensation for disturbance,
-and blood-money at the rate of thirty-six
-English pounds per head for every villager that
-they might have slain. “And ye know that those
-lowland dogs will make oath that we have slain
-scores. Will the Mullah pay the fines or must we
-sell our guns?” A low growl ran round the fires.
-“Now, seeing that all this is the Mullah’s work,
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_197'>197</span>and that we have gained nothing but promises of
-Paradise thereby, it is in my heart that we of the
-Khusru Kheyl lack a shrine whereat to pray. We
-are weakened, and henceforth how shall we dare to
-cross into the Madar Kheyl border, as has been
-our custom, to kneel to Pir Sajji’s tomb? The
-Madar men will fall upon us, and rightly. But
-our Mullah is a holy man. He has helped two
-score of us into Paradise this night. Let him
-therefore accompany his flock, and we will build
-over his body a dome of the blue tiles of Mooltan,
-and burn lamps at his feet every Friday night. He
-shall be a saint; we shall have a shrine; and there
-our women shall pray for fresh seed to fill the gaps
-in our fighting-tale. How think you?”</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>A grim chuckle followed the suggestion, and
-the soft <em>wheep, wheep</em> of unscabbarded knives followed
-the chuckle. It was an excellent notion,
-and met a long-felt want of the tribe. The Mullah
-sprang to his feet, glaring with withered eyeballs
-at the drawn death he could not see, and calling
-down the curses of God and Mahomed on the
-tribe. Then began a game of blind man’s buff
-round and between the fires, whereof Khuruk Shah,
-the tribal poet, has sung in verse that will not die.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>They tickled him gently under the armpit with
-the knife-point. He leaped aside screaming, only
-to feel a cold blade drawn lightly over the back
-of his neck, or a rifle-muzzle rubbing his beard.
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_198'>198</span>He called on his adherents to aid him, but most
-of these lay dead on the plains, for Khoda Dad
-Khan had been at some pains to arrange their decease.
-Men described to him the glories of the
-shrine they would build, and the little children,
-clapping their hands, cried, “Run, Mullah, run!
-There’s a man behind you!” In the end, when
-the sport wearied, Khoda Dad Khan’s brother sent
-a knife home between his ribs. “Wherefore,”
-said Khoda Dad Khan with charming simplicity,
-“I am now Chief of the Khusru Kheyl!” No
-man gainsaid him; and they all went to sleep very
-stiff and sore.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>On the plain below Tommy Dodd was lecturing
-on the beauties of a cavalry charge by night, and
-Tallantire, bowed on his saddle, was gasping hysterically
-because there was a sword dangling from
-his wrist flecked with the blood of the Khusru
-Kheyl, the tribe that Orde had kept in leash so
-well. When a Rajpoot trooper pointed out that
-the skewbald’s right ear had been taken off at the
-root by some blind slash of its unskilled rider,
-Tallantire broke down altogether, and laughed
-and sobbed till Tommy Dodd made him lie down
-and rest.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>“We must wait about till the morning,” said he.
-“I wired to the Colonel, just before we left, to send
-a wing of the Beshaklis after us. He’ll be furious
-with me for monopolizing the fun, though. Those
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_199'>199</span>beggars in the hills won’t give us any more
-trouble.”</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>“Then tell the Beshaklis to go on and see what
-has happened to Curbar on the canal. We must
-patrol the whole line of the Border. You’re quite
-sure, Tommy, that—that stuff was—was only
-the skewbald’s ear?”</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>“Oh, quite,” said Tommy. “You just missed
-cutting off his head. <em>I</em> saw you when we went
-into the mess. Sleep, old man.”</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>Noon brought two squadrons of Beshaklis and
-a knot of furious brother officers demanding the
-court-martial of Tommy Dodd for “spoiling the
-picnic,” and a gallop across country to the canal-works
-where Ferris, Curbar, and Hugonin were
-haranguing the terror-stricken coolies on the enormity
-of abandoning good work and high pay,
-merely because half a dozen of their fellows had
-been cut down. The sight of a troop of the Beshaklis
-restored wavering confidence, and the police-hunted
-section of the Khusru Kheyl had the
-joy of watching the canal-bank humming with life
-as usual, while such of their men as had taken
-refuge in the water-courses and ravines were being
-driven out by the troopers. By sundown began
-the remorseless patrol of the Border by police and
-trooper, most like the cow-boys’ eternal ride round
-restless cattle.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>“Now,” said Khoda Dad Khan to his fellows,
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_200'>200</span>pointing out a line of twinkling fires below, “ye
-may see how far the old order changes. After
-their horse will come the little devil-guns that they
-can drag up to the tops of the hills, and, for aught
-I know, to the clouds when we crown the hills.
-If the tribe-council thinks good, I will go to Tallantire
-Sahib—who loves me—and see if I can
-stave off at least the blockade. Do I speak for
-the tribe?”</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>“Ay, speak for the tribe in God’s name. How
-those accursed fires wink! Do the English send
-their troops on the wire—or is this the work of
-the Bengali?”</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>As Khoda Dad Khan went down the hill he
-was delayed by an interview with a hard-pressed
-tribesman, which caused him to return hastily for
-something he had forgotten. Then, handing
-himself over to the two troopers who had been
-chasing his friend, he claimed escort to Tallantire
-Sahib, then with Bullows at Jumala. The Border
-was safe, and the time for reasons in writing had
-begun.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>“Thank Heaven,” said Bullows, “that the
-trouble came at once. Of course we can never
-put down the reason in black and white, but all
-India will understand. And it is better to have a
-sharp, short outbreak than five years of impotent
-administration inside the Border. It costs less.
-Grish Chunder Dé has reported himself sick, and
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_201'>201</span>has been transferred to his own province without
-any sort of reprimand. He was strong on not
-having taken over the district.”</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>“Of course,” said Tallantire bitterly. “Well,
-what am I supposed to have done that was
-wrong?”</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>“Oh, you will be told that you exceeded all
-your powers, and should have reported, and written,
-and advised for three weeks until the Khusru
-Kheyl could really come down in force. But I
-don’t think the authorities will dare to make a fuss
-about it. They’ve had their lesson. Have you
-seen Curbar’s version of the affair? He can’t
-write a report, but he can speak the truth.”</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>“What’s the use of the truth? He’d much
-better tear up the report. I’m sick and heart-broken
-over it all. It was so utterly unnecessary—except
-in that it rid us of the Babu.”</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>Entered unabashed Khoda Dad Khan, a stuffed
-forage-net in his hand, and the troopers behind him.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>“May you never be tired!” said he cheerily.
-“Well, Sahibs, that was a good fight, and Naim
-Shah’s mother is in debt to you, Tallantire Sahib.
-A clean cut, they tell me, through jaw, wadded
-coat, and deep into the collar-bone. Well done!
-But I speak for the tribe. There has been a fault—a
-great fault. Thou knowest that I and mine,
-Tallantire Sahib, kept the oath we sware to Orde
-Sahib on the banks of the Indus.”</p>
-
-<p class='c001'><span class='pageno' id='Page_202'>202</span>“As an Afghan keeps his knife—sharp on one
-side, blunt on the other,” said Tallantire.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>“The better swing in the blow, then. But I
-speak God’s truth. Only the Blind Mullah carried
-the young men on the tip of his tongue, and
-said that there was no more Border-law because a
-Bengali had been sent, and we need not fear the
-English at all. So they came down to avenge
-that insult and get plunder. Ye know what befell,
-and how far I helped. Now five score of us
-are dead or wounded, and we are all shamed and
-sorry, and desire no further war. Moreover, that
-ye may better listen to us, we have taken off the
-head of the Blind Mullah, whose evil counsels
-have led us to folly. I bring it for proof,”—and
-he heaved on the floor the head. “He will give
-no more trouble, for <em>I</em> am chief now, and so I sit
-in a higher place at all audiences. Yet there is
-an offset to this head. That was another fault.
-One of the men found that black Bengali beast,
-through whom this trouble arose, wandering on
-horseback and weeping. Reflecting that he had
-caused loss of much good life, Alla Dad Khan,
-whom, if you choose, I will to-morrow shoot,
-whipped off this head, and I bring it to you to
-cover your shame, that ye may bury it. See, no
-man kept the spectacles, though they were of gold.”</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>Slowly rolled to Tallantire’s feet the crop-haired
-head of a spectacled Bengali gentleman, open-eyed,
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_203'>203</span>open-mouthed—the head of Terror incarnate.
-Bullows bent down. “Yet another blood-fine
-and a heavy one, Khoda Dad Khan, for this is
-the head of Debendra Nath, the man’s brother.
-The Babu is safe long since. All but the fools of
-the Khusru Kheyl know that.”</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>“Well, I care not for carrion. Quick meat for
-me. The thing was under our hills asking the
-road to Jumala, and Alla Dad Khan showed him
-the road to Jehannum, being, as thou sayest, but
-a fool. Remains now what the Government will
-do to us. As to the blockade——”</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>“Who art thou, seller of dog’s flesh,” thundered
-Tallantire, “to speak of terms and treaties? Get
-hence to the hills—go and wait there, starving,
-till it shall please the Government to call thy people
-out for punishment—children and fools that
-ye be! Count your dead, and be still. Rest assured
-that the Government will send you a <em>man</em>!”</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>“Ay,” returned Khoda Dad Khan, “for we also
-be men.”</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>As he looked Tallantire between the eyes, he
-added, “And by God, Sahib, may thou be that
-man!”</p>
-
-<div class='chapter'>
- <span class='pageno' id='Page_204'>204</span>
- <h2 class='c004'>THE AMIR’S HOMILY</h2>
-</div>
-
-<div class='nf-center-c0'>
-<div class='nf-center c002'>
- <div><span class='small'>Copyright, 1891, by Macmillan &amp; Co.</span></div>
- </div>
-</div>
-
-<p class='c005'>His Royal Highness Abdur Rahman, Amir of
-Afghanistan, G. C. S. I., and trusted ally of Her
-Imperial Majesty the Queen of England and Empress
-of India, is a gentleman for whom all right-thinking
-people should have a profound regard.
-Like most other rulers, he governs not as he would,
-but as he can, and the mantle of his authority covers
-the most turbulent race under the stars. To
-the Afghan neither life, property, law, nor kingship
-are sacred when his own lusts prompt him to
-rebel. He is a thief by instinct, a murderer by
-heredity and training, and frankly and bestially immoral
-by all three. None the less he has his own
-crooked notions of honour, and his character is
-fascinating to study. On occasion he will fight
-without reason given till he is hacked in pieces;
-on other occasions he will refuse to show fight till
-he is driven into a corner. Herein he is as unaccountable
-as the gray wolf, who is his blood-brother.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>And these men His Highness rules by the only
-weapon that they understand—the fear of death,
-which among some Orientals is the beginning of
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_205'>205</span>wisdom. Some say that the Amir’s authority
-reaches no farther than a rifle-bullet can range; but
-as none are quite certain when their king may be
-in their midst, and as he alone holds every one of
-the threads of Government, his respect is increased
-among men. Gholam Hyder, the Commander-in-chief
-of the Afghan army, is feared reasonably,
-for he can impale; all Kabul city fears the Governor
-of Kabul, who has power of life and death
-through all the wards; but the Amir of Afghanistan,
-though outlying tribes pretend otherwise when
-his back is turned, is dreaded beyond chief and
-governor together. His word is red law; by the
-gust of his passion falls the leaf of man’s life, and
-his favour is terrible. He has suffered many things,
-and been a hunted fugitive before he came to the
-throne, and he understands all the classes of his
-people. By the custom of the East any man or
-woman having a complaint to make, or an enemy
-against whom to be avenged, has the right of
-speaking face to face with the king at the daily
-public audience. This is personal government, as
-it was in the days of Harun al Raschid of blessed
-memory, whose times exist still and will exist long
-after the English have passed away.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>The privilege of open speech is of course exercised
-at certain personal risk. The king may be
-pleased, and raise the speaker to honour for that
-very bluntness of speech which three minutes later
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_206'>206</span>brings a too imitative petitioner to the edge of the
-ever-ready blade. And the people love to have it
-so, for it is their right.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>It happened upon a day in Kabul that the Amir
-chose to do his day’s work in the Baber Gardens,
-which lie a short distance from the city of Kabul.
-A light table stood before him, and round the table
-in the open air were grouped generals and finance
-ministers according to their degree. The Court
-and the long tail of feudal chiefs—men of blood,
-fed and cowed by blood—stood in an irregular
-semicircle round the table, and the wind from the
-Kabul orchards blew among them. All day long
-sweating couriers dashed in with letters from the
-outlying districts with rumours of rebellion, intrigue,
-famine, failure of payments, or announcements
-of treasure on the road; and all day long
-the Amir would read the dockets, and pass such
-of these as were less private to the officials whom
-they directly concerned, or call up a waiting chief
-for a word of explanation. It is well to speak
-clearly to the ruler of Afghanistan. Then the
-grim head, under the black astrachan cap with the
-diamond star in front, would nod gravely, and that
-chief would return to his fellows. Once that afternoon
-a woman clamoured for divorce against her
-husband, who was bald, and the Amir, hearing
-both sides of the case, bade her pour curds over
-the bare scalp, and lick them off, that the hair
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_207'>207</span>might grow again, and she be contented. Here
-the Court laughed, and the woman withdrew, cursing
-her king under her breath.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>But when twilight was falling, and the order
-of the Court was a little relaxed, there came before
-the king, in custody, a trembling, haggard
-wretch, sore with much buffeting, but of stout
-enough build, who had stolen three rupees—of
-such small matters does His Highness take cognisance.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>“Why did you steal?” said he; and when the
-king asks questions they do themselves service
-who answer directly.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>“I was poor, and no one gave. Hungry, and
-there was no food.”</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>“Why did you not work?”</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>“I could find no work, Protector of the Poor,
-and I was starving.”</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>“You lie. You stole for drink, for lust, for
-idleness, for anything but hunger, since any man
-who will may find work and daily bread.”</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>The prisoner dropped his eyes. He had attended
-the Court before, and he knew the ring of
-the death-tone.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>“Any man may get work. Who knows this
-so well as I do? for I too have been hungered—not
-like you, bastard scum, but as any honest
-man may be, by the turn of Fate and the will of
-God.”</p>
-
-<p class='c001'><span class='pageno' id='Page_208'>208</span>Growing warm, the Amir turned to his nobles
-all arow, and thrust the hilt of his sabre aside with
-his elbow.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>“You have heard this Son of Lies? Hear me
-tell a true tale. I also was once starved, and
-tightened my belt on the sharp belly-pinch. Nor
-was I alone, for with me was another, who did not
-fail me in my evil days, when I was hunted, before
-ever I came to this throne. And wandering like
-a houseless dog by Kandahar, my money melted,
-melted, melted till——” He flung out a bare
-palm before the audience. “And day upon day,
-faint and sick, I went back to that one who waited,
-and God knows how we lived, till on a day I took
-our best <em>lihaf</em>—silk it was, fine work of Iran, such
-as no needle now works, warm, and a coverlet for
-two, and all that we had. I brought it to a money-lender
-in a by-lane, and I asked for three rupees
-upon it. He said to me, who am now the King,
-‘You are a thief. This is worth three hundred.’
-‘I am no thief,’ I answered, ‘but a prince of good
-blood, and I am hungry.’—‘Prince of wandering
-beggars,’ said that money-lender, ‘I have no
-money with me, but go to my house with my
-clerk and he will give you two rupees eight annas,
-for that is all I will lend.’ So I went with the
-clerk to the house, and we talked on the way, and
-he gave me the money. We lived on it till it
-was spent, and we fared hard. And then that
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_209'>209</span>clerk said, being a young man of a good heart,
-‘Surely the money-lender will lend yet more on
-that <em>lihaf</em>,’ and he offered me two rupees. These
-I refused, saying, ‘Nay; but get me some work.’
-And he got me work, and I, even I, Abdur Rahman,
-Amir of Afghanistan, wrought day by day
-as a coolie, bearing burdens, and labouring of my
-hands, receiving four annas wage a day for my
-sweat and backache. But he, this bastard son of
-naught, must steal! For a year and four months
-I worked, and none dare say that I lie, for I have
-a witness, even that clerk who is now my friend.”</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>Then there rose in his place among the Sirdars
-and the nobles one clad in silk, who folded his
-hands and said, “This is the truth of God, for I,
-who, by the favour of God and the Amir, am such
-as you know, was once clerk to that money-lender.”</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>There was a pause, and the Amir cried hoarsely
-to the prisoner, throwing scorn upon him, till he
-ended with the dread, “<em>Dar arid</em>,” which clinches
-justice.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>So they led the thief away, and the whole of
-him was seen no more together; and the Court
-rustled out of its silence, whispering, “Before God
-and the Prophet, but this is a man!”</p>
-
-<div class='chapter'>
- <span class='pageno' id='Page_210'>210</span>
- <h2 class='c004'>AT TWENTY-TWO</h2>
-</div>
-
-<p class='c012'>Narrow as the womb, deep as the Pit, and dark as the heart
-of a man.—<cite>Sonthal Miner’s Proverb.</cite></p>
-
-<p class='c005'>“A weaver went out to reap, but stayed to unravel
-the corn-stalks. Ha! Ha! Ha! Is there
-any sense in a weaver?”</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>Janki Meah glared at Kundoo, but, as Janki
-Meah was blind, Kundoo was not impressed. He
-had come to argue with Janki Meah, and, if
-chance favoured, to make love to the old man’s
-pretty young wife.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>This was Kundoo’s grievance, and he spoke in
-the name of all the five men who, with Janki
-Meah, composed the gang in Number Seven gallery
-of Twenty-Two. Janki Meah had been blind
-for the thirty years during which he had served
-the Jimahari Collieries with pick and crowbar.
-All through those thirty years he had regularly,
-every morning before going down, drawn from
-the overseer his allowance of lamp-oil—just as
-if he had been an eyed miner. What Kundoo’s
-gang resented, as hundreds of gangs had resented
-before, was Janki Meah’s selfishness. He would
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_211'>211</span>not add the oil to the common stock of his gang,
-but would save and sell it.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>“I knew these workings before you were born,”
-Janki Meah used to reply: “I don’t want the
-light to get my coal out by, and I am not going
-to help you. The oil is mine, and I intend to
-keep it.”</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>A strange man in many ways was Janki Meah,
-the white-haired, hot-tempered, sightless weaver
-who had turned pitman. All day long—except
-Sundays and Mondays, when he was usually
-drunk—he worked in the Twenty-Two shaft of
-the Jimahari Colliery as cleverly as a man with
-all the senses. At evening he went up in the
-great steam-hauled cage to the pit-bank, and there
-called for his pony—a rusty, coal-dusty beast,
-nearly as old as Janki Meah. The pony would
-come to his side, and Janki Meah would clamber
-on to its back and be taken at once to the plot of
-land which he, like the other miners, received from
-the Jimahari Company. The pony knew that
-place, and when, after six years, the Company
-changed all the allotments to prevent the miners
-from acquiring proprietary rights, Janki Meah
-represented, with tears in his eyes, that were his
-holding shifted, he would never be able to find his
-way to the new one. “My horse only knows
-that place,” pleaded Janki Meah, and so he was
-allowed to keep his land.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'><span class='pageno' id='Page_212'>212</span>On the strength of this concession and his accumulated
-oil-savings, Janki Meah took a second
-wife—a girl of the Jolaha main stock of the
-Meahs, and singularly beautiful. Janki Meah
-could not see her beauty; wherefore he took her
-on trust, and forbade her to go down the pit. He
-had not worked for thirty years in the dark without
-knowing that the pit was no place for pretty
-women. He loaded her with ornaments—not
-brass or pewter, but real silver ones—and she rewarded
-him by flirting outrageously with Kundoo
-of Number Seven gallery gang. Kundoo was
-really the gang-head, but Janki Meah insisted
-upon all the work being entered in his own name,
-and chose the men that he worked with. Custom—stronger
-even than the Jimahari Company—dictated
-that Janki, by right of his years, should
-manage these things, and should, also, work despite
-his blindness. In Indian mines, where they
-cut into the solid coal with the pick and clear it out
-from floor to ceiling, he could come to no great
-harm. At Home, where they undercut the coal
-and bring it down in crashing avalanches from the
-roof, he would never have been allowed to set foot
-in a pit. He was not a popular man, because of
-his oil-savings; but all the gangs admitted that
-Janki knew all the <em>khads</em>, or workings, that had ever
-been sunk or worked since the Jimahari Company
-first started operations on the Tarachunda fields.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'><span class='pageno' id='Page_213'>213</span>Pretty little Unda only knew that her old husband
-was a fool who could be managed. She took
-no interest in the collieries except in so far as they
-swallowed up Kundoo five days out of the seven,
-and covered him with coal-dust. Kundoo was a
-great workman, and did his best not to get drunk,
-because, when he had saved forty rupees, Unda
-was to steal everything that she could find in Janki’s
-house and run with Kundoo to a land where
-there were no mines, and every one kept three fat
-bullocks and a milch-buffalo. While this scheme
-ripened it was his custom to drop in upon Janki
-and worry him about the oil-savings. Unda sat
-in a corner and nodded approval. On the night
-when Kundoo had quoted that objectionable proverb
-about weavers, Janki grew angry.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>“Listen, you pig,” said he, “blind I am, and
-old I am, but, before ever you were born, I was
-gray among the coal. Even in the days when
-the Twenty-Two <em>khad</em> was unsunk and there
-were not two thousand men here, I was known
-to have all knowledge of the pits. What <em>khad</em>
-is there that I do not know, from the bottom
-of the shaft to the end of the last drive? Is
-it the Baromba <em>khad</em>, the oldest, or the Twenty-Two
-where Tibu’s gallery runs up to Number
-Five?”</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>“Hear the old fool talk!” said Kundoo, nodding
-to Unda. “No gallery of Twenty-Two will
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_214'>214</span>cut into Five before the end of the Rains. We
-have a month’s solid coal before us. The Babuji
-says so.”</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>“Babuji! Pigji! Dogji! What do these fat
-slugs from Calcutta know? He draws and draws
-and draws, and talks and talks and talks, and his
-maps are all wrong. I, Janki, know that this is
-so. When a man has been shut up in the dark
-for thirty years, God gives him knowledge. The
-old gallery that Tibu’s gang made is not six feet
-from Number Five.”</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>“Without doubt God gives the blind knowledge,”
-said Kundoo, with a look at Unda. “Let it
-be as you say. I, for my part, do not know where
-lies the gallery of Tibu’s gang, but <em>I</em> am not a
-withered monkey who needs oil to grease his
-joints with.”</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>Kundoo swung out of the hut laughing, and
-Unda giggled. Janki turned his sightless eyes
-toward his wife and swore. “I have land, and I
-have sold a great deal of lamp-oil,” mused Janki;
-“but I was a fool to marry this child.”</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>A week later the Rains set in with a vengeance,
-and the gangs paddled about in coal-slush at the
-pit-banks. Then the big mine-pumps were made
-ready, and the Manager of the Colliery ploughed
-through the wet towards the Tarachunda River
-swelling between its soppy banks. “Lord send
-that this beastly beck doesn’t misbehave,” said the
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_215'>215</span>Manager piously, and he went to take counsel with
-his Assistant about the pumps.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>But the Tarachunda misbehaved very much indeed.
-After a fall of three inches of rain in an
-hour it was obliged to do something. It topped
-its bank and joined the flood-water that was hemmed
-between two low hills just where the embankment
-of the Colliery main line crossed. When a large
-part of a rain-fed river, and a few acres of flood-water,
-make a dead set for a nine-foot culvert, the
-culvert may spout its finest, but the water cannot
-<em>all</em> get out. The Manager pranced upon one leg
-with excitement, and his language was improper.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>He had reason to swear, because he knew that
-one inch of water on land meant a pressure of one
-hundred tons to the acre; and here were about five
-feet of water forming, behind the railway embankment,
-over the shallower workings of Twenty-Two.
-You must understand that, in a coal-mine, the
-coal nearest the surface is worked first from the
-central shaft. That is to say, the miners may clear
-out the stuff to within ten, twenty, or thirty feet of
-the surface, and, when all is worked out, leave
-only a skin of earth upheld by some few pillars of
-coal. In a deep mine where they know that they
-have any amount of material at hand, men prefer
-to get all their mineral out at one shaft, rather than
-make a number of little holes to tap the comparatively
-unimportant surface-coal.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'><span class='pageno' id='Page_216'>216</span>And the Manager watched the flood.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>The culvert spouted a nine-foot gush; but the
-water still formed, and word was sent to clear the
-men out of <a id='corr216.4'></a><span class='htmlonly'><ins class='correction' title='Twenty-two'>Twenty-Two</ins></span><span class='epubonly'><a href='#c_216.4'><ins class='correction' title='Twenty-two'>Twenty-Two</ins></a></span>. The cages came up
-crammed and crammed again with the men nearest
-the pit-eye, as they call the place where you
-can see daylight from the bottom of the main shaft.
-All away and away up the long black galleries the
-flare-lamps were winking and dancing like so many
-fireflies, and the men and the women waited for
-the clanking, rattling, thundering cages to come
-down and fly up again. But the out-workings
-were very far off, and word could not be passed
-quickly, though the heads of the gangs and the
-Assistant shouted and swore and tramped and
-stumbled. The Manager kept one eye on the
-great troubled pool behind the embankment, and
-prayed that the culvert would give way and let
-the water through in time. With the other eye
-he watched the cages come up and saw the headmen
-counting the roll of the gangs. With all his
-heart and soul he swore at the winder who controlled
-the iron drum that wound up the wire rope
-on which hung the cages.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>In a little time there was a down-draw in the
-water behind the embankment—a sucking whirlpool,
-all yellow and yeasty. The water had
-smashed through the skin of the earth and was pouring
-into the old shallow workings of Twenty-Two.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'><span class='pageno' id='Page_217'>217</span>Deep down below, a rush of black water caught
-the last gang waiting for the cage, and as they
-clambered in the whirl was about their waists. The
-cage reached the pit-bank, and the Manager called
-the roll. The gangs were all safe except Gang
-Janki, Gang Mogul, and Gang Rahim, eighteen
-men, with perhaps ten basket-women who loaded
-the coal into the little iron carriages that ran on
-the tramways of the main galleries. These gangs
-were in the out-workings, three-quarters of a mile
-away, on the extreme fringe of the mine. Once
-more the cage went down, but with only two Englishmen
-in it, and dropped into a swirling, roaring
-current that had almost touched the roof of some
-of the lower side-galleries. One of the wooden
-balks with which they had propped the old workings
-shot past on the current, just missing the cage.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>“If we don’t want our ribs knocked out, we’d
-better go,” said the Manager. “We can’t even
-save the Company’s props.”</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>The cage drew out of the water with a splash,
-and a few minutes later it was officially reported
-that there were at least ten feet of water in the
-pit’s eye. Now ten feet of water there meant that
-all other places in the mine were flooded except
-such galleries as were more than ten feet above
-the level of the bottom of the shaft. The deep
-workings would be full, the main galleries would
-be full, but in the high workings reached by inclines
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_218'>218</span>from the main roads there would be a certain
-amount of air cut off, so to speak, by the
-water and squeezed up by it. The little science-primers
-explain how water behaves when you
-pour it down test-tubes. The flooding of Twenty-Two
-was an illustration on a large scale.</p>
-
-<hr class='c014' />
-
-<p class='c001'>“By the Holy Grove, what has happened to the
-air!” It was a Sonthal gangman of Gang Mogul
-in Number Nine gallery, and he was driving a
-six-foot way through the coal. Then there was a
-rush from the other galleries, and Gang Janki and
-Gang Rahim stumbled up with their basket-women.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>“Water has come in the mine,” they said, “and
-there is no way of getting out.”</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>“I went down,” said Janki—“down the slope
-of my gallery, and I felt the water.”</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>“There has been no water in the cutting in our
-time,” clamoured the women. “Why cannot we
-go away?”</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>“Be silent!” said Janki. “Long ago, when
-my father was here, water came to Ten—no,
-Eleven—cutting, and there was great trouble.
-Let us get away to where the air is better.”</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>The three gangs and the basket-women left
-Number Nine gallery and went further up Number
-Sixteen. At one turn of the road they could
-see the pitchy black water lapping on the coal. It
-had touched the roof of a gallery that they knew
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_219'>219</span>well—a gallery where they used to smoke their
-<em>huqas</em> and manage their flirtations. Seeing this,
-they called aloud upon their Gods, and the <a id='corr219.3'></a><span class='htmlonly'><ins class='correction' title='Mehas'>Meahs</ins></span><span class='epubonly'><a href='#c_219.3'><ins class='correction' title='Mehas'>Meahs</ins></a></span>,
-who are thrice bastard Muhammadans, strove
-to recollect the name of the Prophet. They came
-to a great open square whence nearly all the coal
-had been extracted. It was the end of the out-workings,
-and the end of the mine.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>Far away down the gallery a small pumping-engine,
-used for keeping dry a deep working and
-fed with steam from above, was throbbing faithfully.
-They heard it cease.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>“They have cut off the steam,” said Kundoo
-hopefully. “They have given the order to use
-all the steam for the pit-bank pumps. They will
-clear out the water.”</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>“If the water has reached the smoking-gallery,”
-said Janki, “all the Company’s pumps can do nothing
-for three days.”</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>“It is very hot,” moaned Jasoda, the Meah
-basket-woman. “There is a very bad air here
-because of the lamps.”</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>“Put them out,” said Janki; “why do you want
-lamps?” The lamps were put out and the company
-sat still in the utter dark. Somebody rose
-quietly and began walking over the coals. It
-was Janki, who was touching the walls with his
-hands. “Where is the ledge?” he murmured to
-himself.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'><span class='pageno' id='Page_220'>220</span>“Sit, sit!” said Kundoo. “If we die, we die.
-The air is very bad.”</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>But Janki still stumbled and crept and tapped
-with his pick upon the walls. The women rose
-to their feet.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>“Stay all where you are. Without the lamps
-you cannot see, and I—I am always seeing,” said
-Janki. Then he paused, and called out: “Oh,
-you who have been in the cutting more than ten
-years, what is the name of this open place? I am
-an old man and I have forgotten.”</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>“Bullia’s Room,” answered the Sonthal who
-had complained of the vileness of the air.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>“Again,” said Janki.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>“Bullia’s Room.”</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>“Then I have found it,” said Janki. “The
-name only had slipped my memory. Tibu’s
-gang’s gallery is here.”</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>“A lie,” said Kundoo. “There have been no
-galleries in this place since my day.”</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>“Three paces was the depth of the ledge,”
-muttered Janki without heeding—“and—oh,
-my poor bones!—I have found it! It is here, up
-this ledge. Come all you, one by one, to the
-place of my voice, and I will count you.”</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>There was a rush in the dark, and Janki felt
-the first man’s face hit his knees as the Sonthal
-scrambled up the ledge.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>“Who?” cried Janki.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'><span class='pageno' id='Page_221'>221</span>“I, Sunua Manji.”</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>“Sit you down,” said Janki. “Who next?”</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>One by one the women and the men crawled
-up the ledge which ran along one side of “Bullia’s
-Room.” Degraded Muhammadan, pig-eating Musahr
-and wild Sonthal, Janki ran his hand over
-them all.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>“Now follow after,” said he, “catching hold
-of my heel, and the women catching the men’s
-clothes.” He did not ask whether the men had
-brought their picks with them. A miner, black
-or white, does not drop his pick. One by one,
-Janki leading, they crept into the old gallery—a
-six-foot way with a scant four feet from thill
-to roof.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>“The air is better here,” said Jasoda. They
-could hear her heart beating in thick, sick bumps.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>“Slowly, slowly,” said Janki. “I am an old
-man, and I forget many things. This is Tibu’s
-gallery, but where are the four bricks where they
-used to put their <em>huqa</em> fire on when the Sahibs
-never saw? Slowly, slowly, O you people behind.”</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>They heard his hands disturbing the small coal
-on the floor of the gallery and then a dull sound.
-“This is one unbaked brick, and this is another
-and another. Kundoo is a young man—let him
-come forward. Put a knee upon this brick and
-strike here. When Tibu’s gang were at dinner
-on the last day before the good coal ended, they
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_222'>222</span>heard the men of Five on the other side, and Five
-worked <em>their</em> gallery two Sundays later—or it
-may have been one. Strike there, Kundoo, but
-give me room to go back.”</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>Kundoo, doubting, drove the pick, but the first
-soft crush of the coal was a call to him. He was
-fighting for his life and for Unda—pretty little
-Unda with rings on all her toes—for Unda and
-the forty rupees. The women sang the Song of
-the Pick—the terrible, slow, swinging melody
-with the muttered chorus that repeats the sliding
-of the loosened coal, and, to each cadence, Kundoo
-smote in the black dark. When he could do
-no more, Sunua Manji took the pick, and struck
-for his life and his wife, and his village beyond the
-blue hills over the Tarachunda River. An hour
-the men worked, and then the women cleared
-away the coal.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>“It is farther than I thought,” said Janki.
-“The air is very bad; but strike, Kundoo, strike
-hard.”</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>For the fifth time Kundoo took up the pick as
-the Sonthal crawled back. The song had scarcely
-recommenced when it was broken by a yell from
-Kundoo that echoed down the gallery: “<em>Par hua!
-Par hua!</em> We are through, we are through!”
-The imprisoned air in the mine shot through the
-opening, and the women at the far end of the gallery
-heard the water rush through the pillars of
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_223'>223</span>“Bullia’s Room” and roar against the ledge. Having
-fulfilled the law under which it worked, it rose
-no farther. The women screamed and pressed forward.
-“The water has come—we shall be killed!
-Let us go.”</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>Kundoo crawled through the gap and found
-himself in a propped gallery by the simple process
-of hitting his head against a beam.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>“Do I know the pits or do I not?” chuckled
-Janki. “This is the Number Five; go you out
-slowly, giving me your names. Ho! Rahim,
-count your gang! Now let us go forward, each
-catching hold of the other as before.”</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>They formed a line in the darkness and Janki
-led them—for a pit-man in a strange pit is only
-one degree less liable to err than an ordinary mortal
-underground for the first time. At last they
-saw a flare-lamp, and Gangs Janki, Mogul, and
-Rahim of Twenty-Two stumbled dazed into the
-glare of the draught-furnace at the bottom of Five:
-Janki feeling his way and the rest behind.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>“Water has come into Twenty-Two. God
-knows where are the others. I have brought these
-men from Tibu’s gallery in our cutting; making
-connection through the north side of the gallery.
-Take us to the cage,” said Janki Meah.</p>
-
-<hr class='c014' />
-
-<p class='c001'>At the pit-bank of Twenty-Two some thousand
-people clamoured and wept and shouted. One
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_224'>224</span>hundred men—one thousand men—had been
-drowned in the cutting. They would all go to
-their homes to-morrow. Where were their men?
-Little Unda, her cloth drenched with the rain,
-stood at the pit-mouth, calling down the shaft for
-Kundoo. They had swung the cages clear of the
-mouth, and her only answer was the murmur of
-the flood in the pit’s eye two hundred and sixty
-feet below.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>“Look after that woman! She’ll chuck herself
-down the shaft in a minute,” shouted the Manager.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>But he need not have troubled; Unda was afraid
-of Death. She wanted Kundoo. The Assistant
-was watching the flood and seeing how far he
-could wade into it. There was a lull in the water,
-and the whirlpool had slackened. The mine was
-full, and the people at the pit-bank howled.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>“My faith, we shall be lucky if we have five
-hundred hands on the place to-morrow!” said the
-Manager. “There’s some chance yet of running
-a temporary dam across that water. Shove in
-anything—tubs and bullock-carts if you haven’t
-enough bricks. Make them work <em>now</em> if they
-never worked before. Hi! you gangers, make
-them work.”</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>Little by little the crowd was broken into detachments,
-and pushed towards the water with
-promises of overtime. The dam-making began,
-and when it was fairly under way, the Manager
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_225'>225</span>thought that the hour had come for the pumps.
-There was no fresh inrush into the mine. The
-tall, red, iron-clamped pump-beam rose and fell,
-and the pumps snored and guttered and shrieked
-as the first water poured out of the pipe.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>“We must run her all to-night,” said the Manager
-wearily, “but there’s no hope for the poor
-devils down below. Look here, Gur Sahai, if you
-are proud of your engines, show me what they can
-do now.”</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>Gur Sahai grinned and nodded, with his right
-hand upon the lever and an oil-can in his left. He
-could do no more than he was doing, but he could
-keep that up till the dawn. Were the Company’s
-pumps to be beaten by the vagaries of that troublesome
-Tarachunda River? Never, never! And
-the pumps sobbed and panted: “Never, never!”
-The Manager sat in the shelter of the pit-bank
-roofing, trying to dry himself by the pump-boiler
-fire, and, in the dreary dusk, he saw the crowds on
-the dam scatter and fly.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>“That’s the end,” he groaned. “’Twill take us
-six weeks to persuade ’em that we haven’t tried to
-drown their mates on purpose. Oh, for a decent,
-rational Geordie!”</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>But the flight had no panic in it. Men had run
-over from Five with astounding news, and the
-foremen could not hold their gangs together.
-Presently, surrounded by a clamorous crew, Gangs
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_226'>226</span>Rahim, Mogul, and Janki, and ten basket-women
-walked up to report themselves, and pretty little
-Unda stole away to Janki’s hut to prepare his
-evening meal.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>“Alone I found the way,” explained Janki
-Meah, “and now will the Company give me pension?”</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>The simple pit-folk shouted and leaped and
-went back to the dam, reassured in their old belief
-that, whatever happened, so great was the power
-of the Company whose salt they ate, none of them
-could be killed. But Gur Sahai only bared his
-white teeth and kept his hand upon the lever and
-proved his pumps to the uttermost.</p>
-
-<hr class='c014' />
-
-<p class='c001'>“I say,” said the Assistant to the Manager, a
-week later, “do you recollect ‘Germinal’?”</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>“Yes. ’Queer thing. I thought of it in the
-cage when that balk went by. Why?”</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>“Oh, this business seems to be ‘Germinal’ upside
-down. Janki was in my verandah all this
-morning, telling me that Kundoo had eloped with
-his wife—Unda or Anda, I think her name was.”</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>“Hillo! And those were the cattle that you
-risked your life to clear out of Twenty-Two!”</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>“No—I was thinking of the Company’s props,
-not the Company’s men.”</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>“Sounds better to say so <em>now</em>; but I don’t believe
-you, old fellow.”</p>
-
-<div class='chapter'>
- <span class='pageno' id='Page_227'>227</span>
- <h2 class='c004'>JEWS IN SHUSHAN</h2>
-</div>
-
-<div class='nf-center-c0'>
-<div class='nf-center c002'>
- <div><span class='small'>Copyright, 1891, by Macmillan &amp; Co.</span></div>
- </div>
-</div>
-
-<p class='c005'>My newly purchased house furniture was, at the
-least, insecure; the legs parted from the chairs, and
-the tops from the tables, on the slightest provocation.
-But such as it was, it was to be paid for,
-and Ephraim, agent and collector for the local
-auctioneer, waited in the verandah with the receipt.
-He was announced by the Mahomedan servant as
-“Ephraim, Yahudi”—Ephraim the Jew. He
-who believes in the Brotherhood of Man should
-hear my Elahi Bukhsh grinding the second word
-through his white teeth with all the scorn he dare
-show before his master. Ephraim was, personally,
-meek in manner—so meek indeed that one could
-not understand how he had fallen into the profession
-of bill-collecting. He resembled an over-fed
-sheep, and his voice suited his figure. There was
-a fixed, unvarying mask of childish wonder upon
-his face. If you paid him, he was as one marvelling
-at your wealth; if you sent him away, he
-seemed puzzled at your hard-heartedness. Never
-was Jew more unlike his dread breed.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>Ephraim wore list slippers and coats of duster-cloth,
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_228'>228</span>so preposterously patterned that the most
-brazen of British subalterns would have shied from
-them in fear. Very slow and deliberate was his
-speech, and carefully guarded to give offense to
-no one. After many weeks, Ephraim was induced
-to speak to me of his friends.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>“There be eight of us in Shushan, and we are
-waiting till there are ten. Then we shall apply
-for a synagogue, and get leave from Calcutta.
-To-day we have no synagogue; and I, only I, am
-Priest and Butcher to our people. I am of the
-tribe of Judah—I think, but I am not sure. My
-father was of the tribe of Judah, and we wish much
-to get our synagogue. I shall be a priest of that
-synagogue.”</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>Shushan is a big city in the North of India,
-counting its dwellers by the ten thousand; and
-these eight of the Chosen People were shut up in
-its midst, waiting till time or chance sent them
-their full congregation.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>Miriam, the wife of Ephraim, two little children,
-an orphan boy of their people, Ephraim’s uncle
-Jackrael Israel, a white-haired old man, his wife
-Hester, a Jew from Cutch, one Hyem Benjamin,
-and Ephraim, Priest and Butcher, made up the
-list of the Jews in Shushan. They lived in one
-house, on the outskirts of the great city, amid
-heaps of saltpetre, rotten bricks, herds of kine, and
-a fixed pillar of dust caused by the incessant passing
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_229'>229</span>of the beasts to the river to drink. In the
-evening, the children of the City came to the
-waste place to fly their kites, and Ephraim’s sons
-held aloof, watching the sport from the roof, but
-never descending to take part in it. At the
-back of the house stood a small brick enclosure,
-in which Ephraim prepared the daily meat for his
-people after the custom of the Jews. Once the
-rude door of the square was suddenly smashed
-open by a struggle from inside, and showed the
-meek bill-collector at his work, nostrils dilated,
-lips drawn back over his teeth, and his hands upon
-a half-maddened sheep. He was attired in strange
-raiment, having no relation whatever to duster
-coats or list slippers, and a knife was in his mouth.
-As he struggled with the animal between the walls,
-the breath came from him in thick sobs, and the
-nature of the man seemed changed. When the
-ordained slaughter was ended, he saw that the
-door was open and shut it hastily, his hand leaving
-a red mark on the timber, while his children from
-the neighbouring house-top looked down awe-stricken
-and open-eyed. A glimpse of Ephraim
-busied in one of his religious capacities was no
-thing to be desired twice.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>Summer came upon Shushan, turning the trodden
-waste-ground to iron, and bringing sickness
-to the city.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>“It will not touch us,” said Ephraim confidently.
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_230'>230</span>“Before the winter we shall have our
-synagogue. My brother and his wife and children
-are coming up from Calcutta, and <em>then</em> I shall be
-the priest of the synagogue.”</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>Jackrael Israel, the old man, would crawl out in
-the stifling evenings to sit on the rubbish-heap and
-watch the corpses being borne down to the river.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>“It will not come near us,” said Jackrael Israel
-feebly, “for we are the people of God, and my
-nephew will be priest of our synagogue. Let
-them die.” He crept back to his house again
-and barred the door to shut himself off from the
-world of the Gentile.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>But Miriam, the wife of Ephraim, looked out
-of the window at the dead as the biers passed, and
-said that she was afraid. Ephraim comforted her
-with hopes of the synagogue to be, and collected
-bills as was his custom.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>In one night the two children died and were
-buried early in the morning by Ephraim. The
-deaths never appeared in the City returns. “The
-sorrow is my sorrow,” said Ephraim; and this to
-him seemed a sufficient reason for setting at naught
-the sanitary regulations of a large, flourishing, and
-remarkably well-governed Empire.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>The orphan boy, dependent on the charity of
-Ephraim and his wife, could have felt no gratitude,
-and must have been a ruffian. He begged
-for whatever money his protectors would give him,
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_231'>231</span>and with that fled down country for his life. A
-week after the death of her children Miriam left
-her bed at night and wandered over the country
-to find them. She heard them crying behind
-every bush, or drowning in every pool of water
-in the fields, and she begged the cartmen on the
-Grand Trunk Road not to steal her little ones
-from her. In the morning the sun rose and beat
-upon her bare head, and she turned into the cool,
-wet crops to lie down, and never came back,
-though Hyem Benjamin and Ephraim sought her
-for two nights.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>The look of patient wonder on Ephraim’s face
-deepened, but he presently found an explanation.
-“There are so few of us here, and these people are
-so many,” said he, “that, it may be, our God has
-forgotten us.”</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>In the house on the outskirts of the city old
-Jackrael Israel and Hester grumbled that there
-was no one to wait on them, and that Miriam had
-been untrue to her race. Ephraim went out and
-collected bills, and in the evenings smoked with
-Hyem Benjamin till, one dawning, Hyem Benjamin
-died, having first paid all his debts to Ephraim.
-Jackrael Israel and Hester sat alone in the empty
-house all day, and, when Ephraim returned, wept
-the easy tears of age till they cried themselves
-asleep.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>A week later Ephraim, staggering under a huge
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_232'>232</span>bundle of clothes and cooking-pots, led the old
-man and woman to the railway station, where the
-bustle and confusion made them whimper.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>“We are going back to Calcutta,” said Ephraim,
-to whose sleeve Hester was clinging. “There are
-more of us there, and here my house is empty.”</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>He helped Hester into the carriage and, turning
-back, said to me, “I should have been priest of
-the synagogue if there had been ten of us. Surely
-we must have been forgotten by our God.”</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>The remnant of the broken colony passed out
-of the station on their journey south; while a subaltern,
-turning over the books on the bookstall,
-was whistling to himself “The Ten Little Nigger
-Boys.”</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>But the tune sounded as solemn as the Dead
-March.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>It was the dirge of the Jews in Shushan.</p>
-
-<div class='chapter'>
- <span class='pageno' id='Page_233'>233</span>
- <h2 class='c004'>GEORGIE PORGIE</h2>
-</div>
-
-<div class='nf-center-c0'>
-<div class='nf-center c002'>
- <div><span class='small'>Copyright, 1891, by Macmillan &amp; Co.</span></div>
- </div>
-</div>
-
-<div class='lg-container-b c017'>
- <div class='linegroup'>
- <div class='group'>
- <div class='line'>Georgie Porgie, pudding and pie,</div>
- <div class='line'>Kissed the girls and made them cry.</div>
- <div class='line'>When the girls came out to play</div>
- <div class='line'>Georgie Porgie ran away.</div>
- </div>
- </div>
-</div>
-
-<p class='c005'>If you will admit that a man has no right to enter
-his drawing-room early in the morning, when
-the housemaid is setting things right and clearing
-away the dust, you will concede that civilised
-people who eat out of china and own card-cases
-have no right to apply their standard of right and
-wrong to an unsettled land. When the place is
-made fit for their reception, by those men who are
-told off to the work, they can come up, bringing
-in their trunks their own society and the Decalogue,
-and all the other apparatus. Where the
-Queen’s Law does not carry, it is irrational to expect
-an observance of other and weaker rules.
-The men who run ahead of the cars of Decency
-and Propriety, and make the jungle ways straight,
-cannot be judged in the same manner as the stay-at-home
-folk of the ranks of the regular <em>Tchin</em>.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>Not many months ago the Queen’s Law stopped
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_234'>234</span>a few miles north of Thayetmyo on the Irrawaddy.
-There was no very strong Public Opinion up to
-that limit, but it existed to keep men in order.
-When the Government said that the Queen’s Law
-must carry up to Bhamo and the Chinese border, the
-order was given, and some men whose desire was
-to be ever a little in advance of the rush of Respectability
-flocked forward with the troops. These
-were the men who could never pass examinations,
-and would have been too pronounced in their
-ideas for the administration of bureau-worked Provinces.
-The Supreme Government stepped in as
-soon as might be, with codes and regulations, and all
-but reduced New Burma to the dead Indian level;
-but there was a short time during which strong men
-were necessary and ploughed a field for themselves.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>Among the fore-runners of Civilisation was
-Georgie Porgie, reckoned by all who knew him
-a strong man. He held an appointment in Lower
-Burma when the order came to break the Frontier,
-and his friends called him Georgie Porgie because
-of the singularly Burmese-like manner in which he
-sang a song whose first line is something like the
-words “Georgie Porgie.” Most men who have
-been in Burma will know the song. It means:
-“Puff, puff, puff, puff, great steamboat!” Georgie
-sang it to his banjo, and his friends shouted with
-delight, so that you could hear them far away in
-the teak-forest.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'><span class='pageno' id='Page_235'>235</span>When he went to Upper Burma he had no special
-regard for God or Man, but he knew how to
-make himself respected, and to carry out the mixed
-Military-Civil duties that fell to most men’s share
-in those months. He did his office work and entertained,
-now and again, the detachments of fever-shaken
-soldiers who blundered through his part of
-the world in search of a flying party of dacoits.
-Sometimes he turned out and dressed down dacoits
-on his own account; for the country was still
-smouldering and would blaze when least expected.
-He enjoyed these charivaris, but the dacoits were
-not so amused. All the officials who came in contact
-with him departed with the idea that Georgie
-Porgie was a valuable person, well able to take
-care of himself, and, on that belief, he was left to
-his own devices.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>At the end of a few months he wearied of his
-solitude, and cast about for company and refinement.
-The Queen’s Law had hardly begun to be
-felt in the country, and Public Opinion, which is
-more powerful than the Queen’s Law, had yet to
-come. Also, there was a custom in the country
-which allowed a white man to take to himself a
-wife of the Daughters of Heth upon due payment.
-The marriage was not quite so binding as is the
-<em>nikkah</em> ceremony among Mahomedans, but the wife
-was very pleasant.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>When all our troops are back from Burma there
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_236'>236</span>will be a proverb in their mouths, “As thrifty as
-a Burmese wife,” and pretty English ladies will
-wonder what in the world it means.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>The headman of the village next to Georgie
-Porgie’s post had a fair daughter who had seen
-Georgie Porgie and loved him from afar. When
-news went abroad that the Englishman with the
-heavy hand who lived in the stockade was looking
-for a housekeeper, the headman came in and explained
-that, for five hundred rupees down, he
-would entrust his daughter to Georgie Porgie’s
-keeping, to be maintained in all honour, respect,
-and comfort, with pretty dresses, according to the
-custom of the country. This thing was done, and
-Georgie Porgie never repented it.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>He found his rough-and-tumble house put
-straight and made comfortable, his hitherto unchecked
-expenses cut down by one half, and himself
-petted and made much of by his new acquisition,
-who sat at the head of his table and sang
-songs to him and ordered his Madrassee servants
-about, and was in every way as sweet and merry
-and honest and winning a little woman as the most
-exacting of bachelors could have desired. No
-race, men say who know, produces such good
-wives and heads of households as the Burmese.
-When the next detachment tramped by on the
-war-path the Subaltern in Command found at
-Georgie Porgie’s table a hostess to be deferential
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_237'>237</span>to, a woman to be treated in every way as one
-occupying an assured position. When he gathered
-his men together next dawn and replunged
-into the jungle, he thought regretfully of the nice
-little dinner and the pretty face, and envied Georgie
-Porgie from the bottom of his heart. Yet <em>he</em>
-was engaged to a girl at Home, and that is how
-some men are constructed.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>The Burmese girl’s name was not a pretty one;
-but as she was promptly christened Georgina
-by Georgie Porgie, the blemish did not matter.
-Georgie Porgie thought well of the petting and
-the general comfort, and vowed that he had never
-spent five hundred rupees to a better end.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>After three months of domestic life, a great idea
-struck him. Matrimony—English matrimony—could
-not be such a bad thing after all. If he
-were so thoroughly comfortable at the Back of
-Beyond with this Burmese girl who smoked cheroots,
-how much more comfortable would he be
-with a sweet English maiden who would not
-smoke cheroots, and would play upon a piano
-instead of a banjo? Also he had a desire to return
-to his kind, to hear a Band once more, and to feel
-how it felt to wear a dress-suit again. Decidedly,
-Matrimony would be a very good thing. He
-thought the matter out at length of evenings,
-while Georgina sang to him, or asked him why
-he was so silent, and whether she had done anything
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_238'>238</span>to offend him. As he thought he smoked,
-and as he smoked he looked at Georgina, and in
-his fancy turned her into a fair, thrifty, amusing,
-merry little English girl, with hair coming low
-down on her forehead, and perhaps a cigarette between
-her lips. Certainly not a big, thick, Burma
-cheroot, of the brand that Georgina smoked. He
-would wed a girl with Georgina’s eyes and most
-of her ways. But not all. She could be improved
-upon. Then he blew thick smoke-wreaths through
-his nostrils and stretched himself. He would taste
-marriage. Georgina had helped him to save
-money, and there were six months’ leave due to
-him.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>“See here, little woman,” he said, “we must
-put by more money for these next three months.
-I want it.” That was a direct slur on Georgina’s
-housekeeping; for she prided herself on her thrift;
-but since her God wanted money she would do
-her best.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>“You want money?” she said with a little
-laugh. “I <em>have</em> money. Look!” She ran to her
-own room and fetched out a small bag of rupees.
-“Of all that you give me, I keep back some.
-See! One hundred and seven rupees. Can you
-want more money than that? Take it. It is my
-pleasure if you use it.” She spread out the money
-on the table and pushed it towards him with her
-quick, little, pale yellow fingers.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'><span class='pageno' id='Page_239'>239</span>Georgie Porgie never referred to economy in
-the household again.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>Three months later, after the despatch and receipt
-of several mysterious letters which Georgina
-could not understand, and hated for that reason,
-Georgie Porgie said that he was going away and
-she must return to her father’s house and stay
-there.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>Georgina wept. She would go with her God
-from the world’s end to the world’s end. Why
-should she leave him? She loved him.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>“I am only going to Rangoon,” said Georgie
-Porgie. “I shall be back in a month, but it is
-safer to stay with your father. I will leave you
-two hundred rupees.”</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>“If you go for a month, what need of two hundred?
-Fifty are more than enough. There is
-some evil here. Do not go, or at least let me go
-with you.”</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>Georgie Porgie does not like to remember that
-scene even at this date. In the end he got rid of
-Georgina by a compromise of seventy-five rupees.
-She would not take more. Then he went by
-steamer and rail to Rangoon.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>The mysterious letters had granted him six
-months’ leave. The actual flight and an idea that
-he might have been treacherous hurt severely at
-the time, but as soon as the big steamer was well
-out into the blue, things were easier, and Georgina’s
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_240'>240</span>face, and the queer little stockaded house, and the
-memory of the rushes of shouting dacoits by night,
-the cry and struggle of the first man that he had
-ever killed with his own hand, and a hundred other
-more intimate things, faded and faded out of
-Georgie Porgie’s heart, and the vision of approaching
-England took its place. The steamer was full
-of men on leave, all rampantly jovial souls who
-had shaken off the dust and sweat of Upper Burma
-and were as merry as schoolboys. They helped
-Georgie Porgie to forget.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>Then came England with its luxuries and decencies
-and comforts, and Georgie Porgie walked
-in a pleasant dream upon pavements of which he
-had nearly forgotten the ring, wondering why men
-in their senses ever left Town. He accepted his
-keen delight in his furlough as the reward of his
-services. Providence further arranged for him
-another and greater delight—all the pleasures of
-a quiet English wooing, quite different from the
-brazen businesses of the East, when half the community
-stand back and bet on the result, and the
-other half wonder what Mrs. So-and-So will say
-to it.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>It was a pleasant girl and a perfect summer, and
-a big country-house near Petworth where there are
-acres and acres of purple heather and high-grassed
-water-meadows to wander through. Georgie Porgie
-felt that he had at last found something worth
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_241'>241</span>the living for, and naturally assumed that the next
-thing to do was to ask the girl to share his life in
-India. She, in her ignorance, was willing to go.
-On this occasion there was no bartering with a
-village headman. There was a fine middle-class
-wedding in the country, with a stout Papa and a
-weeping Mamma, and a best man in purple and
-fine linen, and six snub-nosed girls from the Sunday-School
-to throw roses on the path between
-the tombstones up to the Church door. The local
-paper described the affair at great length, even
-down to giving the hymns in full. But that was
-because the Direction were starving for want of
-material.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>Then came a honeymoon at Arundel, and the
-Mamma wept copiously before she allowed her
-one daughter to sail away to India under the care
-of Georgie Porgie the Bridegroom. Beyond any
-question, Georgie Porgie was immensely fond of
-his wife, and she was devoted to him as the best
-and greatest man in the world. When he reported
-himself at Bombay he felt justified in demanding
-a good station for his wife’s sake; and, because he
-had made a little mark in Burma and was beginning
-to be appreciated, they allowed him nearly
-all that he asked for, and posted him to a station
-which we will call Sutrain. It stood upon several
-hills, and was styled officially a “Sanitarium,”
-for the good reason that the drainage was utterly
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_242'>242</span>neglected. Here Georgie Porgie settled down,
-and found married life come very naturally to him.
-He did not rave, as do many bridegrooms, over
-the strangeness and delight of seeing his own true
-love sitting down to breakfast with him every
-morning “as though it were the most natural thing
-in the world.” “He had been there before,” as the
-Americans say, and, checking the merits of his
-own present grace by those of Georgina, he was
-more and more inclined to think that he had done
-well.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>But there was no peace or comfort across the
-Bay of Bengal, under the teak-trees where Georgina
-lived with her father, waiting for Georgie
-Porgie to return. The headman was old, and remembered
-the war of ’51. He had been to Rangoon,
-and knew something of the ways of the
-<em>Kullahs</em>. Sitting in front of his door in the evenings,
-he taught Georgina a dry philosophy which
-did not console her in the least.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>The trouble was that she loved Georgie Porgie
-just as much as the French girl in the English
-History books loved the priest whose head was
-broken by the King’s bullies. One day she disappeared
-from the village, with all the rupees that
-Georgie Porgie had given her, and a very small
-smattering of English—also gained from Georgie
-Porgie.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>The headman was angry at first, but lit a fresh
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_243'>243</span>cheroot and said something uncomplimentary
-about the sex in general. Georgina had started
-on a search for Georgie Porgie, who might be in
-Rangoon, or across the Black Water, or dead, for
-aught that she knew. Chance favoured her. An
-old Sikh policeman told her that Georgie Porgie
-had crossed the Black Water. She took a steerage-passage
-from Rangoon and went to Calcutta,
-keeping the secret of her search to herself.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>In India every trace of her was lost for six
-weeks, and no one knows what trouble of heart
-she must have undergone.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>She reappeared, four hundred miles north of
-Calcutta, steadily heading northwards, very worn
-and haggard, but very fixed in her determination
-to find Georgie Porgie. She could not understand
-the language of the people; but India is infinitely
-charitable, and the women-folk along the Grand
-Trunk gave her food. Something made her believe
-that Georgie Porgie was to be found at the
-end of that pitiless road. She may have seen a
-sepoy who knew him in Burma, but of this no
-one can be certain. At last she found a regiment
-on the line of march, and met there one of the
-many subalterns whom Georgie Porgie had invited
-to dinner in the far-off, old days of the
-dacoit-hunting. There was a certain amount
-of amusement among the tents when Georgina
-threw herself at the man’s feet and began to cry.
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_244'>244</span>There was no amusement when her story was
-told; but a collection was made, and that was
-more to the point. One of the subalterns knew
-of Georgie Porgie’s whereabouts, but not of his
-marriage. So he told Georgina and she went her
-way joyfully to the north, in a railway carriage
-where there was rest for tired feet and shade for a
-dusty little head. The marches from the train
-through the hills into Sutrain were trying, but
-Georgina had money, and families journeying in
-bullock-carts gave her help. It was an almost
-miraculous journey, and Georgina felt sure that
-the good spirits of Burma were looking after her.
-The hill-road to Sutrain is a chilly stretch, and
-Georgina caught a bad cold. Still there was
-Georgie Porgie at the end of all the trouble to
-take her up in his arms and pet her, as he used
-to do in the old days when the stockade was shut
-for the night and he had approved of the evening
-meal. Georgina went forward as fast as she could;
-and her good spirits did her one last favour.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>An Englishman stopped her, in the twilight,
-just at the turn of the road into Sutrain, saying,
-“Good Heavens! What are you doing here?”</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>He was Gillis, the man who had been Georgie
-Porgie’s assistant in Upper Burma, and who occupied
-the next post to Georgie Porgie’s in the
-jungle. Georgie Porgie had applied to have him
-to work with at Sutrain because he liked him.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'><span class='pageno' id='Page_245'>245</span>“I have come,” said Georgina simply. “It was
-such a long way, and I have been months in coming.
-Where is his house?”</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>Gillis gasped. He had seen enough of Georgina
-in the old times to know that explanations
-would be useless. You cannot explain things to
-the Oriental. You must show.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>“I’ll take you there,” said Gillis, and he led
-Georgina off the road, up the cliff, by a little pathway,
-to the back of a house set on a platform cut
-into the hillside.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>The lamps were just lit, but the curtains were
-not drawn. “Now look,” said Gillis, stopping
-in front of the drawing-room window. Georgina
-looked and saw Georgie Porgie and the Bride.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>She put her hand up to her hair, which had come
-out of its top-knot and was straggling about her
-face. She tried to set her ragged dress in order,
-but the dress was past pulling straight, and she
-coughed a queer little cough, for she really had
-taken a very bad cold. Gillis looked, too, but
-while Georgina only looked at the Bride once,
-turning her eyes always on Georgie Porgie, Gillis
-looked at the Bride all the time.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>“What are you going to do?” said Gillis, who
-held Georgina by the wrist, in case of any unexpected
-rush into the lamplight. “Will you go
-in and tell that English woman that you lived
-with her husband?”</p>
-
-<p class='c001'><span class='pageno' id='Page_246'>246</span>“No,” said Georgina faintly. “Let me go. I
-am going away. I swear that I am going away.”
-She twisted herself free and ran off into the dark.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>“Poor little beast!” said Gillis, dropping on to
-the main road. “I’d ha’ given her something to
-get back to Burma with. What a narrow shave,
-though! And that angel would never have forgiven
-it.”</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>This seems to prove that the devotion of Gillis
-was not entirely due to his affection for Georgie
-Porgie.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>The Bride and the Bridegroom came out into
-the verandah after dinner, in order that the smoke
-of Georgie Porgie’s cheroots might not hang in
-the new drawing-room curtains.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>“What is that noise down there?” said the
-Bride. Both listened.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>“Oh,” said Georgie Porgie, “I suppose some
-brute of a hillman has been beating his wife.”</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>“Beating—his—wife! How ghastly!” said
-the Bride. “Fancy <em>your</em> beating <em>me</em>!” She slipped
-an arm round her husband’s waist, and, leaning
-her head against his shoulder, looked out across
-the cloud-filled valley in deep content and security.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>But it was Georgina crying, all by herself, down
-the hillside, among the stones of the water-course
-where the washermen wash the clothes.</p>
-
-<div class='chapter'>
- <span class='pageno' id='Page_247'>247</span>
- <h2 class='c004'>LITTLE TOBRAH</h2>
-</div>
-
-<div class='nf-center-c0'>
-<div class='nf-center c002'>
- <div><span class='small'>Copyright, 1891, by Macmillan &amp; Co.</span></div>
- </div>
-</div>
-
-<p class='c005'>“Prisoner’s head did not reach to the top of the
-dock,” as the English newspapers say. This case,
-however, was not reported because nobody cared
-by so much as a hempen rope for the life or death
-of Little Tobrah. The assessors in the red courthouse
-sat upon him all through the long hot afternoon,
-and whenever they asked him a question he
-salaamed and whined. Their verdict was that the
-evidence was inconclusive, and the Judge concurred.
-It was true that the dead body of Little
-Tobrah’s sister had been found at the bottom of
-the well, and Little Tobrah was the only human
-being within a half-mile radius at the time; but
-the child might have fallen in by accident. Therefore
-Little Tobrah was acquitted, and told to go
-where he pleased. This permission was not so
-generous as it sounds, for he had nowhere to go
-to, nothing in particular to eat, and nothing whatever
-to wear.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>He trotted into the court-compound, and sat
-upon the well-curb, wondering whether an unsuccessful
-dive into the black water below would
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_248'>248</span>end in a forced voyage across the other Black
-Water. A groom put down an emptied nose-bag
-on the bricks, and Little Tobrah, being hungry,
-set himself to scrape out what wet grain the horse
-had overlooked.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>“O Thief—and but newly set free from the
-terror of the Law! Come along!” said the groom,
-and Little Tobrah was led by the ear to a large
-and fat Englishman, who heard the tale of the
-theft.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>“Hah!” said the Englishman three times (only
-he said a stronger word). “Put him into the net
-and take him home.” So Little Tobrah was thrown
-into the net of the cart, and, nothing doubting that
-he should be stuck like a pig, was driven to the
-Englishman’s house. “Hah!” said the Englishman
-as before. “Wet grain, by Jove! Feed
-the little beggar, some of you, and we’ll make a
-riding-boy of him? See? Wet grain, good Lord!”</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>“Give an account of yourself,” said the head
-of the Grooms to Little Tobrah after the meal had
-been eaten and the servants lay at ease in their
-quarters behind the house. “You are not of the
-groom caste, unless it be for the stomach’s sake.
-How came you into the court, and why? Answer,
-little devil’s spawn!”</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>“There was not enough to eat,” said Little
-Tobrah calmly. “This is a good place.”</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>“Talk straight talk,” said the Head Groom,
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_249'>249</span>“or I will make you clean out the stable of that
-large red stallion who bites like a camel.”</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>“We be <em>Telis</em>, oil-pressers,” said Little Tobrah,
-scratching his toes in the dust. “We were <em>Telis</em>—my
-father, my mother, my brother, the elder by
-four years, myself, and the sister.”</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>“She who was found dead in the well?” said
-one who had heard something of the trial.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>“Even so,” said Little Tobrah gravely. “She
-who was found dead in the well. It befell upon a
-time, which is not in my memory, that the sickness
-came to the village where our oil-press stood,
-and first my sister was smitten as to her eyes, and
-went without sight, for it was <em>mata</em>—the small-pox.
-Thereafter, my father and my mother died
-of that same sickness, so we were alone—my
-brother who had twelve years, I who had eight,
-and the sister who could not see. Yet were there
-the bullock and the oil-press remaining, and we
-made shift to press the oil as before. But Surjun
-Dass, the grain-seller, cheated us in his dealings;
-and it was always a stubborn bullock to drive.
-We put marigold flowers for the Gods upon the
-neck of the bullock, and upon the great grinding-beam
-that rose through the roof; but we gained
-nothing thereby, and Surjun Dass was a hard man.”</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>“<em>Bapri-bap</em>,” muttered the grooms’ wives, “to
-cheat a child so! But we know what the <em>bunnia</em>-folk
-are, sisters.”</p>
-
-<p class='c001'><span class='pageno' id='Page_250'>250</span>“The press was an old press, and we were not
-strong men—my brother and I; nor could we fix
-the neck of the beam firmly in the shackle.”</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>“Nay, indeed,” said the gorgeously-clad wife
-of the Head Groom, joining the circle. “That is
-a strong man’s work. When I was a maid in my
-father’s house——”</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>“Peace, woman,” said the Head Groom. “Go
-on, boy.”</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>“It is nothing,” said Little Tobrah. “The big
-beam tore down the roof upon a day which is not
-in my memory, and with the roof fell much of the
-hinder wall, and both together upon our bullock,
-whose back was broken. Thus we had neither
-home, nor press, nor bullock—my brother, myself,
-and the sister who was blind. We went crying
-away from that place, hand-in-hand, across the
-fields; and our money was seven annas and six
-pie. There was a famine in the land. I do not
-know the name of the land. So, on a night when
-we were sleeping, my brother took the five annas
-that remained to us and ran away. I do not know
-whither he went. The curse of my father be upon
-him. But I and the sister begged food in the villages,
-and there was none to give. Only all men
-said—‘Go to the Englishmen and they will give.’
-I did not know what the Englishmen were; but
-they said that they were white, living in tents. I
-went forward; but I cannot say whither I went,
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_251'>251</span>and there was no more food for myself or the sister.
-And upon a hot night, she weeping and calling
-for food, we came to a well, and I bade her sit
-upon the curb, and thrust her in, for, in truth, she
-could not see; and it is better to die than to
-starve.”</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>“Ai! Ahi!” wailed the grooms’ wives in chorus;
-“he thrust her in, for it is better to die than
-to starve!”</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>“I would have thrown myself in also, but that
-she was not dead and called to me from the bottom
-of the well, and I was afraid and ran. And
-one came out of the crops saying that I had killed
-her and defiled the well, and they took me before
-an Englishman, white and terrible, living in a tent,
-and me he sent here. But there were no witnesses,
-and it is better to die than to starve. She, furthermore,
-could not see with her eyes, and was but a
-little child.”</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>“Was but a little child,” echoed the Head
-Groom’s wife. “But who art thou, weak as a
-fowl and small as a day-old colt, what art <em>thou</em>?”</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>“I who was empty am now full,” said Little
-Tobrah, stretching himself upon the dust. “And
-I would sleep.”</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>The groom’s wife spread a cloth over him while
-Little Tobrah slept the sleep of the just.</p>
-
-<div class='chapter'>
- <span class='pageno' id='Page_252'>252</span>
- <h2 class='c004'>GEMINI</h2>
-</div>
-
-<div class='lg-container-b c015'>
- <div class='linegroup'>
- <div class='group'>
- <div class='line'>Great is the justice of the White Man—greater the power</div>
- <div class='line'>of a lie.—<cite>Native Proverb.</cite></div>
- </div>
- </div>
-</div>
-
-<p class='c005'>This is your English Justice, Protector of the
-Poor. Look at my back and loins which are
-beaten with sticks—heavy sticks! I am a poor
-man, and there is no justice in Courts.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>There were two of us, and we were born of one
-birth, but I swear to you that I was born the first,
-and Ram Dass is the younger by three full breaths.
-The astrologer said so, and it is written in my
-horoscope—the horoscope of Durga Dass.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>But we were alike—I and my brother who is
-a beast without honour—so alike that none knew,
-together or apart, which was Durga Dass. I am
-a Mahajun of Pali in Marwar, and an honest man.
-This is true talk. When we were men, we left
-our father’s house in Pali, and went to the Punjab,
-where all the people are mud-heads and sons of
-asses. We took shop together in Isser Jang—I
-and my brother—near the big well where the
-Governor’s camp draws water. But Ram Dass,
-who is without truth, made quarrel with me, and
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_253'>253</span>we were divided. He took his books, and his
-pots, and his Mark, and became a <em>bunnia</em>—a
-money-lender—in the long street of Isser Jang,
-near the gateway of the road that goes to Montgomery.
-It was not my fault that we pulled each
-other’s turbans. I am a Mahajun of Pali, and I
-<em>always</em> speak true talk. Ram Dass was the thief
-and the liar.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>Now no man, not even the little children, could
-at one glance see which was Ram Dass and which
-was Durga Dass. But all the people of Isser Jang—may
-they die without sons!—said that we were
-thieves. They used much bad talk, but I took
-money on their bedsteads and their cooking-pots
-and the standing crop and the calf unborn, from
-the well in the big square to the gate of the Montgomery
-road. They were fools, these people—unfit
-to cut the toe-nails of a Marwari from Pali.
-I lent money to them all. A little, very little
-only—here a pice and there a pice. God is my
-witness that I am a poor man! The money is
-all with Ram Dass—may his sons turn Christian,
-and his daughter be a burning fire and a shame in
-the house from generation to generation! May
-she die unwed, and be the mother of a multitude
-of bastards! Let the light go out in the house of
-Ram Dass, my brother. This I pray daily twice—with
-offerings and charms.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>Thus the trouble began. We divided the town
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_254'>254</span>of Isser Jang between us—I and my brother.
-There was a landholder beyond the gates, living
-but one short mile out, on the road that leads to
-Montgomery, and his name was Muhammad Shah,
-son of a Nawab. He was a great devil and drank
-wine. So long as there were women in his house,
-and wine and money for the marriage-feasts, he
-was merry and wiped his mouth. Ram Dass lent
-him the money, a lakh or half a lakh—how do I
-know?—and so long as the money was lent, the
-landholder cared not what he signed.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>The people of Isser Jang were my portion, and
-the landholder and the out-town were the portion
-of Ram Dass; for so we had arranged. I was the
-poor man, for the people of Isser Jang were without
-wealth. I did what I could, but Ram Dass
-had only to wait without the door of the landholder’s
-garden-court, and to lend him the money;
-taking the bonds from the hand of the steward.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>In the autumn of the year after the lending,
-Ram Dass said to the landholder: “Pay me my
-money,” but the landholder gave him abuse. But
-Ram Dass went into the Courts with the papers
-and the bonds—all correct—and took out decrees
-against the landholder; and the name of the
-Government was across the stamps of the decrees.
-Ram Dass took field by field, and mango-tree by
-mango-tree, and well by well; putting in his own
-men—debtors of the out-town of Isser Jang—to
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_255'>255</span>cultivate the crops. So he crept up across
-the land, for he had the papers, and the name of
-the Government was across the stamps, till his men
-held the crops for him on all sides of the big white
-house of the landholder. It was well done; but
-when the landholder saw these things he was very
-angry and cursed Ram Dass after the manner of
-the Muhammadans.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>And thus the landholder was angry, but Ram
-Dass laughed and claimed more fields, as was
-written upon the bonds. This was in the month
-of Phagun. I took my horse and went out to
-speak to the man who makes lac-bangles upon the
-road that leads to Montgomery, because he owed
-me a debt. There was in front of me, upon his
-horse, my brother Ram Dass. And when he saw
-me, he turned aside into the high crops, because
-there was hatred between us. And I went forward
-till I came to the orange-bushes by the landholder’s
-house. The bats were flying, and the evening
-smoke was low down upon the land. Here met
-me four men—swashbucklers and Muhammadans—with
-their faces bound up, laying hold of
-my horse’s bridle and crying out: “This is Ram
-Dass! Beat!” Me they beat with their staves—heavy
-staves bound about with wire at the end,
-such weapons as those swine of Punjabis use—till,
-having cried for mercy, I fell down senseless. But
-these shameless ones still beat me, saying: “O Ram
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_256'>256</span>Dass, this is your interest—well weighed and
-counted into your hand, Ram Dass.” I cried
-aloud that I was not Ram Dass, but Durga Dass,
-his brother, yet they only beat me the more, and
-when I could make no more outcry they left me.
-But I saw their faces. There was Elahi Baksh
-who runs by the side of the landholder’s white
-horse, and Nur Ali the keeper of the door, and
-Wajib Ali the very strong cook, and Abdul Latif
-the messenger—all of the household of the landholder.
-These things I can swear on the Cow’s
-Tail if need be, but—<em>Ahi! Ahi!</em>—it has been
-already sworn, and I am a poor man whose honour
-is lost.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>When these four had gone away laughing, my brother
-Ram Dass came out of the crops and mourned
-over me as one dead. But I opened my eyes, and
-prayed him to get me water. When I had drunk,
-he carried me on his back, and by byways brought
-me into the town of Isser Jang. My heart was
-turned to Ram Dass, my brother, in that hour,
-because of his kindness, and I lost my enmity.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>But a snake is a snake till it is dead; and a liar
-is a liar till the Judgment of the Gods takes hold
-of his heel. I was wrong in that I trusted my brother—the
-son of my mother.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>When we had come to his house and I was a
-little restored, I told him my tale, and he said:
-“Without doubt it is me whom they would have
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_257'>257</span>beaten. But the Law Courts are open, and there
-is the Justice of the Sirkar above all; and to the
-Law Courts do thou go when this sickness is over-past.”</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>Now when we two had left Pali in the old
-years, there fell a famine that ran from Jeysulmir
-to Gurgaon and touched Gogunda in the south.
-At that time the sister of my father came away
-and lived with us in Isser Jang; for a man must
-above all see that his folk do not die of want.
-When the quarrel between us twain came about,
-the sister of my father—a lean she-dog without
-teeth—said that Ram Dass had the right, and
-went with him. Into her hands—because she
-knew medicines and many cures—Ram Dass, my
-brother, put me faint with the beating, and much
-bruised even to the pouring of blood from the
-mouth. When I had two days’ sickness the fever
-came upon me; and I set aside the fever to the
-account written in my mind against the landholder.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>The Punjabis of Isser Jang are all the sons of
-Belial and a she-ass, but they are very good witnesses,
-bearing testimony unshakingly whatever
-the pleaders may say. I would purchase witnesses
-by the score, and each man should give evidence,
-not only against Nur Ali, Wajib Ali, Abdul Latif,
-and Elahi Baksh, but against the landholder, saying
-that he upon his white horse had called his
-men to beat me; and, further that they had robbed
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_258'>258</span>me of two hundred rupees. For the latter testimony
-I would remit a little of the debt of the
-man who sold the lac-bangles, and he should say
-that he had put the money into my hands, and had
-seen the robbery from afar, but, being afraid, had
-run away. This plan I told to my brother Ram
-Dass; and he said that the arrangement was good,
-and bade me take comfort and make swift work
-to be abroad again. My heart was opened to my
-brother in my sickness, and I told him the names
-of those whom I would call as witnesses—all men
-in my debt, but of that the Magistrate Sahib could
-have no knowledge, nor the landholder. The
-fever stayed with me, and after the fever I was
-taken with colic, and gripings very terrible. In
-that day I thought that my end was at hand, but
-I know now that she who gave me the medicines,
-the sister of my father—a widow with a widow’s
-heart—had brought about my second sickness.
-Ram Dass, my brother, said that my house was
-shut and locked, and brought me the big door-key
-and my books, together with all the moneys that
-were in my house—even the money that was buried
-under the floor; for I was in great fear lest thieves
-should break in and dig. I speak true talk; there
-was but very little money in my house. Perhaps
-ten rupees—perhaps twenty. How can I tell?
-God is my witness that I am a poor man.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>One night when I had told Ram Dass all that
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_259'>259</span>was in my heart of the lawsuit that I would bring
-against the landholder, and Ram Dass had said
-that he had made the arrangements with the witnesses,
-giving me their names written, I was taken
-with a new great sickness, and they put me on
-the bed. When I was a little recovered—I cannot
-tell how many days afterwards—I made enquiry
-for Ram Dass, and the sister of my father
-said that he had gone to Montgomery upon a
-lawsuit. I took medicine and slept very heavily
-without waking. When my eyes were opened,
-there was a great stillness in the house of Ram
-Dass, and none answered when I called—not
-even the sister of my father. This filled me with
-fear, for I knew not what had happened.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>Taking a stick in my hand, I went out slowly,
-till I came to the great square by the well, and
-my heart was hot in me against the landholder
-because of the pain of every step I took.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>I called for Jowar Singh, the carpenter, whose
-name was first upon the list of those who should
-bear evidence against the landholder, saying:
-“Are all things ready, and do you know what
-should be said?”</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>Jowar Singh answered: “What is this, and
-whence do you come, Durga Dass?”</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>I said: “From my bed, where I have so long
-lain sick because of the landholder. Where is
-Ram Dass, my brother, who was to have made
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_260'>260</span>the arrangement for the witnesses? Surely you
-and yours know these things!”</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>Then Jowar Singh said: “What has this to
-do with us, O Liar? I have borne witness and
-I have been paid, and the landholder has, by the
-order of the Court, paid both the five hundred
-rupees that he robbed from Ram Dass and yet
-other five hundred because of the great injury he
-did to your brother.”</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>The well and the jujube-tree above it and the
-square of Isser Jang became dark in my eyes, but
-I leaned on my stick and said: “Nay! This is
-child’s talk and senseless. It was I who suffered
-at the hands of the landholder, and I am come to
-make ready the case. Where is my brother Ram
-Dass?”</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>But Jowar Singh shook his head, and a woman
-cried: “What lie is here? What quarrel had the
-landholder with you, <em>bunnia</em>? It is only a shameless
-one and one without faith who profits by his
-brother’s smarts. Have these <em>bunnias</em> no bowels?”</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>I cried again, saying: “By the Cow—by the
-Oath of the Cow, by the Temple of the Blue-throated
-Mahadeo, I and I only was beaten—beaten
-to the death! Let your talk be straight,
-O people of Isser Jang, and I will pay for the
-witnesses.” And I tottered where I stood, for the
-sickness and the pain of the beating were heavy
-upon me.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'><span class='pageno' id='Page_261'>261</span>Then Ram Narain, who has his carpet spread
-under the jujube-tree by the well, and writes all
-letters for the men of the town, came up and said:
-“To-day is the one and fortieth day since the
-beating, and since these six days the case has been
-judged in the Court, and the Assistant Commissioner
-Sahib has given it for your brother Ram
-Dass, allowing the robbery, to which, too, I bore
-witness, and all things else as the witnesses said.
-There were many witnesses, and twice Ram Dass
-became senseless in the Court because of his
-wounds, and the Stunt Sahib—the <em>baba</em> Stunt
-Sahib—gave him a chair before all the pleaders.
-Why do you howl, Durga Dass? These things
-fell as I have said. Was it not so?”</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>And Jowar Singh said: “That is truth. I was
-there, and there was a red cushion in the chair.”</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>And Ram Narain said: “Great shame has come
-upon the landholder because of this judgment, and
-fearing his anger, Ram Dass and all his house
-have gone back to Pali. Ram Dass told us that
-you also had gone first, the enmity being healed
-between you, to open a shop in Pali. Indeed, it
-were well for you that you go even now, for the
-landholder has sworn that if he catch any one of
-your house, he will hang him by the heels from
-the well-beam, and, swinging him to and fro, will
-beat him with staves till the blood runs from his
-ears. What I have said in respect to the case is
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_262'>262</span>true, as these men here can testify—even to the
-five hundred rupees.”</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>I said: “Was it five hundred?” And Kirpa
-Ram, the Jat, said: “Five hundred; for I bore witness
-also.”</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>And I groaned, for it had been in my heart to
-have said two hundred only.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>Then a new fear came upon me and my bowels
-turned to water, and, running swiftly to the house
-of Ram Dass, I sought for my books and my money
-in the great wooden chest under my bedstead.
-There remained nothing: not even a cowrie’s value.
-All had been taken by the devil who said he was
-my brother. I went to my own house also and
-opened the boards of the shutters; but there also
-was nothing save the rats among the grain-baskets.
-In that hour my senses left me, and, tearing my
-clothes, I ran to the well-place, crying out for the
-Justice of the English on my brother Ram Dass,
-and, in my madness, telling all that the books were
-lost. When men saw that I would have jumped
-down the well, they believed the truth of my talk;
-more especially because upon my back and bosom
-were still the marks of the staves of the landholder.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>Jowar Singh the carpenter withstood me, and
-turning me in his hands—for he is a very strong
-man—showed the scars upon my body, and bowed
-down with laughter upon the well-curb. He cried
-aloud so that all heard him, from the well-square
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_263'>263</span>to the Caravanserai of the Pilgrims: “Oho! The
-jackals have quarrelled, and the gray one has been
-caught in the trap. In truth, this man has been
-grievously beaten, and his brother has taken the
-money which the Court decreed! Oh, <em>bunnia</em>, this
-shall be told for years against you! The jackals
-have quarrelled, and, moreover, the books are
-burned. O people indebted to Durga Dass—and
-I know that ye be many—the books are
-burned!”</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>Then all Isser Jang took up the cry that the
-books were burned—<em>Ahi! Ahi!</em> that in my folly
-I had let that escape my mouth—and they laughed
-throughout the city. They gave me the abuse of
-the Punjabi, which is a terrible abuse and very hot;
-pelting me also with sticks and cow-dung till I fell
-down and cried for mercy.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>Ram Narain, the letter-writer, bade the people
-cease, for fear that the news should get into Montgomery,
-and the Policemen might come down to
-enquire. He said, using many bad words: “This
-much mercy will I do to you, Durga Dass, though
-there was no mercy in your dealings with my sister’s
-son over the matter of the dun heifer. Has
-any man a pony on which he sets no store, that
-this fellow may escape? If the landholder hears
-that one of the twain (and God knows whether he
-beat one or both, but this man is certainly beaten)
-be in the city, there will be a murder done, and
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_264'>264</span>then will come the Police, making inquisition into
-each man’s house and eating the sweet-seller’s stuff
-all day long.”</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>Kirpa Ram, the Jat, said: “I have a pony very
-sick. But with beating he can be made to walk
-for two miles. If he dies, the hide-sellers will have
-the body.”</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>Then Chumbo, the hide-seller, said: “I will
-pay three annas for the body, and will walk by
-this man’s side till such time as the pony dies. If
-it be more than two miles, I will pay two annas
-only.”</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>Kirpa Ram said: “Be it so.” Men brought out
-the pony, and I asked leave to draw a little water
-from the well, because I was dried up with fear.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>Then Ram Narain said: “Here be four annas.
-God has brought you very low, Durga Dass, and
-I would not send you away empty, even though
-the matter of my sister’s son’s dun heifer be an
-open sore between us. It is a long way to your
-own country. Go, and if it be so willed, live;
-but, above all, do not take the pony’s bridle, for
-that is mine.”</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>And I went out of Isser Jang, amid the laughing
-of the huge-thighed Jats, and the hide-seller
-walked by my side waiting for the pony to fall
-dead. In one mile it died, and being full of fear
-of the landholder, I ran till I could run no more,
-and came to this place.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'><span class='pageno' id='Page_265'>265</span>But I swear by the Cow, I swear by all things
-whereon Hindus and Musalmans, and even the
-Sahibs swear, that I, and not my brother, was
-beaten by the landholder. But the case is shut
-and the doors of the Law Courts are shut, and God
-knows where the <em>baba</em> Stunt Sahib—the mother’s
-milk is not yet dry upon his hairless lip—is gone.
-<em>Ahi! Ahi!</em> I have no witnesses, and the scars will
-heal, and I am a poor man. But, on my Father’s
-Soul, on the oath of a Mahajun from Pali, I, and
-not my brother, I was beaten by the landholder!</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>What can I do? The Justice of the English
-is as a great river. Having gone forward, it does
-not return. Howbeit, do you, Sahib, take a pen
-and write clearly what I have said, that the Dipty
-Sahib may see, and remove the Stunt Sahib, who
-is a colt yet unlicked by the mare, so young is he.
-I, and not my brother, was beaten, and he is gone
-to the west—I do not know where.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>But, above all things, write—so that Sahibs
-may read, and his disgrace be accomplished—that
-Ram Dass, my brother, son of Purun Dass,
-Mahajun of Pali, is a swine and a night-thief, a
-taker of life, an eater of flesh, a jackal-spawn without
-beauty, or faith, or cleanliness, or honour!</p>
-
-<div class='chapter'>
- <span class='pageno' id='Page_266'>266</span>
- <h2 class='c004'>THE LIMITATIONS OF PAMBÉ SERANG</h2>
-</div>
-
-<div class='nf-center-c0'>
-<div class='nf-center c002'>
- <div><span class='small'>Copyright, 1891, by Macmillan &amp; Co.</span></div>
- </div>
-</div>
-
-<p class='c005'>If you consider the circumstances of the case, it
-was the only thing that he could do. But Pambé
-Serang has been hanged by the neck till he is
-dead, and Nurkeed is dead also.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>Three years ago, when the Elsass-Lothringen
-steamer <em>Saarbruck</em> was coaling at Aden and the
-weather was very hot indeed, Nurkeed, the big
-fat Zanzibar stoker who fed the second right furnace
-thirty feet down in the hold, got leave to go
-ashore. He departed “a Seedee boy,” as they
-call the stokers; he returned the full-blooded Sultan
-of Zanzibar—His Highness Sayyid Burgash,
-with a bottle in each hand. Then he sat on the
-fore-hatch grating, eating salt fish and onions, and
-singing the songs of a far country. The food belonged
-to Pambé, the serang or head man of the
-lascar sailors. He had just cooked it for himself,
-turned to borrow some salt, and when he came
-back Nurkeed’s dirty black fingers were spading
-into the rice.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>A serang is a person of importance, far above a
-stoker, though the stoker draws better pay. He
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_267'>267</span>sets the chorus of “Hya! Hulla! Hee-ah! Heh!”
-when the captain’s gig is pulled up to the davits; he
-heaves the lead too; and sometimes, when all the
-ship is lazy, he puts on his whitest muslin and a big
-red sash, and plays with the passengers’ children
-on the quarter-deck. Then the passengers give
-him money, and he saves it all up for an orgy at
-Bombay or Calcutta, or Pulu Penang.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>“Ho! you fat black barrel, you’re eating my
-food!” said Pambé, in the Other Lingua Franca
-that begins where the Levant tongue stops, and
-runs from Port Said eastward till east is west, and
-the sealing-brigs of the Kurile Islands gossip with
-the strayed Hakodate junks.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>“Son of Eblis, monkey-face, dried shark’s liver,
-pig-man, I am the Sultan Sayyid Burgash, and
-the commander of all this ship. Take away your
-garbage”; and Nurkeed thrust the empty pewter
-rice-plate into Pambé’s hand.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>Pambé beat it into a basin over Nurkeed’s
-woolly head. Nurkeed drew his sheath-knife and
-stabbed Pambé in the leg. Pambé drew <em>his</em> sheath-knife;
-but Nurkeed dropped down into the darkness
-of the hold and spat through the grating at
-Pambé, who was staining the clean fore-deck with
-his blood.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>Only the white moon saw these things; for the
-officers were looking after the coaling, and the
-passengers were tossing in their close cabins. “All
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_268'>268</span>right,” said Pambé—and went forward to tie up
-his leg—“we will settle the account later on.”</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>He was a Malay born in India: married once
-in Burma, where his wife had a cigar-shop on the
-Shwe-Dagon road; once in Singapore, to a Chinese
-girl; and once in Madras, to a Mahomedan woman
-who sold fowls. The English sailor cannot, owing
-to postal and telegraph facilities, marry as profusely
-as he used to do; but native sailors can,
-being uninfluenced by the barbarous inventions of
-the Western savage. Pambé was a good husband
-when he happened to remember the existence of a
-wife; but he was also a very good Malay; and it
-is not wise to offend a Malay, because he does not
-forget anything. Moreover, in Pambé’s case blood
-had been drawn and food spoiled.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>Next morning Nurkeed rose with a blank mind.
-He was no longer Sultan of Zanzibar, but a very
-hot stoker. So he went on deck and opened his
-jacket to the morning breeze, till a sheath-knife
-came like a flying-fish and stuck into the wood-work
-of the cook’s galley half an inch from his
-right armpit. He ran down below before his
-time, trying to remember what he could have said
-to the owner of the weapon. At noon, when all
-the ship’s lascars were feeding, Nurkeed advanced
-into their midst, and, being a placid man with a
-large regard for his own skin, he opened negotiations,
-saying, “Men of the ship, last night I was
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_269'>269</span>drunk, and this morning I know that I behaved
-unseemly to some one or another of you. Who
-was that man, that I may meet him face to face
-and say that I was drunk?”</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>Pambé measured the distance to Nurkeed’s
-naked breast. If he sprang at him he might be
-tripped up, and a blind blow at the chest sometimes
-only means a gash on the breast-bone. Ribs
-are difficult to thrust between unless the subject be
-asleep. So he said nothing; nor did the other lascars.
-Their faces immediately dropped all expression,
-as is the custom of the Oriental when there
-is killing on the carpet or any chance of trouble.
-Nurkeed looked long at the white eyeballs. He
-was only an African, and could not read characters.
-A big sigh—almost a groan—broke from him,
-and he went back to the furnaces. The lascars
-took up the conversation where he had interrupted
-it. They talked of the best methods of cooking
-rice.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>Nurkeed suffered considerably from lack of
-fresh air during the run to Bombay. He only
-came on deck to breathe when all the world was
-about; and even then a heavy block once dropped
-from a derrick within a foot of his head, and an
-apparently firm-lashed grating on which he set his
-foot began to turn over with the intention of dropping
-him on the cased cargo fifteen feet below; and
-one insupportable night the sheath-knife dropped
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_270'>270</span>from the fo’c’s’le, and this time it drew blood. So
-Nurkeed made complaint; and, when the <em>Saarbruck</em>
-reached Bombay, fled and buried himself
-among eight hundred thousand people, and did
-not sign articles till the ship had been a month
-gone from the port. Pambé waited too; but his
-Bombay wife grew clamorous, and he was forced
-to sign in the <em>Spicheren</em> to Hongkong, because he
-realised that all play and no work gives Jack a
-ragged shirt. In the foggy China seas he thought
-a great deal of Nurkeed, and, when Elsass-Lothringen
-steamers lay in port with the <em>Spicheren</em>, inquired
-after him and found he had gone to England
-<span lang="la" xml:lang="la"><em>via</em></span> the Cape, on the <em>Gravelotte</em>. Pambé came
-to England on the <em>Worth</em>. The <em>Spicheren</em> met her
-by the Nore Light. Nurkeed was going out with
-the <em>Spicheren</em> to the Calicut coast.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>“Want to find a friend, my trap-mouthed coal-scuttle?”
-said a gentleman in the mercantile service.
-“Nothing easier. Wait at the Nyanza
-Docks till he comes. Every one comes to the
-Nyanza Docks. Wait, you poor heathen.” The
-gentleman spoke truth. There are three great
-doors in the world where, if you stand long enough,
-you shall meet any one you wish. The head of
-the Suez Canal is one, but there Death comes also;
-Charing Cross Station is the second—for inland
-work; and the Nyanza Docks is the third. At
-each of these places are men and women looking
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_271'>271</span>eternally for those who will surely come. So
-Pambé waited at the docks. Time was no object
-to him; and the wives could wait, as he did from
-day to day, week to week, and month to month,
-by the Blue Diamond funnels, the Red Dot smoke-stacks,
-the Yellow Streaks, and the nameless dingy
-gypsies of the sea that loaded and unloaded, jostled,
-whistled, and roared in the everlasting fog. When
-money failed, a kind gentleman told Pambé to become
-a Christian; and Pambé became one with
-great speed, getting his religious teachings between
-ship and ship’s arrival, and six or seven shillings a
-week for distributing tracts to mariners. What
-the faith was Pambé did not in the least care; but
-he knew if he said “Native Ki-lis-ti-an, Sar,” to
-men with long black coats he might get a few
-coppers; and the tracts were vendible at a little
-public-house that sold shag by the “dottel,” which
-is even smaller weight than the half-screw, which
-is less than the half-ounce, and a most profitable
-retail trade.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>But after eight months Pambé fell sick with
-pneumonia, contracted from long standing still in
-slush; and much against his will he was forced to
-lie down in his two-and-sixpenny room raging
-against Fate.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>The kind gentleman sat by his bedside, and
-grieved to find that Pambé talked in strange
-tongues, instead of listening to good books, and
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_272'>272</span>almost seemed to become a benighted heathen
-again—till one day he was roused from semi-stupor
-by a voice in the street by the dock-head.
-“My friend—he,” whispered Pambé.
-“Call now—call Nurkeed. Quick! God has
-sent him!”</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>“He wanted one of his own race,” said the kind
-gentleman; and, going out, he called “Nurkeed!”
-at the top of his voice. An excessively coloured
-man in a rasping white shirt and brand-new slops,
-a shining hat, and a breast-pin, turned round.
-Many voyages had taught Nurkeed how to spend
-his money and made him a citizen of the world.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>“Hi! Yes!” said he, when the situation was
-explained. “Command him—black nigger—when
-I was in the <em>Saarbruck</em>. Ole Pambé, good
-ole Pambé. Dam lascar. Show him up, Sar”;
-and he followed into the room. One glance told
-the stoker what the kind gentleman had overlooked.
-Pambé was desperately poor. Nurkeed
-drove his hands deep into his pockets, then advanced
-with clenched fists on the sick, shouting,
-“Hya, Pambé. Hya! Hee-ah! Hulla! Heh!
-Takilo! Takilo! Make fast aft, Pambé. You
-know, Pambé. You know me. Dekho, jee!
-Look! Dam big fat lazy lascar!”</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>Pambé beckoned with his left hand. His right
-was under his pillow. Nurkeed removed his gorgeous
-hat and stooped over Pambé till he could
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_273'>273</span>catch a faint whisper. “How beautiful!” said the
-kind gentleman. “How these Orientals love like
-children!”</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>“Spit him out,” said Nurkeed, leaning over
-Pambé yet more closely.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>“Touching the matter of that fish and onions,”
-said Pambé—and sent the knife home under the
-edge of the rib-bone upwards and forwards.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>There was a thick, sick cough, and the body of
-the African slid slowly from the bed, his clutching
-hands letting fall a shower of silver pieces that ran
-across the room.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>“Now I can die!” said Pambé.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>But he did not die. He was nursed back to life
-with all the skill that money could buy, for the
-Law wanted him; and in the end he grew sufficiently
-healthy to be hanged in due and proper
-form.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>Pambé did not care particularly; but it was a
-sad blow to the kind gentleman.</p>
-
-<div class='chapter'>
- <span class='pageno' id='Page_274'>274</span>
- <h2 class='c004'>ONE VIEW OF THE QUESTION</h2>
-</div>
-
-<div class='nf-center-c0'>
-<div class='nf-center c002'>
- <div><span class='small'>Copyright, 1893, by D. Appleton &amp; Co.</span></div>
- </div>
-</div>
-
-<p class='c012'><em>From Shafiz Ullah Khan, son of Hyat Ullah Khan,
-in the honoured service of His Highness the Rao
-Sahib of Jagesur, which is in the northern borders
-of Hindustan, and Orderly to His Highness, this to
-Kazi Jamal-ud-Din, son of Kazi Ferisht ud Din
-Khan, in the service of the Rao Sahib, a minister
-much honoured. From that place which they call
-the Northbrook Club, in the town of London, under
-the shadow of the Empress, it is written</em>:</p>
-
-<p class='c022'>Between brother and chosen brother be no long
-protestations of Love and Sincerity. Heart
-speaks naked to Heart, and the Head answers
-for all. Glory and Honour on thy house till
-the ending of the years, and a tent in the borders
-of Paradise.</p>
-
-<p class='c023'><span class='sc'>My Brother</span>,—In regard to that for which I was
-despatched follows the account. I have purchased
-for the Rao Sahib, and paid sixty pounds in every
-hundred, the things he most desired. Thus, two
-of the great fawn-coloured tiger-dogs, male and
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_275'>275</span>female, their pedigree being written upon paper,
-and silver collars adorning their necks. For the
-Rao Sahib’s greater pleasure I send them at once
-by the steamer, in charge of a man who will render
-account of them at Bombay to the bankers
-there. They are the best of all dogs in this place.
-Of guns I have bought five—two silver-sprigged
-in the stock, with gold scroll-work about the hammer,
-both double-barrelled, hard-striking, cased in
-velvet and red leather; three of unequalled workmanship,
-but lacking adornment; a pump-gun
-that fires fourteen times—this when the Rao
-Sahib drives pig; a double-barrelled shell-gun
-for tiger, and that is a miracle of workmanship;
-and a fowling-piece no lighter than a feather,
-with green and blue cartridges by the thousand.
-Also a very small rifle for blackbuck, that yet
-would slay a man at four hundred paces. The
-harness with the golden crests for the Rao Sahib’s
-coach is not yet complete, by reason of the difficulty
-of lining the red velvet into leather; but
-the two-horse harness and the great saddle with
-the golden holsters that is for state use have been
-put with camphor into a tin box, and I have
-signed it with my ring. Of the grained-leather
-case of women’s tools and tweezers for the hair
-and beard, of the perfumes and the silks, and all
-that was wanted by the women behind the curtains,
-I have no knowledge. They are matters
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_276'>276</span>of long coming, and the hawk-bells, hoods, and
-jesses with the golden lettering are as much delayed
-as they. Read this in the Rao Sahib’s ear,
-and speak of my diligence and zeal, that favour
-may not be abated by absence, and keep the eye
-of constraint upon that jesting dog without teeth—Bahadur
-Shah—for by thy aid and voice, and
-what I have done in regard to the guns, I look,
-as thou knowest, for the headship of the army of
-Jagesur. That conscienceless one desires it also,
-and I have heard that the Rao Sahib leans thatward.
-Have ye done, then, with the drinking of
-wine in your house, my brother, or has Bahadur
-Shah become a forswearer of brandy? I would
-not that drink should end him, but the well-mixed
-draught leads to madness. Consider.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>And now in regard to this land of the Sahibs,
-follows that thou hast demanded. God is my witness
-that I have striven to understand all that I
-saw and a little of what I heard. My words and
-intention are those of truth, yet it may be that
-I write of nothing but lies.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>Since the first wonder and bewilderment of my
-beholding is gone—we note the jewels in the
-ceiling-dome, but later the filth on the floor—I
-see clearly that this town, London, which is as
-large as all Jagesur, is accursed, being dark and
-unclean, devoid of sun, and full of low-born, who
-are perpetually drunk, and howl in the streets like
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_277'>277</span>jackals, men and women together. At nightfall
-it is the custom of countless thousands of women
-to descend into the streets and sweep them, roaring,
-making jests, and demanding liquor. At the
-hour of this attack it is the custom of the householders
-to take their wives and children to the
-playhouses and the places of entertainment; evil
-and good thus returning home together as do kine
-from the pools at sundown. I have never seen
-any sight like this sight in all the world, and I
-doubt that a double is to be found on the hither
-side of the gates of Hell. Touching the mystery
-of their craft, it is an ancient one, but the householders
-assemble in herds, being men and women,
-and cry aloud to their God that it is not there;
-the said women pounding at the doors without.
-Moreover, upon the day when they go to
-prayer the drink-places are only opened when the
-mosques are shut; as who should dam the Jumna
-river for Friday only. Therefore the men and
-women, being forced to accomplish their desires
-in the shorter space, become the more furiously
-drunk, and roll in the gutter together. They are
-there regarded by those going to pray. Further,
-and for visible sign that the place is forgotten of
-God, there falls upon certain days, without warning,
-a cold darkness, whereby the sun’s light is altogether
-cut off from all the city and the people,
-male and female, and the drivers of the vehicles
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_278'>278</span>grope and howl in this Pit at high noon, none
-seeing the other. The air being filled with the
-smoke of Hell—sulphur and pitch as it is written—they
-die speedily with gaspings, and so are
-buried in the dark. This is a terror beyond the
-pen, but by my hand I write of what I have seen!</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>It is not true that the Sahibs worship one God,
-as do we of the Faith, or that the differences in
-their creed be like those now running between
-Shiah and Sunni. I am but a fighting man, and
-no darvesh, caring, as thou knowest, as much for
-Shiah as Sunni. But I have spoken to many people
-of the nature of their Gods. One there is who
-is the head of the Mukht-i-Fauj,<a id='r2' /><a href='#f2' class='c020'><sup>[2]</sup></a> and he is worshipped
-by men in blood-red clothes, who shout
-and become without sense. Another is an image,
-before whom they burn candles and incense in just
-such a place as I have seen when I went to Rangoon
-to buy Burma ponies for the Rao. Yet a
-third has naked altars facing a great assembly of
-dead. To him they sing chiefly; and for others
-there is a woman who was the mother of the great
-prophet that was before Mahomed. The common
-folk have no God, but worship those who
-may speak to them hanging from the lamps in
-the street. The most wise people worship themselves
-and such things as they have made with
-their mouths and their hands, and this is to be
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_279'>279</span>found notably among the barren women, of whom
-there are many. Thou wilt not believe this, my
-brother. Nor did I when I was first told, but now
-it is nothing to me; so greatly has the foot of
-travel let out the stirrup-holes of belief.</p>
-
-<div class='footnote' id='f2'>
-<p class='c001'><a href='#r2'>2</a>. Salvation Army.</p>
-</div>
-
-<p class='c001'>But thou wilt say, “What matter to us whether
-Ahmed’s beard or Mahmud’s be the longer!
-Speak what thou canst of the Accomplishment
-of Desire.” Would that thou wert here to talk
-face to face; to walk abroad with me and learn.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>With this people it is a matter of Heaven and
-Hell whether Ahmed’s beard and Mahmud’s tally
-or differ but by a hair. Thou knowest the system
-of their statecraft? It is this. Certain men, appointing
-themselves, go about and speak to the
-low-born, the peasants, the leather-workers, and
-the cloth-dealers, and the women, saying: “Give
-us leave by your favour to speak for you in the
-council.” Securing that permission by large promises,
-they return to the council-place, and, sitting
-unarmed, some six hundred together, speak at
-random each for himself and his own ball of low-born.
-The viziers and dewans of the Empress
-must ever beg money at their hands, for unless
-more than a half of the six hundred be of one
-heart towards the spending of the revenues, neither
-horse can be shod, rifle loaded, or man clothed
-throughout the land. Remember this very continually.
-The six hundred are above the Empress,
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_280'>280</span>above the Viceroy of India, above the
-Head of the Army and every other power that
-thou hast ever known. Because they hold the
-revenues.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>They are divided into two hordes—the one
-perpetually hurling abuse at the other, and bidding
-the low-born hamper and rebel against all
-that the other may devise for government. Except
-that they sit unarmed, and so call each other
-liar, dog, and bastard without fear, even under the
-shadow of the Empress’s throne, they are at bitter
-war which is without any end. They pit lie
-against lie, till the low-born and common folk
-grow drunk with lies, and in their turn begin to
-lie and refuse to pay the revenues. Further, they
-divide their women into bands, and send them
-into this fight with yellow flowers in their hands,
-and since the belief of a woman is but her lover’s
-belief stripped of judgment, very many wild words
-are added. Well said the slave girl to Mámún
-in the delectable pages of the Son of Abdullah:—</p>
-
-<div class='lg-container-b c017'>
- <div class='linegroup'>
- <div class='group'>
- <div class='line'>“Oppression and the sword slay fast—</div>
- <div class='line'>Thy breath kills slowly but at last.”</div>
- </div>
- </div>
-</div>
-
-<p class='c018'>If they desire a thing they declare that it is true.
-If they desire it not, though that were Death itself,
-they cry aloud, “It has never been.” Thus
-their talk is the talk of children, and like children
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_281'>281</span>they snatch at what they covet, not considering
-whether it be their own or another’s. And in their
-councils, when the army of unreason has come to
-the defile of dispute, and there is no more talk left
-on either side, they, dividing, count heads, and the
-will of that side which has the larger number of
-heads makes that law. But the outnumbered side
-run speedily among the common people and bid
-them trample on that law, and slay the officers
-thereof. Follow slaughter by night of men unarmed,
-and the slaughter of cattle and insults to
-women. They do not cut off the noses of women,
-but they crop their hair and scrape the flesh with
-pins. Then those shameless ones of the council
-stand up before the judges wiping their mouths
-and making oath. They say: “Before God we
-are free from blame. Did we say ‘Heave that
-stone out of that road and kill that one and no
-other’?” So they are not made shorter by the
-head because they said only: “Here are stones and
-yonder is such a fellow obeying the Law which is
-no law because we do not desire it.”</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>Read this in the Rao Sahib’s ear, and ask him
-if he remembers that season when the Manglôt
-headmen refused revenue, not because they could
-not pay, but because they judged the cess extreme.
-I and thou went out with the troopers all one day
-and the black lances raised the thatch, so that there
-was hardly any need of firing; and no man was
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_282'>282</span>slain. But this land is at secret war and veiled
-killing. In five years of peace they have slain
-within their own borders and of their own kin more
-men than would have fallen had the ball of dissension
-been left to the mallet of the army. And
-yet there is no hope of peace, for soon the sides
-again divide, and then they will cause to be slain
-more men unarmed and in the fields. And so
-much for that matter, which is to our advantage.
-There is a better thing to be told, and one tending
-to the Accomplishment of Desire. Read here
-with a fresh mind after sleep. I write as I understand.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>Above all this war without honour lies that
-which I find hard to put into writing, and thou
-knowest I am unhandy of the pen. I will ride
-the steed of Inability sideways at the wall of Expression.
-The earth underfoot is sick and sour
-with the much handling of man, as a grazing-ground
-sours under cattle; and the air is sick too.
-Upon the ground they have laid in this town, as it
-were, the stinking boards of a stable, and through
-these boards, between a thousand thousand houses,
-the rank humours of the earth sweat through to
-the over-burdened air that returns them to their
-breeding-place; for the smoke of their cooking-fires
-keeps all in as the cover the juices of the sheep.
-And in like manner there is a green-sickness
-among the people, and especially among the six
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_283'>283</span>hundred men who talk. Neither winter nor
-autumn abates that malady of the soul. I have
-seen it among women in our own country, and in
-boys not yet blooded to the sword; but I have
-never seen so much thereof before. Through the
-peculiar operation of this air the people, abandoning
-honour and steadfastness, question all authority,
-not as men question, but as girls, whimperingly,
-with pinchings in the back when the back
-is turned, and mowing. If one cries in the streets,
-“There has been an injustice,” they take him not
-to make complaint to those appointed, but all who
-pass, drinking his words, fly clamorously to the
-house of the accused and write evil things of him,
-his wives and his daughters; for they take no
-thought to the weighing of evidence, but are as
-women. And with one hand they beat their constables
-who guard the streets, and with the other
-beat the constables for resenting that beating, and
-fine them. When they have in all things made
-light of the State they cry to the State for help,
-and it is given; so that the next time they will cry
-more. Such as are oppressed riot through the
-streets, bearing banners that hold four days’ labour
-and a week’s bread in cost and toil; and when
-neither horse nor foot can pass by they are satisfied.
-Others, receiving wages, refuse to work till
-they get more, and the priests help them, and also
-men of the six hundred—for where rebellion is
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_284'>284</span>one of those men will come as a kite to a dead
-bullock—and priests, talker, and men together declare
-that it is right because these will not work
-that no others may attempt. In this manner they
-have so confused the loading and the unloading of
-the ships that come to this town that, in sending
-the Rao Sahib’s guns and harness, I saw fit to send
-the cases by the train to another ship that sailed
-from another place. There is now no certainty in
-any sending. But who injures the merchants shuts
-the door of well-being on the city and the army.
-And ye know what Sa’adi saith:—</p>
-
-<div class='lg-container-b c017'>
- <div class='linegroup'>
- <div class='group'>
- <div class='line'>“How may the merchant westward fare</div>
- <div class='line'>When he hears the tale of the tumults there?”</div>
- </div>
- </div>
-</div>
-
-<p class='c018'>No man can keep faith, because he cannot tell
-how his underlings will go. They have made the
-servant greater than the master, for that he is the
-servant; not reckoning that each is equal under
-God to the appointed task. That is a thing to be
-put aside in the cupboard of the mind.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>Further, the misery and outcry of the common
-folk, of whom the earth’s bosom is weary, has so
-wrought upon the minds of certain people who
-have never slept under fear nor seen the flat edge
-of the sword on the heads of a mob, that they cry
-out: “Let us abate everything that is, and altogether
-labour with our bare hands.” Their hands
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_285'>285</span>in that employ would fester at the second stroke;
-and I have seen, for all their unrest at the agonies
-of others, that they abandon no whit of soft living.
-Unknowing the common folk, or indeed the
-minds of men, they offer strong drink of words,
-such as they themselves use, to empty bellies;
-and that wine breeds drunkenness of soul. The
-distressful persons stand all day long at the door of
-the drink-places to the number of very many thousands.
-The well-wishing people of small discernment
-give them words or pitifully attempt in
-schools to turn them into craftsmen, weavers, or
-builders, of whom there be more than enough.
-Yet they have not the wisdom to look at the hands
-of the taught, whereon a man’s craft and that of
-his father is written by God and Necessity. They
-believe that the son of a drunkard shall drive a
-straight chisel and the charioteer do plaster-work.
-They take no thought in the dispensation of generosity,
-which is as the closed fingers of a water-scooping
-palm. Therefore the rough timber of a
-very great army drifts unhewn through the slime
-of their streets. If the Government, which is to-day
-and to-morrow changes, spent on these hopeless
-ones some money to clothe and equip, I should
-not write what I write. But these people despise
-the trade of arms, and rest content with the memory
-of old battles; the women and the talking-men
-aiding them.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'><span class='pageno' id='Page_286'>286</span>Thou wilt say: “Why speak continually of
-women and fools?” I answer by God, the Fashioner
-of the Heart, the fools sit among the six
-hundred, and the women sway their councils. Hast
-thou forgotten when the order came across the
-seas that rotted out the armies of the English with
-us, so that soldiers fell sick by the hundred where
-but ten had sickened before? That was the work
-of not more than twenty of the men and some
-fifty of the barren women. I have seen three or
-four of them, male and female, and they triumph
-openly, in the name of their God, because three
-regiments of the white troops are not. This is to
-our advantage, because the sword with the rust-spot
-breaks over the turban of the enemy. But if
-they thus tear their own flesh and blood ere their
-madness be risen to its height, what will they do
-when the moon is full?</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>Seeing that power lay in the hands of the six
-hundred, and not in the Viceroy or elsewhere, I
-have throughout my stay sought the shadow of
-those among them who talk most and most extravagantly.
-They lead the common folk, and
-receive permission of their good-will. It is the
-desire of some of these men—indeed, of almost
-as many as caused the rotting of the English army—that
-our lands and peoples should accurately
-resemble those of the English upon this very day.
-May God, the Contemner of Folly, forbid! I
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_287'>287</span>myself am accounted a show among them, and of
-us and ours they know naught, some calling me
-Hindu and others Rajput, and using towards me,
-in ignorance, slave-talk and expressions of great
-disrespect. Some of them are well-born, but the
-greater part are low-born, coarse-skinned, waving
-their arms, high-voiced, without dignity, slack in
-the mouth, shifty-eyed, and, as I have said, swayed
-by the wind of a woman’s cloak.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>Now this is a tale but two days old. There
-was a company at meat, and a high-voiced woman
-spoke to me, in the face of the men, of the affairs
-of our womankind. It was her ignorance that
-made each word an edged insult. Remembering
-this, I held my peace till she had spoken a new
-law as to the control of our zenanas, and of all
-who are behind the curtains.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>Then I—“Hast thou ever felt the life stir under
-thy heart or laid a little son between thy breasts,
-O most unhappy?” Thereto she, hotly, with a
-haggard eye—“No, for I am a free woman, and
-no servant of babes.” Then I, softly—“God deal
-lightly with thee, my sister, for thou art in heavier
-bondage than any slave, and the fuller half of the
-earth is hidden from thee. The first ten years of
-the life of a man are his mother’s, and from the
-dusk to the dawn surely the wife may command
-the husband. Is it a great thing to stand back in
-the waking hours while the men go abroad unhampered
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_288'>288</span>by thy hands on the bridle-rein?” Then
-she wondered that a heathen should speak thus:
-yet she is a woman honoured among these men,
-and openly professes that she hath no profession
-of faith in her mouth. Read this in the ear of the
-Rao Sahib, and demand how it would fare with
-me if I brought such a woman for his use. It
-were worse than that yellow desert-bred girl from
-Cutch, who set the girls to fighting for her own
-pleasure, and slippered the young prince across the
-mouth. Rememberest thou?</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>In truth the fountain-head of power is putrid
-with long standing still. These men and women
-would make of all India a dung-cake, and would
-fain leave the mark of the fingers upon it. And
-they have power and the control of the revenues,
-and that is why I am so particular in description.
-<em>They have power over all India.</em> Of what they
-speak they understand nothing, for the low-born’s
-soul is bounded by his field, and he grasps not the
-connection of affairs from pole to pole. They boast
-openly that the Viceroy and the others are their
-servants. When the masters are mad, what shall
-the servants do?</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>Some hold that all war is sin, and Death the
-greatest fear under God. Others declare with the
-Prophet that it is evil to drink, to which teaching
-their streets bear evident witness; and others there
-are, specially the low-born, who aver that all dominion
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_289'>289</span>is wicked and sovereignty of the sword
-accursed. These protested to me, making, as it
-were, an apology that their kin should hold
-Hindustan, and hoping that some day they would
-withdraw. Knowing well the breed of white man
-in our borders, I would have laughed, but forbore,
-remembering that these speakers had power in the
-counting of heads. Yet others cry aloud against
-the taxation of Hindustan under the Sahibs’ rule.
-To this I assent, remembering the yearly mercy
-of the Rao Sahib when the turbans of the troopers
-come through the blighted corn, and the women’s
-anklets go into the melting-pot. But I am no
-good speaker. <em>That</em> is the duty of the boys from
-Bengal—hill-asses with an eastern bray—Mahrattas
-from Poona, and the like. These, moving
-among fools, represent themselves as the sons of
-some one, being beggar-taught, offspring of grain-dealers,
-curriers, sellers of bottles, and money-lenders,
-as thou knowest. Now, we of Jagesur
-owe naught save friendship to the English who
-took us by the sword, and having taken us let us
-go, assuring the Rao Sahib’s succession for all
-time. But <em>these</em> base-born, having won their learning
-through the mercy of the Government, attired
-in English clothes, forswearing the faith of their
-fathers for gain, spread rumour and debate against
-the Government, and are therefore very dear to
-certain of the six hundred. I have heard these
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_290'>290</span>cattle speak as princes and rulers of men, and I
-have laughed, but not altogether.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>Once it happened that a son of some grain-bag
-sat with me at meat, who was arrayed and speaking
-after the manner of the English. At each
-mouthful he committed perjury against the salt
-that he had eaten, the men and women applauding.
-When, craftily falsifying, he had magnified
-oppression and invented untold wrong, together
-with the desecration of his tun-bellied gods, he
-demanded in the name of his people the government
-of all our land, and turning, laid palm to
-my shoulder, saying—“Here is one who is with
-us, albeit he professes another faith; he will bear
-out my words.” This he delivered in English,
-and, as it were, exhibited me to that company.
-Preserving a smiling countenance, I answered in
-our own tongue—“Take away that hand, man
-without a father, or the folly of these folk shall not
-save thee, nor my silence guard thy reputation.
-Sit off, herd!” And in their speech I said—“He
-speaks truth. When the favour and wisdom
-of the English allows us yet a little larger
-share in the burden and the reward, the Musalman
-will deal with the Hindu.” He alone saw
-what was in my heart. I was merciful towards
-him because he was accomplishing our desires;
-but remember that his father is one Durga Charan
-Laha, in Calcutta. Lay thy hand upon <em>his</em> shoulder
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_291'>291</span>if ever chance sends. It is not good that
-bottle-dealers and auctioneers should paw the sons
-of princes. I walk abroad sometimes with the
-man, that all the world may know the Hindu and
-Musalman are one, but when we come to the unfrequented
-streets I bid him walk behind me, and
-that is sufficient honour.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>And why did I eat dirt?</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>Thus, my brother, it seems to my heart, which
-has almost burst in the consideration of these
-matters. The Bengalis and the beggar-taught
-boys know well that the Sahibs’ power to govern
-comes neither from the Viceroy nor the head of
-the army, but from the hands of the six hundred
-in this town, and peculiarly those who talk most.
-They will therefore yearly address themselves more
-and more to that protection, and working on the
-green-sickness of the land, as has ever been their
-custom, will in time cause, through the perpetually
-instigated interference of the six hundred, the hand
-of the Indian Government to become inoperative,
-so that no measure nor order may be carried through
-without clamour and argument on their part; for
-that is the delight of the English at this hour.
-Have I overset the bounds of possibility? No.
-Even thou must have heard that one of the six
-hundred, having neither knowledge, fear, nor reverence
-before his eyes, has made in sport a new
-and a written scheme for the government of Bengal,
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_292'>292</span>and openly shows it abroad as a king might
-read his crowning proclamation. And this man,
-meddling in affairs of State, speaks in the council
-for an assemblage of leather-dressers, makers of
-boots and harness, and openly glories in that he
-has no God. Has either minister of the Empress,
-Empress, Viceroy, or any other raised a voice
-against this leather-man? Is not his power therefore
-to be sought, and that of his like-thinkers with
-it? Thou seest.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>The telegraph is the servant of the six hundred,
-and all the Sahibs in India, omitting not one, are
-the servants of the telegraph. Yearly, too, thou
-knowest, the beggar-taught will hold that which
-they call their Congress, first at one place and then
-at another, leavening Hindustan with rumour,
-echoing the talk among the low-born people here,
-and demanding that they, like the six hundred,
-control the revenues. And they will bring every
-point and letter over the heads of the Governors
-and the Lieutenant-Governors, and whoever hold
-authority, and cast it clamorously at the feet of the
-six hundred here; and certain of those word-confounders
-and the barren women will assent to their
-demands, and others will weary of disagreement
-Thus fresh confusion will be thrown into the councils
-of the Empress, even as an island near by is
-helped and comforted into the smothered war of
-which I have written. Then yearly, as they have
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_293'>293</span>begun and we have seen, the low-born men of the
-six hundred anxious for honour will embark for
-our land, and, staying a little while, will gather
-round them and fawn before the beggar-taught,
-and these departing from their side will assuredly
-inform the peasants, and the fighting men for whom
-there is no employ, that there is a change toward
-and a coming of help from over the seas. That rumour
-will not grow smaller in the spreading. And,
-most of all, the Congress, when it is not under the
-eye of the six hundred—who, though they foment
-dissension and death, pretend great reverence for
-the law which is no law—will, stepping aside, deliver
-uneasy words to the peasants, speaking, as it
-has done already, of the remission of taxation,
-and promising a new rule. That is to our advantage,
-but the flower of danger is in the seed of it.
-Thou knowest what evil a rumour may do; though
-in the Black Year, when thou and I were young,
-our standing to the English brought gain to Jagesur
-and enlarged our borders, for the Government
-gave us land on both sides. Of the Congress
-itself nothing is to be feared that ten troopers
-could not remove, but if its words too soon perturb
-the minds of those waiting or <em>of princes in
-idleness</em>, a flame may come <em>before the time</em>, and since
-there are now many white hands to quench it, all
-will return to the former condition. If the flame
-be kept under we need have no fear, because,
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_294'>294</span>sweating and panting, the one trampling on the
-other, the white people here are digging their own
-graves. The hand of the Viceroy will be tied,
-the hearts of the Sahibs will be downcast, and all
-eyes will turn to England disregarding any orders.
-Meantime, keeping tally on the sword-hilt against
-the hour when the score must be made smooth by
-the blade, it is well for us to assist and greatly befriend
-the Bengali that he may get control of the
-revenues and the posts. We must even write to
-England that we be of one blood with the schoolmen.
-It is not long to wait; by my head it is
-not long! This people are like the great king
-Ferisht, who, eaten with the scab of long idleness,
-plucked off his crown and danced naked among
-the dung-hills. But I have not forgotten the profitable
-end of that tale. The vizier set him upon
-a horse and led him into battle. Presently his
-health returned, and he caused to be engraven on
-the crown:—</p>
-
-<div class='lg-container-b c017'>
- <div class='linegroup'>
- <div class='group'>
- <div class='line'>“Though I was cast away by the king</div>
- <div class='line'>Yet, through God, I returned and he added to my brilliance</div>
- <div class='line'>Two great rubies (Balkh and Iran).”</div>
- </div>
- </div>
-</div>
-
-<p class='c019'>If this people be purged and bled out by battle,
-their sickness may go and their eyes be cleared to
-the necessities of things. But they are now far
-gone in rottenness. Even the stallion, too long
-heel-roped, forgets how to fight: and these men
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_295'>295</span>are mules. I do not lie when I say that unless
-they are bled and taught with the whip, they will
-hear and obey all that is said by the Congress and
-the black men here, hoping to turn our land into
-their own orderless Jehannum. For the men of
-the six hundred, being chiefly low-born and unused
-to authority, desire much to exercise rule,
-extending their arms to the sun and moon, and
-shouting very greatly in order to hear the echo
-of their voices, each one saying some new strange
-thing and parting the goods and honour of others
-among the rapacious, that he may obtain the favour
-of the common folk. And all this is to our
-advantage.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>Therefore write, that they may read, of gratitude
-and of love and the law. I myself, when I return,
-will show how the dish should be dressed to take
-the taste here; for it is here that we must come.
-Cause to be established in Jagesur a newspaper,
-and fill it with translations of their papers. A
-beggar-taught may be brought from Calcutta for
-thirty rupees a month, and if he writes in Gurmukhi
-our people cannot read. Create, further,
-councils other than the panchayats of headmen,
-village by village and district by district, instructing
-them beforehand what to say according to the
-order of the Rao. Print all these things in a book
-in English, and send it to this place, and to every
-man of the six hundred. Bid the beggar-taught
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_296'>296</span>write in front of all that Jagesur follows fast on
-the English plan. If thou squeezest the Hindu
-shrine at Theegkot, and it is ripe, remit the head-tax,
-and perhaps the marriage-tax, with great
-publicity. But above all things keep the troops
-ready, and in good pay, even though we glean
-the stubble with the wheat and stint the Rao
-Sahib’s women. All must go softly. Protest
-thou thy love for the voice of the common people
-in all things, and affect to despise the troops.
-That shall be taken for a witness in this land.
-The headship of the troops must be mine. See
-that Bahadur Shah’s wits go wandering over the
-wine, but do not send him to God. I am an old
-man, but I may yet live to lead.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>If this people be not bled out and regain
-strength, we, watching how the tide runs, when
-we see that the shadow of their hand is all but
-lifted from Hindustan, must bid the Bengali demand
-the removal of the residue or set going an
-uneasiness to that end. We must have a care
-neither to hurt the life of the Englishmen nor the
-honour of their women, for in that case six times
-the six hundred here could not hold those who
-remain from making the land swim. We must
-care that they are not mobbed by the Bengalis,
-but honourably escorted, while the land is held
-down with the threat of the sword if a hair of
-their heads fall. Thus we shall gain a good name,
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_297'>297</span>and when rebellion is unaccompanied by bloodshed,
-as has lately befallen in a far country, the
-English, disregarding honour, call it by a new
-name: even one who has been a minister of the
-Empress, but is now at war against the law, praises
-it openly before the common folk. So greatly
-are they changed since the days of Nikhal Seyn!<a id='r3' /><a href='#f3' class='c020'><sup>[3]</sup></a>
-And then, if all go well and the Sahibs, who
-through continual checking and browbeating will
-have grown sick at heart, see themselves abandoned
-by their kin—for this people have allowed
-their greatest to die on dry sand through delay
-and fear of expense—we may go forward. This
-people are swayed by names. A new name therefore
-must be given to the rule of Hindustan (and
-that the Bengalis may settle among themselves),
-and there will be many writings and oaths of love,
-such as the little island over seas makes when it
-would fight more bitterly; and after that the residue
-are diminished the hour comes, and we must
-strike so that the Sword is never any more questioned.</p>
-
-<div class='footnote' id='f3'>
-<p class='c001'><a href='#r3'>3</a>. Nicholson, a gentleman once of some notoriety in India.</p>
-</div>
-
-<p class='c001'>By the favour of God and the conservation of
-the Sahibs these many years, Hindustan contains
-very much plunder, which we can in no way eat
-hurriedly. There will be to our hand the scaffolding
-of the house of state, for the Bengali shall continue
-to do our work, and must account to us for
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_298'>298</span>the revenue, and learn his seat in the order of
-things. Whether the Hindu kings of the West
-will break in to share that spoil before we have
-swept it altogether, thou knowest better than I;
-but be certain that, <em>then</em>, strong hands will seek
-their own thrones, and it may be that the days of
-the king of Delhi will return if we only, curbing
-our desires, pay due obedience to the outward
-appearances and the names. Thou rememberest
-the old song:—</p>
-
-<div class='lg-container-b c017'>
- <div class='linegroup'>
- <div class='group'>
- <div class='line'>“Hadst thou not called it Love, I had said it were a drawn sword,</div>
- <div class='line'>But since thou hast spoken, I believe and—I die.”</div>
- </div>
- </div>
-</div>
-
-<p class='c019'>It is in my heart that there will remain in our
-land a few Sahibs undesirous of returning to England.
-These we must cherish and protect, that by
-their skill and cunning we may hold together and
-preserve unity in time of war. The Hindu kings
-will never trust a Sahib in the core of their counsels.
-I say again that if we of the Faith confide
-in them, we shall trample upon our enemies.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>Is all this a dream to thee, gray fox of my
-mother’s bearing? I have written of what I have
-seen and heard, but from the same clay two men
-will never fashion platters alike, nor from the same
-facts draw equal conclusions. Once more, there
-is a green-sickness upon all the people of this
-country. They eat dirt even now to stay their
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_299'>299</span>cravings. Honour and stability have departed
-from their councils, and the knife of dissension
-has brought down upon their heads the flapping
-tent-flies of confusion. The Empress is old. They
-speak disrespectfully of her and hers in the street.
-They despise the sword, and believe that the tongue
-and the pen sway all. The measure of their ignorance
-and their soft belief is greater than the measure
-of the wisdom of Solomon, the son of David.
-All these things I have seen whom they regard as
-a wild beast and a spectacle. By God the Enlightener
-of Intelligence, if the Sahibs in India
-could breed sons who lived so that their houses
-might be established, I would almost fling my
-sword at the Viceroy’s feet, saying: “Let us here
-fight for a kingdom together, thine and mine, disregarding
-the babble across the water. Write a
-letter to England, saying that we love them, but
-would depart from their camps and make all clean
-under a new crown.” But the Sahibs die out at
-the third generation in our land, and it may be
-that I dream dreams. Yet not altogether. Until
-a white calamity of steel and bloodshed, the bearing
-of burdens, the trembling for life, and the hot
-rage of insult—<em>for pestilence would unman them if
-eyes not unused to men see clear</em>—befall this people,
-our path is safe. They are sick. The Fountain
-of Power is a gutter which all may defile; and the
-voices of the men are overborne by the squealings
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_300'>300</span>of mules and the whinnying of barren mares. If
-through adversity they become wise, then, my
-brother, strike with and for them, and later, when
-thou and I are dead, and the disease grows up
-again (the young men bred in the school of fear
-and trembling and word-confounding have yet to
-live out their appointed span), those who have
-fought on the side of the English may ask and receive
-what they choose. At present seek quietly
-to confuse, and delay, and evade, and make of no
-effect. In this business four score of the six hundred
-are our true helpers.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>Now the pen, and the ink, and the hand weary
-together, as thy eyes will weary in this reading.
-Be it known to my house that I return soon, but
-do not speak of the hour. Letters without name
-have come to me touching my honour. The
-honour of my house is thine. If they be, as I believe,
-the work of a dismissed groom, Futteh Lal,
-that ran at the tail of my wine-coloured Katthiawar
-stallion, his village is beyond Manglôt; look
-to it that his tongue no longer lengthens itself on
-the names of those who are mine. If it be otherwise,
-put a guard upon my house till I come, and
-especially see that no sellers of jewelry, astrologers,
-or midwives have entrance to the women’s
-rooms. We rise by our slaves, and by our slaves
-we fall, as it was said. To all who are of my remembrance
-I bring gifts according to their worth.
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_301'>301</span>I have written twice of the gift that I would cause
-to be given to Bahadur Shah.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>The blessing of God and his Prophet on thee
-and thine till the end which is appointed. Give
-me felicity by informing me of the state of thy
-health. My head is at the Rao Sahib’s feet; my
-sword is at his left side, a little above my heart.
-Follows my seal.</p>
-
-<div class='chapter'>
- <span class='pageno' id='Page_302'>302</span>
- <h2 class='c004'>ON THE CITY WALL</h2>
-</div>
-
-<p class='c012'>Then she let them down by a cord through the window;
-for her house was upon the town-wall, and she dwelt upon the
-wall.—<cite>Joshua</cite> ii. 15.</p>
-
-<p class='c005'>Lalun is a member of the most ancient profession
-in the world. Lilith was her very-great-grand-mamma,
-and that was before the days of Eve, as
-every one knows. In the West, people say rude
-things about Lalun’s profession, and write lectures
-about it, and distribute the lectures to young persons
-in order that Morality may be preserved. In
-the East, where the profession is hereditary, descending
-from mother to daughter, nobody writes
-lectures or takes any notice; and that is a distinct
-proof of the inability of the East to manage its
-own affairs.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>Lalun’s real husband, for even ladies of Lalun’s
-profession in the East must have husbands, was a
-big jujube-tree. Her Mamma, who had married
-a fig-tree, spent ten thousand rupees on Lalun’s
-wedding, which was blessed by forty-seven clergymen
-of Mamma’s church, and distributed five thousand
-rupees in charity to the poor. And that was
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_303'>303</span>the custom of the land. The advantages of having
-a jujube-tree for a husband are obvious. You cannot
-hurt his feelings, and he looks imposing.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>Lalun’s husband stood on the plain outside the
-City walls, and Lalun’s house was upon the east
-wall, facing the river. If you fell from the broad
-window-seat you dropped thirty feet sheer into the
-City Ditch. But if you stayed where you should
-and looked forth, you saw all the cattle of the City
-being driven down to water, the students of the
-Government College playing cricket, the high
-grass and trees that fringed the river-bank, the
-great sand-bars that ribbed the river, the red tombs
-of dead Emperors beyond the river, and very far
-away through the blue heat-haze, a glint of the
-snows of the Himalayas.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>Wali Dad used to lie in the window-seat for
-hours at a time, watching this view. He was a
-young Muhammadan who was suffering acutely
-from education of the English variety, and knew
-it. His father had sent him to a Mission-school
-to get wisdom, and Wali Dad had absorbed more
-than ever his father or the Missionaries intended
-he should. When his father died, Wali Dad was
-independent and spent two years experimenting
-with the creeds of the Earth and reading books
-that are of no use to anybody.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>After he had made an unsuccessful attempt to
-enter the Roman Catholic Church and the Presbyterian
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_304'>304</span>fold at the same time (the Missionaries
-found him out and called him names, but they
-did not understand his trouble), he discovered
-Lalun on the City wall and became the most constant
-of her few admirers. He possessed a head
-that English artists at home would rave over and
-paint amid impossible surroundings—a face that
-female novelists would use with delight through
-nine hundred pages. In reality he was only a
-clean-bred young Muhammadan, with penciled
-eyebrows, small-cut nostrils, little feet and hands,
-and a very tired look in his eyes. By virtue of
-his twenty-two years he had grown a neat black
-beard which he stroked with pride and kept delicately
-scented. His life seemed to be divided
-between borrowing books from me and making
-love to Lalun in the window-seat. He composed
-songs about her, and some of the songs are sung
-to this day in the City from the Street of the
-Mutton-Butchers to the Copper-Smiths’ ward.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>One song, the prettiest of all, says that the
-beauty of Lalun was so great that it troubled the
-hearts of the British Government and caused them
-to lose their peace of mind. That is the way the
-song is sung in the streets; but, if you examine it
-carefully and know the key to the explanation,
-you will find that there are three puns in it—on
-“beauty,” “heart,” and “peace of mind,”—so that
-it runs: “By the subtlety of Lalun the administration
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_305'>305</span>of the Government was troubled and it lost
-such and such a man.” When Wali Dad sings
-that song his eyes glow like hot coals, and Lalun
-leans back among the cushions and throws bunches
-of jasmine-buds at Wali Dad.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>But first it is necessary to explain something
-about the Supreme Government which is above
-all and below all and behind all. Gentlemen
-come from England, spend a few weeks in India,
-walk round this great Sphinx of the Plains, and
-write books upon its ways and its works, denouncing
-or praising it as their own ignorance prompts.
-Consequently all the world knows how the Supreme
-Government conducts itself. But no one,
-not even the Supreme Government, knows everything
-about the administration of the Empire.
-Year by year England sends out fresh drafts for
-the first fighting-line, which is officially called the
-Indian Civil Service. These die, or kill themselves
-by overwork, or are worried to death or
-broken in health and hope in order that the land
-may be protected from death and sickness, famine
-and war, and may eventually become capable of
-standing alone. It will never stand alone, but the
-idea is a pretty one, and men are willing to die for
-it, and yearly the work of pushing and coaxing
-and scolding and petting the country into good
-living goes forward. If an advance be made all
-credit is given to the native, while the Englishmen
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_306'>306</span>stand back and wipe their foreheads. If a failure
-occurs the Englishmen step forward and take the
-blame. Overmuch tenderness of this kind has bred
-a strong belief among many natives that the native
-is capable of administering the country, and many
-devout Englishmen believe this also, because the
-theory is stated in beautiful English with all the
-latest political colour.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>There be other men who, though uneducated,
-see visions and dream dreams, and they, too, hope
-to administer the country in their own way—that
-is to say, with a garnish of Red Sauce. Such men
-must exist among two hundred million people,
-and, if they are not attended to, may cause trouble
-and even break the great idol called “Pax Britannic,”
-which, as the newspapers say, lives between
-Peshawur and Cape Comorin. Were the Day
-of Doom to dawn to-morrow, you would find the
-Supreme Government “taking measures to allay
-popular excitement” and putting guards upon the
-graveyards that the Dead might troop forth orderly.
-The youngest Civilian would arrest Gabriel on his
-own responsibility if the Archangel could not produce
-a Deputy Commissioner’s permission to
-“make music or other noises” as the license says.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>Whence it is easy to see that mere men of the
-flesh who would create a tumult must fare badly
-at the hands of the Supreme Government. And
-they do. There is no outward sign of excitement;
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_307'>307</span>there is no confusion; there is no knowledge.
-When due and sufficient reasons have been given,
-weighed and approved, the machinery moves forward,
-and the dreamer of dreams and the seer of
-visions is gone from his friends and following. He
-enjoys the hospitality of Government; there is no
-restriction upon his movements within certain limits;
-but he must not confer any more with his brother
-dreamers. Once in every six months the Supreme
-Government assures itself that he is well
-and takes formal acknowledgment of his existence.
-No one protests against his detention, because
-the few people who know about it are in
-deadly fear of seeming to know him; and never a
-single newspaper “takes up his case” or organises
-demonstrations on his behalf, because the newspapers
-of India have got behind that lying proverb
-which says the Pen is mightier than the Sword,
-and can walk delicately.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>So now you know as much as you ought about
-Wali Dad, the educational mixture, and the Supreme
-Government.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>Lalun has not yet been described. She would
-need, so Wali Dad says, a thousand pens of gold
-and ink scented with musk. She has been variously
-compared to the Moon, the Dil Sagar Lake,
-a spotted quail, a gazelle, the Sun on the Desert
-of Kutch, the Dawn, the Stars, and the young
-bamboo. These comparisons imply that she is
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_308'>308</span>beautiful exceedingly according to the native standards,
-which are practically the same as those of
-the West. Her eyes are black and her hair is
-black, and her eyebrows are black as leeches; her
-mouth is tiny and says witty things; her hands are
-tiny and have saved much money; her feet are
-tiny and have trodden on the naked hearts of many
-men. But, as Wali Dad sings: “Lalun <em>is</em> Lalun,
-and when you have said that, you have only come
-to the Beginnings of Knowledge.”</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>The little house on the City wall was just big
-enough to hold Lalun, and her maid, and a pussy-cat
-with a silver collar. A big pink and blue
-cut-glass chandelier hung from the ceiling of the
-reception room. A petty Nawab had given Lalun
-the horror, and she kept it for politeness’ sake.
-The floor of the room was of polished chunam,
-white as curds. A latticed window of carved
-wood was set in one wall; there was a profusion
-of squabby pluffy cushions and fat carpets everywhere,
-and Lalun’s silver <em>huqa</em>, studded with turquoises,
-had a special little carpet all to its shining
-self. Wali Dad was nearly as permanent a fixture
-as the chandelier. As I have said, he lay in the
-window-seat and meditated on Life and Death
-and Lalun—specially Lalun. The feet of the
-young men of the City tended to her doorways
-and then—retired, for Lalun was a particular
-maiden, slow of speech, reserved of mind, and not
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_309'>309</span>in the least inclined to orgies which were nearly
-certain to end in strife. “If I am of no value, I
-am unworthy of this honour,” said Lalun. “If
-I am of value, they are unworthy of Me.” And
-that was a crooked sentence.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>In the long hot nights of latter April and May
-all the City seemed to assemble in Lalun’s little
-white room to smoke and to talk. Shiahs of the
-grimmest and most uncompromising persuasion;
-Sufis who had lost all belief in the Prophet and
-retained but little in God; wandering Hindu
-priests passing southward on their way to the
-Central India fairs and other affairs; Pundits in
-black gowns, with spectacles on their noses and
-undigested wisdom in their insides; bearded headmen
-of the wards; Sikhs with all the details of
-the latest ecclesiastical scandal in the Golden
-Temple; red-eyed priests from beyond the Border,
-looking like trapped wolves and talking like ravens;
-M. A.’s of the University, very superior and
-very voluble—all these people and more also
-you might find in the white room. Wali Dad
-lay in the window-seat and listened to the talk.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>“It is Lalun’s <span lang="fr" xml:lang="fr"><em>salon</em></span>,” said Wali Dad to me,
-“and it is electic—is not that the word? Outside
-of a Freemason’s Lodge I have never seen
-such gatherings. <em>There</em> I dined once with a Jew—a
-Yahoudi!” He spat into the City Ditch
-with apologies for allowing national feelings to
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_310'>310</span>overcome him. “Though I have lost every belief
-in the world,” said he, “and try to be proud
-of my losing, I cannot help hating a Jew. Lalun
-admits no Jews here.”</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>“But what in the world do all these men do?”
-I asked.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>“The curse of our country,” said Wali Dad.
-“They talk. It is like the Athenians—always
-hearing and telling some new thing. Ask the
-Pearl and she will show you how much she
-knows of the news of the City and the Province.
-Lalun knows everything.”</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>“Lalun,” I said at random—she was talking
-to a gentleman of the Kurd persuasion who had
-come in from God-knows-where—“when does
-the 175th Regiment go to Agra?”</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>“It does not go at all,” said Lalun, without
-turning her head. “They have ordered the 118th
-to go in its stead. That Regiment goes to Lucknow
-in three months, unless they give a fresh
-order.”</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>“That is so,” said Wali Dad without a shade
-of doubt. “Can you, with your telegrams and
-your newspapers, do better? Always hearing and
-telling some new thing,” he went on. “My friend,
-has your God ever smitten a European nation
-for gossiping in the bazars? India has gossiped
-for centuries—always standing in the bazars until
-the soldiers go by. Therefore—you are here today
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_311'>311</span>instead of starving in your own country, and
-I am not a Muhammadan—I am a Product—a
-Demnition Product. That also I owe to you and
-yours: that I cannot make an end to my sentence
-without quoting from your authors.” He pulled
-at the <em>huqa</em> and mourned, half feelingly, half in
-earnest, for the shattered hopes of his youth. Wali
-Dad was always mourning over something or other—the
-country of which he despaired, or the creed
-in which he had lost faith, or the life of the English
-which he could by no means understand.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>Lalun never mourned. She played little songs
-on the <em>sitar</em>, and to hear her sing, “O Peacock, cry
-again,” was always a fresh pleasure. She knew all
-the songs that have ever been sung, from the war-songs
-of the South that make the old men angry
-with the young men and the young men angry
-with the State, to the love-songs of the North where
-the swords whinny-whicker like angry kites in the
-pauses between the kisses, and the Passes fill with
-armed men, and the Lover is torn from his Beloved
-and cries, <em>Ai, Ai, Ai!</em> evermore. She knew how
-to make up tobacco for the <em>huqa</em> so that it smelt
-like the Gates of Paradise and wafted you gently
-through them. She could embroider strange things
-in gold and silver, and dance softly with the moonlight
-when it came in at the window. Also she
-knew the hearts of men, and the heart of the City,
-and whose wives were faithful and whose untrue,
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_312'>312</span>and more of the secrets of the Government Offices
-than are good to be set down in this place. Nasiban,
-her maid, said that her jewelry was worth ten
-thousand pounds, and that, some night, a thief
-would enter and murder her for its possession;
-but Lalun said that all the City would tear that
-thief limb from limb, and that he, whoever he
-was, knew it.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>So she took her <em>sitar</em> and sat in the window-seat
-and sang a song of old days that had been
-sung by a girl of her profession in an armed camp
-on the eve of a great battle—the day before the
-Fords of the Jumna ran red and Sivaji fled fifty
-miles to Delhi with a Toorkh stallion at his horse’s
-tail and another Lalun on his saddle-bow. It was
-what men call a Mahratta <em>laonee</em>, and it said:—</p>
-
-<div class='lg-container-b c017'>
- <div class='linegroup'>
- <div class='group'>
- <div class='line'>Their warrior forces Chimnajee</div>
- <div class='line in2'>Before the Peishwa led,</div>
- <div class='line'>The Children of the Sun and Fire</div>
- <div class='line in2'>Behind him turned and fled.</div>
- </div>
- </div>
-</div>
-
-<p class='c019'>And the chorus said:—</p>
-
-<div class='lg-container-b c017'>
- <div class='linegroup'>
- <div class='group'>
- <div class='line'>With them there fought who rides so free</div>
- <div class='line in2'>With sword and turban red,</div>
- <div class='line'>The warrior-youth who earns his fee</div>
- <div class='line in2'>At peril of his head.</div>
- </div>
- </div>
-</div>
-
-<p class='c019'>“At peril of his head,” said Wali Dad in English
-to me. “Thanks to your Government, all
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_313'>313</span>our heads are protected, and with the educational
-facilities at my command”—his eyes twinkled
-wickedly—“I might be a distinguished member
-of the local administration. Perhaps, in time, I
-might even be a member of a Legislative Council.”</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>“Don’t speak English,” said Lalun, bending
-over her <em>sitar</em> afresh. The chorus went out from
-the City wall to the blackened wall of Fort Amara
-which dominates the City. No man knows the
-precise extent of Fort Amara. Three kings built
-it hundreds of years ago, and they say that there
-are miles of underground rooms beneath its walls.
-It is peopled with many ghosts, a detachment of
-Garrison Artillery and a Company of Infantry. In
-its prime it held ten thousand men and filled its
-ditches with corpses.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>“At peril of his head,” sang Lalun again and
-again.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>A head moved on one of the Ramparts—the
-gray head of an old man—and a voice, rough as
-shark-skin on a sword-hilt, sent back the last line
-of the chorus and broke into a song that I could
-not understand, though Lalun and Wali Dad listened
-intently.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>“What is it?” I asked. “Who is it?”</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>“A consistent man,” said Wali Dad. “He
-fought you in ’46, when he was a warrior-youth;
-refought you in ’57, and he tried to fight you in
-’71, but you had learned the trick of blowing men
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_314'>314</span>from guns too well. Now he is old; but he would
-still fight if he could.”</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>“Is he a Wahabi, then? Why should he answer
-to a Mahratta <em>laonee</em> if he be Wahabi—or
-Sikh?” said I.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>“I do not know,” said Wali Dad. “He has
-lost, perhaps, his religion. Perhaps he wishes to
-be a King. Perhaps he is a King. I do not
-know his name.”</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>“That is a lie, Wali Dad. If you know his
-career you must know his name.”</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>“That is quite true. I belong to a nation of
-liars. I would rather not tell you his name.
-Think for yourself.”</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>Lalun finished her song, pointed to the Fort,
-and said simply: “Khem Singh.”</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>“Hm,” said Wali Dad. “If the Pearl chooses
-to tell you the Pearl is a fool.”</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>I translated to Lalun, who laughed. “I choose
-to tell what I choose to tell. They kept Khem
-Singh in Burma,” said she. “They kept him
-there for many years until his mind was changed
-in him. So great was the kindness of the Government.
-Finding this, they sent him back to his
-own country that he might look upon it before he
-died. He is an old man, but when he looks upon
-this his country his memory will come. Moreover,
-there be many who remember him.”</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>“He is an Interesting Survival,” said Wali Dad,
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_315'>315</span>pulling at the <em>huqa</em>. “He returns to a country
-now full of educational and political reform, but,
-as the Pearl says, there are many who remember
-him. He was once a great man. There will never
-be any more great men in India. They will all,
-when they are boys, go whoring after strange gods,
-and they will become citizens—‘fellow-citizens’—‘illustrious
-fellow-citizens.’ What is it that the
-native papers call them?”</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>Wali Dad seemed to be in a very bad temper.
-Lalun looked out of the window and smiled into
-the dust-haze. I went away thinking about Khem
-Singh, who had once made history with a thousand
-followers, and would have been a princeling
-but for the power of the Supreme Government
-aforesaid.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>The Senior Captain Commanding Fort Amara
-was away on leave, but the Subaltern, his Deputy,
-had drifted down to the Club, where I found him
-and enquired of him whether it was really true that
-a political prisoner had been added to the attractions
-of the Fort. The Subaltern explained at
-great length, for this was the first time that he had
-held Command of the Fort, and his glory lay heavy
-upon him.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>“Yes,” said he, “a man was sent in to me about
-a week ago from down the line—a thorough
-gentleman, whoever he is. Of course I did all I
-could for him. He had his two servants and some
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_316'>316</span>silver cooking-pots, and he looked for all the world
-like a native officer. I called him Subadar Sahib;
-just as well to be on the safe side, y’know.
-‘Look here, Subadar Sahib,’ I said, ‘you’re handed
-over to my authority, and I’m supposed to guard
-you. Now I don’t want to make your life hard,
-but you must make things easy for me. All the
-Fort is at your disposal, from the flag-staff to the
-dry ditch, and I shall be happy to entertain you
-in any way I can, but you mustn’t take advantage
-of it. Give me your word that you won’t try to
-escape, Subadar Sahib, and I’ll give you my word
-that you shall have no heavy guard put over you.’
-I thought the best way of getting at him was by
-going at him straight, y’know, and it was, by
-Jove! The old man gave me his word, and
-moved about the Fort as contented as a sick crow.
-He’s a rummy chap—always asking to be told
-where he is and what the buildings about him are.
-I had to sign a slip of blue paper when he turned
-up, acknowledging receipt of his body and all
-that, and I’m responsible, y’know, that he doesn’t
-get away. Queer thing, though, looking after a
-Johnnie old enough to be your grandfather, isn’t
-it? Come to the Fort one of these days and see
-him?”</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>For reasons which will appear, I never went to
-the Fort while Khem Singh was then within its
-walls. I knew him only as a gray head seen from
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_317'>317</span>Lalun’s window—a gray head and a harsh voice.
-But natives told me that, day by day, as he looked
-upon the fair lands round Amara, his memory
-came back to him and, with it, the old hatred
-against the Government that had been nearly
-effaced in far-off Burma. So he raged up and
-down the West face of the Fort from morning till
-noon and from evening till the night, devising vain
-things in his heart, and croaking war-songs when
-Lalun sang on the City wall. As he grew more
-acquainted with the Subaltern he unburdened his
-old heart of some of the passions that had withered
-it. “Sahib,” he used to say, tapping his stick
-against the parapet, “when I was a young man I
-was one of twenty thousand horsemen who came
-out of the City and rode round the plain here.
-Sahib, I was the leader of a hundred, then of a
-thousand, then of five thousand, and now!”—he
-pointed to his two servants. “But from the beginning
-to to-day I would cut the throats of all the
-Sahibs in the land if I could. Hold me fast, Sahib,
-lest I get away and return to those who would
-follow me. I forgot them when I was in Burma,
-but now that I am in my own country again, I
-remember everything.”</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>“Do you remember that you have given me
-your Honour not to make your tendance a hard
-matter?” said the Subaltern.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>“Yes, to you, only to you, Sahib,” said Khem
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_318'>318</span>Singh. “To you because you are of a pleasant
-countenance. If my turn comes again, Sahib, I
-will not hang you nor cut your throat.”</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>“Thank you,” said the Subaltern gravely, as he
-looked along the line of guns that could pound
-the City to powder in half an hour. “Let us go
-into our own quarters, Khem Singh. Come and
-talk with me after dinner.”</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>Khem Singh would sit on his own cushion at
-the Subaltern’s feet, drinking heavy, scented anise-seed
-brandy in great gulps, and telling strange
-stories of Fort Amara, which had been a palace in
-the old days, of Begums and Ranees tortured to
-death—aye, in the very vaulted chamber that
-now served as a Mess-room; would tell stories of
-Sobraon that made the Subaltern’s cheeks flush
-and tingle with pride of race, and of the Kuka
-rising from which so much was expected and the
-foreknowledge of which was shared by a hundred
-thousand souls. But he never told tales of ’57
-because, as he said, he was the Subaltern’s guest,
-and ’57 is a year that no man, Black or White,
-cares to speak of. Once only, when the anise-seed
-brandy had slightly affected his head, he said:
-“Sahib, speaking now of a matter which lay between
-Sobraon and the affair of the Kukas, it was
-ever a wonder to us that you stayed your hand at
-all, and that, having stayed it, you did not make
-the land one prison. Now I hear from without
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_319'>319</span>that you do great honour to all men of our country
-and by your own hands are destroying the
-Terror of your Name which is your strong rock
-and defence. This is a foolish thing. Will oil
-and water mix? Now in ’57——”</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>“I was not born then, Subadar Sahib,” said the
-Subaltern, and Khem Singh reeled to his quarters.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>The Subaltern would tell me of these conversations
-at the Club, and my desire to see Khem
-Singh increased. But Wali Dad, sitting in the
-window-seat of the house on the City wall, said
-that it would be a cruel thing to do, and Lalun
-pretended that I preferred the society of a grizzled
-old Sikh to hers.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>“Here is tobacco, here is talk, here are many
-friends and all the news of the City, and, above all,
-here is myself. I will tell you stories and sing
-you songs, and Wali Dad will talk his English
-nonsense in your ears. Is that worse than watching
-the caged animal yonder? Go to-morrow,
-then, if you must, but to-day such and such an
-one will be here, and he will speak of wonderful
-things.”</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>It happened that To-morrow never came, and
-the warm heat of the latter Rains gave place to
-the chill of early October almost before I was
-aware of the flight of the year. The Captain commanding
-the Fort returned from leave and took
-over charge of Khem Singh according to the laws
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_320'>320</span>of seniority. The Captain was not a nice man.
-He called all natives “niggers,” which, besides
-being extreme bad form, shows gross ignorance.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>“What’s the use of telling off two Tommies to
-watch that old nigger?” said he.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>“I fancy it soothes his vanity,” said the Subaltern.
-“The men are ordered to keep well out of
-his way, but he takes them as a tribute to his importance,
-poor old wretch.”</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>“I won’t have Line men taken off regular guards
-in this way. Put on a couple of Native Infantry.”</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>“Sikhs?” said the Subaltern, lifting his eyebrows.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>“Sikhs, Pathans, Dogras—they’re all alike,
-these black vermin,” and the Captain talked to
-Khem Singh in a manner which hurt that old gentleman’s
-feelings. Fifteen years before, when he
-had been caught for the second time, every one
-looked upon him as a sort of tiger. He liked being
-regarded in this light. But he forgot that the
-world goes forward in fifteen years, and many Subalterns
-are promoted to Captaincies.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>“The Captain-pig is in charge of the Fort?”
-said Khem Singh to his native guard every morning.
-And the native guard said: “Yes, Subadar
-Sahib,” in deference to his age and his air of distinction;
-but they did not know who he was.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>In those days the gathering in Lalun’s little white
-room was always large and talked more than before.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'><span class='pageno' id='Page_321'>321</span>“The Greeks,” said Wali Dad, who had been
-borrowing my books, “the inhabitants of the city
-of Athens, where they were always hearing and
-telling some new thing, rigorously secluded their
-women—who were fools. Hence the glorious
-institution of the heterodox women—is it not?—who
-were amusing and <em>not</em> fools. All the Greek
-philosophers delighted in their company. Tell
-me, my friend, how it goes now in Greece and
-the other places upon the Continent of Europe.
-Are your women-folk also fools?”</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>“Wali Dad,” I said, “you never speak to us
-about your women-folk, and we never speak about
-ours to you. That is the bar between us.”</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>“Yes,” said Wali Dad, “it is curious to think
-that our common meeting-place should be here,
-in the house of a common—how do you call
-<em>her</em>?” He pointed with the pipe-mouth to
-Lalun.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>“Lalun is nothing but Lalun,” I said, and that
-was perfectly true. “But if you took your place
-in the world, Wali Dad, and gave up dreaming
-dreams——”</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>“I might wear an English coat and trouser.
-I might be a leading Muhammadan pleader.
-I might be received even at the Commissioner’s
-tennis-parties, where the English stand on one side
-and the natives on the other, in order to promote
-social intercourse throughout the Empire. Heart’s
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_322'>322</span>Heart,” said he to Lalun quickly, “the Sahib says
-that I ought to quit you.”</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>“The Sahib is always talking stupid talk,” returned
-Lalun with a laugh. “In this house I
-am a Queen and thou art a King. The Sahib”—she
-put her arms above her head and thought
-for a moment—“the Sahib shall be our Vizier—thine
-and mine, Wali Dad—because he has said
-that thou shouldst leave me.”</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>Wali Dad laughed immoderately, and I laughed
-too. “Be it so,” said he. “My friend, are you
-willing to take this lucrative Government appointment?
-Lalun, what shall his pay be?”</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>But Lalun began to sing, and for the rest of
-the time there was no hope of getting a sensible
-answer from her or Wali Dad. When the one
-stopped, the other began to quote Persian poetry
-with a triple pun in every other line. Some of
-it was not strictly proper, but it was all very funny,
-and it only came to an end when a fat person in
-black, with gold <span lang="fr" xml:lang="fr"><em>pince-nez</em></span>, sent up his name to
-Lalun, and Wali Dad dragged me into the twinkling
-night to walk in a big rose-garden and talk
-heresies about Religion and Governments and a
-man’s career in life.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>The Mohurrum, the great mourning-festival of
-the Muhammadans, was close at hand, and the
-things that Wali Dad said about religious fanaticism
-would have secured his expulsion from the
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_323'>323</span>loosest-thinking Muslim sect. There were the
-rose-bushes round us, the stars above us, and
-from every quarter of the City came the boom of
-the big Mohurrum drums. You must know that
-the City is divided in fairly equal proportions between
-the Hindus and the Musalmans, and where
-both creeds belong to the fighting races, a big religious
-festival gives ample chance for trouble.
-When they can—that is to say when the authorities
-are weak enough to allow it—the Hindus do
-their best to arrange some minor feast-day of their
-own in time to clash with the period of general
-mourning for the martyrs Hasan and Hussain, the
-heroes of the Mohurrum. Gilt and painted paper
-presentations of their tombs are borne with shouting
-and wailing, music, torches, and yells, through
-the principal thoroughfares of the City, which
-fakements are called <em>tazias</em>. Their passage is rigorously
-laid down beforehand by the Police, and
-detachments of Police accompany each <em>tazia</em>, lest
-the Hindus should throw bricks at it and the
-peace of the Queen and the heads of her loyal
-subjects should thereby be broken. Mohurrum
-time in a “fighting” town means anxiety to all
-the officials, because, if a riot breaks out, the officials
-and not the rioters are held responsible. The
-former must foresee everything, and while not
-making their precautions ridiculously elaborate,
-must see that they are at least adequate.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'><span class='pageno' id='Page_324'>324</span>“Listen to the drums!” said Wali Dad.
-“That is the heart of the people—empty and
-making much noise. How, think you, will the
-Mohurrum go this year. <em>I</em> think that there will
-be trouble.”</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>He turned down a side-street and left me alone
-with the stars and a sleepy Police patrol. Then I
-went to bed and dreamed that Wali Dad had
-sacked the City and I was made Vizier, with
-Lalun’s silver <em>huqa</em> for mark of office.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>All day the Mohurrum drums beat in the City,
-and all day deputations of tearful Hindu gentlemen
-besieged the Deputy Commissioner with assurances
-that they would be murdered ere next
-dawning by the Muhammadans. “Which,” said
-the Deputy Commissioner in confidence to the
-Head of Police, “is a pretty fair indication that
-the Hindus are going to make ’emselves unpleasant.
-I think we can arrange a little surprise for
-them. I have given the heads of both Creeds fair
-warning. If they choose to disregard it, so much
-the worse for them.”</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>There was a large gathering in Lalun’s house
-that night, but of men that I had never seen before,
-if I except the fat gentleman in black with
-the gold <span lang="fr" xml:lang="fr"><em>pince-nez</em></span>. Wali Dad lay in the window-seat,
-more bitterly scornful of his Faith and its
-manifestations than I had ever known him.
-Lalun’s maid was very busy cutting up and mixing
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_325'>325</span>tobacco for the guests. We could hear the
-thunder of the drums as the processions accompanying
-each <em>tazia</em> marched to the central gathering-place
-in the plain outside the City, preparatory
-to their triumphant re-entry and circuit within the
-walls. All the streets seemed ablaze with torches,
-and only Fort Amara was black and silent.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>When the noise of the drums ceased, no one in
-the white room spoke for a time. “The first <em>tazia</em>
-has moved off,” said Wali Dad, looking to the
-plain.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>“That is very early,” said the man with the
-<span lang="fr" xml:lang="fr"><em>pince-nez</em></span>.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>“It is only half-past eight.” The company rose
-and departed.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>“Some of them were men from Ladakh,” said
-Lalun, when the last had gone. “They brought
-me brick-tea such as the Russians sell, and a tea-urn
-from Peshawur. Show me, now, how the
-English <em>Memsahibs</em> make tea.”</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>The brick-tea was abominable. When it was
-finished Wali Dad suggested going into the streets.
-“I am nearly sure that there will be trouble to-night,”
-he said. “All the City thinks so, and
-<span lang="la" xml:lang="la"><em>Vox Populi</em></span> is <span lang="la" xml:lang="la"><em>Vox Dei</em></span>, as the Babus say. Now I
-tell you that at the corner of the Padshahi Gate
-you will find my horse all this night if you want
-to go about and to see things. It is a most disgraceful
-exhibition. Where is the pleasure of
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_326'>326</span>saying ‘<em>Ya Hasan, Ya Hussain</em>,’ twenty thousand
-times in a night?”</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>All the processions—there were two and twenty
-of them—were now well within the City walls.
-The drums were beating afresh, the crowd were
-howling “<em>Ya Hasan! Ya Hussain!</em>” and beating
-their breasts, the brass bands were playing their
-loudest, and at every corner where space allowed
-Muhammadan preachers were telling the lamentable
-story of the death of the Martyrs. It was
-impossible to move except with the crowd, for
-the streets were not more than twenty feet wide.
-In the Hindu quarters the shutters of all the shops
-were up and cross-barred. As the first <em>tazia</em>, a
-gorgeous erection ten feet high, was borne aloft
-on the shoulders of a score of stout men into the
-semi-darkness of the Gully of the Horsemen, a
-brickbat crashed through its talc and tinsel sides.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>“Into thy hands, O Lord!” murmured Wali
-Dad profanely, as a yell went up from behind, and
-a native officer of Police jammed his horse through
-the crowd. Another brickbat followed, and the
-<em>tazia</em> staggered and swayed where it had stopped.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>“Go on! In the name of the Sirkar, go forward!”
-shouted the Policeman; but there was an
-ugly cracking and splintering of shutters, and the
-crowd halted, with oaths and growlings, before the
-house whence the brickbat had been thrown.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>Then, without any warning, broke the storm—not
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_327'>327</span>only in the Gully of the Horsemen, but in
-half a dozen other places. The <em>tazias</em> rocked like
-ships at sea, the long pole-torches dipped and rose
-round them, while the men shouted: “The Hindus
-are dishonouring the <em>tazias</em>! Strike! Strike!
-Into their temples for the Faith!” The six or
-eight Policemen with each <em>tazia</em> drew their batons
-and struck as long as they could, in the hope of
-forcing the mob forward, but they were overpowered,
-and as contingents of Hindus poured into the
-streets the fight became general. Half a mile away,
-where the <em>tazias</em> were yet untouched, the drums
-and the shrieks of “<em>Ya Hasan! Ya Hussain!</em>” continued,
-but not for long. The priests at the corners
-of the streets knocked the legs from the bedsteads
-that supported their pulpits and smote for the
-Faith, while stones fell from the silent houses upon
-friend and foe, and the packed streets bellowed:
-“<em>Din! Din! Din!</em>” A <em>tazia</em> caught fire, and was
-dropped for a flaming barrier between Hindu and
-Musalman at the corner of the Gully. Then the
-crowd surged forward, and Wali Dad drew me
-close to the stone pillar of a well.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>“It was intended from the beginning!” he
-shouted in my ear, with more heat than blank unbelief
-should be guilty of. “The bricks were carried
-up to the houses beforehand. These swine
-of Hindus! We shall be gutting kine in their
-temples to-night!”</p>
-
-<p class='c001'><span class='pageno' id='Page_328'>328</span><em>Tazia</em> after <em>tazia</em>, some burning, others torn to
-pieces, hurried past us, and the mob with them,
-howling, shrieking, and striking at the house doors
-in their flight. At last we saw the reason of the
-rush. Hugonin, the Assistant District Superintendent
-of Police, a boy of twenty, had got together
-thirty constables and was forcing the crowd
-through the streets. His old gray Police-horse
-showed no sign of uneasiness as it was spurred
-breast-on into the crowd, and the long dog-whip
-with which he had armed himself was never still.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>“They know we haven’t enough Police to hold
-’em,” he cried as he passed me, mopping a cut on
-his face. “They <em>know</em> we haven’t! Aren’t any
-of the men from the Club coming down to help?
-Get on, you sons of burnt fathers!” The dog-whip
-cracked across the writhing backs, and the
-constables smote afresh with baton and gun-butt.
-With these passed the lights and the shouting,
-and Wali Dad began to swear under his breath.
-From Fort Amara shot up a single rocket; then
-two side by side. It was the signal for troops.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>Petitt, the Deputy Commissioner, covered with
-dust and sweat, but calm and gently smiling, cantered
-up the clean-swept street in rear of the main
-body of the rioters. “No one killed yet,” he
-shouted. “I’ll keep ’em on the run till dawn!
-Don’t let ’em halt, Hugonin! Trot ’em about
-till the troops come.”</p>
-
-<p class='c001'><span class='pageno' id='Page_329'>329</span>The science of the defence lay solely in keeping
-the mob on the move. If they had breathing-space
-they would halt and fire a house, and then
-the work of restoring order would be more difficult,
-to say the least of it. Flames have the same
-effect on a crowd as blood has on a wild beast.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>Word had reached the Club, and men in evening-dress
-were beginning to show themselves and
-lend a hand in heading off and breaking up the
-shouting masses with stirrup-leathers, whips, or
-chance-found staves. They were not very often
-attacked, for the rioters had sense enough to know
-that the death of a European would not mean one
-hanging, but many, and possibly the appearance of
-the thrice-dreaded Artillery. The clamour in the
-City redoubled. The Hindus had descended into
-the streets in real earnest, and ere long the mob
-returned. It was a strange sight. There were no
-<em>tazias</em>—only their riven platforms—and there
-were no Police. Here and there a City dignitary,
-Hindu or Muhammadan, was vainly imploring
-his co-religionists to keep quiet and behave themselves—advice
-for which his white beard was
-pulled. Then a native officer of Police, unhorsed
-but still using his spurs with effect, would be borne
-along, warning all the crowd of the danger of insulting
-the Government. Everywhere men struck
-aimlessly with sticks, grasping each other by the
-throat, howling and foaming with rage, or beat
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_330'>330</span>with their bare hands on the doors of the
-houses.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>“It is a lucky thing that they are fighting with
-natural weapons,” I said to Wali Dad, “else we
-should have half the City killed.”</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>I turned as I spoke and looked at his face. His
-nostrils were distended, his eyes were fixed, and
-he was smiting himself softly on the breast. The
-crowd poured by with renewed riot—a gang of
-Musalmans hard-pressed by some hundred Hindu
-fanatics. Wali Dad left my side with an oath, and
-shouting: “<em>Ya Hasan! Ya Hussain!</em>” plunged
-into the thick of the fight, where I lost sight of
-him.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>I fled by a side alley to the Padshahi Gate, where
-I found Wali Dad’s horse, and thence rode to the
-Fort. Once outside the City wall, the tumult
-sank to a dull roar, very impressive under the stars
-and reflecting great credit on the fifty thousand
-angry able-bodied men who were making it. The
-troops who, at the Deputy Commissioner’s instance,
-had been ordered to rendezvous quietly near the
-Fort showed no signs of being impressed. Two
-companies of Native Infantry, a squadron of Native
-Cavalry, and a company of British Infantry
-were kicking their heels in the shadow of the East
-face, waiting for orders to march in. I am sorry
-to say that they were all pleased, unholily pleased,
-at the chance of what they called “a little fun.”
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_331'>331</span>The senior officers, to be sure, grumbled at having
-been kept out of bed, and the English troops
-pretended to be sulky, but there was joy in the
-hearts of all the subalterns, and whispers ran up
-and down the line: “No ball-cartridge—what a
-beastly shame!” “D’you think the beggars will
-really stand up to us?” “’Hope I shall meet my
-money-lender there. I owe him more than I can
-afford.” “Oh, they won’t let us even unsheathe
-swords.” “Hurrah! Up goes the fourth rocket.
-Fall in, there!”</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>The Garrison Artillery, who to the last cherished
-a wild hope that they might be allowed to
-bombard the City at a hundred yards’ range, lined
-the parapet above the East gateway and cheered
-themselves hoarse as the British Infantry doubled
-along the road to the Main Gate of the City. The
-Cavalry cantered on to the Padshahi Gate, and the
-Native Infantry marched slowly to the Gate of
-the Butchers. The surprise was intended to be of a
-distinctly unpleasant nature, and to come on top
-of the defeat of the Police who had been just able
-to keep the Muhammadans from firing the houses
-of a few leading Hindus. The bulk of the riot
-lay in the north and north-west wards. The east
-and south-east were by this time dark and silent,
-and I rode hastily to Lalun’s house, for I wished to
-tell her to send some one in search of Wali Dad.
-The house was unlighted, but the door was open,
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_332'>332</span>and I climbed upstairs in the darkness. One
-small lamp in the white room showed Lalun and
-her maid leaning half out of the window, breathing
-heavily and evidently pulling at something
-that refused to come.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>“Thou art late—very late,” gasped Lalun without
-turning her head. “Help us now, O Fool, if
-thou hast not spent thy strength howling among
-the <em>tazias</em>. Pull! Nasiban and I can do no more.
-O Sahib, is it you? The Hindus have been hunting
-an old Muhammadan round the Ditch with
-clubs. If they find him again they will kill him.
-Help us to pull him up.”</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>I put my hands to the long red silk waist-cloth
-that was hanging out of the window, and we three
-pulled and pulled with all the strength at our command.
-There was something very heavy at the
-end, and it swore in an unknown tongue as it kicked
-against the City wall.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>“Pull, oh, pull!” said Lalun at the last. A
-pair of brown hands grasped the window-sill and
-a venerable Muhammadan tumbled upon the floor,
-very much out of breath. His jaws were tied up,
-his turban had fallen over one eye, and he was
-dusty and angry.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>Lalun hid her face in her hands for an instant
-and said something about Wali Dad that I could
-not catch.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>Then, to my extreme gratification, she threw her
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_333'>333</span>arms round my neck and murmured pretty things.
-I was in no haste to stop her; and Nasiban, being
-a handmaiden of tact, turned to the big jewel-chest
-that stands in the corner of the white room and
-rummaged among the contents. The Muhammadan
-sat on the floor and glared.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>“One service more, Sahib, since thou hast come
-so opportunely,” said Lalun. “Wilt thou”—it
-is very nice to be thou-ed by Lalun—“take this
-old man across the City—the troops are everywhere,
-and they might hurt him, for he is old—to
-the Kumharsen Gate? There I think he may find
-a carriage to take him to his house. He is a friend
-of mine, and thou art—more than a friend—therefore
-I ask this.”</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>Nasiban bent over the old man, tucked something
-into his belt, and I raised him up and led
-him into the streets. In crossing from the east to
-the west of the City there was no chance of avoiding
-the troops and the crowd. Long before I
-reached the Gully of the Horsemen I heard the
-shouts of the British Infantry crying cheeringly:
-“Hutt, ye beggars! Hutt, ye devils! Get along!
-Go forward, there!” Then followed the ringing
-of rifle-butts and shrieks of pain. The troops were
-banging the bare toes of the mob with their gun-butts—for
-not a bayonet had been fixed. My
-companion mumbled and jabbered as we walked
-on until we were carried back by the crowd and
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_334'>334</span>had to force our way to the troops. I caught him
-by the wrist and felt a bangle there—the iron
-bangle of the Sikhs—but I had no suspicions, for
-Lalun had only ten minutes before put her arms
-round me. Thrice we were carried back by the
-crowd, and when we made our way past the British
-Infantry it was to meet the Sikh Cavalry driving
-another mob before them with the butts of
-their lances.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>“What are these dogs?” said the old man.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>“Sikhs of the Cavalry, Father,” I said, and we
-edged our way up the line of horses two abreast
-and found the Deputy Commissioner, his helmet
-smashed on his head, surrounded by a knot of men
-who had come down from the Club as amateur
-constables and had helped the Police mightily.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>“We’ll keep ’em on the run till dawn,” said
-Petitt. “Who’s your villainous friend?”</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>I had only time to say: “The Protection of the
-Sirkar!” when a fresh crowd flying before the Native
-Infantry carried us a hundred yards nearer to
-the Kumharsen Gate, and Petitt was swept away
-like a shadow.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>“I do not know—I cannot see—this is all
-new to me!” moaned my companion. “How
-many troops are there in the City?”</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>“Perhaps five hundred,” I said.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>“A lakh of men beaten by five hundred—and
-Sikhs among them! Surely, surely, I am an old
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_335'>335</span>man, but—the Kumharsen Gate is new. Who
-pulled down the stone lions? Where is the conduit?
-Sahib, I am a very old man, and, alas, I—I
-cannot stand.” He dropped in the shadow
-of the Kumharsen Gate where there was no disturbance.
-A fat gentleman wearing gold <span lang="la" xml:lang="la"><em>pince-nez</em></span>
-came out of the darkness.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>“You are most kind to bring my old friend,”
-he said suavely. “He is a landholder of Akala.
-He should not be in a big City when there is religious
-excitement. But I have a carriage here.
-You are quite truly kind. Will you help me to
-put him into the carriage? It is very late.”</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>We bundled the old man into a hired victoria
-that stood close to the gate, and I turned back to
-the house on the City wall. The troops were driving
-the people to and fro, while the Police shouted,
-“To your houses! Get to your houses!” and the
-dog-whip of the Assistant District Superintendent
-cracked remorselessly. Terror-stricken <em>bunnias</em>
-clung to the stirrups of the cavalry, crying that
-their houses had been robbed (which was a lie),
-and the burly Sikh horsemen patted them on the
-shoulder, and bade them return to those houses
-lest a worse thing should happen. Parties of five
-or six British soldiers, joining arms, swept down
-the side-gullies, their rifles on their backs, stamping,
-with shouting and song, upon the toes of
-Hindu and Musalman. Never was religious enthusiasm
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_336'>336</span>more systematically squashed; and never
-were poor breakers of the peace more utterly weary
-and footsore. They were routed out of holes and
-corners, from behind well-pillars and byres, and
-bidden to go to their houses. If they had no
-houses to go to, so much the worse for their
-toes.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>On returning to Lalun’s door, I stumbled over
-a man at the threshold. He was sobbing hysterically
-and his arms flapped like the wings of a
-goose. It was Wali Dad, Agnostic and Unbeliever,
-shoeless, turbanless, and frothing at the
-mouth, the flesh on his chest bruised and bleeding
-from the vehemence with which he had smitten
-himself. A broken torch-handle lay by his side,
-and his quivering lips murmured, “<em>Ya Hasan! Ya
-Hussain!</em>” as I stooped over him. I pushed him
-a few steps up the staircase, threw a pebble at
-Lalun’s City window, and hurried home.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>Most of the streets were very still, and the cold
-wind that comes before the dawn whistled down
-them. In the center of the Square of the Mosque
-a man was bending over a corpse. The skull had
-been smashed in by gun-butt or bamboo-stave.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>“It is expedient that one man should die for
-the people,” said Petitt grimly, raising the shapeless
-head. “These brutes were beginning to show
-their teeth too much.”</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>And from afar we could hear the soldiers singing
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_337'>337</span>“Two Lovely Black Eyes,” as they drove the
-remnant of the rioters within doors.</p>
-
-<hr class='c014' />
-
-<p class='c001'>Of course you can guess what happened? I
-was not so clever. When the news went abroad
-that Khem Singh had escaped from the Fort, I
-did not, since I was then living this story, not
-writing it, connect myself, or Lalun, or the fat
-gentleman of the gold <span lang="la" xml:lang="la"><em>pince-nez</em></span>, with his disappearance.
-Nor did it strike me that Wali Dad
-was the man who should have convoyed him
-across the City, or that Lalun’s arms round my
-neck were put there to hide the money that Nasiban
-gave to Khem Singh, and that Lalun had used
-me and my white face as even a better safeguard
-than Wali Dad, who proved himself so untrustworthy.
-All that I knew at the time was that
-when Fort Amara was taken up with the riots
-Khem Singh profited by the confusion to get
-away, and that his two Sikh guards also escaped.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>But later on I received full enlightenment; and
-so did Khem Singh. He fled to those who knew
-him in the old days, but many of them were dead
-and more were changed, and all knew something
-of the Wrath of the Government. He went to
-the young men, but the glamour of his name had
-passed away, and they were entering native regiments
-or Government offices, and Khem Singh
-could give them neither pension, decorations, nor
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_338'>338</span>influence—nothing but a glorious death with
-their backs to the mouth of a gun. He wrote
-letters and made promises, and the letters fell into
-bad hands, and a wholly insignificant subordinate
-officer of Police tracked them down and gained
-promotion thereby. Moreover, Khem Singh was
-old, and anise-seed brandy was scarce, and he had
-left his silver cooking-pots in Fort Amara with his
-nice warm bedding, and the gentleman with the
-gold <span lang="la" xml:lang="la"><em>pince-nez</em></span> was told by those who had employed
-him that Khem Singh as a popular leader
-was not worth the money paid.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>“Great is the mercy of these fools of English!”
-said Khem Singh when the situation was put
-before him. “I will go back to Fort Amara of
-my own free will and gain honour. Give me
-good clothes to return in.”</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>So, at his own time, Khem Singh knocked at
-the wicket-gate of the Fort and walked to the
-Captain and the Subaltern, who were nearly gray-headed
-on account of correspondence that daily
-arrived from Simla marked “Private.”</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>“I have come back, Captain Sahib,” said Khem
-Singh. “Put no more guards over me. It is no
-good out yonder.”</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>A week later I saw him for the first time to my
-knowledge, and he made as though there were an
-understanding between us.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>“It was well done, Sahib,” said he, “and greatly
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_339'>339</span>I admired your astuteness in thus boldly facing the
-troops when I, whom they would have doubtless
-torn to pieces, was with you. Now there is a
-man in Fort Ooltagarh whom a bold man could
-with ease help to escape. This is the position of
-the Fort as I draw it on the sand——”</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>But I was thinking how I had become Lalun’s
-Vizier after all.</p>
-
-<div class='chapter'>
- <span class='pageno' id='Page_340'>340</span>
- <h2 class='c004'>THE ENLIGHTENMENTS OF <br /> PAGETT, M. P.</h2>
-</div>
-
-<p class='c012'>“Because half a dozen grasshoppers under a fern make the
-field ring with their importunate chink while thousands of great
-cattle, reposed beneath the shadow of the British oak, chew
-the cud and are silent, pray do not imagine that those who
-make the noise are the only inhabitants of the field—that, of
-course, they are many in number—or that, after all, they are
-other than the little, shrivelled, meagre, hopping, though loud
-and troublesome insects of the hour.”—<cite>Burke</cite>: “Reflections
-on the Revolution in France.”</p>
-
-<p class='c005'>They were sitting in the verandah of “the splendid
-palace of an Indian Pro-Consul,” surrounded
-by all the glory and mystery of the immemorial
-East. In plain English it was a one-storied, ten-roomed,
-whitewashed mud-roofed bungalow, set
-in a dry garden of dusty tamarisk trees and divided
-from the road by a low mud wall. The
-green parrots screamed overhead as they flew in
-battalions to the river for their morning drink.
-Beyond the wall, clouds of fine dust showed where
-the cattle and goats of the city were passing afield
-to graze. The remorseless white light of the winter
-sunshine of Northern India lay upon everything
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_341'>341</span>and improved nothing, from the whining
-Persian-wheel by the lawn-tennis court to the long
-perspective of level road and the blue, domed
-tombs of Mahommedan saints just visible above
-the trees.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>“A Happy New Year,” said Orde to his guest.
-“It’s the first you’ve ever spent out of England,
-isn’t it?”</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>“Yes. ’Happy New Year,” said Pagett, smiling
-at the sunshine. “What a divine climate
-you have here! Just think of the brown cold fog
-hanging over London now!” And he rubbed his
-hands.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>It was more than twenty years since he had
-last seen Orde, his schoolmate, and their paths in
-the world had divided early. The one had quitted
-college to become a cog-wheel in the machinery
-of the great Indian Government; the other, more
-blessed with goods, had been whirled into a similar
-position in the English scheme. Three successive
-elections had not affected Pagett’s position
-with a loyal constituency, and he had grown insensibly
-to regard himself in some sort as a pillar
-of the Empire whose real worth would be known
-later on. After a few years of conscientious attendance
-at many divisions, after newspaper battles
-innumerable, and the publication of interminable
-correspondence, and more hasty oratory than
-in his calmer moments he cared to think upon, it
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_342'>342</span>occurred to him, as it had occurred to many of
-his fellows in Parliament, that a tour to India
-would enable him to sweep a larger lyre and address
-himself to the problems of Imperial administration
-with a firmer hand. Accepting, therefore,
-a general invitation extended to him by
-Orde some years before, Pagett had taken ship
-to Karachi, and only over-night had been received
-with joy by the Deputy-Commissioner of Amara.
-They had sat late, discussing the changes and
-chances of twenty years, recalling the names of
-the dead, and weighing the futures of the living,
-as is the custom of men meeting after intervals of
-action.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>Next morning they smoked the after-breakfast
-pipe in the verandah, still regarding each other
-curiously, Pagett in a light gray frock-coat and
-garments much too thin for the time of the year,
-and a puggried sun-hat carefully and wonderfully
-made; Orde in a shooting-coat, riding-breeches,
-brown cowhide boots with spurs, and a battered
-flax helmet. He had ridden some miles in the
-early morning to inspect a doubtful river-dam.
-The men’s faces differed as much as their attire.
-Orde’s, worn and wrinkled about the eyes and
-grizzled at the temples, was the harder and more
-square of the two, and it was with something like
-envy that the owner looked at the comfortable
-outlines of Pagett’s blandly receptive countenance,
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_343'>343</span>the clear skin, the untroubled eye, and the
-mobile, clean-shaved lips.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>“And this is India!” said Pagett for the twentieth
-time, staring long and intently at the gray
-feathering of the tamarisks.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>“One portion of India only. It’s very much
-like this for 300 miles in every direction. By
-the way, now that you have rested a little—I
-wouldn’t ask the old question before—what
-d’you think of the country?”</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>“’Tis the most pervasive country that ever yet
-was seen. I acquired several pounds of your
-country coming up from Karachi. The air is
-heavy with it, and for miles and miles along that
-distressful eternity of rail there’s no horizon to
-show where air and earth separate.”</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>“Yes. It isn’t easy to see truly or far in India.
-But you had a decent passage out, hadn’t you?”</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>“Very good on the whole. Your Anglo-Indian
-may be unsympathetic about one’s political views;
-but he has reduced ship life to a science.”</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>“The Anglo-Indian is a political orphan, and
-if he’s wise he won’t be in a hurry to be adopted
-by your party grandmothers. But how were your
-companions unsympathetic?”</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>“Well, there was a man called Dawlishe, a
-judge somewhere in this country, it seems, and
-a capital partner at whist, by the way, and when
-I wanted to talk to him about the progress of
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_344'>344</span>India in a political sense [Orde hid a grin which
-might or might not have been sympathetic], the
-National Congress movement, and other things in
-which, as a Member of Parliament, I’m of course
-interested, he shifted the subject, and when I once
-cornered him, he looked me calmly in the eye,
-and said: ‘That’s all Tommy Rot. Come and
-have a game at Bull.’ You may laugh, but that
-isn’t the way to treat a great and important question;
-and, knowing who I was, well, I thought it
-rather rude, don’t you know; and yet Dawlishe is
-a thoroughly good fellow.”</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>“Yes; he’s a friend of mine, and one of the
-straightest men I know. I suppose, like many
-Anglo-Indians, he felt it was hopeless to give you
-any just idea of any Indian question without the
-documents before you, and in this case the documents
-you want are the country and the people.”</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>“Precisely. That was why I came straight to
-you, bringing an open mind to bear on things.
-I’m anxious to know what popular feeling in India
-is really like, y’know, now that it has wakened
-into political life. The National Congress, in
-spite of Dawlishe, must have caused great excitement
-among the masses?”</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>“On the contrary, nothing could be more tranquil
-than the state of popular feeling; and as to
-excitement, the people would as soon be excited
-over the ‘Rule of Three’ as over the Congress.”</p>
-
-<p class='c001'><span class='pageno' id='Page_345'>345</span>“Excuse me, Orde, but do you think you are a
-fair judge? Isn’t the official Anglo-Indian naturally
-jealous of any external influences that might
-move the masses, and so much opposed to liberal
-ideas, truly liberal ideas, that he can scarcely be
-expected to regard a popular movement with
-fairness?”</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>“What did Dawlishe say about Tommy Rot?
-Think a moment, old man. You and I were
-brought up together; taught by the same tutors,
-read the same books, lived the same life, and
-thought, as you may remember, in parallel lines.
-<em>I</em> come out here, learn new languages, and work
-among new races; while you, more fortunate, remain
-at home. Why should I change my mind—our
-mind—because I change my sky? Why
-should I and the few hundred Englishmen in my
-service become unreasonable, prejudiced fossils,
-while you and your newer friends alone remain
-bright and open-minded? You surely don’t fancy
-civilians are members of a Primrose League?”</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>“Of course not, but the mere position of an English
-official gives him a point of view which cannot
-but bias his mind on this question.” Pagett
-moved his knee up and down a little uneasily as
-he spoke.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>“That sounds plausible enough, but, like more
-plausible notions on Indian matters, I believe it’s a
-mistake. You’ll find when you come to consult the
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_346'>346</span>unofficial Briton that our fault, as a class—I speak
-of the civilian now—is rather to magnify the progress
-that has been made towards liberal institutions.
-It is of English origin, such as it is, and the
-stress of our work since the Mutiny—only thirty
-years ago—has been in that direction. No, I think
-you will get no fairer or more dispassionate view
-of the Congress business than such men as I can
-give you. But I may as well say at once that
-those who know most of India, from the inside,
-are inclined to wonder at the noise our scarcely
-begun experiment makes in England.”</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>“But surely the gathering together of Congress
-delegates is of itself a new thing.”</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>“There’s nothing new under the sun. When
-Europe was a jungle half Asia flocked to the
-canonical conferences of Buddhism; and for centuries
-the people have gathered at Puri, Hurdwar,
-Trimbak, and Benares in immense numbers. A
-great meeting, what you call a mass meeting, is
-really one of the oldest and most popular of Indian
-institutions. In the case of the Congress
-meetings, the only notable fact is that the priests
-of the altar are British, not Buddhist, Jain or Brahmanical,
-and that the whole thing is a British contrivance
-kept alive by the efforts of Messrs. Hume,
-Eardley Norton, and Digby.”</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>“You mean to say, then, it’s not a spontaneous
-movement?”</p>
-
-<p class='c001'><span class='pageno' id='Page_347'>347</span>“What movement was ever spontaneous in any
-true sense of the word? This seems to be more
-factitious than usual. You seem to know a great
-deal about it; try it by the touchstone of subscriptions,
-a coarse but fairly trustworthy criterion, and
-there is scarcely the colour of money in it. The
-delegates write from England that they are out of
-pocket for working expenses, railway fares, and
-stationery—the mere pasteboard and scaffolding
-of their show. It is, in fact, collapsing from mere
-financial inanition.”</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>“But you cannot deny that the people of India,
-who are, perhaps, too poor to subscribe, are mentally
-and morally moved by the agitation,” Pagett
-insisted.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>“That is precisely what I <em>do</em> deny. The native
-side of the movement is the work of a limited
-class, a microscopic minority, as Lord Dufferin described
-it, when compared with the people proper,
-but still a very interesting class, seeing that it is
-of our own creation. It is composed almost entirely
-of those of the literary or clerkly castes who
-have received an English education.”</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>“Surely that’s a very important class. Its members
-must be the ordained leaders of popular
-thought.”</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>“Anywhere else they might be leaders, but they
-have no social weight in this topsy-turvy land,
-and though they have been employed in clerical
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_348'>348</span>work for generations, they have no practical knowledge
-of affairs. A ship’s clerk is a useful person,
-but he is scarcely the captain; and an orderly-room
-writer, however smart he may be, is not the
-colonel. You see, the writer class in India has
-never till now aspired to anything like command.
-It wasn’t allowed to. The Indian gentleman, for
-thousands of years past, has resembled Victor
-Hugo’s noble:</p>
-
-<div class='lg-container-b c017'>
- <div class='linegroup'>
- <div class='group'>
- <div class='line'><span lang="fr" xml:lang="fr">“Un vrai sire</span></div>
- <div class='line'><span lang="fr" xml:lang="fr">Chatelain</span></div>
- <div class='line'><span lang="fr" xml:lang="fr">Laisse ecrire</span></div>
- <div class='line'><span lang="fr" xml:lang="fr">Le vilain.</span></div>
- <div class='line'><span lang="fr" xml:lang="fr">Sa main digne</span></div>
- <div class='line'><span lang="fr" xml:lang="fr">Quand il signe</span></div>
- <div class='line'><span lang="fr" xml:lang="fr">Egratigne</span></div>
- <div class='line'><span lang="fr" xml:lang="fr">Le velin.”</span></div>
- </div>
- </div>
-</div>
-
-<p class='c018'>And the little <span lang="la" xml:lang="la"><em>egratignures</em></span> he most likes to make
-have been scored pretty deeply by the sword.“</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>“But this is childish and mediæval nonsense!”</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>“Precisely; and from your, or rather our, point
-of view the pen <em>is</em> mightier than the sword. In
-this country it’s otherwise. The fault lies in our
-Indian balances, not yet adjusted to civilised
-weights and measures.”</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>“Well, at all events, this literary class represent
-the natural aspirations and wishes of the people
-at large, though it may not exactly lead them,
-and, in spite of all you say, Orde, I defy you to
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_349'>349</span>find a really sound English Radical who would
-not sympathise with those aspirations.”</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>Pagett spoke with some warmth, and he had
-scarcely ceased when a well-appointed dog-cart
-turned into the compound gates, and Orde rose,
-saying:</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>“Here is Edwards, the Master of the Lodge I
-neglect so diligently, come to talk about accounts,
-I suppose.”</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>As the vehicle drove up under the porch Pagett
-also rose, saying with the trained effusion born of
-much practice:</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>“But this is also <em>my</em> friend, my old and valued
-friend, Edwards. I’m delighted to see you. I
-knew you were in India, but not exactly where.”</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>“Then it isn’t accounts, Mr. Edwards,” said
-Orde cheerily.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>“Why, no, sir; I heard Mr. Pagett was coming,
-and as our works were closed for the New Year I
-thought I would drive over and see him.”</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>“A very happy thought. Mr. Edwards, you
-may not know, Orde, was a leading member of
-our Radical Club at Switchton when I was beginning
-political life, and I owe much to his exertions.
-There’s no pleasure like meeting an old friend,
-except, perhaps, making a new one. I suppose,
-Mr. Edwards, you stick to the good old cause?”</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>“Well, you see, sir, things are different out
-here. There’s precious little one can find to say
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_350'>350</span>against the Government, which was the main of
-our talk at home, and them that do say things are
-not the sort o’ people a man who respects himself
-would like to be mixed up with. There are no
-politics, in a manner of speaking, in India. It’s
-all work.”</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>“Surely you are mistaken, my good friend.
-Why, I have come all the way from England just
-to see the working of this great National movement.”</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>“I don’t know where you’re going to find the
-nation as moves, to begin with, and then you’ll be
-hard put to it to find what they are moving about.
-It’s like this, sir,” said Edwards, who had not
-quite relished being called “my good friend.”
-“They haven’t got any grievance—nothing to
-hit with, don’t you see, sir; and then there’s not
-much to hit against, because the Government is
-more like a kind of general Providence, directing
-an old-established state of things, than that at
-home, where there’s something new thrown down
-for us to fight about every three months.”</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>“You are probably, in your workshops, full
-of English mechanics, out of the way of learning
-what the masses think.”</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>“I don’t know so much about that. There are
-four of us English foremen, and between seven and
-eight hundred native fitters, smiths, carpenters,
-painters, and such like.”</p>
-
-<p class='c001'><span class='pageno' id='Page_351'>351</span>“And they are full of the Congress, of course?”</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>“Never hear a word of it from year’s end to
-year’s end, and I speak the talk, too. But I
-wanted to ask how things are going on at home—old
-Tyler and Brown and the rest?”</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>“We will speak of them presently, but your
-account of the indifference of your men surprises
-me almost as much as your own. I fear you are a
-backslider from the good old doctrine, Edwards.”
-Pagett spoke as one who mourned the death of
-a near relative.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>“Not a bit, sir, but I should be if I took up
-with a parcel of babus, pleaders, and schoolboys,
-as never did a day’s work in their lives, and
-couldn’t if they tried. And if you was to poll us
-English railway-men, mechanics, tradespeople, and
-the like of that all up and down the country from
-Peshawur to Calcutta, you would find us mostly
-in a tale together. And yet you know we’re the
-same English you pay some respect to at home at
-’lection time, and we have the pull o’ knowing
-something about it.”</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>“This is very curious, but you will let me
-come and see you, and perhaps you will kindly
-show me the railway works, and we will talk
-things over at leisure. And about all old friends
-and old times,” added Pagett, detecting with
-quick insight a look of disappointment in the
-mechanic’s face.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'><span class='pageno' id='Page_352'>352</span>Nodding briefly to Orde, Edwards mounted his
-dog-cart and drove off.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>“It’s very disappointing,” said the Member to
-Orde, who, while his friend discoursed with Edwards,
-had been looking over a bundle of sketches
-drawn on gray paper in purple ink, brought to
-him by a <em>Chuprassee</em>.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>“Don’t let it trouble you, old chap,” said Orde
-sympathetically. “Look here a moment, here are
-some sketches by the man who made the carved-wood
-screen you admired so much in the dining-room,
-and wanted a copy of, and the artist himself
-is here too.”</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>“A native?” said Pagett.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>“Of course,” was the reply, “Bishen Singh is
-his name, and he has two brothers to help him.
-When there is an important job to do, the three
-go into partnership, but they spend most of their
-time and all their money in litigation over an inheritance,
-and I’m afraid they are getting involved.
-Thoroughbred Sikhs of the old rock, obstinate,
-touchy, bigoted, and cunning, but good men for
-all that. Here is Bishen Singh—shall we ask <em>him</em>
-about the Congress?”</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>But Bishen Singh, who approached with a respectful
-salaam, had never heard of it, and he listened
-with a puzzled face and obviously feigned
-interest to Orde’s account of its aims and objects,
-finally shaking his vast white turban with great
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_353'>353</span>significance when he learned that it was promoted
-by certain pleaders named by Orde, and by educated
-natives. He began with laboured respect to explain
-how he was a poor man with no concern in
-such matters, which were all under the control of
-God, but presently broke out of Urdu into familiar
-Punjabi, the mere sound of which had a rustic
-smack of village smoke-reek and plough-tail, as
-he denounced the wearers of white coats, the jugglers
-with words who filched his field from him,
-the men whose backs were never bowed in honest
-work; and poured ironical scorn on the Bengali.
-He and one of his brothers had seen Calcutta, and
-being at work there, had Bengali carpenters given
-to them as assistants.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>“Those carpenters!” said Bishen Singh. “Black
-apes were more efficient workmates, and as for
-the Bengali babu—tchick!” The guttural click
-needed no interpretation, but Orde translated the
-rest, while Pagett gazed with interest at the wood-carver.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>“He seems to have a most illiberal prejudice
-against the Bengali,” said the M. P.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>“Yes, it’s very sad that for ages outside Bengal
-there should be so bitter a prejudice. Pride of
-race, which also means race-hatred, is the plague
-and curse of India and it spreads far.” Orde pointed
-with his riding-whip to the large map of India on
-the verandah wall.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'><span class='pageno' id='Page_354'>354</span>“See! I begin with the North,” said he. “There’s
-the Afghan, and, as a highlander, he despises all
-the dwellers in Hindustan—with the exception
-of the Sikh, whom he hates as cordially as the
-Sikh hates him. The Hindu loathes Sikh and
-Afghan, and the Rajput—that’s a little lower down
-across this yellow blot of desert—has a strong objection,
-to put it mildly, to the Maratha, who, by
-the way, poisonously hates the Afghan. Let’s go
-North a minute. The Sindhi hates everybody
-I’ve mentioned. Very good, we’ll take less warlike
-races. The cultivator of Northern India domineers
-over the man in the next province, and the
-Behari of the North-West ridicules the Bengali.
-They are all at one on that point. I’m giving you
-merely the roughest possible outlines of the facts,
-of course.”</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>Bishen Singh, his clean-cut nostrils still quivering,
-watched the large sweep of the whip as it
-travelled from the frontier, through Sindh, the
-Punjab and Rajputana, till it rested by the valley
-of the Jumna.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>“Hate—eternal and inextinguishable hate,”
-concluded Orde, flicking the lash of the whip
-across the large map from East to West as he sat
-down. “Remember Canning’s advice to Lord
-Granville, ‘Never write or speak of Indian things
-without looking at a map.’”</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>Pagett opened his eyes; Orde resumed. “And
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_355'>355</span>the race-hatred is only a part of it. What’s really
-the matter with Bishen Singh is class-hatred, which,
-unfortunately, is even more intense and more widely
-spread. That’s one of the little drawbacks of caste,
-which some of your recent English writers find an
-impeccable system.”</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>The wood-carver was glad to be recalled to the
-business of his craft, and his eyes shone as he received
-instructions for a carved wooden doorway
-for Pagett, which he promised should be splendidly
-executed and despatched to England in six months.
-It is an irrelevant detail, but in spite of Orde’s reminders,
-fourteen months elapsed before the work
-was finished. Business over, Bishen Singh hung
-about, reluctant to take his leave, and at last joining
-his hands and approaching Orde with bated
-breath and whispering humbleness, said he had a
-petition to make. Orde’s face suddenly lost all
-trace of expression. “Speak on, Bishen Singh,”
-said he, and the carver in a whining tone explained
-that his case against his brothers was fixed for hearing
-before a native judge, and—here he dropped
-his voice still lower till he was summarily stopped
-by Orde, who sternly pointed to the gate with an
-emphatic Begone!</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>Bishen Singh, showing but little sign of discomposure,
-salaamed respectfully to the friends and
-departed.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>Pagett looked inquiry; Orde, with complete recovery
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_356'>356</span>of his usual urbanity, replied: “It’s nothing,
-only the old story: he wants his case to be
-tried by an English judge—they all do that—but
-when he began to hint that the other side were in
-improper relations with the native judge I had to
-shut him up. Gunga Ram, the man he wanted to
-make insinuations about, may not be very bright;
-but he’s as honest as daylight on the bench. But
-that’s just what one can’t get a native to believe.”</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>“Do you really mean to say these people prefer
-to have their cases tried by English judges?”</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>“Why, certainly.”</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>Pagett drew a long breath. “I didn’t know
-that before.” At this point a phaeton entered
-the compound, and Orde rose with “Confound
-it, there’s old Rasul Ali Khan come to pay one
-of his tiresome duty-calls. I’m afraid we shall
-never get through our little Congress discussion.”</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>Pagett was an almost silent spectator of the
-grave formalities of a visit paid by a punctilious
-old Mahommedan gentleman to an Indian official;
-and was much impressed by the distinction of
-manner and fine appearance of the Mahommedan
-landholder. When the exchange of polite banalities
-came to a pause, he expressed a wish to
-learn the courtly visitor’s opinion of the National
-Congress.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>Orde reluctantly interpreted, and with a smile
-which even Mahommedan politeness could not
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_357'>357</span>save from bitter scorn, Rasul Ali Khan intimated
-that he knew nothing about it and cared still less.
-It was a kind of talk encouraged by the Government
-for some mysterious purpose of its own, and
-for his own part he wondered and held his peace.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>Pagett was far from satisfied with this, and
-wished to have the old gentleman’s opinion on
-the propriety of managing all Indian affairs on
-the basis of an elective system.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>Orde did his best to explain, but it was plain
-the visitor was bored and bewildered. Frankly,
-he didn’t think much of committees; they had a
-Municipal Committee at Lahore and had elected
-a menial servant, an orderly, as a member. He
-had been informed of this on good authority, and
-after that committees had ceased to interest him.
-But all was according to the rule of Government,
-and, please God, it was all for the best.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>“What an old fossil it is!” cried Pagett, as
-Orde returned from seeing his guest to the door;
-“just like some old blue-blooded hidalgo of Spain.
-What does he really think of the Congress after
-all, and of the elective system?”</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>“Hates it all like poison. When you are sure
-of a majority, election is a fine system; but you
-can scarcely expect the Mahommedans, the most
-masterful and powerful minority in the country,
-to contemplate their own extinction with joy.
-The worst of it is that he and his co-religionists,
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_358'>358</span>who are many, and the landed proprietors, also of
-Hindu race, are frightened and put out by this
-election business and by the importance we have
-bestowed on lawyers, pleaders, writers, and the
-like, who have, up to now, been in abject submission
-to them. They say little, but after all
-they are the most important faggots in the great
-bundle of communities, and all the glib bunkum
-in the world would not pay for their estrangement.
-They have controlled the land.”</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>“But I am assured that experience of local self-government
-in your municipalities has been most
-satisfactory, and when once the principle is accepted
-in your centres, don’t you know, it is
-bound to spread, and these important—ah’m—people
-of yours would learn it like the rest. I see
-no difficulty at all,” and the smooth lips closed
-with the complacent snap habitual to Pagett,
-M. P., the “man of cheerful yesterdays and confident
-to-morrows.”</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>Orde looked at him with a dreary smile.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>“The privilege of election has been most reluctantly
-withdrawn from scores of municipalities,
-others have had to be summarily suppressed, and,
-outside the Presidency towns, the actual work
-done has been badly performed. This is of less
-moment, perhaps—it only sends up the local
-death-rates—than the fact that the public interest
-in municipal elections, never very strong, has
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_359'>359</span>waned, and is waning, in spite of careful nursing
-on the part of Government servants.”</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>“Can you explain this lack of interest?” said
-Pagett, putting aside the rest of Orde’s remarks.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>“You may find a ward of the key in the fact
-that only one in every thousand of our population
-can spell. Then they are infinitely more interested
-in religion and caste questions than in any
-sort of politics. When the business of mere existence
-is over, their minds are occupied by a series
-of interests, pleasures, rituals, superstitions, and
-the like, based on centuries of tradition and usage.
-You, perhaps, find it hard to conceive of people
-absolutely devoid of curiosity, to whom the book,
-the daily paper, and the printed speech are unknown,
-and you would describe their life as blank.
-That’s a profound mistake. You are in another
-land, another century, down on the bed-rock of
-society, where the family merely, and not the
-community, is all-important. The average Oriental
-cannot be brought to look beyond his clan.
-His life, too, is more complete and self-sufficing
-and less sordid and low-thoughted than you might
-imagine. It is bovine and slow in some respects,
-but it is never empty. You and I are inclined
-to put the cart before the horse, and to forget that
-it is the man that is elemental, not the book.</p>
-
-<div class='lg-container-b c017'>
- <div class='linegroup'>
- <div class='group'>
- <div class='line'>“The corn and the cattle are all my care,</div>
- <div class='line in2'>And the rest is the will of God.”</div>
- </div>
- </div>
-</div>
-
-<p class='c018'><span class='pageno' id='Page_360'>360</span>Why should such folk look up from their immemorially
-appointed round of duty and interests
-to meddle with the unknown and fuss with voting-papers?
-How would you, atop of all your interests,
-care to conduct even one-tenth of your life
-according to the manners and customs of the
-Papuans, let’s say? That’s what it comes to.”</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>“But if they won’t take the trouble to vote,
-why do you anticipate that Mahommedans, proprietors,
-and the rest would be crushed by majorities
-of them?”</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>Again Pagett disregarded the closing sentence.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>“Because, though the landholders would not
-move a finger on any purely political question,
-they could be raised in dangerous excitement by
-religious hatreds. Already the first note of this
-has been sounded by the people who are trying
-to get up an agitation on the cow-killing question,
-and every year there is trouble over the Mahommedan
-Muharrum processions.”</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>“But who looks after the popular rights, being
-thus unrepresented?”</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>“The Government of Her Majesty the Queen,
-Empress of India, in which, if the Congress promoters
-are to be believed, the people have an implicit
-trust; for the Congress circular, specially
-prepared for rustic comprehension, says the movement
-is ‘<em>for the remission of tax, the advancement of
-Hindustan, and the strengthening of the British Government.</em>’
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_361'>361</span>This paper is headed in large letters—‘<span class='sc'>May
-the Prosperity of the Empress of India
-endure.</span>’”</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>“Really!” said Pagett, “that shows some cleverness.
-But there are things better worth imitation
-in our English methods of—er—political statement
-than this sort of amiable fraud.”</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>“Anyhow,” resumed Orde, “you perceive that
-not a word is said about elections and the elective
-principle, and the reticence of the Congress promoters
-here shows they are wise in their generation.”</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>“But the elective principle must triumph in the
-end, and the little difficulties you seem to anticipate
-would give way on the introduction of a well-balanced
-scheme capable of indefinite extension.”</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>“But is it possible to devise a scheme which,
-always assuming that the people took any interest
-in it, without enormous expense, ruinous dislocation
-of the administration and danger to the public
-peace, can satisfy the aspirations of Mr. Hume
-and his following, and yet safeguard the interests
-of the Mahommedans, the landed and wealthy
-classes, the conservative Hindus, the Eurasians,
-Parsees, Sikhs, Rajputs, native Christians, domiciled
-Europeans and others, who are each important
-and powerful in their way?”</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>Pagett’s attention, however, was diverted to the
-gate, where a group of cultivators stood in apparent
-hesitation.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'><span class='pageno' id='Page_362'>362</span>“Here are the twelve Apostles, by Jove!—come
-straight out of Raffaele’s cartoons,” said the
-M. P., with the fresh appreciation of a new-comer.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>Orde, loath to be interrupted, turned impatiently
-towards the villagers, and their leader, handing his
-long staff to one of his companions, advanced to
-the house.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>“It is old Jelloo, the Lumberdar or head-man
-of Pind Sharkot, and a very intelligent man for a
-villager.”</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>The Jat farmer had removed his shoes and stood
-smiling on the edge of the verandah. His strongly
-marked features glowed with russet bronze, and
-his bright eyes gleamed under deeply set brows,
-contracted by life-long exposure to sunshine. His
-beard and moustache, streaked with gray, swept
-from bold cliffs of brow and cheek in the large
-sweeps one sees drawn by Michael Angelo, and
-strands of long black hair mingled with the irregularly
-piled wreaths and folds of his turban. The
-drapery of stout blue cotton cloth thrown over his
-broad shoulders and girt round his narrow loins,
-hung from his tall form in broadly sculptured folds
-and he would have made a superb model for an
-artist in search of a patriarch.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>Orde greeted him cordially, and after a polite
-pause the countryman started off with a long story
-told with impressive earnestness. Orde listened
-and smiled, interrupting the speaker at times to
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_363'>363</span>argue and reason with him in a tone which Pagett
-could hear was kindly, and, finally checking the
-flux of words, was about to dismiss him when
-Pagett suggested that he should be asked about
-the National Congress.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>But Jelloo had never heard of it. He was a
-poor man, and such things, by the favour of his
-Honour, did not concern him.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>“What’s the matter with your big friend that
-he was so terribly in earnest?” asked Pagett, when
-he had left.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>“Nothing much. He wants the blood of the
-people in the next village, who have had smallpox
-and cattle plague pretty badly, and by the
-help of a wizard, a currier, and several pigs have
-passed it on to his own village. ’Wants to know
-if they can’t be run in for this awful crime. It
-seems they made a dreadful charivari at the village
-boundary, threw a quantity of spell-bearing objects
-over the border, a buffalo’s skull and other things;
-then branded a <em>chamar</em>—what you would call a
-currier—on his hinder parts and drove him and
-a number of pigs over into Jelloo’s village. Jelloo
-says he can bring evidence to prove that the wizard
-directing these proceedings, who is a Sansi, has
-been guilty of theft, arson, cattle-killing, perjury
-and murder, but would prefer to have him punished
-for bewitching them and inflicting smallpox.”</p>
-
-<p class='c001'><span class='pageno' id='Page_364'>364</span>“And how on earth did you answer such a
-lunatic?”</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>“Lunatic! the old fellow is as sane as you or I;
-and he has some ground of complaint against
-those Sansis. I asked if he would like a native
-superintendent of police with some men to make
-inquiries, but he objected on the grounds the
-police were rather worse than small-pox and criminal
-tribes put together.”</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>“Criminal tribes—er—I don’t quite understand,”
-said Pagett.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>“We have in India many tribes of people who
-in the slack ante-British days became robbers, in
-various kind, and preyed on the people. They
-are being restrained and reclaimed little by little,
-and in time will become useful citizens, but they
-still cherish hereditary traditions of crime, and are
-a difficult lot to deal with. By the way, what
-about the political rights of these folk under
-your schemes? The country people call them
-vermin, but I suppose they would be electors
-with the rest.”</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>“Nonsense—special provision would be made
-for them in a well-considered electoral scheme,
-and they would doubtless be treated with
-fitting severity,” said Pagett with a magisterial
-air.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>“Severity, yes—but whether it would be fitting
-is doubtful. Even those poor devils have rights,
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_365'>365</span>and, after all, they only practise what they have
-been taught.”</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>“But criminals, Orde!”</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>“Yes, criminals with codes and rituals of crime,
-gods and godlings of crime, and a hundred songs
-and sayings in praise of it. Puzzling, isn’t
-it?”</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>“It’s simply dreadful. They ought to be put
-down at once. Are there many of them?”</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>“Not more than about sixty thousand in this
-province, for many of the tribes broadly described
-as criminal are really vagabond and criminal only
-on occasion, while others are being settled and reclaimed.
-They are of great antiquity, a legacy
-from the past, the golden, glorious Aryan past of
-Max Müller, Birdwood and the rest of your spindrift
-philosophers.”</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>An orderly brought a card to Orde, who took
-it with a movement of irritation at the interruption,
-and handed it to Pagett: a large card with a ruled
-border in red ink, and in the centre in school-boy
-copper-plate, <em>Mr. Dina Nath</em>. “Give salaam,”
-said the civilian, and there entered in haste a slender
-youth, clad in a closely fitting coat of gray
-homespun, tight trousers, patent-leather shoes, and
-a small black velvet cap. His thin cheek twitched,
-and his eyes wandered restlessly, for the young
-man was evidently nervous and uncomfortable,
-though striving to assume a free-and-easy air.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'><span class='pageno' id='Page_366'>366</span>“Your honour may perhaps remember me,” he
-said in English, and Orde scanned him keenly.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>“I know your face, somehow. You belonged
-to the Shershah district, I think, when I was in
-charge there?”</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>“Yes, sir, my father is writer at Shershah, and
-your honour gave me a prize when I was first in
-the Middle School examination five years ago.
-Since then I have prosecuted my studies, and I am
-now second year’s student in the Mission College.”</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>“Of course: you are Kedar Nath’s son—the
-boy who said he liked geography better than play
-or sugar-cakes, and I didn’t believe you. How is
-your father getting on?”</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>“He is well, and he sends his salaam, but his
-circumstances are depressed, and he also is down
-on his luck.”</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>“You learn English idioms at the Mission College,
-it seems.”</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>“Yes, sir, they are the best idioms, and my father
-ordered me to ask your honour to say a word
-for him to the present incumbent of your honour’s
-shoes, the latchet of which he is not worthy to
-open, and who knows not Joseph; for things are
-different at Shershah now, and my father wants
-promotion.”</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>“Your father is a good man, and I will do what
-I can for him.”</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>At this point a telegram was handed to Orde,
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_367'>367</span>who, after glancing at it, said he must leave his
-young friend, whom he introduced to Pagett, “a
-member of the English House of Commons who
-wishes to learn about India.”</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>Orde had scarcely retired with his telegram when
-Pagett began:</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>“Perhaps you can tell me something of the National
-Congress movement?”</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>“Sir, it is the greatest movement of modern
-times, and one in which all educated men like us
-<em>must</em> join. All our students are for the Congress.”</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>“Excepting, I suppose, Mahommedans, and the
-Christians?” said Pagett, quick to use his recent
-instruction.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>“These are some <em>mere</em> exceptions to the universal
-rule.”</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>“But the people outside the College, the working
-classes, the agriculturists; your father and mother,
-for instance.”</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>“My mother,” said the young man, with a visible
-effort to bring himself to pronounce the word,
-“has no ideas, and my father is not agriculturist,
-nor working class; he is of the Kayeth caste; but
-he had not the advantage of a collegiate education,
-and he does not know much of the Congress. It
-is a movement for the educated young-man”—connecting
-adjective and noun in a sort of vocal
-hyphen.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>“Ah, yes,” said Pagett, feeling he was a little
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_368'>368</span>off the rails, “and what are the benefits you expect
-to gain by it?”</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>“Oh, sir, everything. England owes its greatness
-to Parliamentary institutions and we should
-<em>at once</em> gain the same high position in scale of nations.
-Sir, we wish to have the sciences, the arts,
-the manufactures, the industrial factories, with
-steam-engines and other motive powers and public
-meetings and debates. Already we have a debating
-club in connection with the college and
-elect a Mr. Speaker. Sir, the progress <em>must</em> come.
-You also are a Member of Parliament and worship
-the great Lord Ripon,” said the youth, breathlessly,
-and his black eyes flashed as he finished his commaless
-sentences.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>“Well,” said Pagett, drily, “it has not yet occurred
-to me to worship his Lordship, although I
-believe he is a very worthy man, and I am not
-sure that England owes quite all the things you
-name to the House of Commons. You see, my
-young friend, the growth of a nation like ours is
-slow, subject to many influences, and if you have
-read your history aright——”</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>“Sir, I know it all—all! Norman Conquest,
-Magna Charta, Runnymede, Reformation, Tudors,
-Stuarts, Mr. Milton and Mr. Burke, and I have
-read something of Mr. Herbert Spencer and Gibbon’s
-‘Decline and Fall,’ Reynolds’ ‘Mysteries of
-the Court,’ and——”</p>
-
-<p class='c001'><span class='pageno' id='Page_369'>369</span>Pagett felt like one who had pulled the string
-of a shower-bath unawares, and hastened to stop
-the torrent with a question as to what particular
-grievances of the people of India the attention of
-an elected assembly should be first directed. But
-young Mr. Dina Nath was slow to particularise.
-There were many, very many demanding consideration.
-Mr. Pagett would like to hear of one
-or two typical examples. The Repeal of the
-Arms Act was at last named, and the student
-learned for the first time that a license was necessary
-before an Englishman could carry a gun in
-England. Then natives of India ought to be
-allowed to become Volunteer Riflemen if they
-chose, and the absolute equality of the Oriental
-with his European fellow-subject in civil status
-should be proclaimed on principle, and the Indian
-Army should be considerably reduced. The
-student was not, however, prepared with answers
-to Mr. Pagett’s mildest questions on these points,
-and he returned to vague generalities, leaving the
-M. P. so much impressed with the crudity of his
-views that he was glad on Orde’s return to say
-good-bye to his “very interesting” young friend.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>“What do you think of young India?” asked
-Orde.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>“Curious, very curious—and callow.”</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>“And yet,” the civilian replied, “one can
-scarcely help sympathising with him for his mere
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_370'>370</span>youth’s sake. The young orators of the Oxford
-Union arrived at the same conclusions and showed
-doubtless just the same enthusiasm. If there were
-any political analogy between India and England,
-if the thousand races of this Empire were one, if
-there were any chance even of their learning to
-speak one language, if, in short, India were a
-Utopia of the debating-room, and not a real land,
-this kind of talk might be worth listening to, but
-it is all based on false analogy and ignorance of
-the facts.”</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>“But he is a native and knows the facts.”</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>“He is a sort of English schoolboy, but married
-three years, and the father of two weaklings, and
-knows less than most English schoolboys. You
-saw all he is and knows, and such ideas as he has
-acquired are directly hostile to the most cherished
-convictions of the vast majority of the people.”</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>“But what does he mean by saying he is a
-student of a mission college? Is he a Christian?”</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>“He meant just what he said, and he is not a
-Christian, nor ever will he be. Good people in
-America, Scotland, and England, most of whom
-would never dream of collegiate education for
-their own sons, are pinching themselves to bestow
-it in pure waste on Indian youths. Their scheme
-is an oblique, subterranean attack on heathenism;
-the theory being that with the jam of secular
-education, leading to a University degree, the pill
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_371'>371</span>of moral or religious instruction may be coaxed
-down the heathen gullet.”</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>“But does it succeed; do they make converts?”</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>“They make no converts, for the subtle Oriental
-swallows the jam and rejects the pill; but
-the mere example of the sober, righteous, and
-godly lives of the principals and professors, who
-are most excellent and devoted men, must have a
-certain moral value. Yet, as Lord Lansdowne
-pointed out the other day, the market is dangerously
-overstocked with graduates of our Universities
-who look for employment in the administration.
-An immense number are employed, but
-year by year the college mills grind out increasing
-lists of youths foredoomed to failure and disappointment,
-and meanwhile trade, manufactures,
-and the industrial arts are neglected and in fact
-regarded with contempt by our new literary
-mandarins <span lang="la" xml:lang="la"><i>in posse</i></span>.”</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>“But our young friend said he wanted steam-engines
-and factories,” said Pagett.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>“Yes, he would like to direct such concerns.
-He wants to begin at the top, for manual labour
-is held to be discreditable, and he would never
-defile his hands by the apprenticeship which the
-architects, engineers, and manufacturers of England
-cheerfully undergo; and he would be aghast to
-learn that the leading names of industrial enterprise
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_372'>372</span>in England belonged a generation or two
-since, or now belong, to men who wrought with
-their own hands. And, though he talks glibly of
-manufacturers, he refuses to see that the Indian
-manufacturer of the future will be the despised
-workman of the present. It was proposed, for
-example, a few weeks ago, that a certain municipality
-in this province should establish an elementary
-technical school for the sons of workmen.
-The stress of the opposition to the plan came
-from a pleader who owed all he had to a college
-education bestowed on him gratis by Government
-and missions. You would have fancied some fine
-old crusted Tory squire of the last generation was
-speaking. ‘These people,’ he said, ‘want no education,
-for they learn their trades from their fathers,
-and to teach a workman’s son the elements of
-mathematics and physical science would give him
-ideas above his business. They must be kept in
-their place, and it was idle to imagine that there
-was any science in wood or iron work.’ And he
-carried his point. But the Indian workman will
-rise in the social scale in spite of the new literary
-caste.”</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>“In England we have scarcely begun to realise
-that there is an industrial class in this country, yet,
-I suppose, the example of men like Edwards, for
-instance, must tell,” said Pagett thoughtfully.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>“That you shouldn’t know much about it is
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_373'>373</span>natural enough, for there are but few sources of
-information. India in this, as in other respects, is
-like a badly kept ledger—not written up to date.
-And men like Edwards are, in reality, missionaries
-who by precept and example are teaching more
-lessons than they know. Only a few, however,
-of their crowds of subordinates seem to care to try
-to emulate them, and aim at individual advancement;
-the rest drop into the ancient Indian caste
-groove.”</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>“How do you mean?” asked Pagett.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>“Well, it is found that the new railway and
-factory workmen, the fitter, the smith, the engine-driver,
-and the rest are already forming separate
-hereditary castes. You may notice this down at
-Jamalpur in Bengal, one of the oldest railway
-centres; and at other places, and in other industries,
-they are following the same inexorable Indian
-law.”</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>“Which means——?” queried Pagett.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>“It means that the rooted habit of the people
-is to gather in small self-contained, self-sufficing
-family groups with no thought or care for any
-interests but their own—a habit which is scarcely
-compatible with the right acceptation of the elective
-principle.”</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>“Yet you must admit, Orde, that though our
-young friend was not able to expound the faith
-that is in him, your Indian army is too big.”</p>
-
-<p class='c001'><span class='pageno' id='Page_374'>374</span>“Not nearly big enough for its main purpose.
-And, as a side issue, there are certain powerful
-minorities of fighting folk whose interests an Asiatic
-Government is bound to consider. Arms is
-as much a means of livelihood as civil employ
-under Government and law. And it would be
-a heavy strain on British bayonets to hold down
-Sikhs, Jats, Bilochis, Rohillas, Rajputs, Bhils,
-Dogras, Pathans, and Gurkhas to abide by the
-decisions of a numerical majority opposed to their
-interests. Leave the ‘numerical majority’ to itself
-without the British bayonets—a flock of sheep
-might as reasonably hope to manage a troop of
-collies.”</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>“This complaint about excessive growth of the
-army is akin to another contention of the Congress
-party. They protest against the malversation
-of the whole of the moneys raised by additional
-taxes as a Famine Insurance Fund to other
-purposes. You must be aware that this special
-Famine Fund has all been spent on frontier roads
-and defences and strategic railway schemes as a
-protection against Russia.”</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>“But there was never a special famine fund
-raised by special taxation and put by as in a box.
-No sane administrator would dream of such a
-thing. In a time of prosperity a finance minister,
-rejoicing in a margin, proposed to annually apply
-a million and a half to the construction of railways
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_375'>375</span>and canals for the protection of districts liable
-to scarcity, and to the reduction of the annual
-loans for public works. But times were not always
-prosperous, and the finance minister had to
-choose whether he would hang up the insurance
-scheme for a year or impose fresh taxation. When
-a farmer hasn’t got the little surplus he hoped to
-have for buying a new waggon and draining a
-low-lying field corner, you don’t accuse him of
-malversation if he spends what he has on the
-necessary work of the rest of his farm.”</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>A clatter of hoofs was heard, and Orde looked
-up with vexation, but his brow cleared as a horseman
-halted under the porch.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>“Hello, Orde! just looked in to ask if you are
-coming to polo on Tuesday: we want you badly
-to help to crumple up the Krab Bokhar team.”</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>Orde explained that he had to go out into the
-District, and while the visitor complained that
-though good men wouldn’t play, duffers were always
-keen, and that his side would probably be
-beaten, Pagett rose to look at his mount, a red,
-lathered Biloch mare, with a curious lyre-like incurving
-of the ears. “Quite a little thoroughbred
-in all other respects,” said the M. P., and Orde
-presented Mr. Reginald Burke, Manager of the
-Sind and Sialkote Bank, to his friend.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>“Yes, she’s as good as they make ’em, and
-she’s all the female I possess, and spoiled in consequence,
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_376'>376</span>aren’t you, old girl?” said Burke, patting
-the mare’s glossy neck as she backed and
-plunged.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>“Mr. Pagett,” said Orde, “has been asking me
-about the Congress. What is your opinion?”
-Burke turned to the M. P. with a frank smile.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>“Well, if it’s all the same to you, sir, I should
-say, Damn the Congress, but then I’m no politician,
-but only a business man.”</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>“You find it a tiresome subject?”</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>“Yes, it’s all that, and worse than that, for this
-kind of agitation is anything but wholesome for
-the country.”</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>“How do you mean?”</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>“It would be a long job to explain, and Sara
-here won’t stand, but you know how sensitive
-capital is, and how timid investors are. All this
-sort of rot is likely to frighten them, and we can’t
-afford to frighten them. The passengers aboard
-an Ocean steamer don’t feel reassured when the
-ship’s way is stopped and they hear the workmen’s
-hammers tinkering at the engines down
-below. The old Ark’s going on all right as she
-is, and only wants quiet and room to move.
-Them’s my sentiments, and those of some other
-people who have to do with money and business.”</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>“Then you are a thick-and-thin supporter of
-the Government as it is.”</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>“Why, no! The Indian Government is much
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_377'>377</span>too timid with its money—like an old maiden
-aunt of mine—always in a funk about her investments.
-They don’t spend half enough on railways,
-for instance, and they are slow in a general way,
-and ought to be made to sit up in all that concerns
-the encouragement of private enterprise, and
-coaxing out into use the millions of capital that
-lie dormant in the country.”</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>The mare was dancing with impatience, and
-Burke was evidently anxious to be off, so the men
-wished him good-bye.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>“Who is your genial friend who condemns both
-Congress and Government in a breath?” asked
-Pagett, with an amused smile.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>“Just now he is Reggie Burke, keener on polo
-than on anything else, but if you went to the Sind
-and Sialkote Bank to-morrow you would find Mr.
-Reginald Burke a very capable man of business,
-known and liked by an immense constituency
-North and South of this.”</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>“Do you think he is right about the Government’s
-want of enterprise?”</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>“I should hesitate to say. Better consult the
-merchants and chambers of commerce in Cawnpore,
-Madras, Bombay, and Calcutta. But though
-these bodies would like, as Reggie puts it, to make
-Government sit up, it is an elementary consideration
-in governing a country like India, which must
-be administered for the benefit of the people at
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_378'>378</span>large, that the counsels of those who resort to it
-for the sake of making money should be judiciously
-weighed and not allowed to overpower the
-rest. They are welcome guests here, as a matter
-of course, but it has been found best to restrain
-their influence. Thus the rights of plantation
-labourers, factory operatives, and the like, have
-been protected, and the capitalist, eager to get on,
-has not always regarded Government action with
-favour. It is quite conceivable that under an
-elective system the commercial communities of the
-great towns might find means to secure majorities
-on labour questions and on financial matters.”</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>“They would act at least with intelligence and
-consideration.”</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>“Intelligence, yes; but as to consideration, who
-at the present moment most bitterly resents the
-tender solicitude of Lancashire for the welfare and
-protection of the Indian factory operative? English
-and native capitalists running cotton mills and
-factories.”</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>“But is the solicitude of Lancashire in this matter
-entirely disinterested?”</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>“It is no business of mine to say. I merely
-indicate an example of how a powerful commercial
-interest might hamper a Government
-intent in the first place on the larger interests of
-humanity.”</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>Orde broke off to listen a moment. “There’s
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_379'>379</span>Dr. Lathrop talking to my wife in the drawing-room,”
-said he.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>“Surely not; that’s a lady’s voice, and if my
-ears don’t deceive me, an American.”</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>“Exactly; Dr. Eva McCreery Lathrop, chief of
-the new Women’s Hospital here, and a very good
-fellow forbye. Good morning, Doctor,” he said,
-as a graceful figure came out on the verandah;
-“you seem to be in trouble. I hope Mrs. Orde
-was able to help you.”</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>“Your wife is real kind and good; I always
-come to her when I’m in a fix, but I fear it’s more
-than comforting I want.”</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>“You work too hard and wear yourself out,”
-said Orde, kindly. “Let me introduce my friend,
-Mr. Pagett, just fresh from home, and anxious to
-learn his India. You could tell him something
-of that more important half of which a mere man
-knows so little.”</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>“Perhaps I could if I’d any heart to do it, but
-I’m in trouble, I’ve lost a case, a case that was doing
-well, through nothing in the world but inattention
-on the part of a nurse I had begun to trust.
-And when I spoke only a small piece of my mind
-she collapsed in a whining heap on the floor. It
-is hopeless!”</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>The men were silent, for the blue eyes of the
-lady doctor were dim. Recovering herself, she
-looked up with a smile half sad, half humorous.
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_380'>380</span>“And I am in a whining heap too; but what phase
-of Indian life are you particularly interested in, sir?”</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>“Mr. Pagett intends to study the political aspect
-of things and the possibility of bestowing electoral
-institutions on the people.”</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>“Wouldn’t it be as much to the purpose to bestow
-point-lace collars on them? They need many
-things more urgently than votes. Why, it’s like
-giving a bread-pill for a broken leg.”</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>“Er—I don’t quite follow,” said Pagett uneasily.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>“Well, what’s the matter with this country is
-not in the least political, but an all-round entanglement
-of physical, social, and moral evils and
-corruptions, all more or less due to the unnatural
-treatment of women. You can’t gather figs from
-thistles, and so long as the system of infant marriage,
-the prohibition of the remarriage of widows,
-the lifelong imprisonment of wives and mothers in
-a worse than penal confinement, and the withholding
-from them of any kind of education or treatment
-as rational beings continues, the country
-can’t advance a step. Half of it is morally dead,
-and worse than dead, and that’s just the half from
-which we have a right to look for the best impulses.
-It’s right here where the trouble is, and not in any
-political considerations whatsoever.”</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>“But do they marry so early?” said Pagett,
-vaguely.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'><span class='pageno' id='Page_381'>381</span>“The average age is seven, but thousands are
-married still earlier. One result is that girls of
-twelve and thirteen have to bear the burden of
-wifehood and motherhood, and, as might be expected,
-the rate of mortality both for mothers and
-children is terrible. Pauperism, domestic unhappiness,
-and a low state of health are only a few
-of the consequences of this. Then, when, as frequently
-happens, the boy-husband dies prematurely,
-his widow is condemned to worse than
-death. She may not re-marry, must live a secluded
-and despised life, a life so unnatural that she sometimes
-prefers suicide; more often she goes astray.
-You don’t know in England what such words as
-‘infant-marriage, baby-wife, girl-mother, and virgin-widow’
-mean; but they mean unspeakable
-horrors here.”</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>“Well, but the advanced political party here
-will surely make it their business to advocate
-social reforms as well as political ones,” said
-Pagett.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>“Very surely they will do no such thing,” said
-the lady doctor, emphatically. “I <em>wish</em> I could
-make you understand. Why, even of the funds
-devoted to the Marchioness of Dufferin’s organisation
-for medical aid to the women of India, it was
-said in print and in speech that they would be
-better spent on more college scholarships for men.
-And in all the advanced parties’ talk—God forgive
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_382'>382</span>them—and in all their programmes, they
-carefully avoid all such subjects. They will talk
-about the protection of the cow, for that’s an
-ancient superstition—they can all understand
-that; but the protection of the women is a new
-and dangerous idea.” She turned to Pagett impulsively:</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>“You are a member of the English Parliament.
-Can you do nothing? The foundations of their
-life are rotten—utterly and bestially rotten. I
-could tell your wife things that I couldn’t tell you.
-I know the life—the inner life that belongs to the
-native, and I know nothing else; and, believe me,
-you might as well try to grow golden-rod in a
-mushroom-pit as to make anything of a people
-that are born and reared as these—these things
-are. The men talk of their rights and privileges.
-I have seen the women that bear these very men,
-and again—may God forgive the men!”</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>Pagett’s eyes opened with a large wonder. Dr.
-Lathrop rose tempestuously.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>“I must be off to lecture,” said she, “and I’m
-sorry that I can’t show you my hospitals; but you
-had better believe, sir, that it’s more necessary for
-India than all the elections in creation.”</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>“That’s a woman with a mission, and no mistake,”
-said Pagett, after a pause.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>“Yes; she believes in her work, and so do I,”
-said Orde. “I’ve a notion that in the end it will
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_383'>383</span>be found that the most helpful work done for
-India in this generation was wrought by Lady
-Dufferin in drawing attention—what work that
-was, by the way, even with her husband’s great
-name to back it!—to the needs of women here.
-In effect, native habits and beliefs are an organised
-conspiracy against the laws of health and happy
-life—but there is some dawning of hope now.”</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>“How d’you account for the general indifference,
-then?”</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>“I suppose it’s due in part to their fatalism
-and their utter indifference to all human suffering.
-How much do you imagine the great province
-of the Punjab, with over twenty million people
-and half a score rich towns, has contributed to
-the maintenance of civil dispensaries last year?
-About seven thousand rupees.”</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>“That’s seven hundred pounds,” said Pagett
-quickly.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>“I wish it was,” replied Orde; “but anyway,
-it’s an absurdly inadequate sum, and shows one
-of the blank sides of Oriental character.”</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>Pagett was silent for a long time. The question
-of direct and personal pain did not lie within
-his researches. He preferred to discuss the
-weightier matters of the law, and contented himself
-with murmuring: “They’ll do better later on.”
-Then, with a rush, returning to his first thought:</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>“But, my dear Orde, if it’s merely a class
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_384'>384</span>movement of a local and temporary character,
-how d’you account for Bradlaugh, who is at least
-a man of sense, taking it up?”</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>“I know nothing of the champion of the New
-Brahmans but what I see in the papers. I suppose
-there is something tempting in being hailed
-by a large assemblage as the representative of the
-aspirations of two hundred and fifty millions of
-people. Such a man looks ‘through all the roaring
-and the wreaths,’ and does not reflect that it is a
-false perspective, which, as a matter of fact, hides
-the real complex and manifold India from his
-gaze. He can scarcely be expected to distinguish
-between the ambitions of a new oligarchy and the
-real wants of the people of whom he knows nothing.
-But it’s strange that a professed Radical
-should come to be the chosen advocate of a
-movement which has for its aim the revival of an
-ancient tyranny. Shows how even Radicalism
-can fall into academic grooves and miss the essential
-truths of its own creed. Believe me, Pagett,
-to deal with India you want first-hand knowledge
-and experience. I wish he would come and live
-here for a couple of years or so.”</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>“Is not this rather an <span lang="la" xml:lang="la"><i>ad hominem</i></span> style of argument?”</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>“Can’t help it in a case like this. Indeed, I
-am not sure you ought not to go further and
-weigh the whole character and quality and upbringing
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_385'>385</span>of the man. You must admit that the
-monumental complacency with which he trotted
-out his ingenious little Constitution for India
-showed a strange want of imagination and the
-sense of humour.”</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>“No, I don’t quite admit it,” said Pagett.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>“Well, you know him and I don’t, but that’s
-how it strikes a stranger.” He turned on his heel
-and paced the verandah thoughtfully. “And,
-after all, the burden of the actual, daily unromantic
-toil falls on the shoulders of the men out here,
-and not on his own. He enjoys all the privileges
-of recommendation without responsibility, and we—well,
-perhaps, when you’ve seen a little more
-of India you’ll understand. To begin with, our
-death-rate’s five times higher than yours—I
-speak now for the brutal bureaucrat—and we
-work on the refuse of worked-out cities and exhausted
-civilisations, among the bones of the
-dead.”</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>Pagett laughed. “That’s an epigrammatic way
-of putting it, Orde.”</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>“Is it? Let’s see,” said the Deputy Commissioner
-of Amara, striding into the sunshine towards
-a half-naked gardener potting roses. He took the
-man’s hoe, and went to a rain-scarped bank at the
-bottom of the garden.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>“Come here, Pagett,” he said, and cut at the
-sun-baked soil. After three strokes there rolled
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_386'>386</span>from under the blade of the hoe the half of a
-clanking skeleton that settled at Pagett’s feet in
-an unseemly jumble of bones. The M. P. drew
-back.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>“Our houses are built on cemeteries,” said
-Orde. “There are scores of thousands of graves
-within ten miles.”</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>Pagett was contemplating the skull with the
-awed fascination of a man who has but little to do
-with the dead. “India’s a very curious place,”
-said he, after a pause.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>“Ah? You’ll know all about it in three
-months. Come in to lunch,” said Orde.</p>
-
-<div class='pbb'>
- <hr class='pb c000' />
-</div>
-<p class='c001'><a id='endnote'></a></p>
-<div class='tnotes'>
-
-<div class='nf-center-c0'>
- <div class='nf-center'>
- <div><span class='large'>Transcriber’s Note</span></div>
- </div>
-</div>
-
-<p class='c001'>Many chapters included a copyright statement at the bottom of the first page.
-These have been relocated to directly follow the title.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>The name ‘Yardley-Orde’ (pp. 169 &amp; 175) appears twice as ‘Yardely-Orde’ (pp. 180 &amp; 182).
-References to the character in Kipling critical texts use the former, and the variant
-is corrected here.</p>
-
-<p class='c001'>Errors deemed most likely to be the printer’s have been corrected, and
-are noted here. The references are to the page and line in the original.
-The following issues should be noted, along with the resolutions.</p>
-
-<table class='table1' summary=''>
-<colgroup>
-<col width='12%' />
-<col width='69%' />
-<col width='18%' />
-</colgroup>
- <tr>
- <td class='c006'><a id='c_2.29'></a><a href='#corr2.29'>2.29</a></td>
- <td class='c006'>Do not join me[./,] for</td>
- <td class='c024'>Replaced.</td>
- </tr>
- <tr>
- <td class='c006'><a id='c_37.20'></a><a href='#corr37.20'>37.20</a></td>
- <td class='c006'>Whereever where[e]ver a grain cart atilt</td>
- <td class='c024'>Removed.</td>
- </tr>
- <tr>
- <td class='c006'><a id='c_78.1'></a><a href='#corr78.1'>78.1</a></td>
- <td class='c006'>two thousand pack-bullocks cross in one night[,/.]</td>
- <td class='c024'>Replaced.</td>
- </tr>
- <tr>
- <td class='c006'><a id='c_151.9'></a><a href='#corr151.9'>151.9</a></td>
- <td class='c006'>its paws lacking strength or direction[./,]</td>
- <td class='c024'>Replaced.</td>
- </tr>
- <tr>
- <td class='c006'><a id='c_180.20'></a><a href='#corr180.20'>180.20</a></td>
- <td class='c006'>Yard[el/le]y-Orde knew his failing</td>
- <td class='c024'>Transposed.</td>
- </tr>
- <tr>
- <td class='c006'><a id='c_182.12'></a><a href='#corr182.12'>182.12</a></td>
- <td class='c006'>In Yard[el/le]y-Orde’s consulship</td>
- <td class='c024'>Transposed.</td>
- </tr>
- <tr>
- <td class='c006'><a id='c_216.4'></a><a href='#corr216.4'>216.4</a></td>
- <td class='c006'>to clear the men out of Twenty-[t/T]wo</td>
- <td class='c024'>Uppercase.</td>
- </tr>
- <tr>
- <td class='c006'><a id='c_219.3'></a><a href='#corr219.3'>219.3</a></td>
- <td class='c006'>and the Me[ha/ah]s, who are thrice bastard Muhammadans</td>
- <td class='c024'>Transposed?</td>
- </tr>
-</table>
-
-</div>
-
-
-
-
-
-
-
-
-<pre>
-
-
-
-
-
-End of the Project Gutenberg EBook of In Black and White, by Rudyard Kipling
-
-*** END OF THIS PROJECT GUTENBERG EBOOK IN BLACK AND WHITE ***
-
-***** This file should be named 62346-h.htm or 62346-h.zip *****
-This and all associated files of various formats will be found in:
- http://www.gutenberg.org/6/2/3/4/62346/
-
-Produced by KD Weeks, MFR and the Online Distributed
-Proofreading Team at https://www.pgdp.net (This file was
-produced from images generously made available by The
-Internet Archive)
-
-Updated editions will replace the previous one--the old editions will
-be renamed.
-
-Creating the works from print editions not protected by U.S. copyright
-law means that no one owns a United States copyright in these works,
-so the Foundation (and you!) can copy and distribute it in the United
-States without permission and without paying copyright
-royalties. Special rules, set forth in the General Terms of Use part
-of this license, apply to copying and distributing Project
-Gutenberg-tm electronic works to protect the PROJECT GUTENBERG-tm
-concept and trademark. Project Gutenberg is a registered trademark,
-and may not be used if you charge for the eBooks, unless you receive
-specific permission. If you do not charge anything for copies of this
-eBook, complying with the rules is very easy. You may use this eBook
-for nearly any purpose such as creation of derivative works, reports,
-performances and research. They may be modified and printed and given
-away--you may do practically ANYTHING in the United States with eBooks
-not protected by U.S. copyright law. Redistribution is subject to the
-trademark license, especially commercial redistribution.
-
-START: FULL LICENSE
-
-THE FULL PROJECT GUTENBERG LICENSE
-PLEASE READ THIS BEFORE YOU DISTRIBUTE OR USE THIS WORK
-
-To protect the Project Gutenberg-tm mission of promoting the free
-distribution of electronic works, by using or distributing this work
-(or any other work associated in any way with the phrase "Project
-Gutenberg"), you agree to comply with all the terms of the Full
-Project Gutenberg-tm License available with this file or online at
-www.gutenberg.org/license.
-
-Section 1. General Terms of Use and Redistributing Project
-Gutenberg-tm electronic works
-
-1.A. By reading or using any part of this Project Gutenberg-tm
-electronic work, you indicate that you have read, understand, agree to
-and accept all the terms of this license and intellectual property
-(trademark/copyright) agreement. If you do not agree to abide by all
-the terms of this agreement, you must cease using and return or
-destroy all copies of Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works in your
-possession. If you paid a fee for obtaining a copy of or access to a
-Project Gutenberg-tm electronic work and you do not agree to be bound
-by the terms of this agreement, you may obtain a refund from the
-person or entity to whom you paid the fee as set forth in paragraph
-1.E.8.
-
-1.B. "Project Gutenberg" is a registered trademark. It may only be
-used on or associated in any way with an electronic work by people who
-agree to be bound by the terms of this agreement. There are a few
-things that you can do with most Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works
-even without complying with the full terms of this agreement. See
-paragraph 1.C below. There are a lot of things you can do with Project
-Gutenberg-tm electronic works if you follow the terms of this
-agreement and help preserve free future access to Project Gutenberg-tm
-electronic works. See paragraph 1.E below.
-
-1.C. The Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation ("the
-Foundation" or PGLAF), owns a compilation copyright in the collection
-of Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works. Nearly all the individual
-works in the collection are in the public domain in the United
-States. If an individual work is unprotected by copyright law in the
-United States and you are located in the United States, we do not
-claim a right to prevent you from copying, distributing, performing,
-displaying or creating derivative works based on the work as long as
-all references to Project Gutenberg are removed. Of course, we hope
-that you will support the Project Gutenberg-tm mission of promoting
-free access to electronic works by freely sharing Project Gutenberg-tm
-works in compliance with the terms of this agreement for keeping the
-Project Gutenberg-tm name associated with the work. You can easily
-comply with the terms of this agreement by keeping this work in the
-same format with its attached full Project Gutenberg-tm License when
-you share it without charge with others.
-
-1.D. The copyright laws of the place where you are located also govern
-what you can do with this work. Copyright laws in most countries are
-in a constant state of change. If you are outside the United States,
-check the laws of your country in addition to the terms of this
-agreement before downloading, copying, displaying, performing,
-distributing or creating derivative works based on this work or any
-other Project Gutenberg-tm work. The Foundation makes no
-representations concerning the copyright status of any work in any
-country outside the United States.
-
-1.E. Unless you have removed all references to Project Gutenberg:
-
-1.E.1. The following sentence, with active links to, or other
-immediate access to, the full Project Gutenberg-tm License must appear
-prominently whenever any copy of a Project Gutenberg-tm work (any work
-on which the phrase "Project Gutenberg" appears, or with which the
-phrase "Project Gutenberg" is associated) is accessed, displayed,
-performed, viewed, copied or distributed:
-
- This eBook is for the use of anyone anywhere in the United States and
- most other parts of the world at no cost and with almost no
- restrictions whatsoever. You may copy it, give it away or re-use it
- under the terms of the Project Gutenberg License included with this
- eBook or online at www.gutenberg.org. If you are not located in the
- United States, you'll have to check the laws of the country where you
- are located before using this ebook.
-
-1.E.2. If an individual Project Gutenberg-tm electronic work is
-derived from texts not protected by U.S. copyright law (does not
-contain a notice indicating that it is posted with permission of the
-copyright holder), the work can be copied and distributed to anyone in
-the United States without paying any fees or charges. If you are
-redistributing or providing access to a work with the phrase "Project
-Gutenberg" associated with or appearing on the work, you must comply
-either with the requirements of paragraphs 1.E.1 through 1.E.7 or
-obtain permission for the use of the work and the Project Gutenberg-tm
-trademark as set forth in paragraphs 1.E.8 or 1.E.9.
-
-1.E.3. If an individual Project Gutenberg-tm electronic work is posted
-with the permission of the copyright holder, your use and distribution
-must comply with both paragraphs 1.E.1 through 1.E.7 and any
-additional terms imposed by the copyright holder. Additional terms
-will be linked to the Project Gutenberg-tm License for all works
-posted with the permission of the copyright holder found at the
-beginning of this work.
-
-1.E.4. Do not unlink or detach or remove the full Project Gutenberg-tm
-License terms from this work, or any files containing a part of this
-work or any other work associated with Project Gutenberg-tm.
-
-1.E.5. Do not copy, display, perform, distribute or redistribute this
-electronic work, or any part of this electronic work, without
-prominently displaying the sentence set forth in paragraph 1.E.1 with
-active links or immediate access to the full terms of the Project
-Gutenberg-tm License.
-
-1.E.6. You may convert to and distribute this work in any binary,
-compressed, marked up, nonproprietary or proprietary form, including
-any word processing or hypertext form. However, if you provide access
-to or distribute copies of a Project Gutenberg-tm work in a format
-other than "Plain Vanilla ASCII" or other format used in the official
-version posted on the official Project Gutenberg-tm web site
-(www.gutenberg.org), you must, at no additional cost, fee or expense
-to the user, provide a copy, a means of exporting a copy, or a means
-of obtaining a copy upon request, of the work in its original "Plain
-Vanilla ASCII" or other form. Any alternate format must include the
-full Project Gutenberg-tm License as specified in paragraph 1.E.1.
-
-1.E.7. Do not charge a fee for access to, viewing, displaying,
-performing, copying or distributing any Project Gutenberg-tm works
-unless you comply with paragraph 1.E.8 or 1.E.9.
-
-1.E.8. You may charge a reasonable fee for copies of or providing
-access to or distributing Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works
-provided that
-
-* You pay a royalty fee of 20% of the gross profits you derive from
- the use of Project Gutenberg-tm works calculated using the method
- you already use to calculate your applicable taxes. The fee is owed
- to the owner of the Project Gutenberg-tm trademark, but he has
- agreed to donate royalties under this paragraph to the Project
- Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation. Royalty payments must be paid
- within 60 days following each date on which you prepare (or are
- legally required to prepare) your periodic tax returns. Royalty
- payments should be clearly marked as such and sent to the Project
- Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation at the address specified in
- Section 4, "Information about donations to the Project Gutenberg
- Literary Archive Foundation."
-
-* You provide a full refund of any money paid by a user who notifies
- you in writing (or by e-mail) within 30 days of receipt that s/he
- does not agree to the terms of the full Project Gutenberg-tm
- License. You must require such a user to return or destroy all
- copies of the works possessed in a physical medium and discontinue
- all use of and all access to other copies of Project Gutenberg-tm
- works.
-
-* You provide, in accordance with paragraph 1.F.3, a full refund of
- any money paid for a work or a replacement copy, if a defect in the
- electronic work is discovered and reported to you within 90 days of
- receipt of the work.
-
-* You comply with all other terms of this agreement for free
- distribution of Project Gutenberg-tm works.
-
-1.E.9. If you wish to charge a fee or distribute a Project
-Gutenberg-tm electronic work or group of works on different terms than
-are set forth in this agreement, you must obtain permission in writing
-from both the Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation and The
-Project Gutenberg Trademark LLC, the owner of the Project Gutenberg-tm
-trademark. Contact the Foundation as set forth in Section 3 below.
-
-1.F.
-
-1.F.1. Project Gutenberg volunteers and employees expend considerable
-effort to identify, do copyright research on, transcribe and proofread
-works not protected by U.S. copyright law in creating the Project
-Gutenberg-tm collection. Despite these efforts, Project Gutenberg-tm
-electronic works, and the medium on which they may be stored, may
-contain "Defects," such as, but not limited to, incomplete, inaccurate
-or corrupt data, transcription errors, a copyright or other
-intellectual property infringement, a defective or damaged disk or
-other medium, a computer virus, or computer codes that damage or
-cannot be read by your equipment.
-
-1.F.2. LIMITED WARRANTY, DISCLAIMER OF DAMAGES - Except for the "Right
-of Replacement or Refund" described in paragraph 1.F.3, the Project
-Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation, the owner of the Project
-Gutenberg-tm trademark, and any other party distributing a Project
-Gutenberg-tm electronic work under this agreement, disclaim all
-liability to you for damages, costs and expenses, including legal
-fees. YOU AGREE THAT YOU HAVE NO REMEDIES FOR NEGLIGENCE, STRICT
-LIABILITY, BREACH OF WARRANTY OR BREACH OF CONTRACT EXCEPT THOSE
-PROVIDED IN PARAGRAPH 1.F.3. YOU AGREE THAT THE FOUNDATION, THE
-TRADEMARK OWNER, AND ANY DISTRIBUTOR UNDER THIS AGREEMENT WILL NOT BE
-LIABLE TO YOU FOR ACTUAL, DIRECT, INDIRECT, CONSEQUENTIAL, PUNITIVE OR
-INCIDENTAL DAMAGES EVEN IF YOU GIVE NOTICE OF THE POSSIBILITY OF SUCH
-DAMAGE.
-
-1.F.3. LIMITED RIGHT OF REPLACEMENT OR REFUND - If you discover a
-defect in this electronic work within 90 days of receiving it, you can
-receive a refund of the money (if any) you paid for it by sending a
-written explanation to the person you received the work from. If you
-received the work on a physical medium, you must return the medium
-with your written explanation. The person or entity that provided you
-with the defective work may elect to provide a replacement copy in
-lieu of a refund. If you received the work electronically, the person
-or entity providing it to you may choose to give you a second
-opportunity to receive the work electronically in lieu of a refund. If
-the second copy is also defective, you may demand a refund in writing
-without further opportunities to fix the problem.
-
-1.F.4. Except for the limited right of replacement or refund set forth
-in paragraph 1.F.3, this work is provided to you 'AS-IS', WITH NO
-OTHER WARRANTIES OF ANY KIND, EXPRESS OR IMPLIED, INCLUDING BUT NOT
-LIMITED TO WARRANTIES OF MERCHANTABILITY OR FITNESS FOR ANY PURPOSE.
-
-1.F.5. Some states do not allow disclaimers of certain implied
-warranties or the exclusion or limitation of certain types of
-damages. If any disclaimer or limitation set forth in this agreement
-violates the law of the state applicable to this agreement, the
-agreement shall be interpreted to make the maximum disclaimer or
-limitation permitted by the applicable state law. The invalidity or
-unenforceability of any provision of this agreement shall not void the
-remaining provisions.
-
-1.F.6. INDEMNITY - You agree to indemnify and hold the Foundation, the
-trademark owner, any agent or employee of the Foundation, anyone
-providing copies of Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works in
-accordance with this agreement, and any volunteers associated with the
-production, promotion and distribution of Project Gutenberg-tm
-electronic works, harmless from all liability, costs and expenses,
-including legal fees, that arise directly or indirectly from any of
-the following which you do or cause to occur: (a) distribution of this
-or any Project Gutenberg-tm work, (b) alteration, modification, or
-additions or deletions to any Project Gutenberg-tm work, and (c) any
-Defect you cause.
-
-Section 2. Information about the Mission of Project Gutenberg-tm
-
-Project Gutenberg-tm is synonymous with the free distribution of
-electronic works in formats readable by the widest variety of
-computers including obsolete, old, middle-aged and new computers. It
-exists because of the efforts of hundreds of volunteers and donations
-from people in all walks of life.
-
-Volunteers and financial support to provide volunteers with the
-assistance they need are critical to reaching Project Gutenberg-tm's
-goals and ensuring that the Project Gutenberg-tm collection will
-remain freely available for generations to come. In 2001, the Project
-Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation was created to provide a secure
-and permanent future for Project Gutenberg-tm and future
-generations. To learn more about the Project Gutenberg Literary
-Archive Foundation and how your efforts and donations can help, see
-Sections 3 and 4 and the Foundation information page at
-www.gutenberg.org
-
-
-
-Section 3. Information about the Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation
-
-The Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation is a non profit
-501(c)(3) educational corporation organized under the laws of the
-state of Mississippi and granted tax exempt status by the Internal
-Revenue Service. The Foundation's EIN or federal tax identification
-number is 64-6221541. Contributions to the Project Gutenberg Literary
-Archive Foundation are tax deductible to the full extent permitted by
-U.S. federal laws and your state's laws.
-
-The Foundation's principal office is in Fairbanks, Alaska, with the
-mailing address: PO Box 750175, Fairbanks, AK 99775, but its
-volunteers and employees are scattered throughout numerous
-locations. Its business office is located at 809 North 1500 West, Salt
-Lake City, UT 84116, (801) 596-1887. Email contact links and up to
-date contact information can be found at the Foundation's web site and
-official page at www.gutenberg.org/contact
-
-For additional contact information:
-
- Dr. Gregory B. Newby
- Chief Executive and Director
- gbnewby@pglaf.org
-
-Section 4. Information about Donations to the Project Gutenberg
-Literary Archive Foundation
-
-Project Gutenberg-tm depends upon and cannot survive without wide
-spread public support and donations to carry out its mission of
-increasing the number of public domain and licensed works that can be
-freely distributed in machine readable form accessible by the widest
-array of equipment including outdated equipment. Many small donations
-($1 to $5,000) are particularly important to maintaining tax exempt
-status with the IRS.
-
-The Foundation is committed to complying with the laws regulating
-charities and charitable donations in all 50 states of the United
-States. Compliance requirements are not uniform and it takes a
-considerable effort, much paperwork and many fees to meet and keep up
-with these requirements. We do not solicit donations in locations
-where we have not received written confirmation of compliance. To SEND
-DONATIONS or determine the status of compliance for any particular
-state visit www.gutenberg.org/donate
-
-While we cannot and do not solicit contributions from states where we
-have not met the solicitation requirements, we know of no prohibition
-against accepting unsolicited donations from donors in such states who
-approach us with offers to donate.
-
-International donations are gratefully accepted, but we cannot make
-any statements concerning tax treatment of donations received from
-outside the United States. U.S. laws alone swamp our small staff.
-
-Please check the Project Gutenberg Web pages for current donation
-methods and addresses. Donations are accepted in a number of other
-ways including checks, online payments and credit card donations. To
-donate, please visit: www.gutenberg.org/donate
-
-Section 5. General Information About Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works.
-
-Professor Michael S. Hart was the originator of the Project
-Gutenberg-tm concept of a library of electronic works that could be
-freely shared with anyone. For forty years, he produced and
-distributed Project Gutenberg-tm eBooks with only a loose network of
-volunteer support.
-
-Project Gutenberg-tm eBooks are often created from several printed
-editions, all of which are confirmed as not protected by copyright in
-the U.S. unless a copyright notice is included. Thus, we do not
-necessarily keep eBooks in compliance with any particular paper
-edition.
-
-Most people start at our Web site which has the main PG search
-facility: www.gutenberg.org
-
-This Web site includes information about Project Gutenberg-tm,
-including how to make donations to the Project Gutenberg Literary
-Archive Foundation, how to help produce our new eBooks, and how to
-subscribe to our email newsletter to hear about new eBooks.
-
-
-
-</pre>
-
- </body>
- <!-- created with ppgen.py 3.57c on 2020-06-07 13:40:11 GMT -->
-</html>
diff --git a/old/62346-h/images/cover.jpg b/old/62346-h/images/cover.jpg
deleted file mode 100644
index 2766062..0000000
--- a/old/62346-h/images/cover.jpg
+++ /dev/null
Binary files differ
diff --git a/old/62346-h/images/decoration.jpg b/old/62346-h/images/decoration.jpg
deleted file mode 100644
index 5345f08..0000000
--- a/old/62346-h/images/decoration.jpg
+++ /dev/null
Binary files differ
diff --git a/old/62346-h/images/decoration3.jpg b/old/62346-h/images/decoration3.jpg
deleted file mode 100644
index 915650c..0000000
--- a/old/62346-h/images/decoration3.jpg
+++ /dev/null
Binary files differ
diff --git a/old/62346-h/images/i_052f.jpg b/old/62346-h/images/i_052f.jpg
deleted file mode 100644
index b6d4327..0000000
--- a/old/62346-h/images/i_052f.jpg
+++ /dev/null
Binary files differ
diff --git a/old/62346-h/images/i_158f.jpg b/old/62346-h/images/i_158f.jpg
deleted file mode 100644
index d8011cd..0000000
--- a/old/62346-h/images/i_158f.jpg
+++ /dev/null
Binary files differ
diff --git a/old/62346-h/images/i_frontis.jpg b/old/62346-h/images/i_frontis.jpg
deleted file mode 100644
index a4dc9ff..0000000
--- a/old/62346-h/images/i_frontis.jpg
+++ /dev/null
Binary files differ
diff --git a/old/62346-h/images/title_medallion.jpg b/old/62346-h/images/title_medallion.jpg
deleted file mode 100644
index 42a9b41..0000000
--- a/old/62346-h/images/title_medallion.jpg
+++ /dev/null
Binary files differ